diff options
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 4 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-0.txt | 12625 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-0.zip | bin | 206341 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h.zip | bin | 9235491 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/67149-h.htm | 18353 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg | bin | 216593 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg | bin | 114199 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg | bin | 31495 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg | bin | 42598 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg | bin | 31725 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg | bin | 45088 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg | bin | 158622 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg | bin | 127915 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg | bin | 139352 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg | bin | 152970 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg | bin | 47114 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg | bin | 58833 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg | bin | 91646 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg | bin | 216325 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg | bin | 16277 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg | bin | 102381 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg | bin | 34182 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg | bin | 31127 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg | bin | 48972 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg | bin | 21843 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg | bin | 36072 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg | bin | 131453 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg | bin | 149383 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg | bin | 27982 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg | bin | 17120 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg | bin | 4406 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg | bin | 212743 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg | bin | 45188 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg | bin | 44316 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg | bin | 87336 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg | bin | 36902 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg | bin | 65823 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg | bin | 40730 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg | bin | 131832 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg | bin | 32722 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg | bin | 166356 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg | bin | 127550 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg | bin | 54709 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg | bin | 40907 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg | bin | 37508 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg | bin | 93806 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg | bin | 31928 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg | bin | 170334 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg | bin | 224582 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg | bin | 18737 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg | bin | 113969 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg | bin | 81768 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg | bin | 205965 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg | bin | 41539 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg | bin | 29463 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg | bin | 49275 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg | bin | 34842 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg | bin | 125907 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg | bin | 41051 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg | bin | 23914 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg | bin | 224318 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg | bin | 32816 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg | bin | 91671 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg | bin | 56811 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg | bin | 112626 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg | bin | 57296 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg | bin | 211096 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg | bin | 28624 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg | bin | 162042 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg | bin | 34618 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg | bin | 178182 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg | bin | 28187 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg | bin | 36803 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg | bin | 36857 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg | bin | 106513 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg | bin | 24033 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg | bin | 61421 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg | bin | 209584 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg | bin | 81250 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg | bin | 207681 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg | bin | 232569 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg | bin | 236979 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg | bin | 30580 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg | bin | 32792 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg | bin | 37764 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg | bin | 120973 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg | bin | 20424 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg | bin | 223603 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg | bin | 45276 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg | bin | 174698 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg | bin | 31913 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg | bin | 103617 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg | bin | 73772 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg | bin | 120558 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg | bin | 31400 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg | bin | 35608 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg | bin | 161908 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg | bin | 37884 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg | bin | 33447 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg | bin | 9779 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg | bin | 221345 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg | bin | 33180 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg | bin | 135716 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg | bin | 222999 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg | bin | 97514 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg | bin | 26193 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg | bin | 20189 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg | bin | 219443 -> 0 bytes |
110 files changed, 17 insertions, 30978 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7b82bc --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,4 @@ +*.txt text eol=lf +*.htm text eol=lf +*.html text eol=lf +*.md text eol=lf diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..4906023 --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #67149 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67149) diff --git a/old/67149-0.txt b/old/67149-0.txt deleted file mode 100644 index 08b62f9..0000000 --- a/old/67149-0.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,12625 +0,0 @@ -The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Child’s History of the World, by V. M. Hillyer - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and -most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms -of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at -www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you -will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before -using this eBook. - -Title: A Child’s History of the World - -Author: V. M. Hillyer - -Illustrators: Carle Michel Boog - M. S. Wright - -Release Date: January 12, 2022 [eBook #67149] -[Most recently updated: January 15, 2022] - -Language: English - -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - -Produced by: Alan, Tim Lindell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team - -*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD *** - - - - - A CHILD’S HISTORY - OF THE WORLD - - - - - By V. M. HILLYER - - - A CHILD’S GEOGRAPHY OF THE WORLD - A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD - CHILD TRAINING - THE DARK SECRET - - - With EDWARD G. HUEY - - A CHILD’S HISTORY OF ART - - -[Illustration] - - - - - A CHILD’S HISTORY - OF THE WORLD - - BY - V. M. HILLYER - - HEAD MASTER OF CALVERT SCHOOL - AUTHOR OF “CHILD TRAINING,” “KINDERGARTEN - AT HOME,” ETC. - - _With Many Illustrations by_ - CARLE MICHEL BOOG - AND - M. S. WRIGHT - - [Illustration] - - D. APPLETON-CENTURY COMPANY - INCORPORATED - NEW YORK LONDON - 1934 - - - - - COPYRIGHT, 1924, BY - THE CENTURY CO. - - All rights reserved. This book, or parts - thereof, must not be reproduced in any - form without permission of the publisher. - - - PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA - - - - -LIST OF STORIES - - - STORY PAGE - - 1 HOW THINGS STARTED 3 - - 2 UMFA-UMFA AND ITCHY-SCRATCHY 10 - - 3 FIRE! FIRE!! FIRE!!! 16 - - 4 FROM AN AIRPLANE 20 - - 5 REAL HISTORY BEGINS 24 - - 6 THE PUZZLE-WRITERS 30 - - 7 THE TOMB-BUILDERS 36 - - 8 A RICH LAND WHERE THERE WAS NO MONEY 42 - - 9 THE WANDERING JEWS 49 - - 10 FAIRY-TALE GODS 56 - - 11 A FAIRY-TALE WAR 64 - - 12 THE KINGS OF THE JEWS 70 - - 13 THE PEOPLE WHO MADE OUR A B C’S 74 - - 14 HARD AS NAILS 79 - - 15 THE CROWN OF LEAVES 84 - - 16 A BAD BEGINNING 89 - - 17 KINGS WITH CORKSCREW CURLS 94 - - 18 A CITY OF WONDER AND WICKEDNESS 99 - - 19 A SURPRISE PARTY 103 - - 20 THE OTHER SIDE OF THE WORLD 109 - - 21 RICH MAN, POOR MAN 114 - - 22 ROME KICKS OUT HER KINGS 119 - - 23 GREECE VS. PERSIA 124 - - 24 FIGHTING MAD 132 - - 25 ONE AGAINST A THOUSAND 137 - - 26 THE GOLDEN AGE 143 - - 27 WHEN GREEK MEETS GREEK 151 - - 28 WISE MEN AND OTHERWISE 156 - - 29 A BOY KING 162 - - 30 PICKING A FIGHT 168 - - 31 THE BOOT KICKS AND STAMPS 173 - - 32 THE NEW CHAMPION OF THE WORLD 177 - - 33 THE NOBLEST ROMAN OF THEM ALL 184 - - 34 AN EMPEROR WHO WAS MADE A GOD! 191 - - 35 “THINE IS THE KINGDOM, THE POWER, AND THE - GLORY” 197 - - 36 BLOOD AND THUNDER 203 - - 37 A GOOD EMPEROR AND A BAD SON 210 - - 38 I -- H -- -- S -- -- -- -- V -- -- -- -- -- 215 - - 39 OUR TOUGH ANCESTORS 219 - - 40 WHITE TOUGHS AND YELLOW TOUGHS MEET THE - CHAMPIONS OF THE WORLD 225 - - 41 NIGHTFALL 231 - - 42 BEING GOOD 236 - - 43 A CAMEL-DRIVER 242 - - 44 ARABIAN DAYS 250 - - 45 A LIGHT IN THE DARK AGES 257 - - 46 GETTING A START 264 - - 47 THE END OF THE WORLD 269 - - 48 REAL CASTLES 272 - - 49 KNIGHTS AND DAYS OF CHIVALRY 278 - - 50 A PIRATE’S GREAT GRANDSON 284 - - 51 A GREAT ADVENTURE 292 - - 52 TIT-TAT-TO; THREE KINGS IN A ROW 297 - - 53 BIBLES MADE OF STONE AND GLASS 304 - - 54 JOHN, WHOM NOBODY LOVED 311 - - 55 A GREAT STORY-TELLER 316 - - 56 “THING-A-MA-JIGGER” AND “WHAT-CHER-MA-CALL-IT”; - OR, A MAGIC NEEDLE AND A MAGIC - POWDER 322 - - 57 THELON GEST WART HATE VERWAS 327 - - 58 OFF WITH THE OLD, ON WITH THE NEW 333 - - 59 A SAILOR WHO FOUND A NEW WORLD 337 - - 60 FORTUNE-HUNTERS 346 - - 61 THE LAND OF ENCHANTMENT; OR, THE SEARCH - FOR GOLD AND ADVENTURE 354 - - 62 BORN AGAIN 359 - - 63 CHRISTIANS QUARREL 365 - - 64 KING ELIZABETH 372 - - 65 THE AGE OF ELIZABETH 378 - - 66 JAMES THE SERVANT; OR, WHAT’S IN A NAME? 384 - - 67 A KING WHO LOST HIS HEAD 390 - - 68 RED CAP AND RED HEELS 395 - - 69 A SELF-MADE MAN 402 - - 70 A PRINCE WHO RAN AWAY 407 - - 71 AMERICA GETS RID OF HER KING 412 - - 72 UPSIDE DOWN 420 - - 73 A LITTLE GIANT 428 - - 74 FROM PAN AND HIS PIPES TO THE PHONOGRAPH 435 - - 75 THE DAILY PAPERS OF 1854-1865 443 - - 76 THREE NEW POSTAGE STAMPS 449 - - 77 THE AGE OF MIRACLES 454 - - 78 GERMANY FIGHTS THE WORLD 460 - - 79 YESTERDAY, TO-DAY, AND TO-MORROW 465 - - - - - This page is not for you, boys and girls. - It is for that old man or woman--twenty, - thirty, or forty years old, who may peek - into this book; and is what they would - call the - -PREFACE - - -To give the child some idea of what has gone on in the world before he -arrived; - -To take him out of his little self-centered, shut-in life, which looms -so large because it is so close to his eyes; - -To extend his horizon, broaden his view, and open up the vista down the -ages past; - -To acquaint him with some of the big events and great names and fix -these in time and space as a basis for detailed study in the future; - -To give him a chronological file with main guides, into which he can -fit in its proper place all his further historical study-- - -Is the purpose of this first SURVEY OF THE WORLD’S HISTORY. - - - - - This part is not for you, either. It is for - your father, mother, or teacher, and is - what they would call the - -INTRODUCTION - - -In common with all children of my age, I was brought up on American -History and given no other history but American, year in and year out, -year after year for eight or more years. - -So far as I knew 1492 was the beginning of the world. Any events or -characters before that time, reference to which I encountered by any -chance, were put down in my mind in the same category with fairy-tales. -Christ and His times, of which I heard only in Sunday-school, were to -me mere fiction without reality. They were not mentioned in any history -that I knew and therefore, so I thought, must belong _not_ to a realm -in time and space, but to a spiritual realm. - -To give an American child only American History is as provincial as -to teach a Texas child only Texas History. Patriotism is usually -given as the reason for such history teaching. It only promotes a -narrow-mindedness and an absurd conceit, based on utter ignorance of -any other peoples and any other times--an intolerant egotism without -foundation in fact. Since the World War it has become increasingly more -and more important that American children should have a knowledge of -other countries and other peoples in order that their attitude may be -intelligent and unprejudiced. - -As young as nine years of age, a child is eagerly inquisitive as to -what has taken place in the ages past and readily grasps a concept of -World History. Therefore, for many years Calvert School nine-year-old -pupils have been taught World History in spite of academic and -parental skepticism and antagonism. But I have watched the gradual -drift toward adoption of this plan of history teaching, and with it an -ever-increasing demand for a text-book of general history for young -children. I have found, however, that all existing text-books have to -be largely abridged and also supplemented by a running explanation and -comment, to make them intelligible to the young child. - -The recent momentous studies into the native intelligence of children -show us what the average child at different ages can understand and -what he cannot understand--what dates, figures of speech, vocabulary, -generalities, and abstractions he can comprehend and what he cannot -comprehend--and in the future all text-books will have to be written -with constant regard for these intelligence norms. Otherwise, such -texts are very likely to be “over the child’s head.” They will be -trying to teach him some things at least that, in the nature of the -case, are beyond him. - -In spite of the fact that the writer has been in constant contact with -the child mind for a great many years, he has found that whatever -was written in his study had to be revised and rewritten each time -after the lesson had been tried out in the class-room. Even though -the first writing was in what he considered the simplest language, -he has found that each and every word and expression has had to be -subjected again and again to this class-room test to determine what -meaning is conveyed. The slightest inverted phraseology or possibility -of double meaning has oftentimes been misconstrued or found confusing. -For instance, the statement that “Rome was _on_ the Tiber River” has -quite commonly been taken to mean that the city was literally built -_on top_ of the river, and the child has had some sort of fantastic -vision of houses built on piles in the river. A child of nine is still -very young--he may still believe in Santa Claus--younger in ideas, in -vocabulary and in understanding than most adults appreciate--even -though they be parents or teachers--and new information can hardly be -put too simply. - -So the topics selected have not always been the most important--but the -most important that can be understood and appreciated by a child. Most -political, sociological, economic, or religious generalities are beyond -a child’s comprehension, no matter how simply told. After all, this -History is only a preliminary story. - -Excellent biographies and stories from general history have been -written. But biographies from history do not give an historic outline. -They do not give any outline at all for future filling in; and, indeed, -unless they themselves are fitted into such a general historical -scheme, they are nothing more than so many disconnected tales floating -about in the child’s mind with no associations of time or space. - -The treatment of the subject in this book is, therefore, -chronological--telling the story of what has happened century by -century and epoch by epoch, not by nations. The story of one nation is -interrupted to take up that of another as different plots in a novel -are brought forward simultaneously. This is in line with the purpose, -which is to give the pupil a continuous view or panorama of the ages, -rather than Greek History from start to finish, then, retracing the -steps of time, Roman History, and so on. The object is to sketch the -whole picture in outline, leaving the details to be gradually filled -in by later study, as the artist sketches the general scheme of his -picture before filling in the details. Such a scheme is as necessary to -orderly classification of historical knowledge as is a filing system in -any office that can function properly or even at all. - -The Staircase of Time is to give a visual idea of the extent of time -and the progressive steps in the History of the World. Each “flight” -represents a thousand years, and each “step” a hundred--a century. If -you have a spare wall, either in the play-room, attic, or barn such -a Staircase of Time on a large scale may be drawn upon it from floor -to reaching height and made a feature if elaborated with pictures or -drawings of people and events. If the wall faces the child’s bed so -much the better, for when lying awake in the morning or at any other -time, instead of imagining fantastic designs on the wall-paper, he may -picture the crowded events on the Staircase of Time. At any rate, the -child should constantly refer either to such a Staircase of Time or to -the Time Table as each event is studied, until he has a mental image of -the Ages past. - -At first a child does not appreciate time values represented by numbers -or the relative position of dates on a time line and will wildly say -twenty-five hundred B. C. or twenty-five thousand B. C. or twenty-five -million B. C. indiscriminately. Only by constantly referring dates to -position on the Staircase of Time or the Time Table can a child come -to visualize dates. You may be _amused_, but do not be _amazed_, if a -child gives 776 thousand years A.D. as the date for the First Olympiad, -or says that Italy is located in Athens, or that Abraham was a hero of -the Trojan War. - -If you have ever been introduced to a roomful of strangers at one -time, you know how futile it is to attempt even to remember their -names to say nothing of connecting names and faces. It is necessary -to hear something interesting about each one before you can begin to -recall names and faces. Likewise an introduction to World History, the -characters and places in which are utterly unknown strangers to the -child, must be something more than a mere name introduction, and there -must be very few introductions given at a time or both names and faces -will be instantly forgotten. It is also necessary to repeat new names -constantly in order that the pupil may gradually become familiarized -with them, for so many strange people and places are bewildering. - -In order to serve the purpose of a basal outline, which in the future -is to be filled in, it is necessary that the Time Table be made a -permanent possession of the pupil. This Time Table, therefore, should -be studied like the multiplication tables until it is known one -hundred per cent and for “keeps,” and until the topic connected with -each date can be elaborated as much as desired. The aim should be to -have the pupil able to start with Primitive Man and give a summary of -World History to the present time, with dates and chief events without -prompting, questioning, hesitation, or mistake. Does this seem too much -to expect? It is not as difficult as it may sound, if suggestions given -in the text for connecting the various events into a sequence and for -passing names and events in a condensed review are followed. Hundreds -of Calvert children each year are successfully required to do this very -thing. - -The attitude, however, usually assumed by teachers, that “even if the -pupil forgets it all, there will be left a valuable impression,” is too -often an apology for superficial teaching and superficial learning. -History may be made just as much a “mental discipline” as some other -studies, but only if difficulties of dates and other abstractions are -squarely met and overcome by hard study and learned to be remembered, -not merely to be forgotten after the recitation. The story part the -child will easily remember, but it is the “who and when and where and -why” that are important, and this part is the serious study. Instead -of, “A man, once upon a time,” he should say, “King John in 1215 at -Runnymede because--” - -This book, therefore, is not a supplementary reader but a basal history -study. Just enough narrative is told to give the skeleton flesh and -blood and make it living. The idea is not how much but how little can -be told; to cut down one thousand pages to less than half of that -number without leaving only dry bones. - -No matter how the subject is presented it is necessary that the child -do his part and put his own brain to work; and for this purpose he -_should be required to retell each story after he has read it_ and -should be repeatedly questioned on names and dates as well as stories, -to make sure he is retaining and assimilating what he hears. - -I recall how once upon a time a young chap, just out of college, taught -his first class in history. With all the enthusiasm of a full-back who -has just kicked a goal from field, he talked, he sang; he drew maps -on the blackboard, on the floor, on the field; he drew pictures, he -vaulted desks, and even stood on his head to illustrate points. His -pupils attended spellbound, with their eyes wide open, their ears wide -open, and their mouths wide open. They missed nothing. They drank in -his flow of words with thirst unquenched; but, like Baron Munchausen, -he had failed to look at the other end of the drinking horse that had -been cut in half. At the end of a month his kindly principal suggested -a test, and he gave it with perfect confidence. - -There were only three questions: - - (1) Tell all you can about Columbus. - (2) “ “ “ “ “ Jamestown. - (3) “ “ “ “ “ Plymouth. - -And here are the three answers of one of the most interested pupils: - - (1) He was a _grate_ man. - (2) “ “ “ “ “ - (3) “ “ “ “ “ _to_. - - -Here is the - -STAIRCASE OF TIME - -It starts far, far, below the bottom of the pages and rises up, UP, UP -to where we are NOW--each step a hundred years, each flight of steps a -thousand. It will keep on up until it reaches high heaven. From where -we are NOW let us look down the flights below us and listen to the -Story of what has happened in the long years gone by. - -[Illustration] - -TIME TABLE - -with - -DATES AND OTHER FOOD FOR THOUGHT - -_Don’t devour these dates all at once, or they’ll make you sick, and -you’ll never want to see one again._ - -_Take them piecemeal, only one or two at a time after each story, and -be sure to digest them thoroughly._ - - PAGE - Beginning of the Earth 3 - First Rain-storm 7 - Plants 7 - Mites 8 - Insects 8 - Fish 8 - Frogs 8 - Snakes 8 - Birds 8 - Animals 8 - Monkeys 8 - People 8 - 4000 B.C. Bronze Age Begins 16 - 3400 B.C. Menes 28 - 2900 B.C. Cheops 38 - 2300 B.C. Chaldean Eclipse 46 - 1900 B.C. Abraham Leaves Ur 49 - 1700 B.C. Israelites go to Egypt 51 - 1300 B.C. Exodus; Iron Age Begins 54 - 1200 B.C. Trojan War 64 - 1100 B.C. Samuel; Saul 70 - 1000 B.C. Homer; Solomon; Hiram 68, 71, 76 - 900 B.C. Lycurgus 79 - 776 B.C. First Olympiad 87 - 753 B.C. Founding of Rome 89 - 700 B.C. Nineveh at Top 96 - 612 B.C. Fall of Nineveh 98 - Draco; Solon 114-115 - 538 B.C. Fall of Babylon 108 - 509 B.C. End of Kings at Rome 119 - 500 B.C. Brahmanism 111 - Buddhism 112 - Confucius 113 - 490 B.C. Marathon 127 - 480 B.C. Thermopylæ; 137 - Salamis 140 - 480 B.C. Golden Age 143 - 430 B.C. Peloponnesian War 151 - 336 B.C. } - 323 B.C. } Alexander the Great 159, 162 - 202 B.C. Zama 175 - 100 B.C. Birth of Julius Cæsar 184 - 55 B.C. } - 54 B.C. } Conquest of Britain 186 - 44 B.C. Death of Julius Cæsar 190 - 27 B.C. Augustus and the Empire 191 - 4 B.C. Birth of Christ 197 - Nero 203 - Titus 206 - 79 A.D. Pompeii destroyed 208 - 179 A.D. Marcus Aurelius 210 - 323 A.D. Constantine 215 - 476 A.D. Downfall of Rome 227 - 622 A.D. The Hegira 244 - 732 A.D. Tours 249 - 800 A.D. Charlemagne 257 - 900 A.D. King Alfred the Great 264 - 1000 A.D. First Discovery of America 269 - 1066 A.D. William the Conqueror 286 - 1100 A.D. The Crusades 292 - 1215 A.D. King John; Magna Charta 311 - 1300 A.D. Marco Polo 318 - 1338 A.D. Beginning of One Hundred - Years’ War; Crécy; Black - Death; Joan of Arc 327 - 1440 A.D. Invention of Printing 333 - 1453 A.D. Fall of Constantinople 335 - 1492 A.D. Columbus; Discovery of - America 337 - 1497 A.D. Vasco da Gama 348 - 1500 A.D. The Renaissance 359 - The Reformation 365 - Charles V 367 - King Henry VIII 369 - Elizabeth 372 - 1588 A.D. Spanish Armada 375 - 1600 A.D. Shakspere 380 - 1640 A.D. Charles I and Oliver Cromwell 390 - Cardinal Richelieu 395 - Louis XIV 397 - 1700 A.D. Peter the Great 402 - 1750 A.D. Frederick the Great 407 - 1776 A.D. American Revolution 412 - 1789 A.D. French Revolution 420 - 1800 A.D. Napoleon 428 - 1861 A.D. Civil War 447 - 1914 A.D. } - 1918 A.D. } The Great War 460 - - - A CHILD’S HISTORY - OF THE WORLD - - BEGINS HERE - - - - -1 - -How Things Started - - -Once upon a time there was a boy-- - -Just like me. - -He had to stay in bed in the morning until seven o’clock until his -father and mother were ready to get up; - -So did I. - -As he was always awake long before this time, he used to lie there and -think about all sorts of curious things; - -So did I. - -One thing he used to wonder was this: - -What would the world be like if there were-- - -No fathers and mothers, - -No uncles and aunts, - -No cousins or other children to play with, - -_No people at all, except himself_ in the whole world! - -Perhaps you have wondered the same thing; - -So did I. - -At last he used to get so lonely, just from thinking how dreadful such -a world would be, that he could stand it no longer and would run -to his mother’s room and jump into bed by her side just to get this -terrible thought out of his mind; - -So did I--for _I was the boy_. - -Well, there _was_ a time long, long, long ago when there were no men -or women or children, _NO PEOPLE_ of any kind in the whole world. Of -course there were no houses, for there was no one to build them or to -live in them, no towns or cities--nothing that people make. There were -just wild animals--bears and wolves, birds and butterflies, frogs and -snakes, turtles and fish. Can you think of such a world as that? - - Then, - long, long, long - -before that, there was a time when there were _NO PEOPLE_ and _NO -ANIMALS_ of any sort in the whole world; there were just growing -plants, trees and bushes, grass and flowers. Can you think of such a -world as that? - - Then, - long, long, long, - long, long, long - -before that, there was a time when there were _NO PEOPLE, NO ANIMALS, -NO PLANTS_, in the whole world; there was just bare rock and water -everywhere. Can you think of such a world as that? - - Then, - long, long, long - long, long, long--you might - keep on saying-- - “long, long, long,” all day, and - to-morrow, and all - next week, and next - month, and next - year, and it would - not be long enough-- - -before this, there was a time when there was -_NO WORLD AT ALL!_ - - -There were only the Stars - -Nothing else! - -Now, real Stars are not things with points like those in the corner of -a flag or the gold ones you put on a Christmas tree. The real stars in -the sky have no points. They are huge burning coals of fire--coals of -fire. Each star, however, is so huge that there is nothing in the world -now anywhere nearly as big. One little bit, one little scrap of a star -is bigger than our whole world--than our whole world. - -One of these stars is our Sun--yes, our Sun. The other stars would -look the same as the Sun if we could get as close to them. But at that -time, so long, long ago, our Sun was not just a big, round, white, -hot ball as we see it in the sky to-day. It was then more like the -fireworks you may have seen on the Fourth of July. It was whirling and -sputtering and throwing off sparks. - -[Illustration: The sun sputtering and throwing off sparks.] - -One of these sparks which the Sun threw far off got cool just as a -spark from the crackling log in the fireplace gets cool, and this -cooled-off spark was-- - - What do you suppose? - See if you can guess-- - It was our World!--yes, the World - on which we now live. - -At first, however, our World or Earth was nothing but a ball of rock. -This ball of rock was wrapped around with steam, like a heavy fog. - -Then the steam turned to rain and it rained on the World, - - a a a - n n n - d d d - - i i i - t t t - - r r r - a a a - i i i - n n n - e e e - d d d - -until it had filled up the hollows and made enormously big puddles. -These puddles were the oceans. The dry places were bare _rock_. - -Then, after this, came the first living things--_tiny plants_ that you -could only have seen under a microscope. At first they grew only in -the water, then along the water’s edge, then out on the rock. - -Then dirt or soil, as people call it, formed all over the rock and made -the rock into land, and the plants grew larger and spread farther over -the land. - -Then, after this, came the first _tiny animals_ in the water. They were -wee _Mites_ like drops of jelly. - -Then, after this, came things like _Insects_, some that live _in_ the -water, some _on_ the water, some _on_ the land, and some _in_ the air. - -Then, after this, came _Fish_, that live only in the water. - -Then, after this, came _Frogs_, that live in the water and on the land, -too. - -Then, after this, came _Snakes_ and huge _lizards_ bigger than -alligators, more like dragons; and they grew so big that at last they -could not move and died because they could not get enough food to eat. - -Then, after this, came _Birds_ that lay eggs and those _Animals_ like -foxes and elephants and cows that nurse their babies when they are born. - -Then, after this, came _Monkeys_. - -Then, last of all, came--what do you suppose? Yes--_People_--men, -women, and children. - -Here are the steps; see if you can take them: - - STAR, SUN; - SUN, SPARK; - SPARK, WORLD; - WORLD, STEAM; - STEAM, RAIN; - RAIN, OCEANS. - - OCEANS, PLANTS; - PLANTS, MITES; - MITES, INSECTS; - INSECTS, FISH; - FISH, FROGS; - FROGS, SNAKES. - - SNAKES, BIRDS; - BIRDS, ANIMALS; - ANIMALS, MONKEYS; - MONKEYS, PEOPLE; - And here we are! - -What do you suppose will be next? - - - - -2 - -Umfa-Umfa and Itchy-Scratchy - - -How do you suppose I know about all these things that took place so -long ago? - -I don’t. - -I’m only guessing about them. - -But there are different kinds of guesses. If I hold out my two closed -hands and ask you to guess which one has the penny in it, that is one -kind of a guess. Your guess might be right or it might be wrong. It -would be just luck. - -But there is another kind of a guess. When there is snow on the ground -and I see tracks of a boot in the snow, I guess that a man must have -passed by, for boots don’t usually walk without some one in them. That -kind of a guess is not just luck but common sense. - -And so we can guess about a great many things that have taken place -long ago, even though there was no one there at the time to see them or -tell about them. - -Men have dug down deep under the ground in different parts of the world -and have found there--what do you suppose? - -I don’t believe you would ever guess. - -They have found the heads of arrows and spears and hatchets. - -The peculiar thing about these arrows and spears and hatchets is that -they are not made of iron or steel, as you might expect, but of stone. - -Now, we are sure that only men could have made and used such things, -for birds and fish or other animals do not use hatchets or spears. -We are also sure that these men must have lived long, long years ago -before iron and steel were known, because it must have taken long, long -years for these things to have become covered up so deep by dust and -dirt. We have also found the bones of the people themselves, who must -have died thousands upon thousands of years ago, long before any one -began to write down history. So we know that the people who were living -on the earth then were working and playing, eating and fighting--doing -many of the same things we are to-day--especially the fighting. - -This time in the pre-history of the world, when people used such things -made of stone, is therefore called THE STONE AGE. - -These First Stone Age People we call _Primitive_, which simply means -First as a Primer means First Reader. Primitive People were wild -animals. Unlike other wild animals, however, they walked on their hind -legs. - -These First People had hair growing, not just on their heads, but all -over their bodies, like some shaggy dogs. They had no houses of any -sort in which to live. They simply lay down on the ground when night -came. Later, when the earth became cold, they found caves in the rocks -or in the hillsides where they could get away from the cold and storms -and other wild animals. So men, women, and children of this time were -called _Cave People_. - -They spent their days hunting some animals and running and hiding from -others. They caught animals by trapping them in a pit covered over with -bushes, or they killed them with a club or a rock if they had a chance, -or with stone-headed arrows or hatchets. They even drew pictures of -these animals on the walls of their caves, scratching the picture with -a pointed stone, and some of these pictures we can still see to-day. - -They lived on berries and nuts and grass-seeds. They robbed the nests -of birds for the eggs, which they ate raw, for they had no fire to cook -with. They were blood-thirsty; they liked to drink the warm blood of -animals they killed, as you would a glass of milk. - -They talked to each other by some sort of grunts-- - -“Umfa, umfa, glug, glug.” - -They made clothes of skins of animals they killed, for there was no -such thing as cloth. And yet, although they were real men, they lived -so much like wild animals that we call such people _savages_. - -Primitive Men were not pleasant people. They were fearful and cruel -creatures, who beat and killed and robbed whenever they had a chance. - -A cave man got his wife by stealing a girl away from her own cave home, -knocking her senseless, and dragging her off by her hair, if necessary. -The men were fighters but not brave. They would kill other animals and -other men if the others were weaker or if they could sneak upon them -and catch them off their guard, but if others were stronger they would -run and hide. - -Their only rule of life was hurt and kill what you can, and run from -what you can’t. This is what we call the first law of nature--every man -for himself. They knew if they didn’t kill they would be killed, for -there were no laws nor police to protect them. - -These primitive cave people are our ancestors, and we get from them -many of their wild ways. In spite of our religion and manners and -education, there are many men still living who act in the same way when -they get a chance. - -Jails are made for such men. - -Suppose you had been a boy or a girl in the Stone Age, with a name -like Itchy-Scratchy. I wonder how you would have liked the life. - -When you woke up in the morning, you would not have bathed or even -washed your hands and face or brushed your teeth or combed your hair. - -You ate with your fingers, for there were no knives or forks or spoons -or cups or saucers, only one bowl--which your mother had made out of -mud and dried in the sun to hold water to drink--no dishes to wash and -put away, no chairs, no tables, no table manners. - -There were no books, no paper, no pencils. - -There was no Saturday or Sunday, January or July. Except that one day -was warm and sunny or another cold and rainy, they were all alike. -There was no school to go to. Every day was a holiday. - -There was nothing to do all day long but make mud pies or pick berries -or play tag with your brothers and sisters. - -I wonder how you would like that kind of life! - -“Fine!” do you think?--“a great life--just like camping out?” - -But I have only told you part of the story. - -The cave would have been cold and damp and dark, with only the bare -ground or a pile of leaves for a bed. There would probably have been -bats and big spiders sharing the cave with you. - -You might have had on the skin of some animal your father had killed -but as this only covered part of your body and as there was no fire, -you would have felt cold in winter, and when it got very cold you might -have frozen to death. - -For breakfast you might have had some dried berries or grass-seed or a -piece of raw meat, for dinner the same thing, for supper still the same -thing. - -You would never have had any bread or milk or griddle-cakes with syrup, -or oatmeal with sugar on it, or apple pie or ice-cream. - -There was nothing to do all day long but watch out for wild -animals--bears and tigers; for there was no door with lock and key, and -a tiger, if he found you out, could go wherever you went and “get you” -even in your cave. - -And then some day your father, who had left the cave in the morning to -go hunting, would not return, and you would know he had been torn to -pieces by some wild beast, and you would wonder how long before your -turn would come next. - -Do you think you would like to have lived then? - - - - -3 - -Fire! Fire!! Fire!!! - - -The first things are usually the most interesting--the first baby, the -first tooth, the first step, the first word, the first spanking. This -book will be chiefly the story of first things; those that came second -or third or fourth or fifth you can read about and study later. - -Primitive People did not at first know what fire was. They had no -matches nor any way of making a light or a fire. They had no light -at night. They had no fire to warm themselves by. They had no fire -with which to cook their food. Somewhere and sometime, we do not know -exactly when or how, they found out how to make and use fire. - -If you rub your hands together rapidly, they become warm. Try it. If -you rub them together still more rapidly, they become hot. If you rub -two sticks together rapidly, they become warm. If you rub two sticks -together very, very, very rapidly, they become hot and at last, if you -keep it up long enough and fast enough, are set on fire. The Indians -and boy scouts do this and make a fire by twisting one stick against -another. - -This was one of the first inventions, and this invention was as -remarkable for them at that time as the invention of electric light in -our own times. - -People of the Stone Age had hair and beards that were never cut, -because they had nothing to cut them with, even had they wanted them -short, which they probably didn’t. - -Their finger-nails grew like claws until they broke off. - -They had no clothes made of cloth, for they had no cloth and nothing -with which to cut and sew cloth if they had. - -They had no saws to cut boards, no hammer or nails to fasten them -together to make houses or furniture. - -They had no forks nor spoons; no pots nor pans; no buckets nor shovels; -no needles nor pins. - -The People of the Stone Age had never seen or heard of such a thing as -iron or steel or tin or brass or anything made of these metals. For -thousands and thousands of years Primitive People got along without any -of the things that are made of metal. - -Then one day a Stone Age Man found out something by accident; a -“discovery” we call it. - -He was making a fire; and a fire, which is to us such a common, -every-day thing, was still to him very wonderful. Round his fire he -placed some rock to make a sort of camp-fire stove. Now, it happened -that this particular rock was not ordinary rock but what we now call -“ore,” for it had copper in it. The heat of the fire melted some of the -copper out of the rock, and it ran out on the ground. - -What were those bright, shining drops? - -He examined them. - -How pretty they were! - -He heated some more of the same rock and got some more copper. - -[Illustration: A cave man discovering copper.] - -Thus was the first metal discovered. - -At first people used the copper for beads and ornaments, it was so -bright and shiny. But they soon found out that copper could be pounded -into sharp blades and points, which were much better than the stone -knives and arrow-heads they had used before. - -But notice that it was not iron they discovered first, it was copper. - -We think people next discovered tin in somewhat the same way. Then, -after that, they found out that tin when mixed with copper made a -still harder and better metal than either alone. This metal, made of -tin and copper together, we now call bronze; and for two or three -thousand years people made their tools and weapons out of bronze. And -so we call the time when men used bronze tools, and bronze weapons for -hunting and fighting, the Bronze Age. - -At last some man discovered iron, and he soon saw that iron was better -for most useful things than either copper or bronze. The Iron Age -started with the discovery of iron, and we are still in the Iron Age. - -As people who lived in the Bronze and Iron Ages were able, after the -discovery of metal, to do many things they could not possibly have done -before with only stone, and as they lived much more as we do now, we -call people of the Bronze and Iron Ages “civilized.” - -You may have heard in your mythology or fairy tales of a Golden Age -also, but by this is meant something quite different. The Golden Age -means a time when everything was beautiful and lovely and everybody -wise and good. There have been times in the World’s History which have -been called the Golden Age for this reason. - -But I am afraid there never has been really a golden age--only in -fairy-tales. - - - - -4 - -From an Airplane - - -People of the Bronze and Iron Ages thought the world was flat, and they -knew only a little bit of the world, the small part where they lived; -and they thought that if you went too far the world came to an end -where you would - - TU - M - B - L - E - - O - F - F - -The far-away land which nobody knew they called the Ultima Thule. This -is a nice name to say--Ultima Thule, Ultima Thule--far-away Ultima -Thule. - -If we should go up in an airplane and look down on the world at the -place where the first civilized people once lived, we should see two -rivers, a sea and a gulf, and from so high up in the air they would -look something like this: - -[Illustration: Map of Mesopotamia and Mediterranean.] - -Now, you probably have never even heard of these rivers and seas, and -yet they have been known longer than any other places in the world. One -of these lines is the Tigris River, and the other is the Euphrates. -They run along getting closer and closer together until at last they -join each other and flow into what is called the Persian Gulf. - -You might make these two rivers in the ground of your yard or garden or -draw them on the floor if your mother will let you. Just for fun you -might name your drinking-cup “Tigris” and your glass “Euphrates.” Then -you might call your mouth, into which they both empty, the “Persian -Gulf,” for you will hear a great many new names by and by, and as -grown-up people give names to their houses and boats, to their horses -and dogs, why shouldn’t you give names to things that belong to you? -For instance, you might call your chair, your bed, your table, your -comb and brush, even your hat and shoes, after these strange names. - -Then, if we flew in our airplane to the west, we should see a country -called Egypt, another river, the Nile, and a sea now named the -Mediterranean. Mediterranean simply means “between the land,” for this -sea is surrounded by land. It is, indeed, almost like a big lake. It -is supposed that long, long ago in the Stone Age, there was no water -at all where this sea now is, only a dry valley, and that people once -lived there. - -Along the Nile in Egypt and the Tigris and Euphrates were the only -civilized nations living in the Bronze Age. The rest of the World -people knew nothing about. There may have been Cave Men living in other -parts of the World, but it is only of the people in these two places -that we have any written history until after the Iron Age began. - -All of the people who lived in the country of the Tigris and Euphrates -were white. We don’t know how nor when nor where colored people first -lived, though it is interesting to guess. There were, we think, just -three different white families and from these three families all the -white people in the world are descended. Yes, your family came from -here, ’way, ’way, ’way, ’way, back. So you will want to know the names -of these three families and which one was your own. They were: - - The Indo-Europeans, often called Aryans, - The Semites, and - The Hamites. - -Most of us belong to the Aryan family, some are Semites, but very few -in this part of the World are Hamites. - -If your name is Henry or Charles or William, you are probably an Aryan. - -If it is Moses or Solomon, you are probably a Semite. - -If it is Shufu or Rameses, you are probably a Hamite. - -The Aryans came from higher up on the map than the other two families, -we think. They were the first people to tame wild horses and to use -them for riding and drawing carts. They also had tamed cows which they -used for milk, and sheep for their wool. - - - - -5 - -Real History Begins or ’Way ’Way Back to the Time of the Gipsies - - -You can remember the big things that have happened in your own lifetime. - -And you have of course heard your father tell about things that -happened in his own life--how he fought the Germans in the Great War, -perhaps. - -And if your grandfather is still living, he can tell you still other -stories of things that took place when he was a boy before even your -father was born. - - Perhaps your - great, - great, - grandfather - may have been living when Washington was - President, and _his_ - great, - great, - great, - great, - grandfather - -may have been living when there were only wild Indians in this country. - -Although these ancestors, as they are called, are dead long since, the -story of what did happen in all their lifetimes ’way, ’way back has -been written down in books and this story is history--“his story” one -boy named it. - -Christ was living in the Year 1--no, not the first year of the world, -of course. - -Do you know how many years ago that was? - -You can tell if you know what year this is now. - -If Christ were living to-day, how old would He be? - -Nineteen hundred and more years may seem a long time. But perhaps you -have seen or heard of a man or a woman who was a hundred years old. -Have you? - -Well, in nineteen hundred years only nineteen men each a hundred years -old might have lived one after the other--nineteen men one after the -other since the time of Christ--and that doesn’t seem so long after all! - -Everything that happened _before_ Christ was born is called B.C., which -you can guess are the initials of Before Christ, so B.C. stands for -Before Christ. So much is easy. - -Everything that has happened in the world _since_ the time of Christ is -called A.D. This is not so easy for though A. might stand for After, -we know D. is not the initial of Christ. As a matter of fact, A. D. -are the initials of two Latin words, “Anno Domini.” Anno means “in the -year,” Domini “of the Lord”; so that Anno Domini is “in the year, of -the Lord,” which in ordinary, every-day language means of course “since -the time of Christ.” - -The things I have told you that I have had to guess at we call -Before-History, or _Pre-History_--which means the same thing. But the -things that have happened in the lifetime of people, who have written -them down--the stories I don’t have to guess at--we call _History_. - -The first history that we feel fairly sure is really true begins with -the Hamite family. The Hamites, you remember, were one of the three -families of the white race I have already told you about who lived by -the Tigris and Euphrates. We think that they moved away from the Tigris -and Euphrates Rivers and went down to Egypt long before history began. - -Of course they didn’t pack all their furniture on a big wagon and -move to Egypt, as you might move from the house where you now live to -another. They lived in tents then and not in houses at all, and they -only moved along a day’s journey at a time as campers or Gipsies might -do. In fact, Gipsy is short for Egyptian. When they got tired of one -place or had eaten up everything there was near-by, they rolled up -their tents, packed them on camels, and moved a little farther along -to a new place. And so camping here for a while, then gradually moving -farther along to the next good place and camping there, they at last -got as far off as the land we now call Egypt. When they finally reached -Egypt they found it such a fine country in which to live that there -they stayed for good and were called Egyptians. - -Why do you suppose they found Egypt such a fine country in which to -live? It was chiefly on account of a habit of the river Nile--a bad -habit you might at first think it--a habit of flooding the country once -every year. - -It rains so hard in the spring that the water fills up the river Nile, -overflows its banks, and spreads far out over the land, but not very -deep. It is as if you had left a water-spigot turned on and the water -running, or had begun to water your garden with a hose, and then you -had gone off and forgotten it. - -But the people know when the overflow is coming and they are glad for -it to come, so they put banks around some of it so that it is stored -up for watering the land during the rest of the year when there is no -rain. After most of the water has dried up, it has left a layer of -rich, dark, moist earth over the whole country. In this earth it is -easy to grow dates, wheat, and other things which are good for food. - -If it were not for this yearly overflow of the Nile, the country of -Egypt would be a sandy desert in which no plant or living thing would -grow--for all plants as well as animals must have water and will die -without it. Egypt, without water, would be like the great Sahara -Desert, which is not far away. It is the Nile, therefore, that makes -the land so rich and Egypt such an easy and cheap country to live -in, for food grows with little or no labor and costs almost nothing. -Besides this, the climate is so warm that people need little clothing -and do not have to buy coal or make fires to heat their houses. So it -was to this country that the Hamites at last came, finally settled -down, and were thereafter called Egyptians. - -[Illustration: Menes, 3400 B. C.] - -The first Egyptian king whose name we know was Menes, but we do not -know much about him. We believe he built some kind of waterworks -so that the people might better use the water of the Nile, and he -probably lived about 3400 B. C. He may have lived either earlier or -later, but as this is an easy date to remember, we shall take it for -a starting-point. You might remember it by supposing it is a telephone -number of a person you wanted to call up: - -Menes, First Egyptian king . . 3400 B.C. - -[Illustration] - - - - -6 - -The Puzzle-Writers - - -People of the Stone Age had learned how to talk to each other, but they -could not write, for there was no such thing as an alphabet or written -words, and so they could not send notes or messages to one another or -write stories. The Egyptians were the first people to think of a way to -write what they wanted to say. - -The Egyptians did not write with letters like ours, however, but with -signs that looked like little pictures, a lion, a spear, a bird, a -whip. This picture-writing was called hieroglyphics--see if you can say -“Hi-e-ro-glyph-ics.” Perhaps you have seen, in the puzzle sections of -a newspaper, stories written in pictures for you to guess the meaning. -Well, hieroglyphics were something like that. - -Here is the name of an Egyptian queen, whom you will hear about -later--written in hieroglyphics; her name you would never guess from -this funny writing. It is “Cleopatra.” - -A king’s or queen’s name always had a line drawn around it, like the -one you see around the above name in order to mark it more prominently -and give it more importance. It was something like the square or circle -your mother may put around her initials or monogram on her letter-paper. - -But there was no paper in those days and so the Egyptians wrote on the -leaves of a plant called papyrus that grew in the water. It is from -this name “papyrus” that we get the name “paper.” Can you see that -“paper” and “papyrus” look and sound something alike? The Egyptians’ -books were written by hand, of course, but they had no pencils nor pens -nor ink to write with. For a pen they used a reed, split at the end, -and for ink a mixture of water and soot. - -[Illustration: Cleopatra in hieroglyphic writing.] - -Their books were not made of separate pages like our books, but from -a long sheet of papyrus-leaves pasted together. This was rolled up to -form what was called a scroll, something like a roll of wall-paper, and -was read as it was unrolled. - -Stories of their kings and battles and great events in their history -they used to write on the walls of their buildings and monuments. This -writing they carved into the stone, so that it would last much longer -than that on the papyrus-leaves. - -All the old Egyptians, who wrote in hieroglyphics and knew how to read -this writing, had died long since, and for a great many years no one -knew what such writing meant. But a little over a hundred years ago a -man found out by accident how to read and understand hieroglyphics once -again. This is the way he happened to do so. - -The Nile separates into different streams before it flows into the -Mediterranean Sea. These separate streams are called mouths and one of -these mouths has been given the name “Rosetta.” - -One day a man was digging nearby this Rosetta Mouth when he dug up a -stone something like a tombstone with several kinds of writing on it. -The top writing was in pictures which we now call hieroglyphics, and no -one understood what it meant. Below this was written what was supposed -to be the same story in the Greek language, and a great many people do -understand Greek. All one had to do, therefore, to find out the meaning -of the hieroglyphics, was to compare the two writings. It was like -reading secret writing when we know what the letters stand for. You may -have tried to solve a puzzle in the back of your magazine, and this -was just such an interesting puzzle, only there was no one to tell the -answer in the next number. - -The puzzle was not so easy as it sounds, however, for it took a man -almost twenty years to solve it. That is a long time for any one to -spend in trying to solve a puzzle, isn’t it? But after this “key” to -the puzzle was found, men were able to read all of the hieroglyphics -in Egypt and so to find out what happened in that country long before -Christ was born. - -This stone is called the Rosetta Stone, from the Rosetta Mouth of the -Nile where it was found. It is now in the great British Museum in -London and is very famous, because from it we were able to learn so -much history which we otherwise would not have known. - -Egypt was ruled over by a king who was called a Pharaoh. When he died -his son became the Pharaoh and so on. All the other people were divided -into classes, and the children in each class usually became just what -their fathers had been. It was very unusual for an Egyptian to start at -the bottom and work up to the top, as a poor boy in this country may -do, though once in a great while this happened even in Egypt, as we -shall see by and by. - -The highest class of people were called priests. They were not like -priests or ministers of the church nowadays, however, for there was -no church at that time. The priests made the religion and rules, which -every one had to obey as everybody does the laws of our land. - -But the priests were not only priests; they were doctors and lawyers -and engineers, as well. They were the best-educated class, and they -were the only people who knew how to read and write, for it was very -difficult, as you might suppose, to learn how to read and write -hieroglyphics. - -The next highest class to the priests were the soldiers, and below -these were the lower classes--farmers, shepherds, shopkeepers, -merchants, mechanics, and last of all the swineherds. - -The Egyptians did not worship one God as we do. They believed in -hundreds of gods and goddesses, and they had a special god for every -sort of thing, who ruled over and had charge of that thing--a god of -the farm, a god of the home, and so on. Some of their gods were good -and some were bad, but the Egyptians prayed to them all. - -Osiris was the chief god, and Isis was his wife. Osiris was the god of -farming and judge of the dead. Their son Horus had the head of a hawk. - -Many of their gods had bodies of men with heads of animals. Animals -they thought sacred. The dog and the cat were sacred animals. The -ibis, which was a bird like a stork, was another. Then there was the -beetle, which was called a scarab. If any one killed a sacred animal -he was put to death, for the Egyptians thought it much worse to kill a -sacred and holy creature than to kill even a human being. - -[Illustration] - - - - -7 - -The Tomb-Builders - - -[Illustration: Tu-tank-amen’s tomb showing foods preserved.] - -The Egyptians believed that when they died, their souls stayed near -by their bodies. So when a person died they put in the tomb with him -all sorts of things that he had used in daily life--things to eat and -drink, furniture and dishes, toys and games. They thought the soul -would return to its own body at the day of judgment. They wanted their -bodies to be kept from decaying until judgment day, in order that the -soul might then have a body to return to. So they pickled the bodies -of the dead by soaking them in a kind of melted tar and wrapping them -round and round and round with a cloth like a bandage. A dead body -pickled in this way is called a mummy, and after thousands of years the -mummies of the Egyptian kings may still be seen. Most of them are not, -however, in the tombs where they were at first placed. They have been -moved away and put in museums, and we may see them there now. Although -they are yellow and dried up, they still look like - - “Little old men - All skin and bones.” - -At first only kings or important people of the highest classes were -made mummies, but after a while all the classes, except perhaps the -lowest, were treated in the same way. Sacred animals from beetles to -cows were also made into mummies. - -When an Egyptian died his friends heaped up a few stones over his body -just to cover it up decently and keep it from being stolen or destroyed -by those wild animals that fed on dead bodies. But a king or a rich -man wanted a bigger pile of stones over his body than just ordinary -people had. So to make sure that his pile would be big enough, a king -built it for himself before he died. Each king tried to make his pile -larger than any one else’s until at last the pile of stones became so -big it was a hill of rocks and called a pyramid. The pyramids therefore -were tombs of the kings who built them while they were alive to be -monuments to themselves when they were dead. In fact a king was much -more interested in building a home for his dead body than he was in a -home for his live body. So, instead of palaces, kings built pyramids. -There are many of these pyramids built along the bank of the Nile, and -most of them were built, we think, just after 3000 B.C. - -When a building is being put up nowadays, men use derricks and cranes -and engines to haul and raise heavy stones and beams. But the Egyptians -had no such machinery, and though they used huge stones to build the -pyramids, they had to drag these stones for many miles and raise them -into place simply by pushing and pulling them. The three biggest of -all the pyramids are near the city of Cairo. The largest one of them, -which is called the Great Pyramid, was built by a king named Cheops. -To remember when he lived, simply think of this as another telephone -number: - - Cheops 2900 B.C. - -It is said that one hundred thousand men worked twenty years to build -his pyramid. It is one of the largest buildings in the world, and some -of the blocks of stone themselves are as big as a small house. I have -been to the top of it, and it is like climbing a steep mountain with -rocky sides. I have also been far inside to the cave-like room in the -center where Cheop’s mummy was placed. There is nothing in there now, -however, except bats that fly about in the darkness, for the mummy has -disappeared--been stolen, perhaps. - -[Illustration: Cheops building his pyramid.] - -Near the Pyramid of Cheops is the Sphinx. It is a huge statue of a -lion with a man’s head. It is as big as a church, and though it is so -big, it has been carved out of one single rock. The rock, however, was -already there and so did not have to be carried. The Sphinx is a statue -of the god of the morning, and the head is that of one of the Egyptian -Pharaohs who built a pyramid near that of Cheops. The desert sand has -covered the paws and most of the body. Though the sand has been dug -away from time to time, the wind quickly covers the body with sand -again. - -The Egyptians carved other large statues of men and women out of rock. -These figures are usually many times bigger than life-size, and sit or -stand stiffly erect with both feet flat on the ground and hands close -to the body in the position some children take when they “sit” for -their photograph. - -They built huge houses for their gods. These were called temples and -took the place of our churches. These temples had gigantic--that’s the -way it is spelled, though it means “giant-ic”--columns and pillars. -Ordinary people standing beside them look like dwarfs. Here is one of -these temples, and you can see how different it is from our churches: - -[Illustration: Egyptian temple.] - -They decorated their temples and pyramids, and the cases in which the -mummies were put, with drawings and paintings. The pictures they made, -however, looked something like those a young child might draw. For -example, when they wanted to make a picture of water, they simply made -a zigzag line to represent waves; when they tried to draw a row of men -back of a row in front, they put those in the back _on top_ of those -in front. To show that a man was a king, they made him several times -larger than the other men in the picture. When they painted a picture -they used any color they thought was pretty, usually blue or yellow or -brown. Whether the person or thing was really that color or not made no -difference. - - - - -8 - -A Rich Land Where There Was No Money - - -You have read in fairy-tales of a land where cakes and candy and -sugar-plums grow on trees, where everything you want to eat or to play -with can be had just by picking it. Well, long, long ago people used to -think there had been really such a country, and where do you suppose -they said it was? Somewhere near the Tigris and Euphrates Rivers--those -rivers with the strange names I asked you to learn--and they called -this spot the Garden of Eden. We do not know exactly where it was, for -there is no such place now quite as wonderful as the Garden of Eden was -supposed to be. - -Egypt was a land of one river, the Nile. The land of the Two Rivers had -several names. - -Let us suppose we are flying over the country in an airplane and -looking down at the land between these two rivers. It is called -Mesopotamia, which is two Greek words simply meaning “Between the -Rivers.” - -See the land over there by the upper Tigris. It is called _Assyria_. - -See the land near where the rivers join each other. That is called -_Babylonia_. - -See the land near where they empty. That is called _Chaldea_. - -And see over there is _Mount Ararat_, where it is supposed Noah’s Ark -rested after the flood. - -Here are a lot of new names. A young friend of mine had a train of toy -cars. He had noticed that the Pullman cars on which he had ridden had -names, and so he gave his toy cars names also. He called them: - - ASSYRIA MESOPOTAMIA - BABYLONIA ARARAT - CHALDEA EUPHRATES - -Babylonia was a very rich country, for the two rivers brought down -and dropped great quantities of earth just as the Nile did in Egypt, -and this made very rich soil. Wheat, from which we make bread, is -called the staff of life. It is the most valuable of all foods which -grow. It is supposed that wheat first grew in Babylonia. Dates in -that part of the world are almost as important a food as wheat. -Dates, too, grow there very plentifully. Now, you may think dates are -something to be eaten almost like candy but in Babylonia dates took the -place of oatmeal. In the rivers there were quantities of good fish, -and as fishing was just fun, you see that the people who lived in -Babylonia--the Babylonians, as they were called--had plenty of good -food without having to do much work for it. No one had any money in -those days; people had cows and sheep and goats, and a man was rich who -had much of these “goods.” But if a man wanted to buy or sell, he had -to buy or sell by trading something he had for something he wanted. - -Somewhere in Babylonia the people built a great tower called the _Tower -of Babel_, which you have probably heard about. It was more like a -mountain than a tower. They built other towers, too. Some say the Tower -of Babel and towers like it were built so that the people might have -a high place to which they could climb in case of another flood. But -others give a different reason. They say that the people who built -these towers came to Babylonia from farther north where there were -mountains. In this northern land they had always placed their altars -on the top of a mountain, to be close to heaven. So when they moved -to a flat country like Mesopotamia and Babylonia, where there were no -mountains, they _built_ mountains in order to have a high place for the -altar on top. To reach the top of these mountains or towers, they made, -instead of a staircase on the inside, a slanting roadway that wound -around the outside in somewhat the way a road winds around a mountain. - -There was hardly any stone either in or near Babylonia as there was in -Egypt, and so the Babylonians built their buildings of bricks, which -were made of mud formed into blocks and dried in the sun. In the course -of time, bricks of this sort crumble and turn back into dust again just -as mud pies that you might make would do. This is the reason why all -that is left of the Tower of Babel and the other buildings that were -put up so long ago are now simply hills of clay into which the brick -has turned. - -The Egyptians wrote on papyrus or carved their history in stone, but -the Babylonians had neither papyrus nor stone. All they had were -bricks. So they wrote on bricks before they were dried, while they -were still soft clay. This writing was made by punching marks into the -clay with the end of a stick. It was called _cuneiform_, which means -wedge-shaped, for it looked like little groups of wedge-shaped marks, -like chicken-tracks, made in the mud. I have seen boys’ writing that -looked more like cuneiform than it did like English. - -The Babylonians as they watched their flocks by night and by day -watched also the sun and the moon and the stars moving across the sky. -So they came to know a great deal about these heavenly bodies. - -Did you ever see the moon in the daytime? - -Oh, yes, you can. - -[Illustration: Babylonians watching eclipse.] - -Well, every once in a great while the moon as it moves across the sky -gets in front of the sun and shuts out its light--just as, if you -should put a white plate in front of an electric light, the electric -light would be darkened. It may be ten o’clock in the morning and broad -daylight when suddenly the sun is covered up by the moon as by a white -plate and it becomes night and the stars shine out and chickens, -thinking it is night, go to roost. But in a few moments the moon passes -by and the sun shines out once again. This is called an _eclipse_ of -the sun. - -Now you probably have never seen an eclipse of the sun, but some day -you may. At that time, and even to-day when ignorant people see an -eclipse of the sun, they think that something dreadful is going to -happen--the end of the world, perhaps, just because they have never -seen such a strange sight before and do not know that it is a thing -that happens regularly and that no harm comes from it. - -Well, nearly twenty-three hundred years before Christ, 2300 B. C., the -Babylonians told beforehand just when there was going to be an eclipse -of the sun. They had watched the moon moving across the sky and they -had figured out how long it would be before it would catch up with the -sun and cross directly over it. So you see how much the old Babylonians -knew about such things. Men who study the stars and other heavenly -bodies are called astronomers, and the Babylonians, therefore, were -famous astronomers. - -The Egyptians worshiped animals; but it was quite natural that the -Babylonians should worship these wonderful heavenly bodies, the sun, -moon, and stars, and they did. - -The first king of Babylonia whom we know much about--and that much is -very little--was Sargon I, who may have lived about the same time that -the pyramids were built in Egypt. - -About 2100 B. C. Babylonia had a king known far and wide for the laws -he made. His name was Hammurabi, and we still have the laws he made -though we no longer obey them; for they were carved into a stone in -cuneiform, and we have the stone. Sargon and Hammurabi are strange -names like no one’s name you ever heard before, yet they are real names -of real kings who ruled over real people. - -[Illustration] - - - - -9 - -The Wandering Jews - - -“You are” spells “Ur.” It is one of the shortest names I know. It is -the name of a little place in that part of Babylonia called Chaldea. In -this place--about nineteen hundred years B.C.--there lived a man named -Abraham. Abraham had a very large family and though he had no money he -was rich. He had large herds of sheep and goats, and these were the -chief riches in those days. Now, Abraham believed in one God, as we do, -while his neighbors, the Babylonians, worshiped idols and the heavenly -bodies, such as the sun, moon, and stars, as I have just said. Abraham -did not like his neighbors for this reason; and his neighbors didn’t -like him, either, for they thought his ideas were peculiar or even -crazy. So, about nineteen hundred years before Christ, Abraham took -his large family, his flocks, and his herds and moved to a land called -Canaan, far away on the edge of the Mediterranean Sea. - -Abraham lived to be a very old man, and he had a large family. One of -his grandsons named Jacob, who was also known by the name of Israel, -had a son Joseph. You probably remember the Bible story of Jacob’s -favorite son Joseph with the coat of many colors. Joseph’s brothers -were jealous of him, as boys and even dogs are apt to be jealous of -any one who is liked better than they are. So they put Joseph into a -well and then sold him as a slave to some Egyptians who were passing -by. Then they told their father Jacob that Joseph had been killed by -wild animals. The Egyptians took Joseph to far-off Egypt--far away from -Canaan. - -[Illustration: Abraham leaving Ur. 1900 B.C.] - -But although Joseph was a slave in Egypt, and although, as I told you, -it was very difficult for any one to work his way up out of his class -to a higher class, he was so bright that at last he became one of the -rulers in Egypt. - -Now, at that time when he was ruler there came a famine in Canaan and -there was no food. In Egypt, however, there was plenty of food stored -up. So Joseph’s wicked brothers went down to Egypt to beg the rulers -for bread. They probably thought by that time their brother was dead. -They did not know that he had become such a great man and that he was -now the ruler of whom they were begging food. You can imagine how -surprised they were and how ashamed they must have felt when they found -out that the great ruler was their own brother, whom they had planned -to kill and then had sold as a slave. - -Joseph might have let his brothers starve to death or put them in -prison, or sent them back to Canaan without anything, if he had wanted -to revenge himself on them. But instead of doing any of these things, -he gave them not only all the food they wanted and more to take back -home, but made them rich presents besides. Then he told them to go back -and get the rest of his family and return with them to Egypt, and he -promised to give them a piece of land called Goshen where there would -be no famines and they might live happily. So they did as they were -told, and Israel and his sons and all their families came down and -settled in Goshen about 1700 B.C. They were called Israelites, which -means of course the children of Israel, and they believed they were -God’s chosen people. These are the people we now call the Jews. - -After Joseph, who was of course an Israelite himself, died, the kings -or Pharaohs of Egypt did not like these foreign people who belonged to -the Semite family, and treated them very badly, as other peoples have -always treated the Jews badly ever since. Though the Jews and their -sons and sons’ sons lived in Egypt for about four hundred years, they -were always hated by the Egyptians. - -Now about four hundred years from the time the Jews first came into -Egypt--400 from 1700 is 1300 B.C.--there was a ruler of Egypt called -Rameses the Great. - -[Illustration: Rameses’ mummy.] - -Rameses so hated the Jews that finally he gave orders to have every -Jewish boy baby killed. In this way he thought to get rid of these -people. One little Jewish boy named Moses, however, was saved, and when -he grew up he became the greatest leader of his people. Moses wanted to -get the Jews out of this unfriendly country where the people worshiped -false gods. And so at last he led all his people out of Egypt across -the Red Sea. This was called the Exodus, and it took place about 1300 -B.C. - -[Illustration: Rameses the Great.] - -After the Jews had left Egypt they first stopped at the foot of a -mountain called Mount Sinai, while Moses went up to the top where he -could be by himself and learn what God wanted him and the Jews to do. -Moses spent forty days praying on top of the mountain. When he came -down from the mountain-top, he brought with him the Ten Commandments, -the same Ten Commandments you may have learned in Sunday-school. But -Moses had been gone so long that when he came back again to his people -he found them worshiping a golden calf as the Egyptians had done. They -had lived in Egypt until they had come to think it was all right to -worship idols. - -Moses was very angry. It was high time, he thought, that they should -get rid of the bad influence of their old Egyptian neighbors. And at -last he succeeded in making them worship God again and gave them the -Ten Commandments for their rule of life. So Moses is called a lawgiver -and the founder of the Jewish religion. Then Moses died, and the Jews -wandered from place to place for a great many years before they finally -settled in Canaan. - -The Jews had no kings. They were ruled by men called judges, but the -judges lived very simply, just like every one else and not like kings -in palaces with servants and fine robes and rich jewels. But the Jews -wanted a real king as their enemies had and other nations who were -their neighbors. Strange they wanted a king which so many countries -have tried to get rid of--we should think they would have preferred a -President as we have. - -So at last a judge who was named Samuel said they should have a king, -and Saul was chosen. Then Samuel poured olive-oil over Saul’s head. -This may seem a queer thing to do, but it took the place of putting -a crown on his head and was a sign that he was to be king. Samuel, -therefore, was the last one of their judges, and Saul was their first -king. - -All other nations at that time believed as the Egyptians and Chaldeans -did, in fairy-tale gods or idols. But the Jews alone believed in one -God. They had a Holy Book which had been written by their prophets. -This book is the Old Testament part of the Christian Bible. - -So this is the story of the Wandering Jews who gave us the Old -Testament and the Ten Commandments, and here is the way they wandered: - - From Ur to Canaan--1900 B.C. - - From Canaan to Egypt--1700 B.C. - - From Egypt back to Canaan--1300 B.C. - - - - -10 - -Fairy-Tale Gods - - -There was once a man named Hellen--strange-sounding name for a man, -isn’t it? He was not a Semite and not a Hamite. He was an Aryan. He -had a great many children and children’s children, and they called -themselves Hellenes. They lived in a little scrap of a country that -juts out into the Mediterranean Sea, and they called their land Hellas. -I once upset a bottle of ink on my desk, and the ink ran out into a -wriggly spot that looked exactly as Hellas does on the map. Though -Hellas is hardly any bigger than one of our States, its history is more -famous than that of any other country of its size in the world. We call -Hellas “Greece” and the people who lived there “Greeks.” - -About the same time the Jews were leaving Egypt, about the time when -people were beginning to use iron instead of bronze, that is, about -1300 B.C., we first begin to hear of Hellas and the Hellenes, of Greece -and the Greeks. - -The Greeks believed in many gods, not in one God as we do and as the -Jews did, and their gods were more like people in fairy-tales than -like divine beings. Many beautiful statues have been made of their -different gods, and poems and stories have been written about them. - -There were twelve--just a dozen--chief gods. They were supposed to -live on Mount Olympus, which was the highest mountain in Greece. These -gods were not always good, but often quarreled and cheated and did -even worse things. The gods lived on a kind of food that was much more -delicious than what we eat. It was called nectar and ambrosia, and the -Greeks thought it made those who ate it immortal; that is, so that they -would never die. - -Let me introduce you to the family of the gods. I know you will be -pleased to meet them. Most of them have two names. - - _Jupiter or Zeus_ is the father of the gods and the the king who rules - over all human beings. He sits on a throne and holds a zigzag flash - of lightning called a thunderbolt in his hand. An eagle, the king of - birds, is usually by his side. - - _Juno or Hera_ is his wife and therefore queen. She carries a scepter, - and her pet bird, the peacock, is often with her. - - _Neptune or Poseidon_ is one of the brothers of Jupiter. He rules over - the sea. He rides in a chariot drawn by sea-horses and carries in his - hand a trident, which looks like a pitchfork with three points. He - can make a storm at sea or quiet the waves simply by striking them - with his trident. - - _Vulcan or Hephæstus_ is the god of fire. He is a lame blacksmith and - works at a forge. His forge is said to be in the cave of a mountain, - and as smoke and fire come forth from some mountains they are called - volcanoes after the god Vulcan inside. - - _Apollo_ is the most beautiful of all the gods. He is the god of the - sun and of song and music. Every morning--so the Greeks said--he - drives his sun-chariot across the sky from the east to the west, and - this makes the sun-lighted day. - - _Diana or Artemis_ is the twin sister of Apollo. She is the goddess of - the moon and of hunting. - - _Mars or Ares_ is the terrible god of war, who is only happy when a - war is going on--so that he is happy most of the time. - - _Mercury or Hermes_ is the messenger of the gods. He has wings on - his cap and on his sandals, and he carries in his hand a wonderful - winged stick or wand, which, if placed between two people who are - quarreling, will immediately make them friends. One day Mercury saw - two snakes fighting and he put his wand between them, whereupon they - twined around it as if in a loving hug, and ever since the snakes have - remained entwined around it. This wand is called a _caduceus_. - -[Illustration: Birth of Minerva or Athene.] - - _Minerva or Athene_ is the goddess of wisdom. She was born in a very - strange way. One day Jupiter had a terrible headache--what we call a - “splitting” headache. It got worse and worse, until at last he could - stand it no longer, but he took a very strange way to cure it. He - called Vulcan, the lame blacksmith, and told him to hit him on the - head with his hammer. Though Vulcan must have thought this a funny - request, of course he had to obey the father god. So he struck Jupiter - a terrible blow on the head, whereupon there sprang forth Minerva in - all her armor, and the headache, of which she had been the cause, had - gone. So she was born from his brain, that is why she is the goddess - of wisdom. Minerva’s Greek name is Athene, and she founded a great - city in Greece and named it after herself, Athens. She is supposed to - look out for this city as a mother does for her child. - - _Venus or Aphrodite_ is the goddess of love and beauty. She is the - most beautiful of the goddesses as Apollo is the most beautiful of the - gods. She is said to have been born from the sea-foam. Cupid, her son, - is a little chubby boy with a quiver of arrows on his back. He goes - about shooting his invisible arrows into the hearts of human beings, - but instead of dying when they are hit they at once fall in love - with some one. That is why we put hearts with arrows through them on - valentines. - - _Vesta_ is the goddess of the home and fireside, who looks out for the - family. - - _Ceres or Demeter_ is the goddess of the farmer. These are the twelve - gods of the Olympian family. - - _Pluto_ is a brother of Jupiter. He rules the world underground and - lives down there. - -There are many other less important gods and goddesses as well as some -gods that are half human, such as the three Fates and three Graces and -the nine Muses. - -Some of the planets in the sky which look like stars are still called -by the names of these Greek gods. Jupiter is the name of the largest -planet. Mars is the name of one that is reddish--the color of blood. -Venus is the name of one that is very beautiful. There is also a -Mercury and a Neptune. - -It is hard for us to understand how the Greeks could have prayed to -such gods as these, but they did. Their prayers, however, were not like -ours. Instead of kneeling and closing their eyes as we do, they stood -up and stretched their arms straight out before them. They did not pray -to be forgiven for their sins and to be made better. They prayed for -victory over their enemies or to be protected from harm. - -When they prayed they often made the god an offering of animals, fruit, -honey, or wine in order to please him so that he would grant their -prayer. The wine they poured out on the ground, thinking the god would -like to have them do this. The animals they killed and then burned by -building a fire under them on an altar. This was called a sacrifice. -Their idea seemed to be that even though the gods could not eat the -meat of the animals nor drink the wine themselves, they liked to have -something _given up_ for them. And so even to-day we say a person makes -a sacrifice when he _gives up_ something for another. - -When the Greeks were sacrificing they usually looked for some sign from -the god to see whether he was pleased or not with the sacrifice and -whether he would answer their prayer and do what they asked him or not. -A flock of birds flying overhead, a flash of lightning, or any unusual -happening they thought was a sign which meant something. Such signs -were called “omens.” Some omens were good and showed that the god would -do what he was asked, and some omens were bad and showed he would not. -Omens were very much like some of the signs that people believe in even -to-day when they say it is a good sign or good luck if you see the new -moon over the right shoulder or a bad sign or bad luck if you spill the -salt. - -Not so very far from Athens is a mountain called Mount Parnassus. On -the side of Mount Parnassus was a town called Delphi. In the town of -Delphi there was a crack in the ground, from which gas came forth, -somewhat as it does from cracks in a volcano. This gas was supposed to -be the breath of the god Apollo, and there was a woman priest called a -priestess who sat on a three-legged stool or tripod over the crack so -as to breathe the gas. She would become delirious, as some people do -when they are sick with fever and we say they are “out of their heads,” -and when people asked her questions she would mutter strange things and -a priest would tell what she meant. This place was called the Delphic -Oracle, and people would go long distances to ask the oracle questions, -for they thought Apollo was answering them. - -The Greeks went to the oracle whenever they wanted to know what to -do or what was going to happen, and they firmly believed in what the -oracle told them. Usually, however, the answers of the oracle were like -a riddle, so that they could be understood in more than one way. For -instance, a king who was about to go to war with another king asked the -oracle who would win. The oracle replied, “A great kingdom will fall.” -What do you suppose the oracle meant? Such an answer, which you can -understand in two or three ways, is still called “oracular.” - - - - -11 - -A Fairy-Tale War - - -The history of countries usually begins--and also ends--with war. -The first great happening in the history of Greece was a war. It was -called the Trojan War and was supposed to have taken place about twelve -hundred years before Christ, or not long after the beginning of the -Iron Age. But we are not only not sure of the date; we are not even -sure that there ever was such a war, for a great deal of it, we know, -is simply fairy-tale. This is the way the tale goes. - -Once there was a wedding feast of the gods and goddesses on Mount -Olympus, when suddenly a goddess who had not been invited threw a -golden apple on the table. On the apple was written these words: - - To the Fairest. - -The goddess who had thrown the apple was the goddess of quarreling; and -true to her name she _did_ start a quarrel, for each of the goddesses, -like vain human beings, thought she was the fairest and should have -the apple. At last they called in a shepherd boy named Paris to decide -which was the fairest. - -Each goddess offered Paris a present if he would choose her. Juno, the -queen of the gods, offered to make him a king; Minerva, the goddess of -wisdom, offered to make him wise; but Venus, the goddess of beauty, -offered to give him the most beautiful girl in the world for his wife. - -Now, Paris was not really a shepherd boy but the son of Priam, the king -of Troy, which was a city on the sea-shore opposite Greece. Paris when -a baby had been left on a mountain to die, but had been found by a -shepherd and brought up by him as his own child. - -Paris didn’t care about being wise; he didn’t care about being king; -what he did want was to have the most beautiful girl in the world for -his wife, and so he gave the apple to Venus. - -Now the most beautiful girl in the world was named Helen, and she was -already married to Menelaus, the king of Sparta. But in spite of that -fact Venus told Paris to go to Sparta in Greece, where he would find -Helen, and then run away with her. So Paris went to Sparta to visit -King Menelaus and was royally entertained by him. And then Paris, -although he had been treated so kindly and been trusted, one night -stole Helen away and carried her off across the sea to Troy. Though -this was in the Iron Age, it was the way a Cave Man of the Stone Age -might have acted. - -Menelaus and the Greeks were naturally very angry and immediately -prepared for war and sailed off for Troy to get Helen back. Now, in -ancient times all cities had walls built around them to protect them -from the enemy. As there were no cannons nor guns nor deadly weapons -such as are used in war nowadays, it was very hard to get into a walled -city or capture it. Troy was protected in this way with walls; and -though the Greeks tried for ten years to capture it, at the end of the -ten years Troy was still unconquered. - -So at last the Greeks decided to try a trick to get into the city. -They built a huge horse of wood, and inside this wooden horse they put -soldiers. They placed the horse in front of the city walls and then -sailed away as if at last they were giving up the war. The Trojans were -told by a spy that the horse was a gift of the gods and that they ought -to take it into the city. A Trojan priest named La-oc-o-on, however, -told his people not to have anything to do with the horse, for he -suspected a trick. But people seldom take advice when told _not_ to do -what they want to do. - -Just then some huge snakes came out of the sea and attacked Laocoon -and his two sons and, twining round them, strangled them to death. The -Trojans thought this was a sign from the gods, or an omen as they would -have said, that they should not believe Laocoon; so they determined to -take the horse into the city against his advice. The horse was so big, -however, that it would not go through the gates, and in order to get it -inside of the walls they had to tear down part of the wall itself. When -night fell, the Greek soldiers came out of the horse and opened the -gates of the city. The other Greeks, who had been waiting just out of -sight, returned and entered through the gates and the hole the Trojans -had made in the wall. Troy was easily conquered then, and the city was -burned to the ground, and Helen’s husband carried her back to Greece. -For reason of this horse trick, we still have a saying, “Beware of the -Greeks bearing gifts,” which is as much as to say, “Look out for an -enemy who makes you a present.” - -The story of the Trojan War was told in two long poems. Some people -think they are the finest poems that were ever written. One of these -poems is called the “Iliad,” from the name of the city of Troy, which -was also known as Ilium. The “Iliad” describes the Trojan War itself. -The other poem is called the “Odyssey” and describes the adventures -of one of the Greek heroes on his way home after the war was over. -This Greek hero’s name was Odysseus, which gives the name Odyssey to -the book, but he was also called Ulysses. These poems, the “Iliad” and -the “Odyssey,” were composed by a blind Greek poet named Homer, who is -supposed to have lived about two hundred years after the war; that is -about 1000 B.C. - -Homer was a bard; that is, a singing poet who went about from place to -place and sang his poems to the people. Usually a bard played on the -lyre as he sang, and the people gave him something to eat or a place to -sleep to pay him for his songs. Nowadays, instead of a Homer singing -the “Iliad” and “Odyssey,” we have the organ-grinder and street piano -playing their tunes in front of our houses. - -Homer never wrote down his poems, for he was blind; but the people were -very fond of hearing his songs, and they learned them by heart, and -mothers taught them to their children after Homer had died. At last, -many years later, another man wrote the poems down in Greek, and you -may some day read them in Greek, if you study that language, or at -least in an English translation. - -Although the Greeks thought so much of Homer, he could hardly make a -living, and he almost had to beg his daily bread. After his death -however, the people of nine different cities each proudly said that -Homer was born in their city. And so some one has made this rime: - - Nine cities claimed blind Homer dead, - Through which, alive, he’d begged his bread. - -Some people now doubt that there ever was a poet named Homer. Others -think that instead of only one man there must have been several men, -perhaps nine, who composed these poems, and this might explain how he -could be born in nine different cities. - -[Illustration] - - - - -12 - -The Kings of the Jews - - -While the blind beggar Homer was singing his wonderful songs through -the streets of Greece, a great king of the Jews was singing other -wonderful songs in Canaan. This king was named David, and he wasn’t -born a king. He was only a shepherd boy in King Saul’s army. This is -the way he happened to become king. - -At first, as you remember, the Jews had no kings; but they had asked -for kings, and at last they were given one by the name of Saul. - -David had killed the giant Goliath. We all love this Bible story -because we are always glad when the skilful little chap beats the -great, big, bragging bully. - -Well, King Saul had a daughter, and she fell in love with this brave -and athletic young David the Giant-Killer, and at last they were -married. - -So after Saul died David became king, and he was the greatest king the -Jews ever had. Although Saul had been king he had lived in a tent, not -in a palace, and he didn’t even have a capital city. - -So David conquered a city in Canaan called Jerusalem and made this city -the capital of the Jews. - -But David was not only a brave warrior and a great king; he wrote -beautiful songs as well. - -The blind beggar Homer sang of his fairy-tale gods. The great King -David sang of his one God. - -These songs are the Psalms, which you hear read and sung in church. - -Nowadays even a popular song is popular for only a few months, but -the songs which David wrote almost three thousand years ago are still -popular to-day! The Twenty-third Psalm, which starts, “The Lord is my -shepherd,” is one of the most beautiful and a good one to learn by -heart. David likens himself to a sheep and his Lord to a good shepherd -who tenderly looks out for the comfort and safety of his sheep. - -David’s son was named Solomon, and when David died Solomon became king. - -If a good fairy had asked you what you would rather have than anything -in the world, I wonder what you would have chosen. When Solomon became -king, God is said to have appeared to him in a dream and asked him what -he would rather have than anything else in the world. Instead of saying -he wanted to be made rich or powerful, Solomon asked to be made wise, -and God said He would make him the wisest man that ever lived. Here is -a story that shows how wise he was. - -Once upon a time two women came to Solomon with a baby, and each woman -said the baby was her own child. Solomon called for a sword and said, -“Cut the baby in two, and give each a half.” One of the women cried out -to give the baby to the other rather than do this, and Solomon then -knew who was the real mother and ordered the baby to be given to her. - -Solomon built a magnificent temple made of cedar-wood from the famous -forest of Lebanon, and of marble and gold and studded with jewels. Then -he built himself a wonderful palace, which was so gorgeous and splendid -that people came from all over the world to see it. The Bible tells us -just how large this temple and palace were, not in feet but in cubits. -A cubit was the distance from a man’s elbow to the end of his middle -finger, which is about one foot and a half. - -The queen of Sheba, among others, came a long distance across Arabia to -hear the wise sayings of Solomon and see his palace and the temple he -had built. - -Although the palace and temple were considered extraordinarily -magnificent at that time, you must remember that this was a thousand -years before Christ. - -Solomon’s temple and palace have disappeared long since, and there -is left of them neither stick nor stone. But his wise sayings are -preserved in every language and read by every people in every part of -the world. There are thousands of buildings now in the world that would -make his palace, if still standing, look like a child’s toy-house. But -no one has ever been able to say any better the things he said. Do -you think you could? Suppose you try. Here are some of them. They are -called proverbs. - - A soft answer turneth away wrath; but grievous words stir up anger. - - What’s that mean? - - A good name is rather to be chosen than great riches and loving favor - rather than silver and gold. - - What’s that mean? - - Let another man praise thee and not thine own mouth. - - What’s that mean? - -Solomon was the last great king the Jews ever had. After he died the -Jewish nation gradually broke up and went to pieces, and the great -Jewish people are to-day without a king, without a capital, and without -a country of their own, but are found in every other country of the -world. - - - - -13 - -The People Who Made Our A B C’s - - -Long before people knew how to write, there lived a carpenter named -Cadmus. One day he was at work on a house when he wanted a tool that -he had left at home. Picking up a chip of wood, he wrote something on -it and, handing it to his slave, told him to go to his home and give -the chip to his wife, saying that it would tell her what he wanted. The -slave, wondering, did as he was told. Cadmus’s wife looked at the chip, -and without a word handed the tool to the amazed slave, who thought the -chip in some mysterious way had spoken the message. When he returned to -Cadmus with the tool, he begged for the remarkable chip, and when it -was given him, hung it around his neck for a charm. - -This is the story the Greeks told of the man they say invented the -alphabet. We believe, however, that Cadmus was a mythical person, for -the Greeks liked to make up such stories, and we think no _one_ man -made the alphabet. But Cadmus was a Phenician and we do know that the -Phenician people invented the alphabet. You probably call it your A B -C’s, but the Greeks had much harder names for the letters. They called -_A_ “alpha,” _B_ “beta,” and so on. So the Greek boy spoke of learning -his “alpha beta,” and that is why we call it the “alphabet.” - -[Illustration: Cadmus’ slave and the chip.] - -You may never have heard of Phenicia or the Phenician people. Yet, if -there had been no such country as Phenicia, you might now be learning -at school to read and write in hieroglyphics or in cuneiform. - -Up to this time, you know, people had very clumsy ways of writing. -The Egyptians had to draw pictures, and the Babylonians made writing -like chicken-tracks. The alphabet that the Phenicians invented had -twenty-two letters, and from it we get the alphabet we use to-day. - -Of course, we do not use just the same alphabet now that the Phenicians -did, but some of the letters are almost, if not quite, like those we -now have after three thousand years. For instance the - - Phenician A was written on its side--(sideways A) - E “ “ backward--Ǝ - Z “ “ just the same--Z - O “ “ “ “ “ --O - -The Phenicians lived next door to the Jews; in fact they belonged to -the same family--the Semites. Their country was just north of the -kingdom of the Jews; that is, above it on the map and lying along the -shore of the Mediterranean Sea. - -The Phenicians had a great king named Hiram who lived at the same time -as Solomon. In fact, Hiram was a friend of Solomon and sent him some -of his best workmen to help build a temple at Jerusalem. And yet Hiram -himself and the Phenicians did not believe in the Jewish God. - -The Phenicians worshiped idols, terrible monsters named Baal and -Moloch, which they called gods of the sun. They also believed in a -goddess of the moon named Astarte and made sacrifices of live children -to her idol, Fe-Fi-Fo-Fum; this is a real story and not a fairy-tale. -Just suppose you had been a child then! - -The Jews, as we have learned, were very religious, but their neighbors, -the Phenicians, though Semites and therefore relatives, were business -people and thought of nothing but money, money, money--all the time. -And they were not particular how they earned it, whether honestly or -not. Nowadays, dealers know that they must be honest if they are to -be very successful, but the Phenicians were usually tricky in their -trading with people. They always drove a good bargain and sometimes -even cheated when they had a chance. - -The Phenicians made many things to sell, and then they went far and -near to sell them. - -They knew how to make beautiful cloth and glassware and objects in gold -and silver and ivory. - -They knew the secret of making a wonderful purple dye from the body of -a little shell-fish that lived in the water near the city of Tyre. This -dye was known as Tyrian purple from the name of that city, and it was -so beautiful that kings’ robes were colored with it. - -Tyre and Sidon were the two chief cities of Phenicia, and once upon a -time they were two of the busiest cities in the world. - -In order to find people to sell to, the Phenicians traveled in boats -all over the Mediterranean Sea and even went outside this sea into the -Great Ocean. This opening is now called the Strait of Gibraltar but -was then known as the Pillars of Hercules. They went as far as the -British Isles. Other people in those days had not dared to go so far -in boats; they thought they would come to the edge of the ocean and -tumble off. But the Phenicians had no such fear, and so they were the -greatest sailors as well as the greatest traders of their times. Their -ships were built from the cedar-trees that grew on the slopes of their -hills, which were called Lebanon. - -Wherever the Phenicians found good harbors for their boats, they -started little towns where they traded with the natives, who at that -time were almost savage. With ignorant savages they found they could -drive a good bargain. For a few glass beads or a piece of purple dyed -cloth worth very little they could get in return gold and silver and -other things worth a great deal. On the African coast, one of these -towns they started was called Carthage. Of Carthage we shall hear more -by and by, for it grew to be so wealthy and important that--but wait -until I come to that story. - -[Illustration] - - - - -14 - -Hard as Nails - - -Our story goes back again to Greece, the land of Homer and the -fairy-tale gods and to Sparta, where Helen once lived. - -About nine hundred years before Christ was born, there lived in Sparta -a man named Lycurgus. That is a hard name, and when you hear about this -man you may think he was hard, too. Lycurgus wanted his city to be the -greatest in the world. - -But first he had to find out what it was that made a city and a people -great. - -So he started off and traveled for years and years visiting all the -chief countries of the world to see if he could learn what it was that -made them great. And this is what he learned. - -Wherever the people thought chiefly of fun and pleasure, of amusing -themselves and having a good time--he found they were not much good, -not much account--_not_ great. - -Wherever the people thought chiefly of hard work and did what they -ought, whether it was pleasant or not, he found they were usually good -for something--some account--great. - -So Lycurgus came back to his home Sparta and set to work to make a -set of rules which he thought would make his people greater than all -other people in the world. These rules were called a Code of Laws, and -I think you’ll agree they were very hard, and they made the Spartans -hard, too--as “hard as nails.” We shall see whether they made the -Spartans really great, also. - -To begin with, babies, as soon as they were born, were examined to see -that they were strong and perfect. Whenever one was found that did not -seem to be so, he was put out on the mountain-side and left to die. -Lycurgus wanted no weaklings in Sparta. - -When boys were seven years old, they were taken from their mothers and -put in a school, which was more like a soldiers’ camp than a school, -and they never lived anywhere else until they were sixty years old. - -In this school they were not taught the things you are, but only the -things that trained them to be good soldiers. - -There were no such things as school-books then. - -There were no spelling-books. - -There were no arithmetics. - -There were no geographies. No one knew enough about the world to write -a geography. - -There were no histories. No one knew much about things that had -happened in the world before that time, and of course none of the -history since then that you now study had taken place. - -At certain times, the Spartan boy was whipped, not because he had -done anything wrong, but just to teach him to suffer pain without -whimpering. He would have been disgraced forever if he had cried, no -matter how badly he was hurt. - -He was exercised and drilled and worked until he was ready to drop. -But still he was obliged to keep on, no matter how tired or hungry or -sleepy or aching he might be, and he must never show by any sign how he -felt. - -He was made to eat the worst kind of food, to go hungry and thirsty -for long periods of time, to go out in the bitter cold with little or -no clothing, just to get used to such hardships and able to bear all -sorts of discomforts. This kind of training, this kind of hardening, is -therefore called “Spartan discipline.” How do you think you would have -liked it? - -The Spartans’ food, clothing, and lodging were all furnished them, -though it was very poor food and poor clothing and poor lodging. They -were not allowed good things to eat, soft beds to lie on, or fine -clothing to wear. Such things were called luxuries, and luxuries, -Lycurgus thought, would make people soft and weak, and he wanted his -people hard and strong. - -The Spartans were even taught to speak in a short and blunt manner; -they were taught not to waste words; they must say what they had to say -in as few words as possible. This manner of speaking we call “Laconic” -from the name Laconia, the state in which Sparta was located. - -Once a king wrote to the Spartans a threatening letter, saying that -they had better do what he told them to, for _if_ he came and took -their country, he would destroy their city and make them slaves. - -The Spartans sent a messenger back with their answer, and when the -letter was opened, it contained only one word: - -“_IF!_” - -Even to-day, we call such an answer, short but to the point, a Laconic -answer. - -Did all this hard training and hard work make the Spartans the greatest -people in the world? - -Lycurgus did make the Spartans the strongest and best fighters in the -world--but-- - -The Spartans conquered all the peoples around about them, though there -were ten times as many--but-- - -They made these people their slaves, who did all their farming and -other work--but-- - -We shall see later whether Lycurgus’s idea was right. - -North of Sparta was another great city of Greece called Athens. There -were, of course, many other towns in Greece, but Sparta and Athens -were the most important. In Athens the people lived and thought quite -differently from those in Sparta. - -The Athenians were just as fond of everything beautiful as the Spartans -were of discipline and of everything military. - -The Athenians loved athletic games of all sorts just as the Spartans -did, but they also loved music and poetry and beautiful statues, -paintings, vases, buildings, and such things that are known as the -“arts.” - -The Athenians believed in training the mind _as well_ as the body. The -Spartans believed the training of the body was the all-important thing. -Which do you like better, the Athenians’ idea or the Spartans’ idea? - -Once at a big game a very old man was looking for a seat on the -Athenians’ side. There was no seat empty, and no Athenian offered to -give him one. Whereupon the Spartans called to the old man and gave him -the best seat on their side. The Athenians cheered the Spartans to show -how fine they thought this act. At this the Spartans said: - -“The Athenians _know_ what is right but they don’t _do_ it.” - - - - -15 - -The Crown of Leaves - - -Greek boys and young men and even girls loved all sorts of outdoor -sports. - -They didn’t play football or baseball or basketball, but they ran and -jumped and wrestled and boxed and threw the discus--a thing like a big, -heavy dinner-plate of iron. - -From time to time matches were held in different parts of Greece to see -who was the best in these sports. - -The Big Meet, however, took place only once every four years at a -place called Olympia in southern Greece; and these Olympic games, as -they were called, were the most important affairs held in Greece, for -all the winners from different parts of the country were here matched -against each other to see who should be the champion of all Greece. - -The time when the games were held was a great national holiday, for -the games were in honor of the head god Jupiter, or Zeus as the Greeks -called him. People came from all over the known world to see the games -much as they do now when a World’s Fair is held or a big football game. - -Only Greeks could enter this contest, and only those who had never -committed a crime or broken any laws--as a boy nowadays must have a -clean record in order to be allowed to play on his college or school -team. - -If there happened to be a war going on at the time, and there usually -was, so important was this holiday that a truce was declared, and -everybody went off to the games. Nothing could be allowed to interfere -with the games, and even war was not as important. “Business before -pleasure!” When the games were finished, they started fighting again! - -The Greek boys and young men would train for four years getting ready -for this big event, and then nine months before the great day they -would go to Olympia to get in training at an open-air gymnasium near -the field. - -The games lasted five days and began and ended with a parade and -prayers and sacrifices to the Greek gods, beautiful statues to whom -were placed all about the field, for this was not only sport, but a -religious service in honor of Jupiter and the other gods. - -There were all sorts of matches--in running, jumping, wrestling, -boxing, chariot-racing, and throwing the discus. - -Any one who cheated would have been put out and never again allowed to -take part. The Greek believed in what we call being a good sport. He -didn’t brag if he won. He didn’t make excuses if he lost; he didn’t cry -out that the decision was unfair. - -The athlete who won one or more of these games was the hero of all -Greece, and in particular of the town from which he came. The winner -received no money prize but was crowned with a wreath made of laurel -leaves. This he valued much more than an athlete nowadays does the -silver cup or gold medal he may win. Besides receiving the laurel -wreath, the winner had songs written to him by poets, and often statues -were made of him by sculptors. - -There were not only athletic matches but contests between poets and -musicians to see who could write the best poetry or compose and play -the sweetest music on a kind of small harp called the lyre. The winners -of these contests did not receive a laurel wreath, but they were -carried in triumph on the shoulders of the throng, as you may have -seen the captain of a winning team picked up and raised aloft by his -fellow-players after he has won. - -Now, in Greek History the first event which we can be absolutely sure -is true is the record of the winner of a foot-race in these Olympic -Games 776 years before Christ was born. And from this event the Greeks -began to count their history dates, as we do now from the birth of -Christ. It was their Year 1. - -The four years’ time between the Olympic Games was called an Olympiad. -Up to this time, they had no calendar that gave the year or date, -so 776 is the date of the first Olympiad. Greek History before that -time may have been partly true, but we know much of it was mythical. -Beginning with 776, however, Greek history is pretty much all true. - -[Illustration: Greek runner.] - -After a long while they stopped having the games, but a few years ago -it was thought it would be a good thing to start them again. So, for -the first time since before Christ, new Olympic Games were again held -in 1896 A.D., not in Olympia, however, but in Athens. The games used -to be held only in Greece. Now they are held each time in a different -country. Only Greeks used to be allowed to take part. Now, however, -athletes from almost all the countries of the world are invited to -compete. War used to be stopped when the time for the games arrived. -Now the games are stopped when war is on. - -From what we have learned of the Spartans’ training, we might guess -that they used to win most of the athletic prizes, and they did. - -Do the Spartans still continue to win most of the prizes in the New -Olympic Games? - -No. Not even the Greeks now carry off the chief prizes. - -[Illustration] - - - - -16 - -A Bad Beginning - - -Have you ever heard of the Seven-League Boots, the boots in which one -could take many miles at a single step? - -Well, there is a still bigger boot; it is over five hundred miles long, -and it is in the Mediterranean Sea. - -No, it’s not a real boot, but it would look like one if you were miles -high in an airplane and looking down upon it. - -It is called Italy. - -Something very important happened in Italy, not long after the First -Olympiad in Greece. It was so important that it was called the Year 1, -and for a thousand years people counted from it as the Greeks did from -the First Olympiad, and as we do now from the birth of Christ. This -thing that happened was not the birth of a man, however. It was the -birth of a city, and this city was called Rome. - -The history of Rome starts with stories that we know are fairy-tales -or myths in the same way that the history of Greece does. Homer told -about the wanderings of the Greek, Odysseus. A great many years later a -poet named Vergil told about the wanderings of a Trojan named Æneas. - -Æneas fled from Troy when that city was burning down and started off to -find a new home. Finally after several years he came to Italy and the -mouth of a river called the Tiber. There Æneas met the daughter of the -man who was ruling over that country, a girl by the name of Lavinia, -and married her, and they lived happily ever after. So the children of -Æneas and Lavinia ruled over the land, and they had children, and their -children had children, and their children had children, until at last -boy twins were born. These twins were named Romulus and Remus. Here -endeth the first part of the story and the trouble begins, for they did -not live happily ever after. - -At the time the twins were born, a man had stolen the kingdom, and he -feared that these two boys might grow up and take his stolen kingdom -away from him. So he put the twins in a basket and set them afloat on -the river Tiber, hoping that they might be carried out to sea or upset -and be drowned. This, he thought, was nearly all right, so long as he -didn’t kill them with his own hands. But the basket drifted ashore -instead of going out to sea or upsetting, and a mother wolf found the -twins and nursed them as if they were her own babies. And a woodpecker -also helped and fed them berries. At last a shepherd found them and -brought them up as if they were his own sons until they grew up and -became men. This sounds a good deal like the story of Paris who was -left out to die and was found and brought up by a shepherd also. - -[Illustration: Romulus and Remus with the wolf.] - -Each of the twins then wished to build a city. But they could not agree -which one was to do it, and in quarreling over the matter, Romulus -killed his own twin brother Remus. Romulus then built the city by the -Tiber River, on the spot where he and his brother had been saved and -nursed by the mother wolf. Here there were seven hills. This was in -753 B.C., and he named the city Roma after his own name, and the people -who lived there were called Romans. So that is why, ever afterward, -the Roman kings always said they were descended from the Trojan hero, -Æneas, the great-great-great-grandfather of Romulus. - -Don’t you believe this story? Neither do I. But it is such an old, old -story every one is supposed to have heard it even though it is only a -legend. - -In order to get people for the city which he had started, it is said -that Romulus invited all the thieves and bad men who had escaped from -jail to come and live in Rome, promising them that they would be safe -there. - -Then as none of the men had wives, and there were no women in his new -city, Romulus thought up a scheme to get the men wives. He invited some -people called Sabines, who lived near-by, both men and women, to come -to Rome to a big party. - -They accepted, and a great feast was spread. In the middle of the -feast, when every one was eating and drinking, a signal was given, and -each of the Romans seized a Sabine woman for his wife and ran off with -her. - -The Sabine husbands immediately prepared themselves for war against the -Romans, who had stolen their wives. When the battle had begun between -the two armies, the Sabine women ran out in the midst of the fighting -between their new and old husbands and begged them both to stop. They -said they had come to love their new husbands and would not return to -their old homes. - -What do you think of that? - -It sounds like a pretty bad beginning for a new city, doesn’t it? and -you may well wonder how Rome turned out--a city that started with -Romulus killing his brother and that was settled by escaped prisoners -who stole the wives of their neighbors. We must remember, however, that -then they were nearer the time when Primitive Men lived whose only rule -of life was: kill or be killed, steal or be stolen; and whose usual way -of getting wives was to knock them in the head and drag them off to -their caves while they were senseless. Besides, they believed in the -same gods as the Greeks, and we have heard how their gods did all sorts -of wicked things themselves. This, too, was long before Christ was -born, and at that time they did not know anything about the Christian -religion or what we call right and wrong. - -You see I have tried to think of some good excuses for the actions of -these first Romans. - - - - -17 - -Kings with Corkscrew Curls - - -After Rome’s bad start she had one king after another, and some of -these kings were pretty good and some were pretty bad. - -But the most important city in the world at this time was far away from -Rome on the Tigris River. This city was called Nineveh, and here lived -the kings of the country called Assyria, which I told you about some -time ago. - -As usual, the chief thing we hear about Assyria and the Assyrians is -that they were fighting with their neighbors. This, however, was not -the fault of their neighbors. - -The Assyrian kings who lived in Nineveh wanted more land and power, -and so they fought their neighbors in order to take their land away -from them. These kings had long corkscrew curls, and you may think -that only girls wear long curls and that a man with curls would be -“girl-like.” But these kings were not at all that kind. They were such -terrible fighters that they were feared far and near. They treated -their prisoners terribly; they skinned them alive, cut off their ears, -pulled out their tongues, bored sticks into their eyes, then bragged -about it. They made the people whom they conquered pay them huge sums -of money and promise to fight with them whenever they went to war. - -And so Assyria became so strong and powerful that she at last owned -everything of importance in the world, the land between the rivers -called Mesopotamia, and the land to the east, north, and south, and -Phenicia, and Egypt, and pretty nearly everything except Greece and -Italy. - -This big, big country of Assyria was ruled by the kings at Nineveh, -who lived in great magnificence. They built wonderful palaces for -themselves, and on each side of the way that led to the palace they -placed rows of huge statues of bulls and lions with wings and men’s -heads as a rich man nowadays might plant a row of trees along the -driveway that leads up to his home. These winged animals are what are -called cherubs in the Bible. - -Perhaps you have heard a particularly sweet and pretty little baby -called a cherub. Isn’t it strange that these hideous Assyrian monsters -should be called cherubs also? - -When the Assyrian kings were not fighting men they were fighting wild -animals, for they were very fond of hunting with bow and arrow, and -they had pictures and statues made of themselves on horseback or in -chariots fighting lions. Often they would capture the animals they -hunted alive and put them in cages so that the people could come and -see them. This was something like a “zoo” such as we have nowadays. - -[Illustration: An Assyrian cherub.] - -The rulers of Assyria had very strange names. Sennacherib was one of -the most famous. Sennacherib lived about 700 B.C. Once upon a time -Sennacherib was fighting Jerusalem. His whole army was camped one -night when as they lay asleep something happened, for when the morning -came, none woke up; all were dead, both men and horses. An English poet -named Byron has written a poem called “The Destruction of Sennacherib” -describing this event. Perhaps they were poisoned; what do you think? - -Assur-bani-pal was another king who ruled later--about 650 B.C. He was -a great fighter too, but he was also very fond of books and reading; -so Assur-bani-pal started the first public library. The books in that -first public library were, however, very peculiar. Of course they were -not printed books, and they were not even made of paper. They were -made of mud with the words pressed into the clay before it dried. This -writing was cuneiform, which I have already told you about. The books -were not arranged in bookcases, either, but were placed in piles on the -floor. They were, however, kept in careful order and numbered so that a -person who wanted to see a book in the library could call for it by its -number. - -Assyria reached the height of her power during the reign of Sennacherib -and Assur-bani-pal, and everything in Nineveh was so lovely for the -Ninevites that the time when Assur-bani-pal reigned was called the -Golden Age. - -But although everything in Nineveh was so lovely for the Ninevites, -everywhere else the Assyrians were hated and feared, for their armies -brought death and destruction wherever they went. - -So it came to pass that not long after Assur-bani-pal died, two of the -neighbors of Nineveh could stand it no longer. These two neighbors -were the king of Babylon, who lived south, and a people called the -Medes, who lived to the east and belonged to the Aryan family. So the -king of Babylon and the Medes got together and attacked Nineveh, and -together they wiped that city off the face of the earth. This was -in 612 B.C.--Six-One-Two--and the power of Nineveh and Assyria was -killed dead. This, therefore is called the Fall of Nineveh, the end of -Nineveh. We might put up a tombstone: - -[Illustration] - - - - -18 - -A City of Wonders and Wickedness - - -The king of Babylon had beaten Nineveh. But he didn’t stop with that. -He wanted his Babylon to be as great as Nineveh had been. So he went -on conquering other lands to the left and right until Babylon, in its -turn, became the leader and ruler of other countries. Was Babylon, -also, in its turn, to fall, as Nineveh had fallen? - -When at last the king of Babylon died, he left his vast empire to his -son. Now, the king’s son was not called John or James or Charles or -anything simple like that. It was--Nebuchadnezzar, and I wonder if his -father called him by all that long name or shortened it to a nickname -like “Neb,” for instance, or “Chad,” or perhaps “Nezzar.” This is the -way Nebuchadnezzar wrote his name, for he used cuneiform writing. How -would you like to write your name in such a queer way? - -[Illustration: Name of Nebuchadnezzar in cuneiform writing.] - -Nebuchadnezzar set to work and made the city of Babylon the largest, -the most magnificent and the most wonderful city of that time and -perhaps of any time. The city was in the shape of a square and covered -more ground than the two largest cities in the world to-day--New York -and London--put together. He surrounded it with a wall fifty times as -high as a man--fifty times--whew!--and so broad that a chariot could -be driven along on the top, and in this wall he made one hundred huge -brass gates. The Euphrates River flowed under the wall, across the -city, and out under the wall on the other side. - -Nebuchadnezzar could not find any one in Babylon who was beautiful -enough to be his queen. The Babylonian girls must have felt pretty -bad--or mad--about that. So he went to Media, the country that had -helped his father conquer Nineveh. There he found a lovely princess, -and so he married her and brought her home to Babylon. - -Now, Media was a land of hills and mountains, whilst Babylon was on -level ground and without even a hill in sight. Nebuchadnezzar’s queen -found Babylonia so flat and uninteresting that she became homesick, -and she longed for her own country with its wild mountain scenery. -So, just to please her and keep her contented Nebuchadnezzar set to -work and _built_ a hill for her, but the queer thing was he built it -on top of the roof of his palace! On the sides of this hill he made -beautiful gardens, and these gardens he planted not only with flowers -but also with trees, so that his queen might sit in the shade and enjoy -herself. These were called Hanging Gardens. The Hanging Gardens and the -tremendous walls were known far and wide as one of the Seven Wonders of -the world. - -Would you like to know what the other Wonders were? - -Well, the pyramids in Egypt were one; the magnificent statue of Jupiter -at Olympia, where the Olympic Games were held, was another--so those -with the Hanging Gardens make three. - -Nebuchadnezzar believed in idols like those terrible monsters the -Phenicians worshiped. The Jews away off in Jerusalem believed in one -God. Nebuchadnezzar wanted the Jews to worship his gods, but they would -not. He also wanted them to pay him taxes, and they would not. So he -sent his armies to Jerusalem, destroyed that city, burnt the beautiful -Temple that Solomon had built, and brought the Jews and all their -belongings to Babylon. There in Babylon Nebuchadnezzar kept the Jews -prisoners, and there in Babylon the Jews remained prisoners for fifty -years. - -Babylon had become not only the most magnificent city in the world; it -had become also the most wicked. The people of Babylon gave themselves -up to the wildest pleasures. Their only thought seemed to be, “Let’s -eat, drink, and be merry”; they thought nothing of the morrow; the more -wicked the pleasure the more they liked it. - -But although Nebuchadnezzar seemed able to do and able to have -everything in the world he wanted, he finally went crazy. He thought -he was a bull, and he used to get down on his hands and knees and eat -grass, imagining he was a beast of the field. - -And Babylon, in spite of its tremendous walls and brass gates, was -doomed. Babylon was to be conquered. It didn’t seem possible. How could -it be conquered, and who was to do the conquering? You would probably -never guess. - - - - -19 - -A Surprise Party - - -When I was a boy I was always told, and you have probably been told the -same thing: - -“You can have no dessert until you have eaten your dinner.” - -No matter whether I was hungry or not, “No dinner, no dessert.” This -was a rule which my father said was “like the laws of the Medes and -Persians.” - -I didn’t know then who the Medes and Persians were, but I know now -that they were two Aryan families living next to Babylon--you remember -Nebuchadnezzar had married a Median girl--and that they were governed -by laws which were fixed so hard and fast and were so unchangeable that -we still speak of any such thing that does not change as like “the laws -of the Medes and Persians.” - -The Medes and the Persians had a religion which was neither like that -of the Jews nor like the idol worship of the Babylonians. It had been -started by a Persian named Zoroaster, who was a wise man like Solomon. -He may even have lived about the same time as Solomon, but probably a -good deal later. - -Zoroaster went about among the people, teaching them wise sayings and -hymns. These wise sayings have been gathered into a book, which is now -the Persian Bible. - -Zoroaster taught that there were two great spirits in the world, the -Good Spirit and the Bad Spirit. - -The Good Spirit, he said, was Light, and the Bad Spirit, Darkness. -The Good or Light he called Mazda; where have you heard that word, I -wonder. So the Persians kept a fire, in which they thought was the Good -Spirit, constantly burning on their altars, and they had men watch -over this flame to see that it never went out. These men who watched -the flame were called Magi, and they were supposed to be able to do -all sorts of wonderful things, so that we call such wonderful things -“magic,” and the people who are able to do them we call “magicians.” - -At the time of this story which I’m telling you, the ruler of the Medes -and the Persians was a great king named Cyrus. - -But before I go on with this story I must tell you about a little -country not far from Troy. This little country was called Lydia. -Perhaps you may know a girl named Lydia. I do. Lydia was ruled over -by a king named Crœsus who was the richest man in the world. When we -want to describe a man as very wealthy, we still say he is “as rich as -Crœsus.” - -Crœsus owned nearly all the gold-mines, of which there were a great -many in that country, and besides this he collected money in the form -of taxes from all the cities near him. - -Before the time of Crœsus people did not have money such as we have -now. When they wished to buy anything, they simply traded something -they had for something they wanted--so many eggs for a pound of meat or -so much wine for a pair of sandals. To buy anything expensive, such as -a horse, they paid with a lump of gold or silver, which was weighed in -the scales to see just how heavy it was. It is hard for us to think how -people could get along without cents and nickels, dimes, quarters and -dollars--with no money at all--and yet they did. - -Crœsus, in order to make things simpler, cut up his gold into small -bits. Now, it was not easy for every one to weigh each piece each time -it was traded, for he might not have any scales handy. So Crœsus had -each piece weighed and stamped with its weight and with his name or -initials to show that he guaranteed the weight. These pieces of gold -and silver were only lumps with Crœsus’ seal pressed into them, but -they were the first real money even though they were not round and -beautifully engraved like our coins. - -Now, Cyrus, the great Persian king, thought he would like to own this -rich country of Lydia with all its gold-mines, so he set out to conquer -it. - -When Cyrus was on the way Crœsus sent in a hurry to the oracle in -Greece to ask what was going to happen and who was going to win. You -will remember what I said about the oracle at Delphi and how people -used to ask the oracle questions--to have their fortunes told, as -nowadays some people ask the ouija board. - -The oracle replied to Crœsus’ question: - -“A great kingdom shall fall.” - -Crœsus was delighted, for he thought the oracle meant that Cyrus’ -kingdom would fall. The oracle _was_ right, but not in the way Crœsus -had thought. - -A great kingdom did fall, but it was his own kingdom of Lydia and not -Cyrus’ that fell. - -But Cyrus was still not satisfied with the capture of Lydia, and so at -last he attacked Babylon. - -Now, the people in Babylon who thought of nothing but pleasure were -busy feasting and drinking and having a good time. Why should they -worry about Cyrus? Their city had walls that were so high and thick and -was protected by such strong gates of brass that it seemed as if no one -could possibly have captured it. - -[Illustration: Delphic Oracle.] - -But you remember that the Euphrates River ran beneath the walls -and crossed right through the city. Well, one night when the young -prince of Babylon named Belshazzar was having a gay party and enjoying -himself, feeling quite certain that no one could enter the city, Cyrus -made a dam and turned the waters of the river to one side. Then Cyrus’ -army marched into the city through the dry river-bed and captured the -surprised Babylonians without even a fight. It is supposed that some of -the Babylonian priests helped him to do this and even opened the gates, -for Babylon had become so wicked that they thought it time for it to be -destroyed. - -Old Lycurgus would have said: “I told you so. People who think of -nothing but pleasure never come to a good end.” - -This surprise party was in 538--5 and 3 are 8. - -Two years later Cyrus let the Jews, who had been carried away fifty -years before from Jerusalem, return to the home of their fathers, thus -ending the Babylonian Captivity. - -To-day the only thing left of this great city of Babylon, which was -once bigger than New York and London together--Babylon the Wicked, -Babylon the Magnificent, Babylon with all its great walls and brass -gates and Hanging Gardens--is only a mound of earth. A few miles away -is a ruined tower. This tower, we think, may once have been the Tower -of Babel. - - - - -20 - -The Other Side of the World - - -There used to be a “missionary box” in my Sunday-school, and into this -box we dropped our pennies to send a missionary to the heathen. - -The heathen, we were told, were people who lived on the other side of -the world and worshiped idols. - -There was the heathen “Chinee,” the heathen “Japanee,” and the heathen -Indian. - -These heathen Indians were not our American Indians. They lived in a -country called India on the other side of the world. India looks on the -map like the little thing that hangs down in the back of your mouth -when the doctor says: “Stick out your tongue. Say ’Ah.’” Our Indians -are red, but the Indians from India are white. The white Indians belong -to the Aryan family, the same family that Cyrus belonged to. - -Two thousand years before the time of Cyrus, an Aryan family had moved -away from the other Aryan families in Persia until they had come to -this country we now call India. - -In the course of time there came to be four chief classes of people in -India, four chief classes of society--high society, low society, and -two classes of society in between. These classes were called castes, -and no one in one caste would have anything to do with one in another -caste. A boy or girl in one caste would never play with a boy or girl -in another caste. A man from one caste would never marry a woman in -another. No one from one caste would eat with one in another caste, -even though he were starving. Men in different castes were even afraid -of touching each other in passing on the street. It was almost as if -they were afraid of catching some horrible disease. - -The highest caste of all were the Fighters and Rulers. The Rulers were -the Fighters, and the Fighters were the Rulers, for they had to be -fighters in order to keep their rule. - -In the next caste were the Priests; and, as in the case of the Egyptian -priests, these men were not what we think of as priests nowadays. They -were what we should call professional men--doctors, lawyers, engineers, -etc. - -Next came the farmers and tradespeople--the butcher, the baker, and -candlestick maker. - -Fourth and last were the common laborers. These were the men who knew -nothing and could do nothing but dig or chop wood or carry water. - -Below these four castes were still other people so low and mean that -they were called outcastes or Pariahs. We now call any person who has -done something so disgraceful that no one, not even the lowest, will -have anything to do with him a “pariah.” - -The people in India believed in a god whom they called Brahma, and so -we call their religion Brahmanism. The Brahmanists believed that when -a person died his soul was born again in the body of another person or -perhaps of an animal. If he had been good while alive they thought his -soul went into the body of a higher caste man when he died--as if he -were promoted from one grade to the next. If, however, he had led a bad -life they thought his soul went into the body of a lower caste man or -even of an animal. - -When a man died, his body was not buried, it was burned. If he were -a married man, his wife was obliged to throw herself alive upon the -burning flames. She was not allowed to live after her husband was dead. -If the wife died, that was another matter; the man simply got another -wife. In the Brahman temples were hideous idols, which the people -worshiped as gods. These idols had several heads apiece or many arms, -or many legs, or they had tusks sticking out of their mouths--or they -had horns coming out of their heads. - -About the year 500 B.C. there was born a prince in India by the name of -Gautama. Gautama saw so much suffering and trouble in the world that -he felt it was not right that he himself, just because he by chance -had been born rich, should be happy while others were miserable and -unhappy. So he gave up the life to which he had been born and brought -up, a life of ease and luxury with all its good things, and spent his -entire time trying to make things better for his people. - -Gautama taught the people to be good; he taught them to be honest; and -he taught them to help the poor and unfortunate. After a while people -began to call him Buddha, and he was so holy and pure that at last they -thought he must be god himself, and so they worshiped him as god. - -These people who believed in Buddha were called Buddhists, and many, -many Brahmanists left their hideous idols and became Buddhists. You see -there was no such thing as a Christian religion as yet, for this was -still five hundred years before Christ was born, and Buddhism seemed so -much better than Brahmanism that we do not wonder that great numbers of -people became Buddhists. - -Buddhists thought their religion was so good that they wanted everyone -to become Buddhists; so they sent missionaries across country and sea -to the island of Japan just as we send Christian missionaries now, and -this new religion spread far and wide. - -Perhaps you have never met nor seen nor even heard of a Buddhist, and -yet to-day there are many more Buddhists on the other side of the world -than there are Christians! - -About the same time that Gautama was starting Buddhism in India, a man -in China, a teacher by the name of Confucius, was teaching the people -of China what they ought to do and what they ought not to do. His -teachings filled several books and formed what came to be a religion -for the Chinese. - -Confucius taught his people to obey their parents and teachers and -to honor their ancestors. This sounds something like one of the Ten -Commandments: “Honor thy father and thy mother.” - -Confucius also taught the golden rule, the same golden rule you are -taught to-day, only instead of saying, “_Do_ unto others as you would -be done by,” he said, “Do _not_ do to others what you would _not_ want -others to do to you.” - -In China there are still as many people who follow the teachings of -Confucius as there are Christians in all the rest of the world. So here -are two religions each as large or larger than the Christian religion. - -China was highly civilized, even at this time, 500 B.C., and many -inventions were known and used in that country long before the rest of -the world ever heard of them. Yet we know little of China’s history -until a great deal later. - - - - -21 - -Rich Man, Poor Man - - -Whenever I pass a group of street boys playing ball, I almost always -hear some one shout, “That’s no fair!” - -There always seem to be some players who think the others are not -playing fair. Sides are always quarreling. - -They need an umpire. - -When Athens was young there were two sides among the people--the rich -and the poor, the aristocrats and the common people--and they were -always quarreling. Each side was trying to get more power, and each -side said the other wasn’t playing fair. - -They needed an umpire. - -Athens had had kings, but the kings took the side of the rich, and so -at last the Athenians had kicked out the last king, and after that they -would have no more kings. - -About the year 600 B.C. things became so very bad that a man named -Draco was chosen to make a set of rules for the Athenians to obey. -These rules he made were called the Code of Draco. - -Draco’s Code made terrible punishments for any one who broke the rules. -If a man stole anything, even as small a thing as a loaf of bread, he -was not just fined or sent to jail; he was put to death! And no matter -how small the wrong a man had done, he was put to death for it. Draco -explained the reason for such a severe law by saying that a thief -deserved to be put to death and should be. A man who killed another -deserved _more_ than to be put to death, but unfortunately there was no -worse punishment to give him. - -You can understand how much trouble the laws of Draco caused. They were -so hard that a little later another man was called upon to make a new -set of laws. This man was named Solon, and his laws were very just and -good. We now call senators and other people who make our laws “Solons” -after this man Solon who lived so long ago, even though their laws are -not always just and good. - -Still the people were not satisfied with Solon’s laws. The upper -classes thought the laws gave too much to the lower classes, and the -lower classes thought they gave too much to the upper. Both classes, -however, obeyed the laws for a while, although both classes complained -against them. - -But about 560 B.C. a man named Pisistratus stepped in and took charge -of things himself. He was not elected nor chosen by the people. He -simply made himself ruler, and he was so powerful that no one could -stop him. It was as if a boy made himself captain or umpire without -being chosen by those on the teams. - -There were others from time to time in Greece who did the same thing, -and they were called tyrants. So Pisistratus was a tyrant. Nowadays -only a ruler who is cruel and unjust is called a tyrant. Pisistratus, -however, settled the difficulties of both sides, and, though a -tyrant in the Greek sense, he was neither cruel nor unjust. In fact, -Pisistratus ruled according to the laws of Solon, and he did a great -deal to improve Athens and the life of the people. Among other things -he did, he had Homer’s poems written down, so that people could read -them, for before this time people knew them only from hearing them -recited. So the people put up with Pisistratus and also with his son -for a while. But finally the Athenians got tired of the son’s rule and -drove all the Pisistratus family out of Athens in 510 B.C. - -The next man to try and settle the quarrels of the two sides was named -Clisthenes. It is hard, sometimes, to learn the name of a stranger to -whom we have just been introduced unless we hear his name repeated -several times. So I will say over his name so that you can get used to -hearing it: - - CLISTHENES; - CLISTHENES; - CLISTHENES. - -Your father may be poor or he may be rich. - -If he is poor he has one vote when there is an election. - -If he is rich he has one vote but only one vote and no more. - -If he breaks the laws, whether he is rich or whether he is poor, he -must go to jail. - -It was not always so; it is not always so even now. But long ago it was -much worse. - -[Illustration: Ostracism.] - -Clisthenes gave every one a vote--rich and poor alike--and ruled wisely -and well. - -Clisthenes started something called ostracism. If for any reason the -people wanted to get rid of a man, all they had to do was to scratch -his name on any piece of a broken pot or jar they might find and drop -it in a voting-box on a certain day. If there were enough such votes, -the man would have to leave the city and stay away for ten years. This -was called ostracism, and a man so treated was said to be ostracized, -from the Greek name for such a broken piece of pottery, on which the -name was written. Even to-day we use this same word to speak of a -person whom no one will have anything to do with, whom no one wants -around, saying he has been ostracized. - -Have you ever been sent away from the table to the kitchen or to your -room for being naughty? - -Then you, too, have been ostracized. - -[Illustration] - - - - -22 - -Rome Kicks Out Her Kings - - -In 509 B.C. something happened in Rome. - -There were two classes of people in Rome, just as there were in Athens; -the wealthy people who were called patricians and the poor people who -were called plebeians. We use the same words now and call people who -are rich and aristocratic “patricians,” and the people who are poor and -uneducated “plebeians.” The patricians were allowed to vote, but the -plebeians were not allowed to vote. - -At last, however, the plebeians had been given the right to vote. But -in 509 Rome had a king named Tarquin. He didn’t think the plebeians -should be allowed to vote, and so he said they should not. The -plebeians would not stand this, and so they got together and drove -Tarquin out of the city, as the Athenians had driven out their king. -This was in 509, and Tarquin was the last king Rome ever had. - -After King Tarquin had been driven out, the Romans started what is -called a republic, something like our own country, but they were -afraid to have only one man as president for fear he might make himself -king, and they had had enough of kings. - -[Illustration: Lictor carrying fasces.] - -So the Romans elected _two men_ each year to be rulers over them, and -these two men they called consuls. Each consul had a body-guard of -twelve men--just a dozen. These men were given the name “lictors,” and -each lictor carried an ax tied up in a bundle of sticks. This bundle of -sticks with the ax-head sticking out in the middle or at the end was -known as “fasces” and signified that the consuls had power to punish by -whipping with the sticks or by chopping off one’s head with the ax. - -Perhaps you have seen fasces used as ornaments or as a decoration -around monuments or on buildings like a court-house, city hall, or -capitol. Why do you suppose they are used in this way? - -One of the first two consuls was named Brutus the Elder, and he had two -sons. The king, Tarquin, who had been driven out of the city, plotted -to get back to Rome and become king once more. He was able to persuade -some Romans to help him. Among those whom he persuaded were, strange to -say, the two sons of Brutus--the new consul of Rome. - -Brutus found out this plot and learned that his own children had helped -Tarquin. So Brutus had his sons tried. They were found guilty, and in -spite of the fact that they were his own children, he had the lictors -put both of them to death as well as the other traitors to Rome. - -Tarquin did not succeed in getting back the rule of Rome in this way, -and so the next year he tried again. This time he got together an army -of his neighbors, the Etruscans, and with this army he attacked Rome. - -Now, there was a wooden bridge across the Tiber River, which separated -the Etruscans from the city of Rome. In order to keep the Etruscans -from crossing into the city, a Roman named Horatius, who had already -lost one eye in fighting for Rome, gave orders to have this bridge -broken down. - -While the bridge was being chopped down, Horatius with two of his -friends stood on the far side of the bridge and fought back the whole -Etruscan army. When the bridge was cracking under the blows of the -Roman soldiers, Horatius ordered his two friends to run quickly to the -other side before the bridge fell. - -Then Horatius, all by himself, kept the enemy back until at last the -bridge crashed into the river. Horatius then jumped into the water -with all his armor on and swam toward the Roman shore. Though arrows -the Etruscans shot were falling all around him, and though his armor -weighed him down, he reached the other side safely. Even the Etruscans -were thrilled at his bravery, and, enemies though they were, they -cheered him loudly. - -There is a very famous poem called “Horatius at the Bridge,” which -describes this brave deed, and most boys like to learn at least a part -of it. - -A few years after Horatius, there lived another Roman named -Cincinnatus. He was only a simple farmer with a little farm on the bank -of the Tiber, but he was very wise and good, and the people of Rome -honored and trusted him. - -One day when an enemy was about to attack the city--for in those days -there always seemed to be enemies everywhere ready to attack Rome on -any excuse--the people had to have a leader and a general. They thought -of Cincinnatus and went and asked him to be dictator. - -Now, a dictator was the name they gave to a man who in case of sudden -danger was called upon to command the army and in fact all the people -for the time being while there was danger. Cincinnatus left his plow, -went with the people to the city, got together an army, went out and -defeated the enemy, and returned to Rome, all in twenty-four hours! - -The people were so much pleased with the quick and decided way in which -Cincinnatus had saved Rome that they wanted him to keep right on being -their general in time of peace. Even though they hated kings so much, -they would have made him king if he would have accepted. - -But Cincinnatus did not want any such thing. His duty done, he wanted -to return to his wife and humble home and his little farm. So in spite -of what many would have thought a wonderful chance, he did go back to -his plow, choosing to be just a simple farmer instead of being king. - -The city of Cincinnati in Ohio is named after a society which was -founded in honor of this old Roman, who lived nearly five hundred years -before Christ. - - - - -23 - -Greece _vs._ Persia - - -Do you know what those two little letters “vs.” mean between Greece and -Persia in the name of this story? - -Perhaps you have seen them used on football tickets when there was to -be a match between two teams, as, for example, Harvard vs. Yale. - -They stand for “versus,” which means “against.” - -Well, there was to be a great match between Greece and Persia, but -it wasn’t a game; it was a fight for life and death, a fight between -little Greece and great big Persia. - -Cyrus, the great Persian king, had conquered Babylon and other -countries, as well, and he had kept on conquering until Persia ruled -most of the world, all except Greece and Italy. - -About the Year 500 B.C. the new ruler of this vast Persian Empire was -a man named Darius. Darius looked at the map, as you might do, and saw -that he owned and ruled over a large part of it. What a pity, thought -he, that there should be a little country like Greece that did not -belong to him! - -So Darius said to himself, “I must have this piece of land called -Greece to complete my empire.” Besides, the Greeks had given him some -trouble. They had helped some of his subjects to rebel against him. -Darius said, “I must punish these Greeks for what they have done and -then just add their country to mine.” - -So he called his son-in-law and told him to go over to Greece and -conquer it. - -His son-in-law did as he was told and started out with a fleet and an -army to do the punishing. But before his fleet could reach Greece it -was destroyed by a storm, and he had to go back home without having -done anything. - -Darius was very angry at this, mad with his son-in-law and mad with the -gods who he thought had wrecked his ships, and he made up his mind that -he himself would go and do the punishing and conquering the next time. - -First, however, he sent his messengers to all the Greek cities and -ordered each of them to send him some earth and some water as a sign -that they would give him their land and become his subjects peaceably -without a fight. - -Many Greek cities were so frightened by the threat of Darius and by his -mighty power that they gave in at once and sent earth and water as -they were told to do. - -But little Athens and little Sparta both hotly refused to do so, in -spite of the fact that they were only two small cities against the vast -empire of Darius. - -Athens took Darius’ messenger and threw him into a well, saying, “There -is earth and water for you; help yourself”; and Sparta did likewise. -Then these two cities joined their forces and called on all their -neighbors to join with them to fight for their native land against -Darius and Persia. - -So Darius made ready to conquer Athens and then Sparta. - -[Illustration: A Trireme.] - -In order to reach Athens his army had to be carried across the sea in -boats. Of course, in those days there were no steamboats. Steamboats -were invented thousands of years later. The only way to make a boat go -was with sails or with oars. To make a large boat move with oars, it -was necessary to have a great many rowers--three rows one above the -other on each side of the boat. - -Such a boat was called a trireme, which means three rows of oars. It -took about 600 of these boats to carry Darius’ army over to Greece. -Each of these 600 boats carried, besides the rowers or crew, about 200 -soldiers. So you can see for yourself how many soldiers Darius had -in this army, if there were 600 ship-loads of them and 200 soldiers -on each ship. Yes, that is an example in multiplication--120,000 -soldiers--that’s right. - -So the Persians sailed across the sea; and this time there was no -storm, and they reached the shore of Greece safely. They landed on a -spot called the plain of Marathon, which was only about twenty-six -miles away from Athens. You will see presently why I have told you just -the number of miles--twenty-six. - -When the Athenians heard that the Persians were coming, they wanted to -get Sparta in a hurry to help, as she had promised to do. - -Now, there were no telegraphs or telephones or railroads, of course, -in those days. There was no way in which they could send a message to -Sparta except to have it carried by hand. - -So they called on a famous runner named Pheidippides to carry the -message. Pheidippides started out and ran the whole way from Athens to -Sparta, about one hundred and fifty miles, to carry the message. He ran -night and day, hardly stopping at all to rest or to eat, and on the -second day he was in Sparta. - -The Spartans, however, sent back word that they couldn’t start just -then; the moon wasn’t full, and it was bad luck to start when the moon -wasn’t full, as nowadays some superstitious people think it bad luck -to start on a trip on Friday. They said they would come after a while, -when the moon was full. - -But the Athenians couldn’t wait for the moon. They knew the Persians -would be in Athens before then, and they didn’t want them to get as far -as that. - -So all the fighting men in Athens left their city and went forth to -meet the Persians on the plain of Marathon--twenty-six miles away. - -The Athenians were led by a man named Miltiades, and there were only -ten thousand soldiers of them. Besides these, there were one thousand -more from a little near-by town, which was friendly with Athens and -wished to stand by her--eleven thousand in all. If you figure it out, -you will see that there were perhaps ten times as many Persians as -there were Greeks, ten Persian soldiers to one Greek soldier. - -The Greeks, however, were trained athletes, as we know, and their whole -manner of life made them physically fit. The Persians were no match for -them. And so, in spite of the small number of Greeks, the large number -of Persians were beaten, and beaten badly. Of course the Greeks were -far better soldiers than the Persians, for all their training made them -so, but more than all this, they were fighting for themselves to save -their homes and their families. - -Perhaps you have heard the fable of the hound who was chasing a hare. -The hare escaped. The hound was made fun of for not catching the little -hare. To which the hound replied, “I was only running for my supper; -the hare was running for his life.” - -The Persian soldiers were not fighting for their homes or families, -which were away back across the sea; and it made little difference to -them who won, anyway, for they were merely hirelings on slaves; they -were fighting for a king because he ordered them to. - -Naturally the Greeks were overjoyed at this victory. - -Pheidippides, the famous runner, who was now at Marathon, started off -at once to carry the joyful news back to Athens, twenty-six miles away. -The whole distance he ran without stopping for breath. But he had not -had time to rest up from his long run to Sparta, which he had taken -only a few days before, and so fast did he run this long distance that -as soon as he had reached Athens and gasped the news to the Athenians -in the market-place he dropped down dead! - -In honor of this famous run, they have nowadays, in the new Olympic -Games, what is called a Marathon race, in which the athletes run this -same distance. - -[Illustration: “The First Marathon Race.”] - -This battle of Marathon took place in 490 B. C. and is one of the most -famous battles in all history, for the great Persian army was beaten by -one little city and its neighbor, and the Persians had to go back to -their homes in disgrace. - -A little handful of people, who governed themselves, had defeated a -great king with a large army of only hired soldiers or slaves. - -But this was not the last the Greeks were to see of the Persians. - -[Illustration] - - - - -24 - -Fighting Mad - - -Darius was now angrier than ever, and still more determined to whip -those stubborn Greeks, who dared to defy him and his enormous power; -and he began to get ready for one more attempt. This time, however, he -made up his mind that he would get together such an army and navy that -there would be no chance in the world against it, and he made a solemn -oath to destroy the Greeks. So for several years he gathered troops and -supplies, but something happened, and in spite of his oath he did not -carry out his plan. Why? You guessed it. He died. - -But Darius had a son named Xerxes--pronounced as if it began with a Z. - -When I was a boy, there was an alphabet rime that began, “A is for -Apple,” and went on down to, “X is for Xerxes, a great Persian king.” -I learned the rime, though I did not know at that time anything either -about Xerxes or Persia. - -Xerxes was just as determined as his father had been that the Greeks -must be beaten, so he went on getting ready. - -But the Greeks also were just as determined that they must _not_ be -beaten, so they, too, went on getting ready, for they knew the Persians -would sooner or later come back and try again. - -At this time there were two chief men in Athens, and each was trying to -be leader. One was named Themistocles--pronounced The-mis-to-klees--and -the other Aristides--pronounced Air-is-tie-dees. Notice how many Greek -names seem to end in “es.” - -Themistocles urged the Athenians to get ready for what he knew was -coming, the next war with Persia. Especially did he urge the Athenians -to build a fleet of boats, for they had no boats and the Persians had a -great many. - -Aristides, on the other hand, didn’t believe in Themistocles’ scheme to -build boats. He thought it a foolish expense and talked against it. - -Aristides had always been so wise and fair that people called him -Aristides the Just. Some of the people wanted to get rid of him, -because they thought he was wrong and Themistocles was right. So they -waited till the time came to vote to ostracize any one they wanted to -get rid of. Do you remember who started this custom? Clisthenes--about -500 B.C. - -When the day for voting came, a man who could not write and did not -know Aristides by sight happened to ask his help in voting. Aristides -inquired what name he should write, and the man replied, “Aristides.” - -Aristides did not tell who he was, but merely said: - -“Why do you want to get rid of this man? Has he done anything wrong?” - -“Oh, no,” the voter replied. “He hasn’t done anything wrong”; but with -a long sigh he said, “I’m so tired of hearing him always called ’The -Just.’” - -Aristides must have been surprised by this unreasonable answer, but -nevertheless he wrote his own name for the voter, and when the votes -were counted there were so many that he was ostracized. - -Though it did not seem quite fair that Aristides should be ostracized, -it was fortunate, as it turned out, that Themistocles had his way, and -it was fortunate the Athenians went on preparing for war. - -They built a fleet of triremes. Then they got all the cities and towns -in Greece to agree to join forces in case of war. Sparta, on account of -its fame as a city of soldiers, was made the leader of all the others -in case war should come. - -And then, just ten years after the battle of Marathon, in 480 B. C., -the great Persian army was again ready to attack Greece. It had been, -brought together from all parts of the vast Persian Empire and was far -bigger than the former army with its 120,000 men, although that was a -large army for those days. - -This time the army is supposed to have consisted of over two million -soldiers--two million; just think of that! The question then was how -to get so many soldiers over to Greece. Such a multitude could not be -carried across to Greece in boats, for even the largest triremes only -held a few hundred men, and it would have taken--well, can you tell how -many boats, to carry over two million? Probably many more triremes than -there were in the whole world at that time. So Xerxes decided to have -his army march to Greece, the long way but the only way round. So they -started. - -Now, there is a strip of water called a strait, something like a wide -river, right across the path the Persian army had to take. This strait -was then called the Hellespont. It is, of course, still there, but if -you look on the map now you will find it is now called the Dardanelles. -But there was no bridge across the Hellespont, for it was almost a mile -wide, and they didn’t have bridges as long as that in those days. So -Xerxes fastened boats together in a line that stretched from one shore -to the other shore, and over these boats he built a floor to form a -bridge so that his army could cross upon it. - -Hardly had he finished building the bridge, however, when a storm arose -and destroyed it. Xerxes, in anger at the waves, ordered that the water -of the Hellespont be whipped as if it were a slave he were punishing. -Then he built another bridge, and this time the water behaved itself, -and his soldiers were able to cross over safely. - -So vast was Xerxes’ army that it is said to have taken it seven days -and seven nights marching continuously all the time in two long -unbroken lines to get over to the opposite shore. Xerxes’ fleet -followed the army as closely as they could along the shore, and at last -they reached the top of Greece. Down through the north of Greece the -army came, overrunning everything before it, and it seemed as though -nothing on earth could stop such numbers of men. - - - - -25 - -One Against a Thousand - - -There is a little narrow passageway with the mountains on one side -and the water on the other through which the Persians had to go to -reach Athens. This pass is called Thermopylæ, and you might guess what -Thermopylæ means if you notice that the first part is like Thermos -bottle, which means “hot” bottle. As a matter of fact, Thermopylæ meant -Hot Gateway, and was so named because this natural gateway to Greece -had hot springs near-by. - -The Greeks decided that it was best to stop the Persians at this -gate--to go to meet them there first before they reached Athens. In -such a place a few Greek soldiers could fight better against a much -larger number. - -It also seemed wise to send picked Greek troops to meet the Persians, -the very best soldiers in Greece with the very bravest general to lead -them. - -So the Spartan king, who was named Leonidas--which in Greek means “like -a lion”--was chosen to go to Thermopylæ, and with him seven thousand -soldiers--seven thousand soldiers to block the way of two million -Persians! Three hundred of these were Spartans, and a Spartan was -taught that he must never surrender, never give up. A Spartan mother -used to say to her son: - -“Come back _with_ your shield or _on_ it.” - -When Xerxes found his way blocked by this ridiculously small band of -soldiers, he sent his messengers ordering them to surrender, to give -themselves up. - -And what do you suppose Leonidas replied? - -It was what we should expect a Spartan to answer, brief and to the -point; that is, “Laconic.” He said simply: - -“Come and take us.” - -As there was nothing left for Xerxes to do but fight, he started his -army forward. - -For two days the Persians fought the Greeks, but Leonidas still held -the pass, and the Persians were unable to get through. - -Then a Greek traitor and coward, who thought he might save his own life -and be given a rich prize by Xerxes, told that king of a secret path -over the mountains by which he and his army might slip through and get -around Leonidas and his soldiers who blocked the way. - -The next morning Leonidas learned that the Persians had found out this -path and were already on the way to pen him in from behind. There was -still a chance, however, for his men to escape, and Leonidas told all -those who wanted to do so to leave. Those that remained knew that the -fight was absolutely hopeless and that it meant certain death for all -them. In spite of this, however, one thousand men, including all the -three hundred Spartans stood by their leader, for, said they: - -“We have been ordered to hold the pass, and a Spartan obeys orders, and -never surrenders, no matter what happens.” - -So there Leonidas and his thousand men fought to the bitter end until -all except one of their number was killed. - -The gateway to the city of Athens was now open, and things looked very -black for the Greeks, for there was nothing to prevent the Persians -from marching over the dead bodies of Leonidas and his men straight on -to Athens. - -The Athenians, wondering what was to happen to them, hurriedly went to -the oracle at Delphi and asked what they should do. - -The oracle replied that the city of Athens itself was doomed, that it -would be destroyed, there was no hope for it, but that the Athenians -themselves would be saved by wooden walls. - -This answer, as was usually the case in whatever the oracle said, was -a riddle, the meaning of which seemed hard to solve. Themistocles, -however, said that he knew the answer. You remember that it was he who -had been working so hard to have a fleet of ships built. Themistocles -said that the oracle meant these ships when it spoke of the wooden -walls. - -So the Athenians, following the supposed advice of the oracle, left -their city as Themistocles told them and went on board the ships, which -were not far away, in a bay called Salamis. - -The Persian army reached Athens and found it deserted. So they burned -and destroyed the city as the oracle said. Then they marched on to the -Bay of Salamis, where the Athenians were on board the ships. There, on -a hill overlooking the bay, Xerxes had a throne built for himself so -that he could sit, as if in a box at the theater looking at a play, and -watch his own large fleet destroy the much smaller one of the Greeks -with all the Athenians on board. - -The Greek fleet was commanded, of course, by Themistocles. His ships -were in this narrow bay or strait of water, somewhat in the same -way that the soldiers of Leonidas had been in the narrow valley at -Thermopylæ. - -[Illustration: Xerxes on his throne watching battle of Salamis.] - -Themistocles, seeing that the Bay of Salamis looked somewhat like the -Pass of Thermopylæ, had an idea. He made believe he was a traitor like -the traitor at Thermopylæ and sent word to Xerxes that if the Persian -fleet divided and one half stayed at one end of the strait and the -other half closed off the other end of the strait, the Greeks would be -penned in between and caught as in a trap. - -Xerxes thought this a good idea, so he gave orders to have his ships -do as Themistocles had suggested. But Xerxes, sitting smiling on his -throne, had the surprise of his life. The result was just the opposite -of what he had expected. With the Persian fleet separated in two parts, -the Greeks in between could fight both halves of the divided fleet at -the same time, and the space was so narrow that the Persians’ ships got -in the way of each other and rammed and sank their own boats. - -And so the Persian fleet was completely beaten, and the proud and -boastful Xerxes, with most of his army and all the navy that was left, -made a hasty retreat back to Persia the way they had come. - -And this was the last time the Persians ever tried to conquer little -Greece. - -If Themistocles had not had his way and built such a strong fleet, what -do you think would have become of Athens and Greece! - - - - -26 - -The Golden Age - - -When we were talking about the Stone Age and the Bronze Age, I told you -that later we should also hear of a Golden Age. - -Well, we have come to the Golden Age now. This doesn’t mean that people -at this time used things made of gold, nor that they had a great deal -of gold money. It means--well, let us see what sort of a time it was, -and then you can tell what it means. - -After the wars with Persia, Athens seemed to have been cheered up by -her victory to do wonderful things, and the next fifty years after the -Persians were driven out of Greece--that is, 480 to 430 B. C.--were -the most wonderful years in the history of Greece and perhaps the most -wonderful years in the history of the world. - -Athens had been burned down by Xerxes. At the time it happened this -seemed like a terrible misfortune. But it wasn’t. The people set to -work and built a much finer and much more beautiful city than the old -one had been. - -Now, the chief person in Athens at this time was a man named Pericles. -He was not a king nor a ruler, but he was so very wise and such a -wonderful speaker and such a popular leader that he was able to make -the Athenians do as he thought best. He was like the popular captain of -a football team, who is a fine player himself and can make fine players -of all the others on his team. Athens was his team, and he trained -it so well that any one of the team would have been able to fill any -position no matter how important it was. Some men became great artists. -Some men became great writers. Some men became great philosophers. Do -you know what philosophers are? They are wise men who know a great deal -and love knowledge. - -The artists built many beautiful buildings, theaters, and temples. They -made wonderful statues of the Greek gods and goddesses and placed them -on the buildings and about the city. - -The philosophers taught the people how to be wise and good. - -The writers composed fine poems and plays. The plays were not like -those we have nowadays but were all about the doings of the gods and -goddesses. - -The theaters were not like those we have nowadays, either. They were -always out of doors, usually on the side of a hill, where a “grand -stand” could be built facing the stage. There was little or no scenery, -and instead of an orchestra of musicians there was a chorus of singers -to accompany the actors. The actors wore false faces or masks to show -what their feelings were, a “comic” mask with a grinning face when they -wanted to be funny and a “tragic” mask with a sorrowful face when they -wanted to seem sad. - -Perhaps you have seen pictures of these masks, for in the decorations -of our own theaters these same comic and tragic masks are sometimes -used. - -[Illustration: Tragic and comic masks.] - -Athens had been named after the goddess Athene, who was supposed to -watch out for and look after the city. So the Athenians thought she -should have a special temple. Accordingly, they built one to her on -the top of a hill called the Acropolis. This temple they called in her -honor the Parthenon, meaning the “maiden,” one of the names by which -she was known. - -The Parthenon is considered the most beautiful building in the world, -though as you see by the picture, as it is to-day, it is now in ruins. -In the center of this temple was a huge statue of Athene made of gold -and ivory by a sculptor named Phidias. We are told that it was the most -beautiful statue in the world as the Parthenon was the most beautiful -building, but it has completely disappeared, and no one knows what -became of it. One might guess, however, that the gold and ivory tempted -thieves, who may have stolen it piece by piece. - -[Illustration: The Parthenon.] - -Phidias made many other statues on the outside of the Parthenon, but -most of these have been carried away and put in museums or have been -lost or destroyed. - -This statue of Athene and the other sculptures on the Parthenon made -Phidias so famous that he was asked to make a statue of Jupiter to be -placed at Olympia, where the Olympic Games were held. The statue of -Jupiter was finer even than the one he had made of Athene and was so -splendid that it was called one of the Seven Wonders of the World. You -remember the pyramids of Egypt and the Hanging Gardens of Babylon were -two others of the Seven Wonders. - -Phidias is probably the greatest sculptor that ever lived, but he did -a thing which the Greeks considered a crime and would not forgive. We -do not see anything so terribly wrong in what he did, but the Greeks’ -idea of right and wrong was different from ours. This is what he did. -On the shield of the statue of Athene that he had made, Phidias carved -a picture of himself and also one of his friend Pericles. It was merely -a part of the decoration of the shield, and hardly any one would have -noticed it. But according to the Greek notion it was sacrilege to -make a picture of a human being on a statue of a goddess. So when the -Athenians found out what Phidias had done they threw him into prison, -and there he died. - -The Greeks used different kinds of columns on their buildings, and -these columns are used in many public and in some private buildings -to-day. I’ll tell you what each kind is like; then see how many you can -find. - -The Parthenon was built in a style called Doric. - -The top of the column is called the capital, and the capital of the -Doric column is shaped like a saucer with a square cover on top -of it. There was no base or block at the bottom of the column. It -rested directly on the floor. As the Doric column is so plain and -strong-looking it is called the man’s style. - -The second style is called _Ionic_. - -The capital of the Ionic column has a base, and the capital has -ornaments like curls underneath the square top, and the column has a -base. - -As this column is more slender and more ornamental than the Doric, it -is called the woman’s style. - -The third style is called _Corinthian_. - -[Illustration: 1. Doric. 2. Ionic. 3. Corinthian.] - -The capital of the Corinthian column is higher than either of the other -two and still more ornamental. It is said that the architect who first -made this column got his idea for its capital from seeing a basketful -of toys that had been placed on a child’s grave as was the custom -instead of flowers. The basket had been covered with a slab, and leaves -of the thistle called the acanthus had grown up around the basket. It -looked so pretty that the architect thought it would make a beautiful -capital for a column, and so he copied it. - -I asked some boys which one could find the most columns. The next -day one boy said he had seen two Ionic columns, one on each side of -the door of his house. The second had seen ten Doric columns on the -savings-bank. But the third said he had seen 138 Corinthian columns. - -“Where on earth did you see so many?” I asked. - -“I counted the lamp-posts from my house to the school,” he said. “They -were kind of Corinthian columns.” - -One of the friends of Pericles was a man named Herodotus. He wrote in -Greek the first history of the world. For this reason Herodotus is -called the Father of History, and some day if you study Greek you may -read what he wrote in his own language. Of course, at that time there -was very little history to write. What has happened since _hadn’t_ -happened then, and before his time little was known of what had taken -place. So Herodotus’s history was chiefly a story of the wars with -Persia, which I have just told you about. After that he had to stop; -there was nothing more to write about. - -In those days every once in a while a terrible contagious disease, -called a plague, would break out, and people would be taken sick and -die by the thousands, for the doctors knew very little about the plague -or how to cure it. Such a plague came upon Athens, and the Athenians -died like poisoned flies. Pericles himself nursed the sick and did all -he could for them, but finally he, too, was taken sick with the plague -and died. So ended the Golden Age, which has been called in honor of -its greatest man the Age of Pericles. - -[Illustration] - - - - -27 - -When Greek Meets Greek - - -The Golden Age, when Athens was so wonderful, lasted for only fifty -years. - -Why, do you suppose, did it stop at all? - -It stopped chiefly because of a fight. - -This time, however, the fight was not between Greece and some one -outside, as in the Persian Wars. The fight was between two cities -that had before this been more or less friendly--mostly less--between -Sparta and Athens. It was a family quarrel between Greeks. And the -fight was all because one of these cities--Sparta--was jealous of the -other--Athens. - -The Spartans, as you know, were fine soldiers. The Athenians were fine -soldiers, too. But ever since Themistocles with the ships he had built -had beaten the Persians at Salamis, Athens had also a fine fleet, and -Sparta had no fleet. Furthermore, Athens had become the most beautiful -and most cultured city in the whole world. - -Sparta did not care much about Athens’s beautiful buildings and her -education and culture and that sort of thing; that did not interest -her. What did make her jealous was Athens’s fleet. Sparta was inland, -not on nor near the sea-shore as Athens was; so she could not have a -fleet at all. Sparta did not intend, however, to let Athens get ahead -of her, and so on one excuse or another Sparta with all of _her_ -neighbors started a war against Athens with all of _her_ neighbors. - -Sparta was in a part of Greece which was called by the hard name, the -Peloponnesus. But in those days the boys did not think this a hard -name, for they were as familiar with it as you are with such a name as -Massachusetts, for instance, which would seem just as hard to a Greek -as Peloponnesus does to you. This war between Athens and Sparta was -therefore called the Peloponnesian War from the fact that it was not -only Sparta but all of the Peloponnesus that fought against Athens. - -We think a war lasts entirely too long if it lasts four or five years, -but the Peloponnesian War lasted twenty-seven years! There is a saying, -“When Greek meets Greek then comes a tug of war!” which means to say, -“When two equal fighters such as Athens and Sparta, both Greek, meet -each other in battle, who knows how it will end?” - -I am not going to tell you about all the battles that took place -during these twenty-seven years, but at the end of this long and bloody -war both cities were tired and worn out, and the glory of Athens was -gone. Although Sparta was ahead, neither city ever amounted to much -afterward. The Peloponnesian War ruined them both. That’s the way war -does! - -All during the Peloponnesian War there was a man at Athens by the -name of Socrates who, many think, was one of the wisest and best men -who ever lived. He was called a philosopher and went about the city -teaching the people what was right and what they ought to do. But -instead of actually _telling_ the people what he thought was right, he -asked them questions which made them see what was right. In this way, -chiefly by asking questions, he led people to find out for themselves -what he wanted them to know. This kind of teaching, simply by asking -questions, has ever since been called Socratic. - -Socrates had a snub nose and was bald and quite ugly, and yet he was -very popular with the Athenians, which may seem strange, for the -Athenians loved beautiful faces and beautiful figures and beautiful -things, and Socrates was anything but beautiful. It must have been the -beauty of Socrates’s character that made them forget his ugliness, -as I know some boys and girls who think their teacher is perfectly -beautiful just because she is so good and kind that they love her, -although she is really not pretty at all. - -Socrates had a wife named Xantippe. She had a bad temper and was the -worst kind of a crosspatch. She thought Socrates was wasting his time, -that he was a loafer, as he did no work that brought in any money. One -day she scolded him so loudly that he left the house, whereupon she -threw a bucket of water on him. Socrates, who never answered back, -merely remarked to himself: - -“After thunder, rain may be expected.” - -Socrates didn’t believe in all the Greek gods, Jupiter, Venus, and the -rest, but he was careful not to say so himself, for the Greeks were -very particular that no one should say or do anything against their -gods. Phidias, you remember, was thrown into prison for merely putting -his picture on the shield of the goddess Athene, and one would have -been put to death for teaching young men not to believe in the gods. - -At last, however, Socrates, as he had feared he would be, was charged -with not believing in the Greek gods and with teaching others not to -believe in them. And so for this he was condemned to death. He was not -hanged or put to death as prisoners are now, however. He was ordered to -drink a cup of hemlock, which was a deadly poison. Socrates’s pupils, -or disciples, as they were then called, tried to have him refuse to -drink the cup, but he would not disobey the order; and so, when he was -nearly seventy years old, he drank the cup of hemlock and died with all -his disciples around him. - -Although this was four hundred years before Christ was born, and -before, therefore, there were any such things as Christians or a -Christian religion, yet Socrates believed and taught two things that -are just what Christians also believe. - -One of these things he believed was that each of us has inside a -conscience, which tells us what is right and what is wrong; we don’t -have to read from a book or be told by another what is right or what is -wrong. - -Another thing he taught was that there is a life after death and that -when we die our souls live on. - -No wonder he was not afraid himself to die! - - - - -28 - -Wise Men and Otherwise - - -Have you ever been playing in your yard when a strange boy who had been -watching from the other side of the fence asked to be let into the -game, saying he would show you how to play? You didn’t want him around, -and you didn’t want him in, but somehow or other he got in and was soon -bossing everybody else. - -Well, there was a man named Philip who lived north of Greece, and he -had been watching Sparta and Athens--not playing but fighting--and he -wanted “to get into the game.” Philip was king of a little country -called Macedonia, but he thought he would like to be king of Greece, -also, and it seemed to him a good time, when Sparta and Athens were -“down and out” after the Peloponnesian War, to step in and make himself -king of that country. Philip was a great fighter, but he didn’t want to -fight Greece unless he had to. He wanted to be made king peaceably, and -he wanted Greece to do it willingly. So he thought up a scheme to bring -this about, and this was his scheme. - -He knew, as you do, how the Greeks hated the Persians whom they had -driven out of their country over a hundred years before. Although -the Persian Wars had taken place so long ago, the Greeks had never -forgotten the bravery of their forefathers and the tales of their -victories over the Persians. These stories had been told them over and -over by their fathers and grandfathers, and they loved to read and -reread them in Herodotus’s history of the world. - -So Philip said to the Greeks: - -“Your ancestors drove the Persians out of Greece, to be sure, but the -Persians went back to their country, and you didn’t go after them and -punish them as you should have done. You didn’t try ’to get even’ with -them. Why don’t you go over to Persia and conquer it now, and make the -Persians pay for what they did to you?” Then he slyly added: - -“Let me help you. I’ll lead you against them.” - -No one seemed to see through Philip’s scheme--nobody except one man. -This man was an Athenian named Demosthenes. - -Demosthenes, when he was a boy, had decided that he would some day be -a great speaker or orator, just as you might say you are going to be a -doctor, or an aviator, or a lawyer when you grow up. - -But Demosthenes had picked the one profession which by nature he was -worst fitted for. In the first place, he had such a very soft, weak -voice that one could hardly hear him. Besides this, he st-st-stammered -very b-b-badly and could not re-cite even a sh-sh-short p-p-poem -without hesit-t-tating and st-st-stumbling so that people laughed at -him. It seemed absurd, therefore, that he should aim to be a great -speaker. - -But Demosthenes practised and _practised_ and _practised_ by himself. -He went down on the sea-shore and put pebbles in his mouth to make it -more difficult to speak clearly. Then he spoke to the roaring waves, -making believe that he was addressing an angry crowd, who were trying -to drown the sound of his voice, so that he would have to speak very -loud indeed. - -So at last, by keeping constantly at it, Demosthenes did become the -greatest speaker that ever lived. He spoke so wonderfully that he could -make his audience laugh or make them cry whenever he wanted to, and he -could persuade them to do almost anything he wished. - -Now, Demosthenes was the man who saw through Philip’s scheme for -conquering Persia. He knew that Philip’s real aim was to become king -of Greece. So he made twelve speeches against him. These speeches were -known as Philippics, as they were against Philip. So famous were they -that even to-day we call a speech that bitterly attacks any one a -Philippic. - -The Greeks who heard Demosthenes were red-hot against Philip while -they listened to him. But as soon as they got away from the sound of -Demosthenes’s words the same Greeks became lukewarm and did nothing to -stop Philip. - -So at last, in spite of everything that Demosthenes had said, Philip -had his way and became king over all Greece. - -Before, however, he could start out, as he had promised, to conquer -Persia, he was killed by one of his own men, so that he was unable to -carry out his plan. - -But Philip had a son named Alexander. Alexander was only twenty years -old, not old enough even to vote if he had lived in our country, but -when his father died he became king of Macedonia and also of Greece. - -When Alexander was a mere child, he saw some men trying without success -to tame a young and very wild horse that shied and reared in the air so -that no one was able to ride it. Alexander asked to be allowed to try -to ride the animal. Alexander’s father made fun of his son for wanting -to attempt what those older than he had been unable to do, but at last -gave his consent. - -Now, Alexander had noticed what the others, although much older, had -not noticed. The horse seemed to be afraid of its own shadow, for young -colts are easily frightened by anything black and moving, as some -children are afraid of the dark. - -So Alexander turned the horse around facing the sun, so that its shadow -would be behind, out of sight. He then mounted the animal and, to the -amazement of all, rode off without any further trouble. - -His father was delighted at his son’s cleverness and gave him the horse -as a reward. Alexander named the horse Bucephalus and became so fond -of him that when the horse died Alexander built a monument to him and -named several cities after him. - -Now, Alexander was a wonderful boy, but he had such a wonderful teacher -named Aristotle that some people think part, at least, of his greatness -was due to the teacher. - -Aristotle was probably the greatest teacher that ever lived. If there -were more great teachers like Aristotle, it seems likely there would -have been more great pupils like Alexander. - -Aristotle wrote books about all sorts of things--books about the stars -called astronomy, books about animals called zoölogy, and books on -other subjects that you probably have never even heard of, such as -psychology and politics. - -For thousands of years these books that Aristotle wrote were the -school-books that boys and girls studied, and for a thousand years -they were the _only_ school-books. Nowadays, a school-book is usually -old-fashioned a few years after it is written and is then no longer -used. So you see how remarkable it was that Aristotle’s school-books -should have been used for so long a time. - -Aristotle had been taught by a man named Plato, who was also a great -teacher and philosopher. Plato had been a pupil of Socrates, so that -Aristotle was a kind of “grand-pupil” of Socrates. You have heard of -the Wise Men of the East. These were the three Wise Men of Greece. - - SOCRATES, - PLATO, - ARISTOTLE. - -Some day you may read what they wrote or said over two thousand years -ago. - - - - -29 - -A Boy King - - -When you are twenty years old, what do you think you will be doing? - -Will you be playing football on your college team? - -Will you be working in a bank, or what? - -When Alexander was twenty he was king of both Macedonia and Greece. But -Macedonia and Greece were entirely too small for this wonderful young -man. He wanted to own a much bigger country; in fact, he thought he -would like to own the whole world; that was all--nothing more. - -So Alexander went right ahead with his father’s plan to conquer Persia. -The time had come to pay back Persia for that last invasion one hundred -and fifty years before. - -He got together an army and crossed the Hellespont into Asia and won -battle after battle against the first Persian armies sent out to stop -him. - -He kept moving on, for Persia was a vast empire. - -Soon he came to a town where in a temple there was kept a rope tied -into a very far-famed and puzzling knot. It was called the Gordian -Knot, and it was very famous because the oracle had said that whoever -should undo this knot would conquer Persia. But no one had ever been -able to untie it. - -When Alexander heard the story, he went to the temple and took a look -at the knot. He saw at once that it would be impossible to untie it, -so, instead of even trying, as others had done, he drew his sword and -with one stroke cut the knot in two. - -So now when a person settles something difficult, not by fussing with -it as one untangles a snarl, but at a single stroke, cutting through -all difficulties, we say he “cuts the Gordian Knot.” - -From that time on, Alexander conquered one city after another and never -lost any battle of importance until he had conquered the whole of -Persia. - -Then he went into Egypt, which belonged to Persia, and conquered that -country, too. To celebrate this victory, he founded a town near the -mouth of the Nile and named it after himself, Alexandria. Then he -started there a great library which later grew to be so big that there -were said to be five hundred thousand books in it--that is, half a -million--and was the largest library of ancient times. The books were -not like those in the library of Assur-bani-pal nor the kind we have -now, of course, because printing had not been invented. They were every -one of them written by hand, and not on pages, but on long sheets which -were rolled up on sticks to form a scroll. - -[Illustration: A scroll, pens and ink.] - -In the harbor of Alexandria was a little island called Pharos, and on -this island some years later was built a remarkable lighthouse named -from the island, the Pharos, and its light could be seen for many -miles. It was really a building more like a modern sky-scraper with a -tower. It was over thirty stories high, which seemed most remarkable at -that time when most buildings were only one or two stories high, and -its light could be seen for many miles. So the Pharos of Alexandria was -called one of the Seven Wonders of the World. You have already heard of -three others, so this makes the fourth. - -Alexandria grew in the course of time to be the largest and most -important seaport of the ancient world. Now, however, the Pharos and -the library and all the old buildings have long since disappeared. - -But Alexander did not stay very long in any one place. He was -restless. He wanted to keep on the move. He wanted to see new places -and to conquer new people. He almost forgot his own little country of -Macedonia and Greece. Instead of being homesick, however, as most any -one would have been, he kept going farther and farther away from home -all the time. We should call such a man an adventurer or an explorer, -as well as a great general. And so he kept on conquering and didn’t -stop conquering until he had reached far-off India. - -There in India his army, which had stayed on with him all the way, -became homesick and wanted to go back. They had been away from home -for more than ten years and were so far off that they were afraid they -would never get back. - -Alexander was now only thirty years old, but he was called Alexander -the Great, for he was ruler of the whole world--at least, all of it -that was then known and inhabited by civilized people, except Italy, -which was still only a collection of little, unimportant towns at that -time. When Alexander found there were no more countries left for him to -conquer, he was so disappointed that he wept! - -And so at last, when there was nothing more to conquer, he agreed to do -what his army begged him and started slowly back toward Greece. - -He got as far as Babylon, the city once so large and so magnificent. -There he celebrated with a feast, but while feasting and drinking he -suddenly died. So he never reached Greece. - -This was in 323 B.C. when he was but 33 years old. You can remember -these figures easily, for they are all 3’s except the middle figure in -the date, which is one less than 3. - -Alexander the Great had conquered the largest country that has ever -been under the rule of one man, and yet this was not the only reason we -call him the “Great.” - -He was not only a great ruler and a great general, but--this may -surprise you--he was also a great teacher. Aristotle had taught him to -be that. - -Alexander taught the Greek language to the people whom he conquered -so that they could read Greek books. He taught them about Greek -sculpture and painting. He taught them the wise sayings of the Greek -philosophers, Socrates and Plato and his own teacher, Aristotle. He -trained the people in athletics as the Greeks did for their Olympic -Games. And so we can say that he taught far more people than any other -teacher who has ever lived. - -Alexander had married a beautiful Persian girl named Roxana, but their -only child was a baby, not born until after his father’s death; so when -the great king died there was no one to rule after him. He had told his -generals before he died that the strongest one of them should be the -next ruler; to fight it out among themselves, as we sometimes say, “May -the best man win.” - -So his generals did fight to see who should win, and finally four of -them, who were victorious, decided to divide up this great empire and -each have a share. - -One of his generals was named Ptolemy I, and he took Egypt as his -share and ruled well; but the others did not amount to much, and -after a while their shares became unimportant and went to pieces. -Like a red toy balloon which stretches and stretches as you blow -it up, Alexander’s empire grew bigger and bigger until--all of a -sudden--“_pop_”--nothing was left but the pieces. - - - - -30 - -Picking a Fight - - -“Every dog has his day.” - -A tennis or golf champion wins over the one who was champion before him -and then has a few years during which he is unbeaten. Sooner or later, -however, some younger and better man beats him and in turn takes the -championship. - -It seems almost the same way with countries as with people. One country -wins the championship from another, holds it for a few years, and then, -when older, finally loses it to some new-comer. - -We have seen that - - _Nineveh_ was champion for a while; then - _Babylon_ had her turn; then - _Persia_, had her turn; then - _Greece_; and, lastly, - _Macedonia_. - -You may wonder who was to be the next champion after Alexander’s empire -went to pieces--who was to have the next turn. - -When Alexander was conquering the world he went east toward the rising -sun, and south. He paid little attention to the country to the west -toward the setting sun. Rome, which we have not heard of for some time, -was then only a small town with narrow streets and frame houses. It -was not nearly important enough for Alexander to think much about. -Rome herself was not thinking of anything then except keeping the -neighboring towns from beating her. - -[Illustration: Map of Mediterranean showing Carthage, Spain, etc.] - -It is usual to speak of a city as “her” or “she” as if a city were a -girl, but Rome was more like a small boy whom all the other boys were -“picking” on. In the course of time, however, Rome began to grow up and -was not only able to take care of herself but could put up a very stiff -fight. She was then no longer satisfied with just defending herself. So -she fought and won battles with most of the other towns in Italy, until -at last she found herself champion of the whole of the “boot.” Then she -began to look around to see what other countries there were outside of -Italy that she might conquer. - -Perhaps you have noticed that Italy, the “boot,” seems about to kick a -little island as if it were a football. This island is Sicily, and just -opposite Sicily was a city called Carthage. - -Carthage had been founded by the Phenicians many years before and had -become a very rich and powerful city. As she was by the sea, she had -built many ships and traded with all the other seaports along the -Mediterranean, just as the old Phenician cities of Tyre and Sidon had -done. - -Carthage did not like to see Rome getting so strong and growing so big -and becoming so powerful. In other words, Carthage was jealous of Rome. - -Rome, on her side, was jealous of the wealth and trade of Carthage. So -Rome anxiously looked around for some excuse to get into a fight with -her. - -Now, you know how easy it is to pick a quarrel and start a fight when -you are “looking for trouble.” One boy sticks out his tongue, the other -gives him a kick, and the fight is on. - -Well, two countries are at times just like little boys; they start a -fight with just as little excuse, and though they call the fight “war” -it is nothing but a “scrap.” Only there are no fathers to come along -and give them both a spanking and send them to bed without any supper. - -So it didn’t take long for Rome and Carthage to find an excuse, and a -war was started between them. The Romans called this fight a Punic War, -for “Punic” was their name for Phenician, and the Carthaginians were -Phenicians. - -As Carthage was across the water, the Romans could not get to her -except in boats. But Rome had no boats. She was not on the sea-shore, -and she knew nothing about making boats, nor about sailing them, if she -had had them. - -The Carthaginians, on the other hand, had many, many boats, and, like -all the Phenicians, were old and experienced sailors. - -But Rome happened to find the wreck of a Carthaginian ship that had -been cast ashore, and she at once set to work to make a copy of it. -In a remarkably short time she had built one ship, then another and -another, until she had a great many ships. Then, though she was new at -the game, she attacked the Carthaginian fleet. - -It would seem that the Carthaginians could easily have won, for the -Romans knew so little about boats. But in sea battles, before this, -the fighting had been done by running into the enemy and ramming and -sinking their ships. - -The Romans knew they were no match for the Carthaginians in this sort -of fighting. So they thought up a way in which they could fight them as -on land. - -To do this they invented a kind of big hook which they called a “crow.” -The idea was for a ship to run close alongside a Carthaginian ship and, -instead of trying to sink her, to throw out this big hook or “crow,” -catch hold of the other ship, and pull both boats dose together. The -Roman soldiers would then scramble over the sides into the enemy’s boat -and fight them the same way they would on land. - -The scheme worked. - -This new kind of fighting took the Carthaginians by surprise, and they -were no match for the Romans at first. - -But Rome did not have things all her own way by any means. The -Carthaginians soon learned how to fight in this fashion, too. So Rome -lost, as well as won, battles both on land and on sea. But at last she -did win, and the Carthaginians were beaten. Thus ended the first Punic -War. - - - - -31 - -The Boot Kicks and Stamps - - -But the Carthaginians were not beaten for good. They were only waiting -for another chance to get even. As, however, they had been unsuccessful -in attacking Italy from in front as they had been doing, they made up -their minds to attack her from the back. Their scheme was to go the -long way round through Spain and down into Italy from the north. - -In order to do this, they had first of all to conquer Spain so that -they could get through. They did this, however, rather easily, for the -Carthaginians had a very great general named Hannibal. But then came -the great difficulty, to get into Italy by this back way. - -Across the top of the “boot,” at the north of Italy, there are the -great mountains called the Alps. They are miles high and covered even -in summer with ice and snow. There are crags and steep cliffs along -which any one passing who made a single misstep would be dashed to -death thousands of feet below. - -It was the Alps, therefore, that formed a bigger and better wall than -any city or country could possibly build. Of course the Romans thought -it impossible for any army to climb over such a terribly high and -dangerous wall. - -Time and again there have been things that people call impossible to -do, and then some one has come along and done them. - -People said it was impossible to fly. - -Then some one did it. - -People said it was impossible to cross the Alps with an army. - -Then Hannibal came along, and before the Romans knew what had happened -he had done it. He had crossed the Alps with his army and was in at the -back door! - -The Romans were unable to keep him from marching on toward their city, -winning battle after battle as he came along. They were unable to -prevent him marching up and down Italy, conquering other towns in Italy -and doing pretty much as he pleased. It seemed as if Rome were beaten -and she were to lose all of Italy. - -Now, in some games, if you can’t defend your own goal, it may be a good -plan to try attacking your opponent’s goal. - -Rome thought she would try this plan. While Hannibal was attacking her, -she herself would attack Carthage while its general was away and there -was no strong goal-keeper to defend that city. - -So the Romans sent a young man named Scipio with an army to do this. - -First, however, Scipio went to Spain to cut Hannibal off from the way -he had come, and this country Scipio reconquered. - -Then he went over to Africa to attack Carthage itself. - -The Carthaginians, frightened at being attacked with their general and -his army far off in Italy, sent as fast as they could for Hannibal to -come home. When at last he arrived, it was too late. Scipio fought a -famous battle at Zama near Carthage, and the Carthaginians were beaten, -beaten a second time by the Romans. Thus ended the second Punic War in -202 B.C. This is another easy name and easy date--just like a telephone -number: - - Zama--two-O-two. - -The Romans had won two wars against Carthage; you would think that they -would now have been satisfied. But they weren’t. They thought they had -not beaten Carthage badly enough. They were afraid she was not quite -dead or that she might come to life. They thought there might be a -little spark left that might start a fire if it weren’t trampled out. - -Now, it is bad sport to pummel your opponent after he is beaten, and -Carthage was beaten--beaten, black and blue--there was no hope of her -“coming back.” And yet a few years later the Romans attacked her again -for the third and last time. - -Carthage was unable to defend herself, and the Romans viciously burned -the city to the ground. It is said they even plowed over the land -so that no trace of the city should remain, and sowed it with salt -which prevented anything growing there. After that Carthage was never -rebuilt, and now it is hard to tell even where the old city once was. - -[Illustration] - - - - -32 - -The New Champion of the World - - -You can well imagine how proud all the Romans now were that they _were_ -Romans, for Rome was the champion fighter of the world. If a man could -toss his head and say, “I am a Roman citizen,” people were always ready -to do something for him, afraid to do him any harm, afraid what might -happen to them if they did. Rome was ruler not only of Italy but of -Spain and Africa. Like other nations before her, once she had started -conquering, she kept on conquering, until by 100 B.C. she in her turn -was ruler of almost all the countries bordering the Mediterranean -Sea--all except Egypt. - -The New Champion of the World, who was to be champion for a great many -years, was very businesslike and practical. - -The Greeks loved beautiful things, beautiful buildings, beautiful -sculpture, beautiful poems. The Romans copied the Greeks and learned -from them how to make many beautiful things, but the Romans were most -interested in practical and useful things. - -For example, now that Rome ruled the world, she had to be able to send -messengers and armies easily and quickly in every direction to the -end of her empire and back again. So it was necessary for her to have -roads, for of course there were no railroads then. Now, an ordinary -road made by simply clearing away the ground gets full of deep ruts and -in rainy weather becomes so muddy that it can hardly be used at all. - -So Rome set to work and built roads. These roads were like paved -streets. Large rocks were placed at the bottom for a foundation, -smaller stones placed on top, and large, flat paving-stones laid -over all. Thousands of miles of such roads she built to all parts of -her empire. One could go from almost anywhere all the way to Rome on -paved roads. We still have an expression, “All roads lead to Rome.” So -well were these roads made that many of them still exist to-day, two -thousand years after they were built. - -The Romans also showed their practical minds by making two very -important city improvements. If you live in a city, you turn on a -spigot and you get plenty of pure water whenever you want it. The -people in cities at that time, however, usually had to get their water -both for drinking and for washing from wells or springs near-by. These -springs and wells often became dirty and made the people very sick. -And so every once in a while because of such dirty water there were -those terrible plagues, those terribly contagious diseases like the one -I told you about in Athens when people died faster than they could be -buried. - -[Illustration: Roman Aqueduct.] - -The Romans wanted pure water, and so they set to work to find lakes -from which they could get pure water. As oftentimes these lakes were -many miles away from the city, they then built big pipes to carry the -water all the way to the city. Such a pipe was not made of iron or -terra-cotta as nowadays, but of stone and concrete, and was called an -“aqueduct,” which in Latin means “water-carrier.” If this aqueduct had -to cross a river or a valley, they built a bridge to hold it up. Many -of these Roman aqueducts are still standing and in use to-day. - -Now, up to this time waste water, after it had been used, and also -every other kind of dirt and refuse, was simply dumped into the street. -This naturally made the city or town filthy and unhealthy and was -another cause of plagues. But the Romans built great underground sewers -to carry off this dirt and waste water and empty it into the river or -into some other place where it would do no harm and cause no sickness. -Nowadays, every large city has aqueducts and sewers as a matter of -course, but the Romans were the first to build them on a large scale. - -One of the most important things that Rome did was to make rules that -every one had to obey; laws, we call them. Many of these laws were so -fair and just that some of our own laws to-day are copied from them. - -All the cities and towns of the Roman Empire had to pay money or taxes -to Rome. So Rome became the richest city in the world. Millions of this -money, which was brought to her, was spent in putting up beautiful -buildings in the city, temples to the gods, splendid palaces for the -rulers, public baths and huge open-air places called amphitheaters -where the people could be amused. - -The amphitheaters were something like our football and baseball fields -or stadiums. They did not have football or baseball, however. They -had chariot-races, and deadly fights between men, or between men and -animals. Chariots were small carts with large wheels drawn by two or -by four horses and driven by a man standing up. Perhaps you have seen -chariot-races in the circus. - -But the sport that the Romans enjoyed most of all was a Fight of -Gladiators. Gladiators were very strong and powerful men who had been -captured in battle by the Romans. They were made to fight with one -another or with wild animals for the amusement of the crowd. These -gladiatorial fights were very cruel, but the Romans enjoyed seeing -blood shed. They liked to see one man kill another or a wild animal. It -was so amusing. The movies would not have interested them half so much. -Usually the gladiators fought until one or the other was killed, for -the people were not, as a rule, satisfied until this was done. - -Sometimes, however, if a gladiator, who had been knocked out, had shown -himself particularly brave and a good fighter or a good sport, the -people seated all around the amphitheater would turn their thumbs _up_ -as a sign that his life was to be spared by the other gladiator. So the -winning gladiator, before killing his opponent whom he had down, would -wait to see what the people wished. If they turned their thumbs _down_, -it meant he was to finish the fight by killing his man. - -But although Rome had become such a fine and beautiful and healthy -city in which to live, the rich people were getting most of the money -that came there from all over the empire. They were getting richer -and richer all the time, while the poor people, who got nothing, were -getting poorer and poorer all the time. The Romans brought the people -whom they conquered in battle to Rome and made them work for them -without pay. These were slaves and they did all the work. It is said -that there were more than twice as many slaves as Romans--two slaves -for every Roman citizen. - -Now, Scipio, who had conquered Hannibal in the Punic War, had a -daughter named Cornelia Graccha, and she had two sons. They were very -fine boys, and Cornelia was naturally very proud of them. - -One day a very rich Roman woman was visiting Cornelia and showing off -all her rings and necklaces and other ornaments, of which she had a -great many and was very proud. - -When she had shown off all she had, she asked to see Cornelia’s jewels. - -Cornelia called to her two boys, who were playing outside, and when -they came in to their mother she put her arms around them and said: - -“_These_ are _my_ jewels.” - -But boys who are jewels when they are young do not always turn out to -be jewels when they grow up. So you may wonder how Cornelia’s jewels -tinned out. - -When they grew up, the Gracchi, as they were called, saw such great -extravagance among the rich and such great misery among the poor that -they wanted to do something about it. They saw that the poor had hardly -anything to eat and no place to live. This did not seem fair. So they -tried to lower the price of food, so that the poor might be able to buy -enough to eat. Then they tried to find some way to give the poor at -least a small piece of land where they might raise a few vegetables. -They were partly successful in bringing this about. But the rich people -didn’t like giving up anything to the poor, and they killed one of the -Gracchus brothers, and later they killed the other one, also. These -were Cornelia’s jewels. - - - - -33 - -The Noblest Roman of Them All - - -Here’s a puzzle for you: - -A man once found a very old piece of money that had on it the date “100 -B. C.” - -That couldn’t be so. Why not? See if you can tell without looking at -the answer at the bottom of the page.[1] - -[1] People living 100 years before Christ was born could not have known -when he was to be born and so could not put such a date on the coins -they made. - -In the year 100 B. C. was born in Rome a boy who was named Julius Cæsar. - -If you had asked him when he was born, he would have said in the Year -653. - -Why do you suppose? - -Because Roman boys counted time from the founding of Rome in 753 B. C., -and Cæsar was born 653 years after the city was founded. That makes it -100 years before Christ, doesn’t it? - -_Pirates_ seemed to be everywhere in the Mediterranean Sea at that -time--_Pirates_. Now that Rome was ruler of the world, there were many -ships carrying gold from different parts of the empire to Rome. So -the pirates sailed up and down, lying in wait to capture and rob these -ships laden with gold. - -When Cæsar grew to be a young man, he was sent off to sea to fight -these pirates, and he was captured by them. The pirates kept Cæsar a -prisoner and sent to Rome saying they would not let him go unless Rome -sent them a great deal of money. Cæsar knew that he would be killed if -the money was not sent. He knew, too, that he might be killed, anyway. -But he was not only not afraid but he told the pirates that if he lived -to get back home he would return with a fleet and punish every one of -them. When at last the money came they let him go, nevertheless. They -thought Cæsar would not dare to do what he said. They thought he was -just “talking big.” At any rate, they did not believe he would be able -to catch them. Cæsar, however, kept his word, came back after them as -he said he would do, and took them prisoners. Then he had them all put -to death on the cross, which was the Roman way of punishing thieves. - -The far-off places of the Roman Empire were always fighting against -Rome trying to get rid of her rule, and had to be kept in order by a -general with an army. As Cæsar had shown such bravery in fighting the -pirates he was given an army and sent to fight two of these far-off -places--Spain and a country north of Spain then known as Gaul, which -is now France. - -Cæsar conquered these countries, and then he wrote a history of his -battles in Latin, which of course was his own language. Nowadays this -book, called “Cæsar’s Commentaries,” is usually the first book which -those who study Latin read. - -In 55 B. C. Cæsar crossed over in ships to the island of Britain, which -is now England, conquered it, and went back again next year in 54 B. C. - -Cæsar was becoming famous for the way he conquered and ruled over the -western part of the Roman Empire. Besides this, he was very popular -with his soldiers. - -Now there was in Rome at this time another general named Pompey. Pompey -had been successfully fighting in the eastern part of the Roman Empire -while Cæsar had been fighting in the west. Pompey had been a great -friend of Cæsar, but when he saw how much land Cæsar had conquered and -how popular he was with his soldiers, he became very jealous of him. -Notice how many quarrels and wars are caused simply by jealousy. You -have heard of at least two already. - -So while Cæsar was away with his army Pompey went to the Roman Senate -and persuaded the senators to order Cæsar to give up the command of -his army and return to Rome. - -When Cæsar received the order from the Senate to give up his command -and return to Rome, he thought over the matter for some time. Then at -last he made up his mind that he would return to Rome, but he would -_not_ give up his command. Instead, he decided that he and his army -would take command of Rome itself. - -Now, there was a little stream called the Rubicon which separated the -part of the country over which Cæsar was given charge from that of -Rome. The Roman law forbade any general to cross this stream with an -army ready to fight--this was the line beyond which he must not pass, -for the Romans were afraid that if a general with an army got too close -to Rome he might make himself king. - -When Cæsar decided not to obey the Senate, he crossed this stream--the -Rubicon--with his army and marched on to Rome. - -People now speak of any dividing line from danger as “the Rubicon” -and say that a person “crosses the Rubicon” when he takes a step from -which there is no turning back, when he starts something difficult or -dangerous which he must finish. - -When Pompey heard that Cæsar was coming he took to his heels and fled -to Greece. In a few days Cæsar had made himself head not only of Rome -but of all Italy. Cæsar then went after Pompey in Greece and in a -battle with his army beat him badly. - -Now that Pompey was out of the way, Cæsar was the chief ruler of the -whole of the Roman Empire. - -Egypt did not yet belong to Rome. So Cæsar next went there and -conquered that country. Now, in Egypt there was ruling a beautiful -queen named Cleopatra. Cleopatra was so charming that she seemed able -to make every one fall in love with her. Cleopatra flirted with Cæsar -and so fascinated him that he almost forgot everything else except -making love to her. So although he had won Egypt he made Cleopatra -queen over that country. - -Just at this time some people in the far eastern part of the empire -started a war to get rid of the rule of Rome. Cæsar left Egypt, -traveled rapidly to the place where the enemy were, made quick work -of conquering them, then sent back the news of his victory to Rome -in the most laconic (do you remember what that means?) description -ever given of a battle. There were only three words in the message. -Although the messenger could have carried three thousand as easily as -three words, Cæsar sent a message that would have been short even for a -telegram. He wrote, “Veni, vidi, vici,” which means, “I came, I saw, I -conquered.” - -When Cæsar at last got back to Rome, the people wanted to make him -king, or said they did. Cæsar was already more than king, for he was -head of the whole Roman Empire. But he wasn’t called king, for there -had been no kings since 509 B. C., when Tarquin was driven out. The -Romans had been afraid of kings and hated them, or were supposed to -hate them. - -A few of the people thought that Cæsar was getting too much power -and believed it would be a terrible thing to make him a king. They, -therefore, decided on a plot to prevent such a thing happening. One of -these plotters was a man named Brutus who had been Cæsar’s very best -friend. - -One day when Cæsar was expected to visit the Roman Senate they lay in -wait for him until he should appear--in the same way I have seen boys -hide around the corner for some schoolmate, against whom they had a -grudge, until he should come out of school. - -Cæsar came along, and just as he was about to enter the Senate the -plotters crowded around him, and one after another they stabbed him. - -Cæsar, taken by surprise, tried to defend himself; but all he had -was his stylus, which was a kind of pen he used for writing, and he -could not do much with that, in spite of a famous saying, “The pen is -mightier than the sword.” - -When at last Cæsar saw Brutus--his best friend--strike at him, his -heart seemed broken and he gave up. Then, exclaiming in Latin, “Et tu, -Brute!” which means, “And thou, O Brutus!” he fell down dead. This was -in 44 B.C. - -Antony, one of Cæsar’s true friends, made a speech over Cæsar’s dead -body, and his words so stirred the crowd of people that gathered round -that they would have torn the murderers to pieces if they could have -caught them. - -Shakspere has written a play called “Julius Cæsar,” and the month of -July is named after him. - -Now whom do you suppose Antony called “The Noblest Roman of Them All”? - -“Julius Cæsar”? - -No, you’re wrong. Brutus, the friend who stabbed Cæsar, was called, -“The Noblest Roman of Them All.” - -Why, do you suppose? - -You’ll have to read Antony’s speech at the end of the play to find out. - -Cæsar was pronounced in Latin “Kaiser”; and in later years the rulers -of Germany were called this, and those of another country by the -shortened form, “Czar.” - - - - -34 - -An Emperor Who Was Made a God - - -A man is famous who has a town or a street named after him. - -Will you ever do anything great enough to have even an alley named -after you? - -But just suppose a month, one of the twelve months of the year, was -given your name! - -Millions upon millions of people would then write and speak your name -forever! - -But I’m going to tell you about a man who not only had a month named -after him but who was made a god! - -After Cæsar had been killed, three men ruled the Roman Empire. One of -these three men was Antony, the friend of Cæsar, who made the famous -speech over his dead body. The second was Cæsar’s adopted son, who was -named Octavius. The name of the third you don’t need to know now, for -Antony and Octavius soon got rid of him. Then no sooner had they forced -him out than each of these two began to plot to get the share of the -other. - -Antony’s share, over which he ruled, was the eastern part of the -empire. The capital of this part was Alexandria in Egypt, and so -Antony went there to live. - -In Egypt Antony fell in love with Cleopatra, as Cæsar before him had -done, and he finally married her. - -Octavius, in the west, which was his share, then made war on Antony and -Cleopatra together, and in the end beat them both. Antony felt so bad -at being beaten by Octavius that he committed suicide. - -His widow, Cleopatra, thereupon, flirted with Octavius as she had with -Julius Cæsar and Antony, hoping to make him also fall in love with her -and so win him in that way. - -But it was no use. Octavius was a different kind of man from both -Julius Cæsar and Antony. He was cold-blooded and businesslike. He had -no heart for love-making. He would not let a woman charm him or turn -him aside from his plan, which was to be the greatest man in the world! - -Cleopatra saw that it was no use trying her tricks on him. Then she -heard that she was going to be taken back to Rome and paraded through -the streets, as was done with any other prisoners taken in battle. She -could not stand such a shame as that, and so she made up her mind she -would not be taken back to Rome. - -Now, in Egypt there is a kind of snake called an asp, which is deadly -poisonous. Taking one of these asps in her hand, she uncovered her -breast and let it bite her, and so she died. - -Octavius was now ruler over all the countries that belonged to -Rome, and when he returned home to that city, the people hailed him -“Emperor.” He then gave up the name Octavius and had himself called -“Augustus Cæsar,” which is like saying, “His Majesty, Cæsar.” This was -in 27 B.C. Rome had got rid of her kings in 509. From now on she had -emperors, who were more than kings, for they ruled over many countries. - -Octavius, now with his name changed to Augustus Cæsar, was only -thirty-six years old when he became sole master of the Roman world. -Rome was the great capital of this vast empire. The city of Rome had -probably as many people as New York City proper now has, and the Roman -Empire had perhaps as many people as the United States has at present. - -Augustus set to work to make Rome a beautiful city. He tore down a -great many of the old buildings made of brick and put up in their place -a remarkable number of new and handsome buildings of marble. And so -Augustus always bragged that he found Rome brick and left it marble. - -One of the finest buildings in Rome, the Pantheon, was built. Pantheon -means the temple of all the gods. Do not mix this with the Parthenon -in Athens, for the two buildings are quite different, and though the -names look something alike and sound something alike, they mean quite -different things; Parthenon is from the goddess Athene Parthenos; -Pantheon is from the two words “Pan theon,” which means “all gods.” - -The Pantheon has a dome built of concrete. This dome is shaped like a -bowl turned upside down, and in the top of the dome is a round opening -called an eye. Though this eye is uncovered, the height is so great -above the floor that it is said that rain coming through the eye does -not wet the floor beneath but evaporates before reaching it. - -So magnificent did the city become with all these wonderful buildings, -and so permanently did it seem to be built, that it was known as The -Eternal City and is still so spoken of. - -There was a public square in Rome called the Forum. Here markets were -held and the people came together for all sorts of things. Around the -Forum were erected temples to the gods, court-houses, and other public -buildings. These court-houses were something like the temples that the -Greeks built, only the columns were put on the inside of the building -instead of on the outside. - -[Illustration: Roman forum.] - -Triumphal arches also were erected to celebrate great victories. When a -conquering hero returned from the war, he and his army passed through -this arch in a triumphal parade. - -There had been in Rome a great amphitheater that is supposed to have -held more people than any structure that has ever been built--two -hundred thousand, it is said, or more than all the people who live in -some good-sized cities. This was called the Circus Maximus. It was at -last torn down to make room for other buildings. - -Another amphitheater was the Colosseum, but this was not built until -some time after Augustus had died. It held about the same number as -the largest stadium in this country does to-day. Here were held those -fights between men, called gladiators, and wild animals that I have -already told you about. It is still standing, and, though it is in -ruins, you can sit in the same seats where the old Roman emperors did, -see the dens where the wild animals were kept, the doors where they -were let into the arena, and even bloody marks that are said to be the -stains made by the slain men and beasts. - -So many famous writers lived at the time of Augustus that this has been -called the Augustan Age. Two of the best known Latin poets, whom every -school-boy now reads after he has finished “Cæsar’s Commentaries,” -lived at this time. These poets were Vergil and Horace. Vergil wrote -the “Æneid,” which told of the wanderings of Æneas, the Trojan, who -settled in Italy, and was the great-great-great-grandfather of Romulus -and Remus. Horace wrote many short poems called Odes. They were -love-songs of shepherds and shepherdesses and songs of the farm and -country life. People liked his songs, and many still name their sons -after him. - -When Augustus Cæsar died, he was made a god, because he had done so -much for Rome; temples were built in which he was worshiped, and the -month of August was named after him. - - - - -35 - -“Thine is the Kingdom, the Power, and the Glory” - - -Augustus Cæsar had been Ruler of the World. - -He had found Rome brick and left it marble. - -He had had a month named after him, and - -He had been made a god! - -Surely no one could ever be greater than he! Yet a greater than he was -living at the very same time--a greater ruler of a greater kingdom with -greater power and greater glory, although Augustus himself knew nothing -about Him and lived and died without ever having heard of Him. This -Man was born in the eastern part of Augustus’s empire in a tiny little -village called Bethlehem, and His name was Jesus Christ. - -For many, many years after Christ was born no one except His family and -friends knew or cared anything about His birth or paid the slightest -attention to it. - -Christ was a Jew, the son of a carpenter. As a boy and young man He -led a very simple and quiet life working in His father’s shop. He did -not begin to preach until He was more than thirty years old. Then He -went about teaching the people what we learn to-day as the Christian -religion. - -He taught that there was one God over all. - -He taught brotherly love, that one should love one’s neighbor as -oneself. - -He taught the golden rule; that is, “do unto others as you would be -done by.” - -He taught that there was a life after death for which this short life -on earth was only a preparation; that therefore you should “lay up your -treasures in heaven” by doing good works here. - -The poorer Jews listened to Christ and believed what He taught them. -But they thought He was going to set them free from the rule of the -Romans, which they hated. The Jewish priests, however, were afraid of -what Christ taught. He was teaching some things that were just the -opposite of what they themselves taught. So they plotted to have Him -put to death. - -Now, the Jews could not put Christ to death without the permission of -the Roman ruler of that part of the empire where Christ lived. This -ruler was named Pilate. So they went to Pilate and told him that Christ -was trying to make himself king. Christ of course meant and always said -that He was a heavenly ruler and not an earthly king. The Jews knew -that Pilate would not care at all what religion Christ taught. There -were all sorts of religions in the Roman Empire--those that believed -in mythological gods and those that believed in idols and those that -believed in the sun, moon, and so on--one more new religion made little -difference to the Romans, and Christ would not be put to death simply -for teaching another. But the Jews knew if they could make Pilate -believe that Christ was trying to make himself a king, that was a thing -He could be crucified for. Pilate did not believe much in what the -Jews said against Christ. It was a small matter to him, one way or the -other, however. But he wanted to please the Jews, so he told them to go -ahead and put Christ to death if they wanted to. So He was crucified. - -Christ had chosen twelve men to teach what He told them. These twelve -men were called apostles. After Christ was crucified these apostles -went through the land teaching the people what Christ had taught them. -Those who believed in and followed His teachings were called disciples -of Christ or Christians. The apostles were teachers; the disciples were -pupils. - -The Romans thought these disciples of Christ were trying to start a -new world empire, and that they were against Rome and the emperor and -should be arrested and put in prison. So the Christians usually held -their meetings in secret places, sometimes even underground, so that -they would not be found and arrested. - -But after a while the leaders of the Christians became bolder. They -came out of their secret places and taught and preached openly, -although they knew they would sooner or later be thrown into prison and -perhaps killed. Indeed, so strongly did they believe in the teachings -of Christ that they seemed even glad to die for His sake, as He had -died on the cross for them. - -In the first hundred years after Christ, there were a great many -Christians put to death because they were thought traitors. Christians -who died for Christ’s sake were called martyrs. The first martyr was -named Stephen. He was stoned to death about 33 A.D. - -One of the men who helped in putting Stephen to death was a man -named Saul. Saul was a Roman citizen and, like other Roman citizens, -was proud of that fact. He thought the Christians were enemies of -his country, and he did everything he could to have the Christians -punished. Then, all of a sudden, Saul had a change of heart and came to -believe in the religion of the very people whom he had been fighting. -Whatever Saul did or whatever he believed he did or believed with his -whole soul. Though he had never seen Christ, he became one of the -chief Christians and then was made an apostle and was called by his -Roman name, Paul. - -Paul preached the new religion far and wide just as earnestly as he had -fought against it at first. Then he, too, was condemned to death. Paul, -however, was, as I have said, a Roman citizen, and a Roman citizen -could not be put to death by the ordinary judges who were not Roman -citizens nor in the ordinary way by crucifying. So Paul appealed to -the emperor. Nevertheless, he was put in prison in Rome and afterward -beheaded. And so he is called St. Paul. - -Peter was another of the chief apostles. Christ had said to him, “I -will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven.”[2] Peter, too, -was thrown into prison, and was sentenced to be crucified. But he asked -to be crucified with his head downward. He thought it too great an -honor to die in just the same way as his Lord. On this spot in Rome -where Peter was put to death was built long afterward the largest -church in the world, the Cathedral of St. Peter. - -[2] Matthew, xvi, 19. - -As everything before Christ’s birth is called B.C. and everything since -His birth is called A.D., you would naturally suppose that 0 would be -the date of His birth. - -But it was not until some five hundred years later that people began -to date from Christ’s birth. And then, when they did begin to date -from this event, they made a mistake. It was found out that Christ was -really born four years before He was supposed to have been born--that -is, in 4 B.C.--but when the mistake was found out, it was then too late -to change. - -[Illustration] - - - - -36 - -Blood and Thunder - - -I once had a big Newfoundland dog, and he was one of the best friends -a boy ever had. I don’t know who it was that named him; he was named -before I got him; but whoever it was must either have been ignorant of -history or a bad chooser of names. He was called Nero, and even a dog -would have hated such a name, had he known whose it once was. - -Every good story usually has a villain to make it interesting. Nero is -the prize villain of history. He was a Roman emperor who lived not long -after Christ, and he is considered the most terribly cruel and wicked -ruler that ever lived. - -He killed his mother. - -He killed his wife. - -He killed his teacher, who was named Seneca. He was not a bad teacher, -either. - -We think that Nero ordered both St. Peter and St. Paul put to death, -for they were executed at this same time. - -Nero seemed to take great pleasure in making others suffer. He loved to -see men torn to pieces by wild beasts; it amused him greatly. I have -seen boys who liked to throw stones at dogs just to hear them yelp, or -tear the wings off of butterflies. Such boys must have some Nero in -them; don’t you think? - -If a man was a Christian, that gave Nero an excuse to torture him -horribly. Nero had some of the Christians wrapped in tar and pitch, -then placed around the garden of his palace and set fire to, as if -they were torches. It is even said that Nero set Rome on fire just for -the fun of seeing the city burn. Then he sat in a tower and, while he -watched the blaze spreading, played on a harp. The saying is that “Nero -fiddled while Rome burned”; but there were no fiddles at that time, and -so we know it must have been a harp. The fire burned day and night for -a whole week and destroyed more than half of the city. Then Nero laid -the blame on the Christians, who, he said, started the fire. Did you -ever blame another for something you had done? - -Some think Nero really was crazy, and we hope he was, for it is hard to -think any human being who was not crazy could act as he did. - -Nero built himself an immense palace and overlaid it extravagantly with -gold and mother-of-pearl. It was known as Nero’s House of Gold. At its -front door he put up a colossal statue of himself in bronze fifty feet -high. Both the House of Gold and the statue were later destroyed, -but the Colosseum, which was built a few years afterward, was named -Colosseum from this “coloss-al” statue of Nero that was once there. - -Nero was very conceited. He thought he could write poetry and sing -beautifully. Although he did both very badly, he liked to show off, and -no one dared to laugh at him. Had any one been so bold as to make fun -of him or even to smile, he would have had that person put to death -instantly. - -Even the Roman people who were not Christians feared and hated Nero. -So they voted to have him put out of the way. But before they had a -chance to do anything, Nero heard what they were planning, and in order -to save himself the disgrace of being put to death by his own people -he decided to kill himself. He was such a coward, however, that he -couldn’t quite bring himself to plunge the sword into his heart. But -as he hesitated, holding the sword to his breast and whimpering, his -slave, impatient to finish the job, shoved the blade in. Thus was Rome -rid of its worst ruler. - -So much for the first part of this “blood and thunder” story. Here is -the second part: - -The Jews in Jerusalem didn’t like to have Rome rule over them. They -never had. But they were afraid to do much about it. But in the Year -70 A.D. they rebelled; that is, they said they would no longer obey -Rome or pay her money. The emperor sent his son, who was named Titus, -with an army to put an end to the rebellion, to punish them as if they -were disobedient children. - -The Jews crowded into their city of Jerusalem to make a last stand -against the Romans. But Titus destroyed that city completely and the -Jews in it, a million of them, it is supposed. Then he robbed the great -temple of all its valuable ornaments and brought them back to Rome. - -To celebrate this victory over Jerusalem an arch was built in the Forum -at Rome, and through this arch Titus and his army marched in triumph. -On this arch was carved a procession, showing Titus leaving the city -of Jerusalem with these ornaments. Chief among these ornaments was a -golden seven-branched candlestick he had taken from the temple. To-day -we see many copies in brass of this famous seven-branched candlestick. -Perhaps you may have one in your home on the mantelpiece. - -The city was rebuilt later, but most of the Jews who were left have -ever since been living in all the other countries of the earth. - -Titus became emperor, but in spite of the way in which he had massacred -so many Jews, he was not such a bad emperor as you might suppose. He -thought he was doing right in killing these men because they had -rebelled against Rome. But Titus had a rule of life, much like that the -Boy Scouts now have. This rule was, “Do at least one good turn a day.” - -The third part of this story is the “thunder.” - -In Italy there is a volcano named Vesuvius. You remember that “volcano” -came from the name “Vulcan,” the blacksmith god, and people imagined -that his forge in the heart of a volcano made the smoke and flame and -ashes. From time to time this volcano, Vesuvius, thunders and quakes -and spouts forth fire and throws up stones and gas and boils over with -red-hot melted rock called lava. It is the hot inside of the earth -exploding. Yet people build houses and towns near-by and live even -on the sides of the volcano. Every once in a while their homes are -destroyed when the volcano quakes or pours forth fire. Yet the same -people go right back and build again in the same place! - -[Illustration: Vesuvius erupting, Pompeii in foreground.] - -There was at the time of Titus a little town named Pompeii near the -base of Vesuvius. Wealthy Romans used to go there to spend the summer. -Suddenly, one day in the year 79 A.D., just after Titus had become -emperor, Vesuvius began to spout forth fire. The people living in -Pompeii rushed for their lives, but they hadn’t time to get away. They -were smothered with the gases from the volcano before they hardly had -time to move and, falling down dead, were buried deep in a boiling rain -of fire and ashes, just where they happened to be when the eruption, as -it was called, took place. - -The people and their houses lay buried beneath the ashes for nearly -two thousand years, and in the course of time every one had forgotten -there ever had been such a place. People came back as they had before -and built houses over the spot where every one had forgotten there once -was a city. Then one day a man was digging a well over the spot where -Pompeii had once been. He dug up a man’s hand--no, not a real hand, -but the hand of a statue. He told others, and they set to work and dug -and dug to see what else they could find until the whole town was dug -out. And now one can go to Pompeii and see it very much as it was in 79 -A.D., before it had ever been destroyed. - -There are houses of the Romans who went there to spend their vacations. -There are shops and temples and palaces and public baths and the -theater and the market place or forum. The streets were paved with -blocks of lava, once melted stone. They still show ruts which were worn -into them by the wheels of the chariots that the Romans used to drive. -Stepping-stones were placed at some crossings, so that in case of heavy -rains, when the streets were full of water, one could cross on them -from curb to curb. These stepping-stones are still there. The floors of -the houses were made of bits of colored stone to form pictures. They -are still there. In the vestibule of one house, there is in the floor -a mosaic picture of a dog. Under it are the Latin words, “Cave canem.” -What does that mean? Can you guess? It means, “Look out for the dog!” -That was a Roman’s idea of a joke two thousand years ago! - -The bones of the people who were caught and buried alive in the ashes -were also found. There were also found bronze ornaments worn by the -women, vases that decorated the home, lamps which they used to light -the houses, pots and pans and dishes. Beds and chairs were found just -as they had been buried. Still more remarkable, cakes were found on the -table, a loaf of bread half eaten, meat ready to be cooked, a kettle on -the fire with the ashes still underneath it--beans and peas and _one -egg_ unbroken--probably the oldest egg in the world! - - - - -37 - -A Good Emperor and a Bad Son - - -Have you ever said, “I don’t care,” when you really did care? - -I have. Every one has. - -Perhaps you have been naughty and have been told you could have no -dessert or must go to bed early, and you tossed your head and said, “I -don’t care.” - -Well, once upon a time there was a society or club formed of grown-up -people who said they weren’t ever going to care what happened to them; -whether it was good or whether it was bad would make no difference. -I should call them the “Don’t Care Club,” but they called themselves -“Stoics,” and they thought the way to be good was “not to care.” - -If a Stoic’s house burned down, he would say to himself and try to make -himself believe, “I don’t care; it doesn’t matter.” - -If some one gave him a million dollars, he would say, “I don’t care; it -doesn’t matter.” - -If he was told by the doctor he was going to die next week, he would -say, “I don’t care; it doesn’t matter.” - -This Society of Stoics was started by a Greek philosopher named Zeno. - -Zeno lived in Athens later than those philosophers, Socrates and Plato, -whom you have already heard about. Zeno said that the only way to be -good and the only way to be happy was not to care for pleasure and not -to mind pain or suffering but calmly to put up with everything, no -matter how unpleasant or disagreeable it was, and the Stoics believed -him. Even to-day people who bear troubles and pain and hardships -without a murmur are called stoics. - -One of the chief members of the society was a Roman emperor. - -Rome’s worst emperor, Nero, had been dead a hundred years when there -came to the throne this new emperor, who was just as good as Nero was -bad. This emperor was named Marcus Aurelius. Although he was so very -good and pious, he was not a Christian. Indeed, Marcus Aurelius treated -the Christians terribly, as they had been treated terribly by the -previous emperors, for he thought them traitors to the empire. - -At this time most of the Romans had very little religion of any sort. -They were not Christians, but neither did they put much faith in their -own gods, Jupiter and Juno and the rest. They honored them because -they were brought up to honor them and because they thought if they -didn’t honor them they might have bad luck, so they took no chances. -But instead of believing in such gods, people usually believed in the -teachings of some wise man or philosopher and obeyed more or less the -rules he made. Zeno was one of these philosophers, and the Stoics were -the members of this society. - -Although Marcus Aurelius was an emperor, he would rather have been a -Stoic philosopher or a priest. Although he had to be a soldier and a -general, he would rather have been a writer. When he was off, fighting -with his army, he carried his writing-materials with him, and he would -go to his tent at night and write out his thoughts. These thoughts he -called his “Meditations.” Here is one of the things he wrote: - - When you find you do not want to get up early in the morning, make - this short speech to yourself. I am getting up now to do the business - of a man. Was I made to do nothing but doze and keep warm under the - covers? - -That was written long years ago, yet your father might have told you -the same thing this morning. - -People read this book of Marcus Aurelius to-day, either in the Greek in -which it was written or translated into English. - -A great many of Marcus Aurelius’ sayings seem almost as if they might -have been in the Bible. Indeed, some people keep his book by their -bedside as if it were a Bible. - -One of his rules was, “Forgive your enemies,” and he seemed almost -glad to have enemies so that he might have a chance to forgive them. -Indeed, he took such a special delight in forgiving his enemies that -he even went out of his way to do so. Though Marcus Aurelius was not a -Christian, nevertheless he was more Christian in the way he acted than -some of the later emperors who were supposed to be Christians. - -But like many people who are very good themselves, Marcus Aurelius was -unable to bring up his son to be so. His son was named Commodus, and -Commodus was just as bad as his father was good. He may have been bored -when a child by too many of his father’s instructions, for when he grew -up and was able to choose for himself and do as he pleased, instead of -following Zeno and joining the Stoics, he joined the society of another -philosopher called Epicurus. - -Epicurus had lived about the same time as Zeno. But he had taught -what at first seems almost the opposite of what Zeno taught. Epicurus -said that the chief end and aim of man and the only good in the world -was pleasure; _but_, said he, the pleasure must be of the right kind. -Nowadays people who are very fond of eating nice things, whose whole -thought in life is the pleasure of eating, are called “epicures.” - -Commodus’s one thought was pleasure, and the worst kind of pleasure at -that. A friend of mine thought Marcus Aurelius was such a fine man that -he named his son after him, “Marcus Aurelius Jones,” but when the son -grew up he was not at all like his namesake. The name “Commodus” would -have suited him much better, for instead of being good and pious, he -thought of nothing but pleasure and he was so bad that he ended in jail. - -Commodus thought nothing of giving his people a good government; he -only thought of giving himself a good time. He was an athlete and had -beautiful muscles and a handsome figure, of which he was so proud that -he had a statue made of himself. The statue showed him as the strong -and muscular god Hercules. Commodus made the people worship him as -if he were this god. Just to show off his muscles and his muscular -ability, he himself took part in prize-fights--quite bad taste for -an emperor. He poisoned or killed any one who found fault with or -criticized him. He led a wild and dissipated life, but at last he met -the end he deserved. He was strangled to death by a wrestler. - -Lycurgus would have said again: - -“I told you so.” - - - - -38 - -I-- H-- S---- V----- - - -The name of this story I’m going to put at the end, for you wouldn’t -know what it means, anyway, until you have heard the story, and so it’s -no use looking ahead. - -All through the years since Christ was crucified, those who said they -believed in Christ had been terribly treated--“persecuted,” we call -it--because they were Christians. They had been flogged; they had been -stoned; they had been torn with iron hooks; they had been roasted and -burned to death. Yet, strange as it may seem, in spite of this terrible -treatment, more and more people were becoming Christians every day. -They believed so strongly in life after death, and they believed that -they would be so much happier after death if they died for Christ’s -sake, that they seemed even glad to suffer and to be killed. But at -last the emperor himself put a stop to all these persecutions. This is -how it happened. - -About the year 300 A.D. Rome had an emperor by the name of Constantine. -Constantine was not a Christian. His gods were the old Roman gods. He -probably did not put much faith in them, however. - -Well, once upon a time Constantine was fighting with an enemy when he -dreamed one night that he saw in the sky a flaming cross. Beneath this -cross were written the Latin words, “In hoc signo vinces.” In English -this is, “In this sign thou shalt conquer.” Constantine thought this -meant that if he carried the Christian cross into battle he would -conquer. He thought it would at least be worth while to give the -Christian God a trial. So he had his soldiers carry the cross, and he -did win the battle. Then immediately he became a Christian himself and -asked every one in the Roman Empire to become a Christian also. From -that time on, all the Roman emperors who came after Constantine, all -except one, were Christians. - -To celebrate Constantine’s victory the Roman Senate built a triumphal -arch in the Forum of Rome and called it the Arch of Constantine. If has -three openings; the Arch of Titus has only one. - -Constantine’s mother was named Helena. She was one of the very first -to become a Christian and be baptized. Then she gave up her life to -Christian works and built churches at Bethlehem and on the Mount of -Olives. It is said that she went to Palestine and found the actual -cross on which Christ had been crucified three hundred years before and -sent part of it to Rome. When she died she was made a saint, and so -she is now called St. Helena. - -Constantine built a church over the spot where St. Peter was supposed -to have been crucified. Many years later, this church was torn down so -that a much larger and grander church to St. Peter might be built there. - -But Constantine did not care for Rome. He preferred to live in another -city in the Eastern part of the Roman Empire. This city was called -Byzantium. So he moved from Rome to Byzantium and made that city his -capital. Byzantium was called New Rome, and then the name was changed -to Constantine’s city. In Greek, the word for “city” is “polis.” We see -the word used in Anna_polis_ and Indiana_polis_. So Constantine’s City -became Constantinepolis, and then shortened to Constantinople. - -Hardly had the Roman Empire become Christian before a quarrel arose -between those Christians who believed one thing and those who believed -another. The chief thing they quarreled about was whether Christ was -equal to God the Father or not equal to Him. Constantine called the -two disagreeing sides together at a place called Nicæa to settle the -question. There the leaders of each side argued the matter hotly. -Finally, it was decided that the Christian Church should believe that -God the Son and God the Father were equal. Then they agreed to put -what they believed in words. This was called a creed, which means -“believe,” and because it was made at Nicæa it was known as the Nicene -Creed, which many Christians still say every Sunday. - -Before the time of Constantine, there were no weekly holidays. Sunday -was no different from any other day. People worked or did just the -same things on Sunday as they did on other days. Constantine thought -Christians should have one day a week for the worship of God--a “holy -day,” or holiday, as we call it--so he made Sunday the Christian day of -rest, a “holy day” such as Saturday was for the Jews. - -But although Constantine was head of the Roman Empire, there was -another man whom all Christians throughout the world looked to as their -spiritual head. This man was the Bishop of Rome. In Latin he was called -“papa,” which means the same thing in Latin that it does in English, -“father.” So the bishop of Rome was called “papa,” and this became -“pope.” St Peter was supposed to have been the first Bishop of Rome. -For many centuries the pope was the spiritual ruler of all Christians -everywhere, no matter in what country they lived. - -As now you know what the name of this story means I’m putting it here: - - In Hoc Signo Vinces - - - - -39 - -Our Tough Ancestors - - -But Rome with the Roman Empire had had her day. She had risen as high -as she could. It was her turn to fall. She had become as large as she -ever was to be. It was her turn to be conquered. But you cannot guess -what people were to do the conquering and to be next in power. - -When I was a boy there was a gang of toughs who lived down by the -gas-house and railroad tracks. They were ragged, unwashed, unschooled, -but terrible fighters. Their leader was known to us as Mug Mike, and -the very mention of him and his gang struck terror to our souls. Every -now and then they paid our neighborhood a visit. Once we had offered -fight, but with such terrible results that ever after at word of their -approach the alarm would be sounded and we would hide indoors. - -For ages there had been such a gang of half-civilized toughs living on -the northern borders of the Roman Empire. Every now and then they tried -to cross over the border into the Roman lands, and the Romans had to -be constantly fighting them to keep them back where they belonged. -Julius Cæsar had fought with them. So had Marcus Aurelius and so had -Constantine. These wild and warlike people were called Teutons and--you -may be shocked to hear it, but--they are the ancestors of most of us! - -They had light hair and blue eyes; that is, they were what we call -blonds. The Greeks and Romans and other people who lived around the -Mediterranean Sea had black hair and dark eyes. They were what we call -brunettes. If you have light or brown hair, you are probably a Teuton. -If you have black hair, you are probably not. - -The Teutons were white people, and they were Aryans, but they were -uneducated toughs and could neither read nor write. - -They wore skins of animals instead of clothes made of cloth. They lived -in huts made of wood, sometimes of branches woven together--like a -large basket. The women raised vegetables and took care of the cows -and horses. The men did the hunting and fighting and blacksmithing. -Blacksmithing was very important, for the blacksmith made the swords -and spears with which they fought and the tools with which they worked. -That is why the name “Smith” was so honored among them. - -When the men went to battle they wore the heads of animals they had -killed, an ox’s head, horns and all, or the head of a wolf or bear or -fox. This was to make themselves look fierce and to frighten the enemy. - -_Bravery_ was the chief thing the Teuton thought good. A man might lie, -he might steal, he might even commit murder, but if he was a brave -warrior, he was called a “good” man. - -The Teutons did not have a king. They elected their chiefs, and of -course they always chose the man who was the bravest and strongest. -But he could not make his son ruler after him. So he was more like a -president than a king. - -[Illustration: Teuton warrior.] - -The Teutons had an entirely different set of gods from those of Greece -and Rome. Their chief god, as you might guess, was the god of war, and -they called him Woden. Woden was also the god of the sky. He was like -the two Greek gods, Jupiter and Mars, put together. Woden was supposed -to live in a wonderful palace in the sky called Valhalla, and many -tales are told of the wonderful things he did and of the adventures he -had. Wednesday, which was once Wodensday, is named after him. That is -why there is a letter “d” in this word, although we don’t pronounce it. - -After Woden, Thor was the next most important god. He was the god -of thunder and lightning. He carried a hammer with which he fought -great giants who lived in the far-off cold lands and were called -“ice-giants.” Thursday, which was once Thorsday, is named after him. - -Another god was named Tiu, and from his name we get Tuesday, and -another Freya, from whom we get Friday, so that four out of seven of -our days are named after Teuton gods, in spite of the fact that we -are--most of us--Christians and no longer believe in these gods. - -Of the other three days of the week, Sunday and Monday of course are -named after the sun and moon, and Saturday is named after a Greek god, -Saturn. - -From these wild people all fair-haired people to-day are said to -be descended--the English, French, German, and such of us whose -forefathers are English or French or German. - -About the Year 400 A.D. these Teuton toughs were becoming particularly -troublesome to the Romans. They began to push their way down into the -northern part of the Roman Empire, and after a few years the Romans -could hold them back no longer. Two of these Teuton gangs, or tribes, -as they were called, went over into Britain, and the Romans who were -living there found it wisest to get out, go back to Rome, and leave the -country to the Teutons. - -These tribes who settled in Britain were known as Angles and Saxons. So -the country came to be called the land of the Angles, or, for short, -“Angle-land.” After the words “Angle-land” were said over for many -years, they became “England,” which is what we call the country to-day. -The people of England are still known by the full name “Anglo-Saxons,” -and this is the name by which we call everything descended from these -old Teuton tribes of Angles and Saxons who settled in Britain about 400 -A.D. - -Another gang or tribe called the Vandals went into Gaul. Gaul is where -France is now. Then they kept on down into Spain, stealing, smashing, -and burning like Mug Mike’s gang of toughs on Hallowe’en. They crossed -over by boats into Africa. They injured or destroyed everything they -came upon. So to-day when any one damages or destroys property -wickedly, we call him a vandal. If you cut up your desk, tear your -books, or scratch names on walls or fences, you, too, are a vandal. - -A tribe called the Franks followed the Vandals into Gaul, and there -they stayed, giving the name “France” to that country. - -The Teutons north of Italy were the Goths. They had a leader by the -name of Alaric. He was the “Mug Mike” of the gang of Goths. Alaric and -his Goths crossed over the mountains into Italy and robbed or destroyed -everything of value they could lay their hands on. They then entered -Rome and carried away whatever they wanted, and the Romans could not -stop them. But the worst was yet to come. - -[Illustration] - - - - -40 - -White Toughs and Yellow Toughs Meet the Champions of the World - - -The Teutons were wild toughs but they were white. - -Farther north of the Teutons and to the east was a tribe of people who -were still more savage and fierce. They were called Huns. They lived -far off in the forests and wilds way beyond the Teutons, in a part of -the country that no one then knew much about. - -The Huns were, we think, not white as the Teutons were, but yellow. -Even the Teutons themselves, fierce fighters though they were, feared -the Huns, and it was chiefly because they were afraid of them and -wanted to get away from them as far as they could that the Teutons went -over the borders into the Roman Empire. It was much easier to fight the -Romans than it was to fight the Huns. - -The Huns seemed more like wild beasts than human beings. Their leader -was a dreadful creature named Attila. He boasted that nothing ever grew -again where his horse had trod. He and his Huns had conquered and laid -waste the country all the way from the East almost to Paris. At last -the Teutons made a stand against them and fought a great battle at a -place not so very far from Paris, a place called Châlons. - -The Teutons fought desperately; they fought madly. It was white toughs -against yellow toughs, and the Huns were beaten. It was lucky they -were beaten, for if they had won, these dreadful wild, yellow people -might have conquered and ruled the world. The white toughs were -bad enough, but the yellow would have been worse. So the battle of -Châlons, 451 A.D., is written in history in capital letters and large -figures--CHÂLONS 451. - -After Attila and his Huns had been beaten at Châlons they left the -Teutons alone, but they then went after the Romans. Turning back they -went down into Italy, where there was no one able to stop them. They -destroyed everything as they moved on. The people of the country didn’t -even attempt to fight. They thought the Huns were monsters and simply -fled before them. So on to Rome the Huns went. - -Now, there was at Rome at this time a Pope named Leo I, which means -Lion. Leo, of course, was neither a soldier nor a fighting man, but he -and his cardinals and bishops went out from Rome to meet Attila. They -were not clad in armor, and none of them carried any weapons with which -to fight. The pope and those with him were dressed in gorgeous robes -and richly colored garments. It seemed as if they must be slaughtered -by Attila and his Huns like lambs before wolves. - -But something strange happened when Attila and the pope met; exactly -what no one knows. Perhaps Attila was awed by the pomp and splendor of -those Christians. Perhaps he feared what Heaven might do to him if he -destroyed those holy beings who had come out to meet him as if from -heaven. At any rate, he did not destroy them, nor did he enter Rome, -but turned about and left Italy, left it for good and all, and he and -his Huns returned to the unknown land to the north from which they had -come. - -Now that the dreaded Attila was out of the way, the Vandals in Africa -saw their chance to attack Rome. Attila had barely left Italy before -the Vandals crossed over from Africa and sailed up the Tiber to Rome. -They captured the city without any difficulty, helped themselves to -everything they wanted, and carried away all Rome’s treasures. - -Poor old Rome! She was at last beaten, beaten for good! She had been -the Champion for a great many years. But now all her strength was gone. -She was old and weak and no longer able to defend herself against -these gangs of toughs. Rome’s last emperor had the high-sounding name -“Romulus Augustulus,” the same name as the first king, Romulus, with -the addition of Augustulus, which means the little Augustus. But in -spite of his high-sounding name, Romulus Augustulus could do nothing. -He was like the little boy living in the marble house on the avenue, -the little boy with curls and a velvet suit, whom Mug Mike caught out -one day and--you can guess the rest. “Great Cæsar’s ghost!” How Cæsar’s -ghost must have felt! - -It was the Year 476 that Rome was beaten. The western half of the -empire, of which Rome had been the capital, broke up into pieces, and -the pieces were ruled over by Teutons. Like Humpty Dumpty, Rome had had -a great fall, and all the king’s horses and all the king’s men couldn’t -put it together again. Only the eastern part, of which Constantinople -was the capital, still went on. This eastern half was not conquered by -the barbarians, and it still kept going for nearly a thousand years -longer until--but wait till we come to that time in history. - -People speak of this date, 476, as the end of Ancient History. After -Ancient History, there was a time over five hundred years long which -was known as the Dark Ages--the Night-time of History. The Dark Ages -lasted from 476 to about 1000 A.D. These centuries are called the Dark -Ages, because during that long time the Teutons, those uneducated -toughs who were unable even to read and write, were the chief people in -Europe, and they ruled over those who had once been the educated and -cultured people. - -The Teutons, though such rough toughs, barbarians as they were called, -were, strange to say, quick to learn many things from the Romans whom -they had conquered. Even before they had conquered Rome, most of the -Teutons had already become Christians. - -Of course they had to learn the Latin language in order to talk to -their subjects. But they changed the Latin a good deal and mixed it -with their own language. This mixture of their own language with the -Latin at last became Italian. The Teutons who went to Spain in a like -way mixed their language with the Latin, and this mixture was Spanish. -In France the mixture of the two languages became French. - -In Britain, however, the Anglo-Saxons would have nothing to do with -the Romans and would not use the Roman language but kept their own -language. After a while this language of the Anglo-Saxons was called -English. The Anglo-Saxons also kept their own religion, and they -worshiped Thor and Woden and their other gods until about one hundred -years later, or about 600 A.D. - -At that time some English slaves were being sold in the slave-market -at Rome. They were very handsome. The pope saw them and asked who they -were. - -“They are Angles,” he was told. - -“Angles!” exclaimed he; “they are handsome enough to be ’angels,’ and -they should certainly be Christians.” - -So he sent some missionaries to England to convert the English; -to change Angles to Angels. So at last the English, too, became -Christians. - - - - -41 - -Nightfall - - -It was 500 o’clock by History Time. - -Night was coming on. - -The Dark Ages had begun. - -At least, that is what people call it now. But people didn’t call it so -then. - -Crazy people don’t think they are crazy. - -Ignorant people don’t think they are ignorant. - -So the Dark Ages didn’t think they were dark. - -The ignorant Teutons were ruling over the pieces of the Western Empire. - - They couldn’t read; they couldn’t write. - They didn’t know much except to fight. - They didn’t know ’twas dark as night. - -At Constantinople, however, a Roman was still ruling over the Eastern -Empire. This Roman was named Justinian. Now, up to this time there had -been a great many rules or laws by which the people were governed. But -there were so many of these rules and they were so mixed up that one -law would tell you you could do one thing and another would tell you -you couldn’t. It was as if your mother said you could stay up till nine -o’clock to-night and your father said you must go to bed at eight. It -was hard for people to tell, therefore, what one must do and what one -must not do. - -In order to untangle this snarl, Justinian had a set of laws made for -the government of his people, and many of these were so good and so -just that they are still the law to-day. If you notice that Justinian -begins with “Just,” this will help you to remember that he was the one -who made _just_ laws. - -Another thing Justinian did that has lasted to the present time. He -built in Constantinople a very beautiful church called Santa Sophia. -Though it is no longer a church, it is still standing after all these -years and is a beautiful sight to see. Still another thing he did -which you could never guess. It had nothing to do with war or law or -buildings. - -Travelers from the Far East, where China now is, had brought back -tales of a wonderful caterpillar that wound itself up with a fine, -thin thread over a mile long, and they told stories of how the Chinese -unwound this thread and wove it into cloth of the finest and smoothest -kind. This thread, as you might guess, was called silk, and the -caterpillar that made it was called the silkworm. People in Europe -had seen this beautiful silk cloth, but how it was made had been a -mystery--a secret. They thought it so wonderfully beautiful that it was -supposed to have been made by fairies or elves or even sent down from -heaven. Justinian found out about these caterpillars and had men bring -these silkworms into Europe so that his people also might make silk -cloth and have silk ribbons and fine silk garments, and therefore we -give him the honor of starting the manufacture of silk in Europe. - -Outside of Justinian’s empire the ignorant Teutons were living. It took -them nearly a thousand years to learn as much as any school-boy now -knows, and the first thing they learned was not reading, nor writing, -but the Christian religion. - -About the same time that Justinian lived there was a king in France -named Clovis. Clovis, of course, was a Teuton and belonged to the tribe -called the Franks, which gave the name “France” to that country. Clovis -believed in Thor and Woden as all of his people did. Clovis had a wife -named Clotilda, whom he loved very dearly. Clotilda, though a Teuton, -thought all the fighting and cruelty which her people seemed to like -was wrong. She had heard about the religion of Christ, which did not -believe in quarreling and fighting, and she thought she would like to -be a Christian. So she was baptized. Then she tried to persuade her -husband, Clovis, to become a Christian, also. - -Clovis was just then going to war--the very thing the Christians -preached against. But, just to please his wife, he promised her, if he -won the battle, he would become a Christian. He did win, and he kept -his word and was baptized and had his soldiers baptized, also. Clovis -made Paris his capital, and Paris is still the capital of France. - -It was about this same time, also, that a king named Arthur was ruling -in England. Many stories and poems have been written about him, which, -however, we know are fairy-tales and not history. But although we know -these stories are not true, they are, nevertheless, interesting--like -those tales that are told about the heroes of the Trojan War. - -It was said that there was a sword called Excalibur stuck so fast in a -stone that no one could draw it out except the man who should be king -of England. All the nobles had tried without success to draw the sword, -when one day a young boy named Arthur pulled it out with the greatest -ease, and he was accordingly proclaimed king. - -King Arthur chose a company of the nobles to rule with him, and as they -sat with him at a Round Table, they were known as the Knights of the -Round Table. Tennyson, the great English poet, has written in verse an -account of all the doings of King Arthur and his knights in a long poem -called “The Idylls of the King,” which you will have to read yourself, -for we must go on to the next story. - -[Illustration] - - - - -42 - -“Being Good” - - -What do you mean by “being good”? - -The Teutons thought “being good” meant being brave. - -The Athenians thought whatever was beautiful was “good.” - -The Stoics thought “not caring” was “being good.” - -The Epicureans thought having a good time was “being good.” - -The martyrs thought “being good” meant suffering and dying for Christ’s -sake. - -Ever since the time of the martyrs, Christians who wanted to be very, -very good indeed, went off into the wilderness and lived by themselves. -They wished to be far away from other people, so that they could spend -all their time praying and thinking holy thoughts. This, they believed -was “being good.” - -One of the strangest of these men who wanted to get away from others -was named St. Simeon Stylites. He built for himself a pillar or column -fifty feet high, and on the top of it he lived with room only to sit -but not to lie down. There on the top he lived for many years, day -and night, winter and summer, while the sun shone on him and the rain -rained on him, and he never came down at all. He could be reached only -by a ladder, which his friends used to bring him food. High up out of -the world, he thought he could best lead a holy life. That was his idea -of “being good” although we should think such a person simply crazy. - -In the course of time, however, men who wanted to lead holy lives, -instead of living alone as they had done at first, gathered in groups -and built themselves homes. These men were called monks, and the house -where they lived was known as a monastery or abbey. The head monk of -such an abbey was called an abbot, and he ruled over the other monks -like a father over his children, giving them orders and punishing them -when he thought they needed it. - -In the five hundreds there lived an Italian monk named Benedict. He -believed very strongly that one must work if he was to be holy, that -work was a necessary part of being holy. He thought, also, that monks -should have no money of their own, for Christ had said in the Bible, -“If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell that thou hast, and give to the -poor.” So Benedict started a club or order of monks for those people -who would agree to three things: - -The first thing they were to agree to was to have no money. - -The second thing was to obey. - -The third thing was not to marry. - -Monks who joined this club were called Benedictines. - -Now, you might think there would have been hardly any one who would -promise for life three such things as to have no money, to obey -the abbot--no matter what he told them to do--and never to marry. -Nevertheless, there were a great many men in every country of Europe -who did become Benedictines. - -Usually the monks lived in little bare rooms like prison cells, and ate -their very simple meals together at a single table in a room called the -refectory. They prayed at sunrise and sunset, and many times during the -day besides, and they even woke up at midnight to say their prayers. -But praying was not all they had to do. Work of every kind they were -obliged to do, and they did it joyfully, whether the work was scrubbing -floors or digging in the garden. - -Oftentimes the monastery was situated in a barren or swampy spot on -land that had been given the monks because it was no good, or even -worse than no good, dangerously unhealthy. But the monks set to work -and drained off the water, tilled the soil, and made the waste places -bloom like the rose. Then they raised vegetables for their table, -fodder for their horses and cattle and sheep. Everything they ate or -used or needed, they raised or made. - -But they did not only the rougher hand-work; they did fine hand-work, -too. Printing had not been invented at this time; all books had to be -written by hand, and the monks were the ones who did this. They copied -the old books in Latin and Greek. Sometimes one monk would slowly read -the book to be copied, and several other monks at one time would copy -what he dictated. In this way a number of copies would be made. - -[Illustration: Monk writing a manuscript.] - -The pages of the books were not made of paper but of calfskin or -sheepskin, called vellum, and this vellum was much stronger and lasted -much longer than paper. - -These old books which the monks wrote were called “manuscripts,” -which means “hand-written.” Many of these may now be seen in museums -and libraries. Some of these manuscripts have been beautifully -hand-printed with loving care and the initial letters and borders -ornamented with designs of flowers and vines and birds and pictures in -red and gold and other colors. If the monks hadn’t done this copying, -many of the old books would have been lost and unknown to us. - -The monks also kept diaries, writing down from day to day and year -to year an account of the important things that happened. These old -diaries, or chronicles, as they were called, tell us the history of the -times. As there were then no newspapers, if these chronicles had not -been written we should not know what went on at that time. - -The monks were the best educated people of those days, and they taught -others--both young and old--the things they themselves knew. The -monasteries were also inns for travelers, for any one who came and -asked for lodging was received and given food and a place to sleep, -whether he had any money to pay or not. - -The monks helped the poor and needy. The sick, too, came to the -monastery to be treated and taken care of, so that a monastery was -often something like a hospital, too. Many people who had received such -help or attention made rich gifts to the monasteries, so they became -very wealthy, although the monks could own not so much as a spoon for -themselves. - -So you see the monks were not merely holy men; they were most useful -citizens. They were in many ways more nearly everything that Christ -would have wished than perhaps any one large group of men has ever been -since. They were really “GOOD FOR SOMETHING.” - -[Illustration] - - - - -43 - -A Camel-Driver - - -Every hundred years is called a century, but a thing that seems a -little strange is this--the hundred years from 500 to 600 is called the -_sixth_ century, not the fifth; the hundred years from 600 to 700 is -called the _seventh_ century, not the sixth; and so on. Thus 615, 625, -650, and so on are all _seventh_ century. - -Well, we have now reached the seventh century--the six hundreds, and we -are to hear of a man who was to make a change in the whole world. He -was neither a Roman nor a Greek nor a Frank nor a Goth nor a Briton. He -was neither a king nor a general, but only a-- - -What do you suppose? - -A CAMEL-DRIVER! - -and he lived in a little town called Mecca in far-off Arabia. His name -was Mohammed. Mohammed went on an errand for a wealthy Arabian lady, -and the lady fell in love with him. Although he was a poor camel-driver -and only a servant and she was rich, they were married. They lived -happily together, and nothing remarkable happened until Mohammed was -forty years old. - -[Illustration: Map of Saracenic empire showing Mecca, Medina, -Constantinople, Tours, Cordova, Bagdad, Jerusalem, also Europe.] - -Mohammed had been in the habit of going out to a cave in the desert to -study and think. One day when he visited this cave he had a dream, or -a vision, as it is called when such things happen in the daytime when -one is awake. In this vision, so Mohammed said, the angel Gabriel had -appeared and told him that God, whom the Arabs called Allah, said he -must go forth and teach the people a new religion. - -So Mohammed went home to his wife and told her what had happened, and -she believed his story and became his first follower. Mohammed then -went forth as he had been directed and taught his relatives and friends -what he said Allah had told him, and they, too, believed what he said -and became his followers. - -But when he set out to teach others, who were not his friends nor -relatives, they simply thought him crazy and perhaps dangerous. So they -got together and planned to get rid of him--even kill him if necessary. -But he heard what they were planning, and so he packed up all his -belongings and, with his wife and those who believed in him, left the -city of Mecca and fled to the town of Medina, a little way off. This -was in 622--Six-Two-Two--and was called the Hegira, which in the Arabic -language means “flight.” - -I have told you this exact date, for later as you will see this -religion, which Mohammed started, grew bigger and bigger, and now -at this very day there are one third as many people who believe in -Mohammed and the religion he started as there are who believe in Christ -and the religion He started; that is, there are now one third as many -Mohammedans in the world as there are Christians. The Mohammedans began -to count from the Hegira, 622, calling it the Year 1 as the Christians -did from the Birth of Christ, as the Greeks did from the First -Olympiad, as the Romans did from the Founding of Rome. So the Greeks, -the Romans, the Mohammedans, and the Christians each had a different -Year 1. - -This new religion was called Islam. From time to time Mohammed received -messages which he said came from God. Mohammed himself could neither -read nor write, and so he had some one else write down these messages -on palm-leaves. There were so many of these messages that when they -were finally gathered together they made a big book. This book is -called the “Koran,” and it is the Mohammedan Bible and tells what -Mohammedans must do and what they must not do. - -[Illustration: Muezzin on minaret calling to prayer.] - -As Mohammed was born in Mecca, Mecca is the sacred city of the -Mohammedans. To Mecca each good Mohammedan tries to go at least once -in his lifetime, no matter how far off from it he may live; and toward -Mecca he always faces when he prays. There are always pilgrims, as -such travelers are called, wending their way to Mecca. The Mohammedans -worship in a temple called a _mosque_, but they also pray five times -each day wherever they may be. A man called a muezzin cries out this -time for prayer. He goes out on a little balcony on the minaret of the -mosque and calls aloud: “Come to prayer; come to prayer. There is but -one god and he is Allah.” Then, no matter who the Mohammedan is, no -matter where he may be or what he may be doing, even though he is in -the street or market-place, whether he is working or playing, he faces -toward Mecca, falls on his knees, bows his head and hands to the ground -and prays. Sometimes he carries a small rug called a prayer-rug with -him so that he may have something holy to kneel on when he prays. - -[Illustration: Mohammedan praying.] - -Many people liked this new religion. Those who believed in Islam were -known as Moslems, and before long, as I have told you, there were as -many Moslems or Mohammedans as there were Christians. At first the -Moslems tried to persuade others to join simply by talking to them and -telling them how fine their religion was, and how much better than what -they had already had. But very soon they began to _force_ others to -become Moslems whether they wanted to or not. Like the highway robber -who says, “Money or your life,” they gave every one a choice. “Money -or your life, or be a Moslem!” This may seem a strange way for people -to make others believe their religion, but the Moslems said that Allah -wanted all people to be Mohammedans, and didn’t want any one who was -not. - -Mohammed only lived for ten years after the Hegira; that is, until 632. -But those who came after Mohammed went on with the new religion and -kept on conquering and making people Mohammedans with the sword. - -The new leaders and rulers of the Mohammedans were called caliphs. The -second caliph was named Omar. Omar went on to Jerusalem and built a -Mohammedan mosque in the place where the temple of Solomon had stood. -This mosque which Omar built still stands to-day in the same place in -Jerusalem. - -The Arabs, or Saracens, as they are also called, kept on northward -toward Europe and conquered and converted every one to Islam as they -went along. Those they could not convert they put to death. At last -they reached the City of Constantine, Constantinople, where the people -were Christians. This was the gateway from Asia to Europe, and the -Arabs tried to get by. But the Christians poured down red-hot tar and -burning oil from the walls of the city, and the Moslems had to stop. -They could get no farther. Again and again the Moslems tried to capture -the city, but without success. Finally, they had to give up trying to -get into Europe by this way. - -Then they tried the opposite direction from Mecca, the long, long, -way round to Europe. Across Egypt they went with little difficulty, -converting every one to Islam. Further on still they kept going, along -the coast of Africa, conquering everything before them until they -reached the ocean. Then they turned north, took boats, and crossed -over the Strait of Gibraltar and marched on up into Spain. Farther and -farther on they went up into France. It seemed as if they would soon -conquer all of Europe and make the whole civilized world Mohammedan. -But finally, near the town of Tours in France, they met their match. -The king of France had a right-hand man named Charles who had been -nicknamed Charles the Hammer because he could strike such terrific -blows. Charles was called Mayor of the Palace, which merely meant that -he was the chief servant of the king, but he was much more able than -the king himself. In fact, the king was of very little account. - -Charles the Hammer, with his French soldiers, went forth to meet the -Moslems, and near Tours he beat them so badly that they never attempted -to go farther. So Europe at last was saved from Islam and the Saracens. -This battle of Tours was in 732, just 110 years from the time of the -Hegira. The Mohammedan religion had only been started 110 years before; -yet in this short time the Mohammedans had conquered and converted the -whole of the country bordering the Mediterranean from Constantinople -all the way round the southern edge and as far up into France as Tours. -The people south and east of the Mediterranean are still Mohammedans -to-day. - - - - -44 - -Perhaps you have read the “Arabian Nights.” This is the story of - -Arabian Days - - -The Moslems had tried to get into Europe by the front gate and failed. - -They had then tried the back gate and failed. - -Burning tar and oil had stopped them at Constantinople. - -Charles the Hammer had stopped them at Tours. - -So Europe was saved from the Moslems and from the Moslem religion of -Islam. Yet we may wonder what Europe would have been like if the Moslem -Arabs had conquered, for the Arabs were in many ways a great people, -and we have learned many things from them. Here are some of the things. - -The Phenicians invented our alphabet, but the Arabs invented the -figures which we use to-day in arithmetic. 1, 2, 3, 4, and so on are -called Arabic figures. The Romans used letters instead of figures, V -stood for 5, X for 10, C for 100, M for 1000, and so on. Think how -difficult it must have been for a Roman boy to add such numbers as - - IV - XII - + MC - CXII - VII - ---- - -They could not be added up in columns as we do. And when you think -of multiplying and dividing with Roman numbers, it seems almost -impossible, for example: - - MCMCXVII - × XIX - -Occasionally you may see Roman figures still used--on clock-faces, for -instance--but all the figures that you use every day in your arithmetic -and that your father uses at the bank or store or office are Arabic -figures. - -Another thing: - -The Arabs built many beautiful buildings; but these buildings look -quite different from those that the Greeks and Romans and Christians -built. The doors and window-openings, instead of being square or round, -were usually horseshoe-shaped. On the top of their mosques they liked -to put domes shaped something like an onion, and at the corners they -put tall spires or minarets from which the muezzin could call aloud -the hour for prayer. They covered the walls of their buildings with -beautiful mosaics and designs. The Mohammedans, however, were very -careful that these designs were not copies of anything in nature, for -they had a commandment in the “Koran” something like the Christian -commandment, “Thou shalt not make ... any likeness of anything that is -in heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or that is in the -water under the earth.” Because of this commandment they never made -drawings or pictures of any living thing, neither of plants nor flowers -nor animals. They thought they would be breaking the commandment if -they did. So they made designs out of lines and curves without copying -anything from nature. These designs were called Arabesques, and -although they were not like anything in nature, they were often very -beautiful. - -Still another thing: - -In Arabia there grew a little bush on which were small berries with -seeds inside. The sheep seemed to like these berries and, when they ate -them, became very lively. The Arabs themselves tried eating the seeds -of these berries with the same effect. Then they made a drink out of -these seeds by roasting and grinding them and boiling them in water. -This was coffee--which the Arabs had discovered and which is now drunk -all over the world. - -Still another thing: - -The Arabs found out that when the juice of grapes or other fruits or -grains spoiled, or fermented, as we call it, a peculiar change took -place. Any one who drank this changed juice became greatly excited and -even crazy. They called the new thing to which these juices changed, -“alcohol,” and they were so much afraid of it and what it did to those -who drank it that they forbade every Mohammedan to drink anything -containing alcohol, such as wine, beer, or whisky. So the Moslems -not only discovered alcohol, but, believing it to be poison, they -prohibited its use. They have been prohibitionists, therefore, for more -than a thousand years, while all the rest of the world has been using -wine and beer and other drinks containing alcohol until the United -States only recently forbade their use in this country. - -Still another thing: - -Woolen cloth which people used for clothes was made from the hair of -sheep or goats. As it took the hair of a great many such animals to -make a very little cloth, woolen cloth was expensive. The Arabs found -out a way of making cloth from a plant, the cotton plant, which of -course was much cheaper. Then in order to decorate the cloth and make -it pretty and attractive, they stamped the plain cloth with wooden -blocks shaped in different forms and dipped in color. This printed -cloth that the Arabs had invented was called calico. - -Still another thing: - -The Arabs made swords and knives of such wonderful steel that the -blades could be bent double without breaking. The blades were said to -be so keen they could cut through the finest hair if floated on water, -a thing that only the sharpest razor will do, and yet at the same time -so strong that they could cut through a bar of steel. Such swords were -made in the East at a place called Damascus, which is in Arabia, and in -the West at a place called Toledo, which is in Spain; and these swords -and knives were known as Damascus or Toledo blades. Unfortunately, no -one now knows the Arab’s secret for making such marvelous blades. It is -what is called a lost art. - -Near where Babylon once was the Arabs built a city named Bagdad. You -have heard of it if you have ever read any of the “Arabian Nights,” -for most of these stories were told about Bagdad. It was the eastern -capital of the Moslems. There at Bagdad the Arabs built a great school -that was famous for many, many years. At Cordova in Spain was the -western capital of the Moslems, and there they built another great -school. - -[Illustration: Mohammedan veiled woman standing by Saracenic ornamented -arch.] - -I might tell you many other things these people did--how they invented -the game of chess, of all games the one that needs the most thought; -how they made clocks with pendulums to keep time--people had no real -clocks before; how they started wonderful libraries of books; and so -on--but this is enough for the present to show you what intelligent -people they were. - -The Arabs were not Aryans. They belonged to the Semite family, the -same family to which the Phenicians and Jews belong. The Arabs were as -clever as their cousins the Phenicians, who, you remember, were very -clever, but they were also as religious as their other cousins the -Jews, who, you remember, were very religious. - -But the Moslems had peculiar ideas about women. They thought it was -immodest for a woman to show her face to men, and so every woman had to -wear a thick veil which hid her face all except her eyes whenever she -went out where there were men. With such a veil she could see but not -be seen. - -But here are their two most peculiar ideas: they believed women were -only fit to be slaves to the men, and they thought that a man might -have as many wives as he wished all at one time! - -So we may wonder, then, what Europe would really have been like if the -Moslems had conquered all the rest of the world at that time--if they -had left no country Christian--_if we were all of us Moslems to-day -instead of Christians_! - - - - -45 - -A Light in the Dark Ages - - -Europe had been “dark” for three hundred years. You know what I mean. - -There were not enough “bright” people to make it light. Ignorant -Teutons had been ruling over the pieces of the old Roman Empire. - -The Arabs were bright, but they were not in Europe. - -But in 800 there was a very “bright light”--a man--a king--who by his -might and power was able to join the pieces of Europe together once -again to form a new Roman Empire. He was not a Roman, however, but a -Teuton, as you can tell from his name, which was Charles. He was a -grandson of that Charles the Hammer who had stopped the Moslems at -Tours, and he was called by the French name Charlemagne, which means -Charles the Great. - -Charlemagne at first was king of France alone, but he was not satisfied -to be king of that country only, and so he soon conquered the countries -on each side of him, parts of Spain and Germany. Then he moved the -capital of his empire from Paris to a place in Germany called -Aix-la-Chapelle, which was more convenient than Paris to this larger -empire, and besides at Aix-la-Chapelle there were warm springs which -made fine baths, and Charlemagne was very fond of bathing and was a -fine swimmer. - -Italy was then ruled over by the pope. But the pope was having a good -deal of trouble with some tribes in the north of Italy, and he asked -Charlemagne if he wouldn’t come down and conquer them. Charlemagne was -quite ready and willing to help the pope, so he went over into Italy -and easily settled those troublesome tribes. The pope was grateful to -Charlemagne for this and wished to reward him. - -Now, Christians everywhere used to make trips to Rome in order to pray -at the great Church of St. Peter, which had been built over the spot -where St. Peter had been crucified. Well, at Christmas-time in the Year -800 Charlemagne paid such a visit to Rome. On Christmas day he went to -the Church of St. Peter and was praying at the altar when suddenly the -pope came forward and put a crown on his head. The pope then hailed him -“Emperor,” and as the pope at that time could make kings and emperors, -Charlemagne became emperor of Italy added to the other countries over -which he already ruled. These countries together were really about the -same as the western part of the old Roman Empire. So Charlemagne’s -empire was now like a new Roman Empire, but with this big difference: -it was ruled over not by a Roman, but by a Teuton. - -Charlemagne started out an ignorant uneducated Teuton, but he was -not like most other Teutons who didn’t know they were ignorant and -didn’t care whether they were ignorant or not. He was anxious to know -everything there was to be known. He wanted to be able to do everything -any one could do. - -In those days when the Teutons were ruling, few people had any -education, and hardly any one could read or write. Charlemagne wanted -an education, but there was no one in his own country who knew enough -or was able to teach him. In England, however, there was a very learned -monk named Alcuin. He knew more than any one of that time, and so -Charlemagne invited Alcuin to come over from England and teach him -and his people. Alcuin taught Charles about the sciences; he taught -him Latin and Greek poetry; he taught him the wisdom of the Greek -philosophers. - -Charlemagne learned all these things very easily, but when it came to -the simple matter of learning to read and write he found this too hard. -He did learn to read a little, but he seemed unable to learn to write. -It is said that he slept with his writing-pad under his pillow and -practised whenever he awoke. And yet he never learned to write anything -more than his name. He did not begin to study until he was a grown man, -but he kept on studying all the rest of his life. Except for reading -and writing, he became, next to his teacher, Alcuin, the best-educated -man in Europe. - -In spite of the fact that Charlemagne’s daughters were princesses, he -had them taught how to weave and sew and make clothes and cook just as -if they had to earn their own living. - -Although Charlemagne was such a rich and powerful monarch and could -have everything he wanted, he preferred to eat plain food and dress -in plain clothes. He did not like all the finery that those about him -loved. One day, just to make his nobles see how ridiculously dressed -they were in silks and satins, he took them out hunting in the woods -while a storm was going on, so that he could laugh at them. That was -his idea of a good joke. You can imagine how their silk and satin robes -looked after being soaked with rain, covered with mud, and torn by -briers. Charlemagne thought it was very funny. - -But although his tastes were simple in matters of dress, he made his -home a magnificent palace. He furnished it with gold and silver tables -and chairs and other gorgeous furniture. He built in it swimming-pools -and a wonderful library and a theater and surrounded it with beautiful -gardens. - -At this time and all through the Dark Ages people had a strange way of -finding out whether a person had stolen or committed a murder or any -other crime. The person suspected was not taken into court and tried -before a judge and a jury to see whether he was telling the truth and -had done the thing or not. Instead he was made to carry a red-hot iron -for ten steps, or to dip his arm into boiling water, or to walk over -red-hot coals. If he was not guilty it was thought no harm would come -to him, or if he were burned it was thought that the burn would heal -right away. This was called _trial by ordeal_. It probably started -from the story told in the Bible of Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, -who, you remember, in the time of Nebuchadnezzar, had walked through -the fiery furnace unharmed because they had done no wrong. Strange to -say, though Charlemagne was so intelligent, he believed in the trial -by ordeal. To-day we have no such cruel and unfair way of finding out -whether one is guilty or not. Yet we say of a person who has a lot of -trouble that seems to be a test of his character, “He is going through -an ordeal.” - -While Charlemagne was living, there was a caliph in far-off Bagdad -named Haroun, which is the Moslem spelling of Aaron. You may have heard -of him if you have read any of the “Arabian Nights,” for the “Arabian -Night” stories were written at this time, and Haroun is described in -them. Although Haroun was a Mohammedan, not a Christian, and though -he was ruler of an empire that hated the Christians, nevertheless he -admired Charlemagne very much. To show how much he thought of him, he -sent him valuable presents; among other things, a clock which struck -the hours, which you remember, was an invention of the Arabs. This was -a great curiosity, for there were then no clocks in Europe. People had -to tell time by the shadow the sun cast on a sun-dial, or else by the -amount of water or sand that dripped or ran out from one jar to another. - -Haroun was a very wise and good ruler over the Moslems, and so he came -to be called “al Rashid,” which means “the Just.” Do you remember what -Greek was also called “the Just”?[3] Haroun used to disguise himself as -a workman and go about among his people. He would talk with those he -met along the street and in the market-place, trying to find out how -they felt about his government and about things in general. He found -they would talk freely to him when dressed in old clothes, for then -they did not know who he was but thought him a fellow-workman. In this -way, Haroun learned a great deal about his people’s troubles and what -they liked or didn’t like about his rule. Then he would go back to his -palace and give orders to have rules and laws made to correct anything -that seemed wrong or unjust. - -[3] Aristides. - -After Charlemagne died there was no one great enough or strong enough -to hold the new Roman Empire together, and once again it broke up into -small pieces, and “all the king’s horses and all the king’s men could -not put it together again.” - -[Illustration] - - - - -46 - -Getting a Start - - -I once knew a boy who had a red birthmark on his arm. It was just the -shape of England on the map, and he used to call it “My England.” - -England is just a little island. - -It was quite an unimportant little island in 900 A.D. - -England is still just a little island. - -But it is now the most important island in the world! - -About one hundred years after Charles the Great--that is, 900--there -was a king of England named Alfred. When Alfred was a boy he had a hard -time learning to read, for he did not like to study. In those days -many of the hand-written books made by the monks had pretty drawings -and letters made in bright colors and even in gold. One day Alfred’s -mother showed such a book to her children and promised to give it to -the one who could read it first. That was a game. Alfred wanted to win -the book, and so, for the first time in his life, he really tried. He -studied so hard that in a very short time he had learned to read before -his brothers and so he won the book. - -When Alfred grew up, England was being troubled by pirates. These -pirates were cousins of the English--a tribe of Teutons called Danes. -The English had long ago become Christians and civilized, but their -cousins, the Danes, were still rough and wild. They came over from -their own country across the water, landed on the coast of England, -robbed the towns and villages, and then sailed back to their homes, -carrying off everything valuable they could lay their hands on--like -bad boys who climb a farmer’s fence and steal apples from his orchard. -At last the Danes became so bold that they didn’t even run away after -robbing the country; they were like the bad boys who stick out their -tongues and throw stones at the farmer who comes after them. The king’s -armies went out to punish these pirates, but, instead of beating, they -were beaten. It began to look as if these Danes, who were able to do -pretty much as they pleased, might conquer England and rule over the -English. - -Once when things looked pretty black for England, King Alfred was -without an army. Alone, ragged, tired out, and hungry, he came to the -hut of a shepherd and asked for something to eat. The shepherd’s wife -was baking some cakes by the fire, and she told Alfred he should have -one if he watched them while she went out to milk the cow. Alfred sat -down by the fire, but in thinking about what he could do to beat the -Danes he forgot all about the cakes, and when the shepherd’s wife -returned they were all burned. Thereupon she scolded him roundly and -drove him off, not knowing that it was her king that she was treating -in this way, for he never told her who he was. - -Alfred decided that the best way to fight the Danes was not on land but -on the water, and so he set to work to build boats bigger and better -than those the Danes had. After a while he had something of a fleet, -and the boats he built were bigger than those of the Danes, but they -were so big that they could not go into shallow water without running -aground. The Danes’ boats, on account of their small size, could go -safely close in to shore. In deep water, however, Alfred’s fleet was -very strong and powerful. This was the first navy that England ever -had. England’s navy is now the largest in the world, and Alfred the -Great was the one who started it more than a thousand years ago. - -After fighting with the Danes for many years, Alfred finally thought -it best to make an agreement with them and give them a part of England -to live in if they would promise to stop stealing and live peaceably. -So the Danes did agree to this, and they settled down peaceably on the -land that Alfred gave them--and then became Christians. After that -there was no further trouble. - -Alfred made very strict laws and severely punished those who did wrong. -Indeed, it is said that the people of England were so careful to obey -the law in his reign that one might leave gold by the roadside, and no -one would steal it. - -Alfred also brought over learned men from Europe to show his people how -to make things and to teach the boys and girls and the older people how -to read and write. He is also said to have started a school that is -now one of the greatest places of learning in the world, a university -called Oxford that is now more than a thousand years old. - -But Alfred not only built a navy and made wise laws and started schools -and colleges which the English had not had before; he did many other -useful things, besides. - -He invented, for instance, a way of telling time by a burning candle. -You have heard how wonderful the clock, that which Haroun-al-Rashid -sent to Charlemagne one hundred years before was thought to be. -Although striking clocks are, of course, very common nowadays, it was -an extraordinary thing then when there were no clocks nor watches at -all in England. Alfred found out how fast candles burned down and -marked lines around them at different heights--just the distance apart -that they burned in one hour. These were called time-candles. - -Candles were also used for lighting, but when they were carried -outdoors they were very likely to be blown out by the wind. So Alfred -put the candle inside of a little box, and in order that the light -might shine through the box, he made sides of very thin pieces of -cow’s-horn, for glass then was very scarce. This box with horn sides -was called a horn lamp or “lamphorn,” and after a while this word when -said rapidly became “lanthorn,” and finally “lantern,” which we still -call such a thing to-day, although horn is, of course, no longer used, -but glass. This is one explanation of the word as the old spelling was -“lanthorn,” but it seems more likely that lantern came from the Latin -word “lanterna.” - -Such inventions may seem very small and unimportant, and they are when -you think of the marvelous inventions and wonderful machines that are -made by the thousands nowadays. These inventions of Alfred were no -more than the household ideas for which some magazines now offer only -a dollar apiece. But I have told you about them just to show you how -ignorant and almost barbarian the English, as well as other Teuton -tribes of Europe, were in those days. How much superior were the Arab -thinkers with their striking clocks. The English were just “getting a -start.” - - - - -47 - -The End of the World - - -What would you do if you knew the world was coming to an end next week, -or even next year? - -The people who lived in the tenth century thought the Bible said[4] -something that meant that the world was coming to an end in the Year -1000--which was called the millennium from the Latin word meaning a -thousand years. - -[4] Book of Revelations, chapter xx. - -Some people were glad that the world was coming to an end. They were -so poor and miserable and unhappy here that they were anxious to go to -heaven, where everything would be fine and lovely--if they had been -good here. So they were particularly good and did everything they could -to earn a place for themselves in heaven when this old world should end. - -Others were not so anxious to have the world come to an end. But, they -thought, if it were coming to an end so soon, they might as well hurry -up and enjoy themselves here while they still had a chance. - -Well, the Year 1000 came, and nothing happened. At first people simply -thought that a mistake had been made in counting the years--that there -had not really been one thousand years since Christ’s birth. The years -went by, and still people waited for the end. They re-read their Bibles -and thought perhaps it meant a thousand years after Christ’s _death_, -instead of his birth. As time went on, without any change, they began -to think the end was delayed for some reason they could not explain. -But it was not for many years after the millennium that people came at -last to realize that the world was not going to stop after all. - -Every once in a while some one who thinks he knows more than others -says the end of the world is not far off, but we may be quite sure that -the world will keep on going and that it will keep on going long after -we have all grown up and died and our children have done the same. - -At this time, when people were looking for the end of the world there -was in the north of Europe a tribe of Teutons who were not Christians -and knew and cared nothing about what the Bible said as to the end of -the world. They belonged to the same family as the Danes who had come -to England in the time of King Alfred. They were called Norsemen or -Vikings. They were bold seafaring men, even more hardy and unafraid -than the Phenician sailors of old. Their boats were painted black and -had prows carved with figures of sea-monsters or dragons. They sailed -the northern seas and went farther westward toward the setting sun than -any sailors had ever gone. They had discovered Iceland and Greenland, -and at last under their chief who was named Leif Ericson they reached -the shores of America. So about the same year that the Christians in -Europe were expecting the end of the world--the Year 1000--the Vikings -had gone to what they thought was “the end of the world.” - -They called the new country Vineland or Wineland, because they found -grapes, from which wine is made, growing there. They did not go far on -shore, however, and they thought this new land was only another small -island. They had no idea it was a new world. But it was too far away -from their own country, and they found wild savages there who made -it so uncomfortable for them that they sailed back home leaving the -country for good. The Vikings did nothing more about their discovery, -and people forgot all about this new country until nearly five hundred -years later. - - - - -48 - -Real Castles - - -You may think that castles belong only in fairy-tales of princes and -princesses. - -But about the Year 1000 there were castles almost everywhere over -Europe, and they were not fairy-castles but real ones with real people -in them. - -After the downfall of Rome in 476, the Roman Empire was broken to -pieces like a cut-up puzzle-map, and people built castles on the -pieces, and they kept on building castles up to the fourteen hundreds. -And this is why and how people built them and why they at last stopped -building them. - -Whenever any ruler, whether he was a king or only a prince, conquered -another ruler, he gave to his generals, who had fought with him and -helped him to win, pieces of the conquered land as a reward instead of -paying them in money. The generals in turn gave pieces of their land to -the chief men who had been under them and helped them in battle. These -men who were given land were called lords or nobles, and each lord was -called a vassal of him who gave the land. Each vassal had to promise -to fight with his lord whenever he was needed. He could not make this -promise lightly in an offhand way, however. He had to do it formally so -that it would seem more binding. So the vassal had to kneel in front of -his lord, place his folded hands between the folded hands of his lord, -and make the solemn promise to fight when called upon. This was called -“doing homage.” Then once a year, at least, thereafter, he had to make -the same promise over again. This method of giving away land was known -as the Feudal System. - -[Illustration: Castle, drawbridge, moat and knights.] - -Each of these lords or nobles then built himself a castle on the land -that was given him, and there he lived like a little king with all his -work-people about him. The castle was not only his home, but it had to -be a fort as well to protect him from other lords who might try to -take his castle away from him. So he usually placed it on the top of -a hill or a cliff, so that the enemy could not reach it easily, if at -all. It had great stone walls often ten feet or more thick. Surrounding -the walls there was usually a ditch called a moat filled with water to -make it more difficult for an enemy to get into the castle. - -In times of peace when there was no fighting the men farmed the land -outside of the castle; but when there was war between lords, all the -people went inside the castle walls, carrying all the food and cattle -and everything else they had, so that they could live there for months -or even years while the fighting was going on. A castle, therefore, had -to be very large to hold so many people and animals for so long a time, -and often it was really like a walled town. - -Inside the walls of the castle were many smaller buildings to house the -people and animals and for cooking and storing the food. There might -even be a church or chapel. The chief building was, of course, the -house of the lord himself and this was called the _keep_. - -The main room of the keep was the hall, which was like a very large -living-room and dining-room combined. Here meals were served at tables -which were simply long and wide boards placed on something to hold them -up. These boards were taken down and put away after the meal was over. -That is where we get the names “boarding” and “boarding-house.” There -were no forks nor spoons nor plates nor saucers nor napkins. Every one -ate with his fingers and licked them or wiped them on his clothes. -Table manners were more like _stable_ manners. The bones and scraps -they threw on the floor or to the dogs, who were allowed in the room. -Itchy-scratchy! At the end of the meal a large bowl of water and towels -were brought in so that those who wished might wash their hands. - -After dinner the household was entertained during the long evenings -with songs and stories by men called minstrels, who played and sang and -amused the company. - -Shut up within the castle walls, it seemed as if the lord and his -people would be absolutely safe against any attacks of his enemies. In -the first place, any enemy would have had to cross the moat or ditch -which surrounded the castle. Across this moat there was a drawbridge -to the entrance or gate of the castle. In the entrance itself was an -iron gate called a portcullis, which was usually raised like a window -to allow people to pass. In time of war the drawbridge was raised. But -in case an enemy was seen approaching and there was no time to raise -the drawbridge, this portcullis could be dropped at a moment’s notice. -When the drawbridge was raised there was no way of getting into the -castle except by crossing the moat filled with water. Any one trying -to do this would have had stones or melted tar thrown down on him. -Instead of windows in the wall of the castle there were only long slits -through which the fighters could shoot arrows at the enemy. At the same -time, it was very difficult for any one on the outside to hit the small -crack-like opening with an arrow. - -And yet attacks _were_ made on castles. Sometimes the enemy built a -tall wooden tower on wheels. This they would roll up as closely as they -could get to the walls, and from its top shoot directly over into the -castle. - -Sometimes they built tunnels from the outside right under the ground, -under the moat, and under the castle walls into the castle itself. - -Sometimes they built huge machines called battering-rams, and with -these they battered down the walls. - -Sometimes they used machines like great slingshots to throw stones over -the walls. Of course there were no cannons nor cannon-balls nor guns -nor gunpowder then. - -The lord and his family were the society people; all the others were -little better than slaves. In times of peace most of the common people -lived outside the castle walls on the land called the _manor_. The -lord gave them just as little as he could and took from them just as -much as he could. He had to feed and take some care of them so that -they could fight for him and serve him, just as he had to feed and take -care of his horses that carried him to battle, and the cattle that -provided him with milk and meat. But he didn’t treat them as well as -he did his domestic animals. The common people had to give their time -and labor and a large part of the crops they raised to the lord. They -themselves lived in miserable huts more like cow-sheds, with only one -room, and that had a dirt floor. Above this was perhaps a loft reached -by a ladder where they went to bed. But bed was usually only a bundle -of straw, and they slept in the clothes they wore during the day. - -These work-people were called serfs. Sometimes a serf could stand this -kind of life no longer, and he would run away. If he was not caught -within a year and a day, he was a free man. But if he was caught before -the year and a day were up, the lord might whip him, brand him with -hot irons, or even cut off his hands. Indeed, a lord could do almost -anything he wished with his serfs--except kill them, or sell them. - -So what do you think of the Feudal System? - - - - -49 - -Knights and Days of Chivalry - - -Those _years_ in history which I have been telling you about are -known as the _days_ of chivalry--which means the times of ladies and -gentlemen. The lord and his family were the gentlemen and the ladies. -All the other people, by far the greater number, were just common -people. - -There were no schools for these common people. Little was done for -them. They were taught to work and nothing else. The sons of a lord -of a castle, however, were very carefully taught. But even they were -taught only two things, how to be gentlemen and how to fight. Reading -and writing were thought of no importance; in fact, it was usually -considered a waste of time to learn such things. - -And this is the way the son of a lord was brought up. He stayed with -his mother until he was seven years old. When he reached the age of -seven he was called a page; and for the next seven years--that is, -until he was fourteen, he remained a page. During the time he was a -page his chief business was to wait on the ladies of the castle. He -ran their errands, carried their messages, waited on table, etc. He -also learned to ride a horse and to be brave and courteous. - -When he was fourteen years old he became a squire and remained a squire -for the next seven years; that is, until he was twenty-one. During -the time he was a squire he waited on the men, as he had waited on -the ladies when he was a page. He attended to the men’s horses, went -to battle with them, led an extra horse, and carried another spear or -lance, in case these should be needed. - -When he was twenty-one years old, if he had been a good squire and -had learned the lessons that he was taught, he then became a knight. -Becoming a knight was an important ceremony like graduating exercises, -for the grown boy was now to take up the business of a man. - -To get ready for this ceremony, first, he bathed. This may not seem -worth mentioning, but in those days one very rarely took a bath, -sometimes not for years. He was then dressed in new clothes. Thus -washed and dressed, he prayed all night long in the church. When day -came he appeared before all the people and solemnly swore always to do -and to be certain things: - - To be brave and good; - To fight for the Christian religion; - To protect the weak; - To honor women. - -These were his vows. A white leather belt was then put on him and gold -spurs fastened on his boots. After this had been done he knelt, and -his lord struck him over the shoulders with the flat side of a sword, -saying as he did so, “I dub thee knight.” - -A knight went into battle covered with a suit of armor made of iron -rings or steel plates like fish-scales, and with a helmet or hood of -iron. This suit protected him from the arrows and lances of the enemy. -Of course if they had had any shot or shell, armor would have been no -use at all, but they had no such things then. - -Knights were so completely covered by their armor that when sides -became mixed up in fighting, they could not tell one another apart. It -was impossible to know which were friends and which were enemies. - -So the knights wore, on the outside of the coat that went over their -armor, a design of an animal, such as a lion, or of a plant or a rose -or a cross or some ornament, and this design was known as a coat of -arms. Perhaps your father may use a coat of arms on his letter-paper -to-day, and if so he has inherited it from some great-great-grandparent -who was a knight. - -A knight, as I told you, was first of all taught to be a gentleman, -and so we still speak of one who has good manners and is courteous, -especially to ladies, as knightly or chivalrous. When a knight came -into the presence of a lady he took off his helmet. It meant, “You are -my friend, and so I do not need my helmet.” That is why gentlemen raise -their hats nowadays when they meet ladies. - -But the most important thing the knights had to learn was to fight. -Even their games were play fights. - -Each country and each age has had its own games or sports in which it -has taken special delight. The Greeks had their Olympic Games. The -Romans had their chariot-races and gladiatorial contests. We have -football and baseball. But the chief sport of the knights was a kind of -sham battle called the tournament. - -The tournament was held in a field known as the _lists_. Large crowds -with banners flying and trumpets blowing would gather around the lists -to watch the sham fight, as crowds nowadays flock to a big football -game waving pennants and tooting horns. The knights on horseback took -their places at opposite ends of the lists. They carried lances, the -points of which were covered so that they would not make a wound. At -a given signal, they rushed toward the center of the field and tried -with their lances to throw each other off their horses. The winner who -succeeded in throwing the other knights was presented with a ribbon -or a keepsake by one of the ladies, and a knight thought as much of -this trophy of victory as the winner of a cup in a tennis tournament -nowadays. - -[Illustration: Lady with falcon.] - -Knights were very fond of hunting with dogs. But they also hunted with -a trained bird called a falcon, and both lords and ladies delighted -in this sport. The falcon was trained like a hunting-dog to catch -other birds, such as wild ducks and pigeons and also small animals. -The falcon was chained to the wrist of the lord or lady, and its head -was covered with a hood as it was carried out to hunt. When a bird was -seen the hood was removed, and the falcon, which was very swift, would -swoop upon its prey and capture it. Thereupon the hunter would come -up, take the captured animal, and put the hood on the falcon again. -The men, however, usually preferred hunting the wild boar, which was a -kind of pig with sharp tusks, for this was more dangerous and therefore -supposed to be more of a man’s sport. - -[Illustration] - - - - -50 - -A Pirate’s _Great_ Grandson - - -When Alfred was king the Danes had raided England. - -At the same time their cousins the Norsemen had raided the coast of -France. - -King Alfred at last had to give the Danes a part of the English coast, -and they then settled down and became Christians. - -The French king likewise did the same thing. In order to save himself -from further raids, he gave the Norsemen a part of the French coast. -Then the Norsemen, as the Danes had done, settled down and became -Christians. - -These Norsemen who raided France were led by a very bold and brave -pirate named Rollo. In return for this gift of land Rollo was supposed -to do homage by kissing the king’s foot. But Rollo thought it beneath -him to kneel and kiss the king’s foot, so he told one of his men to do -it for him. His man did as he was told, but he didn’t like to do it, -either, and so as he kissed the king’s foot he raised it so high that -he tipped his Majesty over backward. - -[Illustration] - -That part of France which was given the Norsemen came to be called -Normandy, and it is so called to-day, and the people were known -thereafter as Normans. - -In 1066 there was a very powerful duke ruling over Normandy. His name -was William, and he was descended from Rollo the pirate. Perhaps your -name may be William. Perhaps you may even be descended from this -William. - -William was strong in body, strong in will, and strong in rule over -his people. He could shoot an arrow farther, straighter, and with more -deadly effect than any of his knights. No one else was strong enough -even to bend the bow he used. - -William and his people had become Christians, but according to their -idea the Christian God was more like their old god Woden under a new -name. William believed that “might made right,” for he was descended -from a pirate, and he still thought and acted like a pirate. So -whatever he wanted he went after and took, even though he was supposed -to be a Christian. - -Now, William was only a duke, not a king, and he wanted to be a king. -In fact, he thought he would like to be king of England, which was just -across the channel from his own dukedom. - -It so happened that a young English prince named Harold was shipwrecked -on the coast of Normandy and was found and brought before William. -Now, it seemed likely that some day Harold would be king of England, -and William thought this a good chance to get England for himself. So -before he would let Harold leave, he made the young man promise that -when his turn came to be king he would give him England just as if that -country were a horse or a suit of armor that could be given away. Then, -in order that this promise should be solemnly binding, William made -Harold place his hand on the altar and swear, just as people place a -hand on the Bible nowadays, when they take an oath. After Harold had -sworn on the altar, William had the top lifted and showed Harold that -below it were the bones of some of the Christian saints. Swearing on -the bones of a saint was the most solemn kind of an oath one could -possibly take. It was thought one would not dare to break such an oath -for fear of the wrath of God. - -Then Harold returned to England. But when the time came that he should -be king the people naturally would not let him give England to William. -Besides that, Harold said that such an oath, which he had taken against -his will, an oath which had been forced on him by a trick, was not -binding. So Harold became king. - -When William heard that Harold had been made king, he was very angry. -He said that he had been cheated and that Harold had broken his oath. -So at once he got ready an army and sailed over to take the country -away from Harold. - -As William landed from his boat he stumbled and fell headlong on the -shore. All his soldiers were shocked and greatly worried by this, for -they thought it very bad luck--a bad omen, the Greeks would have called -it. But William was quick-witted, and as he fell he grabbed up some of -the earth in both hands. Then, rising, he made believe he had fallen on -purpose and, lifting his hands in the air, exclaimed that he had taken -up the ground as a sign that he was going to have _all_ the land of -England. This changed the bad omen into good luck. - -The battle started, and the English fought furiously to defend -themselves against these foreigners who were trying to take their -country away from them. Indeed, they had almost won the battle when -William gave an order to his men to pretend they were running away. -The English then followed, wildly rejoicing, and running pell-mell -after the Normans. Just as soon, however, as the English were scattered -and in disorder, William gave another signal, and his men faced about -quickly. The English were taken by surprise, and before they could get -into fighting order again, they were defeated, and Harold, their king, -was shot through the eye and killed. This was the battle of Hastings, -one of the most famous battles in English History. - -Harold had put up a brave fight. But luck was against him. Only a few -days before this, he had had to fight a battle with his own brother, -who in a traitorous way had got together an army against him. We are -sorry for Harold, and yet it was probably better for England that -things turned out as they did--yet who can tell? - -William marched on to London and had himself crowned king on Christmas -day, 1066. Ever since then he has been known as William the Conqueror, -and the event is called the Norman Conquest. After this England had a -new line of kings--a Norman family and a pirate family--to rule over -her. - -William divided England up among his nobles as if it were a pie, and -gave each a share in the feudal way. They had to do homage to him as -his vassals and promise to fight for him and to do as he said. Each of -William’s nobles built a castle on the property he was given. William -himself built a castle in London by the Thames River. On the same spot -Julius Cæsar had built a fort, but it had disappeared; and Alfred the -Great had built a castle there, but it, too, had disappeared. But the -castle William built is still standing to-day. It is known as the Tower -of London. - -William was a splendid boss and very businesslike. He set to work and -had a list made of all the land in England, a list of all the people -and of all the property they had. This record was called the Domesday -Book and was something like the _census_ now taken in this country -every ten years. This list gave the name of every one in England and -everything each owned, even down to the last cow and pig. If your -ancestors were living in England then you can look in the Domesday Book -and find their names, how much land they owned, and how many cows and -pigs they had. - -In order that no mischief might take place at night, William started -what was called the _curfew_. Every evening at a certain hour a bell -was rung. Then all lights had to be put out, and every one had to go -indoors--supposedly to bed. - -One thing, however, that William did made the English very angry. He -was extremely fond of hunting, but there was no good place where he -could hunt near London. So in order to have a place for hunting, he -destroyed a large number of village houses and farms and turned that -part of the country into a forest. This was called the New Forest, and -though it is now nearly nine hundred years _old_ it is still called New -to this day. - -But on the whole, William, although descended from a pirate, gave -England a good government and made it a much safer and better place in -which to live than it ever had been under its former rulers. So 1066 -was almost like the Year 1 for the English. - -We think it is remarkable when children of low-bred immigrants -become society leaders, when, as we say, they rise from overalls to -dress-suits, but here we have the son’s son of a pirate rising to be -king of England, and those living now who find they are descended from -him brag of it! - -[Illustration] - - - - -51 - -A Great Adventure - - -Have you ever played the game called “Going to Jerusalem” in which -every one scrambles to get a seat when the music stops playing? - -Well, all during the Dark Ages “Going to Jerusalem” was not a game but -a real journey which Christians everywhere in Europe wanted to take and -did take if they could. They wanted to see the actual spot where Christ -had been crucified, to pray at the Holy Sepulcher, and to bring back a -palm-leaf as a souvenir, which they could show their friends, hang on -the wall, and talk about all the rest of their lives. - -So there were always some good Christians--and also some bad -ones--“going to Jerusalem.” Sometimes they went all by themselves, -but more often they went with others. As of course there were no such -things as trains in those days, poor people had to walk nearly the -whole way from France and from England, from Spain and from Germany, -and so it took them many months and sometimes years to reach Jerusalem. -These travelers were called _pilgrims_, and their trip was called a -_pilgrimage_. - -Jerusalem at that time belonged to the Turks, who were Mohammedans. The -Turks did not like these Christian pilgrims who came to see Christ’s -tomb, and they didn’t treat them very well. Indeed, some of the -pilgrims on their return told frightful stories of the way they had -been treated by the Turks and the way the holy places in Jerusalem were -also treated. - -Just before the Year 1100 there was a pope at Rome named Urban. He -was the head of all the Christians in the world. Urban heard these -tales that the pilgrims told, and he was shocked. He thought it was a -terrible thing, anyway, for the Holy City, as Jerusalem was called, -and the Holy Land, where Jerusalem was located, to be ruled over by -Mohammedans instead of by Christians. So Urban made a speech and urged -all good Christians everywhere to get together and go on a pilgrimage -to the Holy Land, with the idea of fighting the Turks and taking the -city of Jerusalem away from them. - -Now, there lived at that same time a monk whom people called Peter the -Hermit. A hermit is a man who goes off and lives entirely by himself, -usually in a cave or hut where no one can find him or go to see him, -where he can spend all day in prayer. Peter the Hermit thought such a -life was good for his soul, that it made him a better man to be hungry -and cold and uncomfortable. - -Peter the Hermit had made a pilgrimage to Jerusalem and was very angry -at what he saw there. So he, too, began to tell people everywhere he -went how disgraceful it was for them to allow Christ’s tomb to belong -to the Mohammedans and called on every one to start on a pilgrimage -with him to save Jerusalem. He talked to people in the churches, on the -street-corners, in the market-places, on the roadside. He was such a -wonderful orator that those who heard him wept at his descriptions and -begged to go with him. - -Before long, thousands upon thousands of people, old and young, men and -women, and even some children had pledged themselves to join a band to -go to Jerusalem and take it away from the Mohammedans. As Christ had -died on the cross, they cut pieces of red cloth in the form of a cross -and sewed them on the fronts of their coats as a sign that they were -soldiers of the cross. So these pilgrims were called _Crusaders_, which -is the Latin word for a cross-bearer. As they knew they would be gone -a long time and perhaps never return, they sold all they had and left -their homes. Not only poor people but lords and nobles and even princes -joined the army of the Crusaders, and there were, besides the crowds on -foot, large companies of those who rode on horseback. - -The plan was to start in the summer of 1096, four years before 1100, -but a great many were so anxious to get started that they didn’t wait -for the time that had been set. With Peter the Hermit and another pious -man named Walter the Penniless as their leaders, they started off -before things were really ready. - -They had no idea how very far off Jerusalem was. They hadn’t studied -geography nor maps. They had no idea how long it would take, no idea -how they would get food to eat on their journey, no idea where they -would sleep. They simply trusted in Peter the Hermit and believed that -the Lord would provide everything and show them the way. - -Onward they marched, “Onward, Christian Soldiers,” thousands upon -thousands, toward the east and far-off Jerusalem. Thousands upon -thousands of them died from disease and from hunger on the way. Every -time they came within sight of another city, they would ask, “Is this -Jerusalem?” so little did they know of the long distance that still lay -between them and that city. - -When the Mohammedan army in Jerusalem heard that the Crusaders were -coming they went forth to meet the Christians and killed almost all -of those who had started out with Peter ahead of the rest. But those -Crusaders that had started out later, as had been planned at the -beginning, marched on. - -Finally, after nearly four years, only a small band of that vast throng -that had set out so long before reached the walls of the Holy City. -When at last they saw Jerusalem before them, they were wild with joy. -They fell on their knees and wept and prayed and sang hymns and thanked -God that he had brought them to the end of their journey. Then they -furiously attacked the city. The Christians fought so terribly that -at last they beat the Mohammedans and captured Jerusalem. Then they -entered the gates and killed thousands, so that it is said the streets -of the Holy City ran with blood. This seems strange behavior for the -followers of Christ, who preached against fighting and commanded, “Put -up thy sword, for he that taketh the sword shall perish by the sword.” - -The Crusaders then made one of their leaders named Godfrey ruler of the -city. Most of the other Crusaders that were left then went back home. -So ended what is known as the First Crusade. - - - - -52 - -Tit-Tat-To; Three Kings in a Row - - - Here are three kings: - Richard of England, - Philip of France, and - Frederick Barbarossa of Germany. - -If you say their names over several times, they keep ringing through -your mind and you cannot seem to stop thinking them whether you want to -or not. - -Jerusalem was captured. But it did not stay captured very long. - -The Mohammedans attacked and won it back again. - -So the Christians started a Second Crusade. Then about once in a -lifetime during the next two hundred years there was one Crusade after -another--eight or nine in all. Sometimes these later Crusades won back -Jerusalem for a while, but for a while only. Sometimes they did not -succeed at all. - -The Third Crusade took place about a hundred years after the First; -that is, nearly 1200 A. D. These three kings--Richard of England, -Philip of France, and Frederick Barbarossa--started on the Third -Crusade. But they didn’t all finish. I will tell you about them in -three-two-one order. - -[Illustration: Richard of England, Philip of France, and Frederick -Barbarossa] - -Frederick’s name, Barbarossa, meant Red Beard, for in those days it was -the custom to give kings nicknames that described them. Frederick’s -capital was in Aix-la-Chapelle, as Charlemagne’s had been, but -Frederick was king only of Germany. When a young man he had tried to -make his country as large and powerful as the new Roman Empire that -Charlemagne had made. But he was not a great enough man, and so was -unable to do what Charlemagne had done. Frederick was quite old when -he started out on the Third Crusade with the other two kings. But he -never reached Jerusalem, for in crossing a stream on the way he was -drowned. So much for Frederick, the third king. - -The second king, Philip of France, was jealous of the first king, -Richard, because Richard was so very popular and well liked by the -Crusaders. So Philip finally gave up the Crusade and went back to -France. - -Richard of England was then the only king left on the Crusade. It would -have been better if he, too, had gone back to his country instead of -gallivanting off on a Crusade. But he thought going on a Crusade was -much better sport than staying at home and working over the difficult -business of governing his people. - -But although he had his faults, Richard was the kind of a man that -all men like and all women love. He was kind and gentle, yet strong -and brave. Richard the Lion-Hearted they called him. He was hard on -wrongdoers but fair and square. So people loved him, but they feared -him, too, for he punished the wicked and those who misbehaved. Even -long, long after he had died, mothers would try to quiet a naughty and -crying child by saying: “Hush! If you don’t be good, King Richard will -get you!” - - soHnOFFGOBBELLum! - -Even Richard’s enemies admired him. The Mohammedan king of Jerusalem at -the time of this Third Crusade was named Saladin. Saladin, though being -attacked by Richard, admired him very much and even became his friend. -And so Saladin, instead of fighting Richard, finally made a friendly -agreement with him to treat the Holy Sepulcher and the pilgrims -properly. As this arrangement was satisfactory to every one, Richard -left Jerusalem to Saladin and started back home. - -On his way home Richard was captured by one of his enemies and put in -prison and held for a large ransom from England. Richard’s friends did -not know where he was and did not know how to find him. - -Now, it so happened that Richard had a favorite minstrel named Blondel. -Blondel had composed a song of which Richard was very fond. So when -Richard was taken prisoner, Blondel wandered over the country singing -everywhere this favorite song in the hope that Richard might hear it -and reveal where he was. One day he happened to sing beneath the very -tower where Richard was imprisoned. Richard heard him and answered by -singing the refrain of the song. His friends then knew where he was, -the ransom was paid, and Richard was allowed to go free. - -When, at last, Richard did reach England, he still had adventures. This -was the time when Robin Hood was robbing travelers. Richard planned -to have himself taken prisoner by Robin Hood, so that he might capture -him and bring him to justice. So Richard disguised himself as a monk -and was captured as he had planned. But he found Robin Hood such a good -fellow after all that he forgave him and his men. - -Richard’s coat of arms was a design of three lions, one above the -other; and this same design of three lions now forms part of the shield -of England. - -After Richard’s Crusade there was a Fourth Crusade, and then in the -year 1212--which is an easy date to remember, because it is simply the -number 12 repeated--one, two, one, two--there was a crusade of children -only. This was known therefore as the Children’s Crusade. It was led by -a French boy about twelve years old named Stephen, who was named after -the first Christian martyr. - -Children from all over France left their homes and their mothers and -fathers--it seems strange to us that their mothers and fathers let them -start off on such a trip--and marched south to the Mediterranean Sea. -Here they expected the waters of the sea would part and allow them -to march on dry land to Jerusalem, as they had read in the Bible the -waters of the Red Sea had done to allow the Israelites to leave Egypt. -But the waters did not part. - -Some sailors, however, offered to take the children to Jerusalem in -their ships. They said they would do it for nothing, just for the love -of the Lord. But it turned out that these sailors were really pirates, -and as soon as they got the children on board their ships they steered -them straight across the Mediterranean to Africa into the very land of -their enemies, the Mohammedans. Here, it is said, the pirates sold the -children as slaves. This is not a Grimm’s Fairy-Tale, and the pirates -were not trapped by the children, so I cannot make a happy ending, for -it was not. - -The last or Eighth Crusade was led by a king of France called Louis. He -was so pious and so devoted to the Lord that he was made a saint and -ever after has been called St. Louis. Yet this Crusade failed, and ever -since Jerusalem has been ruled by the Mohammedans until just recently, -when, in 1918, it was captured by the English, and this, then, was -really the Last Crusade. - -Not all the Crusaders were good Christians. Like some people nowadays, -a great many were Christian only in name. In fact, though strange -to say, quite a number of the Crusaders were nothing but scalawags, -looking for excitement and adventure, and they went on a Crusade merely -as an excuse to rob and plunder. - -The Crusades did not succeed in their object, which was to keep -Jerusalem for the Christians. Yet in spite of that, they did a great -deal of good. When the Crusades first started, the Crusaders were not -nearly as civilized as the people they went to conquer. But travel -sometimes teaches people more than books, and it taught the Crusaders. -They learned the customs of the other lands through which they went. -They learned languages and literature. They learned history and art. - -There were then no public schools. Only a very, very few people had any -education at all. So the Crusades did what schools might have done. -They taught the people of Europe and put an end to the Dark Ages of -ignorance. - -[Illustration] - - - - -53 - -Bibles Made of Stone and Glass - - -How often do you go to church? - -Probably not more than once a week--on Sundays. - -But in the Middle Ages people usually went to church every day and -often several times a day. They did not go only when there was a church -service. They went to say their prayers by themselves; they went to -tell their troubles to the priest, to get advice from him, to burn a -candle to the Virgin Mary, or simply to chat with their friends. - -All during the Crusades, and immediately after the Crusades, the chief -thing that people thought about was their church. - -There was only one church in a neighborhood, and every one went to -the same church for there were no Baptists, nor Episcopalians, nor -Methodists; all were just Christians. - -The church was every one’s meeting-house, and so people naturally gave -as much money and time and labor as they could to make their church -the best that could be built. That is why there were built in France -and other parts of Europe at this time many of the finest churches -and cathedrals in the world. These churches and cathedrals are still -standing, and, because they are so beautiful, people go long distances -to see them. - -Do you know what a cathedral is? A cathedral is not just a large -church. It is the church of a bishop. In the chancel of this church -there is a special chair for the bishop. This bishop’s chair is called -in Latin a “cathedra,” and so his church is named a cathedral after -this chair. - -These churches and cathedrals were nothing like the old Greek and Roman -temples; they were not like anything that had ever been built before. - -If you have ever built a house out of blocks, you probably did it this -way: first you stood two blocks upright, and then you laid another -block across the top of these for a roof. This is the way the Greeks -and Romans built. - -But the Christians throughout Europe at that time did not build in this -way at all. - -When you were building toy-houses, instead of laying a single block -across the two standing ones, you may perhaps have tried leaning two -blocks together like the sides of a letter A for a roof? If you did, -you know what happened: the two leaning blocks pushed over the sides, -and _crash_! everything tumbled. Well, these churches were built -somewhat in this way, with stones arched across the standing stone -columns. But to keep the stone arches from pushing over the standing -stone columns the builders put up props or braces. These props or -braces were made of stone, too, and these props of stone were called -_flying buttresses_. - -[Illustration: Flying buttresses--Apse of Notre Dame.] - -The people in Italy thought this a crazy way of building. They thought -such buildings must be shaky and might easily topple over--like a -house of cards. The Goths who had conquered Italy in 476 were wild -and ignorant and after that people called anything wild and ignorant -“Gothic.” So people called all buildings such as I have just described -“Gothic,” although the Goths had nothing to do with the buildings, for -they had all died long years before. - -Indeed, from my description you, too, may think such buildings propped -up by flying buttresses must have been tottering and ugly, but they -were neither. They were not rickety, for though occasionally one that -was not carefully built did collapse, the largest and best are still -standing to-day. And although there were old-fashioned people who -thought no building was beautiful that was not built in the Roman or -Greek style, we have come to admire the great beauty of these so called -Gothic buildings. - -But there were other ways in which the Gothic churches were different -from the Greek and Roman temples. Before a Gothic church was started, -a very large cross was first drawn on the ground with its head -towards the east, because that is the direction of Jerusalem. On this -cross-shaped plan, the church was built so that if you looked down from -above on the finished building, it was shaped like a cross with the -altar always toward the east. - -Gothic churches had beautiful spires or _arrows_, which have been -likened to _fingers pointing to_ _heaven_. The doorways and windows -were not square or round at the top, but pointed, like hands placed -together in prayer. - -Nearly the whole side of a Gothic church was made of glass. These large -windows were not, however, plain white glass, but beautiful pictures -made of colored glass. Small pieces of different colors were joined -together at their edges with lead to make what looked like wonderful -paintings. But these pictures were much finer than ordinary paintings, -for the light shone through the stained glass and made the colors -brilliant as jewels--blue like the clear sky, yellow like sunlight, red -like a ruby. These pictures in glass told stories from the Bible. They -were like colored illustrations in a book. So the people who could not -read, and very few could read, were able to know the Bible stories just -by looking at these beautiful illustrations. - -Statues of saints and angels and characters in the Bible were carved in -the stonework of the church. So the churches were like Bibles of stone -and glass. - -Besides these holy beings, strange, grotesque beasts were also made in -stone--monsters like no animal that has ever been seen in nature. These -creatures were usually put on the outside edge or corner of the roof -or they were used for waterspouts and called _gargoyles_. They were -supposed to scare away evil spirits from the holy place. - -No one now knows who were the architects or the builders of these -Gothic churches or who were the sculptors or artists. Almost every one -did some work on the church, for it was _his_ church. Instead of giving -money he gave his time and labor. If he had any skill, he carved stone -or made stained glass. If he had no skill he did the work of a common -laborer. - -[Illustration: Gargoyle.] - -Some of these Gothic churches took hundreds of years to build, so that -the workmen who started them never lived to see them finished. Some of -the most famous cathedrals are Canterbury Cathedral in England, the -Cathedral of Notre Dame in Paris, and Cologne Cathedral in Germany. - -Cologne Cathedral took the longest of all to build, as it was not -entirely finished until about seven hundred years after it was begun! -The beautiful Cathedral of Rheims in France was almost destroyed by the -gun-fire of the Germans in the Great War only a few years ago. - -Gothic churches were built, with loving care, of stone and jeweled -glass. Nothing but the best was thought good enough. To-day almost all -churches are still built with spires, pointed doors and some stained -glass windows, and often the altar is toward the east. But although -they imitate the Gothic style in these things, they seldom have stone -ceilings, as Gothic churches had, nor flying buttresses, nor walls of -stained glass. The ceilings are usually of wood, the spire often of -wood, also, and even the whole building of wood or some cheap material. -Real Gothic was enormously expensive and difficult, and nowadays people -haven’t the time, the money, nor the interest to build in such a way. - -And that is the story of Gothic churches that the Goths had nothing to -do with. - -[Illustration] - - - - -54 - -John, Whom Nobody Loved - - -Richard, the Lion-Hearted, whom everybody loved, had a brother named -John, whom nobody loved. - -This brother John became king, but he turned out to be a very wicked -king. - -He is another one of the villains in history, whom we do not like, but -like to hear about, and like to clap when he gets what he deserves. - -John was afraid that his young nephew named Arthur might be made king -in his place, and so he had him murdered. Some say he hired others to -do the killing; some say he murdered him with his own hands. This was -a very bad beginning for his reign, but things got worse and worse as -time went on. - -John got into a quarrel with the pope in Rome. The pope at that time -was head of all Christians in the world and said what should be done -and what should not be done in all churches everywhere. The pope -ordered John to make a certain man bishop in England, and John said he -wouldn’t do it. He wanted another man, a friend of his, to be bishop. -The pope then said he would close up all the churches in England if -John didn’t do as he was told. John said he didn’t care. Let the pope -go ahead and close up all the churches if he wanted to. So the pope -ordered all churches in England to be closed until John should give -in. Nowadays this might not have made much difference, but then, as I -have told you, the church was the one most important thing in every -one’s life; in fact, nothing else mattered so much. The closing of -the churches meant that no services could be held in any church. It -meant that children could not be baptized, and so, if they died, it -was believed they could not go to heaven. It meant that couples could -not be married. It meant that the dead could not be given a Christian -burial. - -The people of England were shocked. It was as if Heaven had put a curse -on them. They were afraid that terrible things would happen to them. Of -course the people blamed John, for he was the cause of the churches’ -being closed. They were so angry at him that he became scared--afraid -what his people might do to him. When at last the pope threatened to -make another man king of England in his place--yes, the pope had as -much power as that--John in fear and trembling gave in and agreed to -do everything that at first he had said he would not do and more -besides. But John was pig-headed. He was always doing the wrong thing -and sticking to it. - -John had an idea that the world was made for the king and that people -were put upon the earth simply so that the king might have servants to -work for him, to earn money for him, to do what he wished them to do. -Many of the kings of olden days felt the same way, though they did not -go as far as John did. John would order people who were rich to give -him whatever money he wanted. If they refused to give him all he asked, -he would put them in prison, have their hands squeezed in an iron press -until the bones cracked and the blood ran, or he would even put them to -death. - -John got worse and worse until at last his barons could not stand his -actions any longer. So they made him prisoner and took him to a little -island in the Thames River called Runnymede. Here they forced John to -agree to certain things which they had written down in Latin. This was -in the Year 1215; and 1215 was a bad date for John, but a good date -for the English people. This list of things which the barons made John -agree to was called by the Latin name for a great agreement, which is -Magna Carta, or Charta. - -John did not agree to Magna Carta willingly, however. He was as angry -and furious as a spoiled child, who kicks and screams when forced to do -something he does not want to do. But he had to agree, nevertheless. - -John was unable to write his name, and so he could not sign the -agreement as people sign contracts nowadays. But he wore a seal-ring -which was used by people who could not sign their names, and this seal -he pressed into a piece of hot wax which was dropped on the agreement -where one would have signed. - -John agreed in Magna Carta to give the barons some of the rights that -we think every human being should have anyway, without an agreement. -For instance, a person certainly has the right to keep the money that -he earns, and he has the right not to have it taken away from him -unlawfully. A person also has the right not to be put in prison or be -punished by the king or any one else unless he has done something wrong -and unless he has had a fair trial. These are two of the rights that -John agreed to in Magna Carta. There were quite a number of others. - -John didn’t keep his agreement, however. He broke it the very first -time he had a good chance, as a person usually does when he is forced -to agree to something against his will. But John died pretty soon; and -so, as far as he was concerned, Magna Carta didn’t matter much. But -kings who came after him were made to agree to the same things. So ever -after 1215 the king in England was supposed to be the servant of the -people, and not the people servants of the king as they had been before -that time. - -[Illustration] - - - - -55 - -A Great Story-Teller - - -Far away from England, - -Far off in the direction of the rising sun, - -’Way beyond Italy and Jerusalem and the Tigris and Euphrates and Persia -and all the other places we have so far heard about, was a country -called Cathay--C-A-T-H-A-Y. - -If you looked down at your feet, and the world were glass, you would -see it on the other side. - -Cathay is the same place we now call China. The people in Cathay -belonged to the yellow race, the same race to which the Chinese belong. - -There had been people living in Cathay, of course, all through the -centuries that had passed, but little was known of this land or of its -people. - -But in the thirteenth century or twelve hundreds, one of these tribes -of yellow people called Mongols or Tartars, arose out of the East, like -a black and terrifying thunderstorm, and it seemed for a while as if -they might destroy all the other countries whose histories we have been -hearing about. The ruler of these people was a terrible fighter named -Genghis Khan. Genghis Khan had an army of Tartar horsemen who were -terrific fighters. Genghis and his Tartars were a good deal like Attila -and his Huns--only worse. Indeed, some people think Attila and his Huns -were Tartars also. - -Genghis usually found some excuse for making war on others, but if -he couldn’t find a good excuse he made up one, for he was bent on -conquering. He and his Tartars thought no more of killing than would -tigers or lions let loose. - -So Genghis and his horsemen swept over the land from Cathay toward -Europe. They burned and destroyed thousands upon thousands of towns and -cities and everything in their way. They slew men, women, and children -by the million. No one was able to stop them. It seemed as if they -were going to wipe off of the face of the earth all white people and -everything that white people had built. - -Genghis Khan had conquered the whole land from the Pacific Ocean to the -eastern part of Europe. But at last he stopped. With this kingdom he -seemed to be satisfied. And he might well have been satisfied, for it -was larger than the Roman Empire or that of even Alexander the Great. - -Even when Genghis died, things were no better, for his son was just as -frightful as his father and conquered still more country. - -But the grandson of Genghis Khan was much less ferocious than his -grandfather had been. He was named Kublai Khan, and he was quite -different from his father and grandfather. He made his capital at -a place in China now called Peking and ruled over this vast empire -that he had inherited from his father. Kublai’s chief interest was in -building magnificent palaces and surrounding himself with beautiful -gardens, and he made such a wonderful capital for himself that Solomon -in all his glory did not live in such splendor as did Kublai Khan. - -Now, far, far off from Peking and the palace of Kublai Khan, in the -north of Italy was a city built on the water. Its streets were of -water, and boats were used instead of carriages. This city was called -Venice. About the Year 1300 there were living in Venice two men named -Polo. The Polos got an idea in their heads that they would like to see -something of the world. So these two Venetians, and the son of one -of them named Marco Polo, started off toward the rising sun looking -for adventure, just like boys in story-books who go off to seek their -fortunes. After several years of travel, always toward the east, they -at last came to the gardens and to the magnificent palace of Kublai -Khan. - -When Kublai Khan heard that strange white men from a far-off place and -an unknown country were outside the palace, he wanted to see them. -So they were brought into his presence. They told Kublai Khan all -about their own land. They were good story-tellers, and they made it -interesting. They told him also about the Christian religion and many -other things that he had never heard of. - -The emperor was so much interested in the Polos and in the stories they -told about their country that he wanted to hear more. So he persuaded -them to stay with him and tell him more. He gave them rich presents. -Then he made them his advisers and assistants in ruling his empire. -So the Polos stayed on for years and years and years and learned the -language and came to be very important people in Cathay. - -At last after they had spent about twenty years in Cathay the Polos -thought it was about time to go home and see their own people again. So -they begged leave to return. Kublai Khan did not want them to go. They -were so useful to him and helped him so much in ruling that he didn’t -want to lose them. But in the end he did let them go, and they started -back to what once had been their home. - -When they at last arrived in Venice, they had been away so long and had -been traveling so far that no one knew them. They had almost forgotten -how to speak their own language, and they talked like foreigners. -Their clothes had become worn out and ragged by their long trip. They -looked like tramps, and not even their old friends recognized them. No -one would believe that these ragged, dirty strangers were the same fine -Venetian gentlemen who had disappeared almost twenty years before. - -The Polos told their townspeople all about their adventures and the -wonderfully rich lands and cities that they had visited. But the -townspeople only laughed at them, for they thought them story-tellers. - -Then the Polos ripped open their ragged garments, and out fell piles -of magnificent and costly jewels, diamonds and rubies and sapphires -and pearls--enough to buy a kingdom. The people looked in wonder and -amazement and began to believe. - -Marco Polo told his stories to a man who wrote them down and made a -book of them called “The Travels of Marco Polo.” This is an interesting -book for you to read even to-day, although we cannot believe all the -tales he told. We know that he exaggerated a great many things, for he -liked to amaze people. - -Marco Polo described the magnificence of Kublai Khan’s palace. He told -of its enormous dining-hall, where thousands of guests could sit down -at the table at one time. He told of a bird so huge that it could -fly away with an elephant. He said that Noah’s Ark was still on Mount -Ararat, only the mountain was so high and so dangerous to climb on -account of the ice and snow with which it was covered that no one could -go to see if the ark really were there. - -[Illustration] - - - - -56 - -“Thing-a-ma-jigger” and “What-cher-may-call-it” or a Magic Needle and a -Magic Powder - - -About this same time that Marco Polo returned from his travels, people -in Europe began to hear and talk about a magic needle and a magic -powder that did remarkable things, and some say that Marco brought -them back from Cathay, but this we doubt. The little magic needle when -floated on a straw or held up only at its middle would always turn -towards the north no matter how much you twisted it. Such a needle put -in a case was called a compass. - -Now, you may not see why such a little thing was so remarkable. But -strange as it may seem, this little thing really made it possible to -discover a new world. - -Perhaps you have played the game in which a child is blindfolded, -twisted around several times in the center of the room, and then told -to go toward the door or the window or some other point in the room. -You know how impossible it is for one who has been so turned round to -tell which way to go, and you know how absurd one looks who goes in -quite the opposite direction when he thinks he is going straight. - -Well, the sailor at sea was something like such a blindfolded child. Of -course, if the weather were fine he could tell by the sun or the stars -which way he should go. But when the weather was cloudy and bad there -was nothing for him to go by. He was then like the blindfolded child. -He might easily become confused and sail in just the opposite direction -from the way he wanted to go without knowing the difference. - -This was perhaps one of the chief reasons why sailors, before the -compass was used, had not gone far out of sight of land. They were -afraid they might not be able to find their way back. So only that part -of the world was known which could be reached by land or without going -far out of sight of land. - -But, with the compass, sailors could sail on and on through storm and -cloudy weather and keep always in the direction they wanted to go. They -simply had to follow the little magnetic needle suspended in its box. -No matter how much the boat turned or twisted or tossed, the little -needle always pointed to the north. Of course sailors did not always -want to go north, but it was very easy to tell any other direction if -they knew which was north. South was exactly opposite, east was to the -right, and west was to the left. So all they had to do was to steer the -boat on the course in whatever direction they wished. - -It was a long while, however, before sailors would use a compass. -They thought it was bewitched by some magic, and they were afraid -to have anything to do with such a thing. Sailors are likely to be -superstitious, and they were afraid that if they took the compass on -board it might bewitch their ship and bring them bad luck. - -The other magic thing was gunpowder. - -Never before 1300 had there been such things in Europe as guns or -cannons or pistols. All fighting had been done with bows and arrows or -swords or spears or with some such weapons. A sword can only be used on -a man a few feet away, but with guns an enemy may be killed and walls -battered down miles away. But after gunpowder was invented the armor -which the old knights wore was of course no longer of any use, for it -could not protect them from shot and shell. So gunpowder has changed -fighting completely and made war the terrible thing it has become. - -Although Marco Polo was supposed to have told about gunpowder and its -use in cannons as he had seen it in the East, most people think that -an English monk named Roger Bacon knew about gunpowder and also about -the compass and perhaps invented them. The monk Bacon knew about so -many things which people at that time thought were magic that he was -supposed to be in league with the devil, and so he was put in prison. -Bacon was the wisest man of his time, but he was ahead of his time. -If he were living now he would be honored as a great scientist and -inventor. But people thought he knew _too_ much--that any one who knew -as much as he did was wicked--that he was prying into God’s secrets, -which God did not want any one to know. - -Others, however, give the credit or the blame for the invention of -gunpowder to a German chemist named Schwarz. They say that one day -Schwarz was mixing some chemicals in an iron bowl with an iron mixer -called a _pestle_, such as druggists use, when, all of a sudden, -the mixture exploded and shot the iron pestle right up through the -ceiling. Schwarz was much surprised; he had had a narrow escape from -being killed; but this gave him an idea. Immediately he set to work -to think out a way to use the same mixture in battle to shoot iron -pestles at the enemy. Some people think it would have been far better -if the pestle had struck and killed Mr. Schwarz at the time, and if his -secret had been destroyed with him. We might then never have had the -terrible wars and the killing of millions of human beings which have -resulted from this discovery. It was quite a while, however, before -gunpowder was made strong enough to do much damage. In fact, it was -over a hundred years before fighting with guns entirely took the place -of fighting with bows and arrows. - -[Illustration] - - - - -57 - -Thelon Gest Wart Hate Verwas - - -Is this another Latin heading? - -No, it’s English. - -Don’t you understand English? - -It was 1338, and Edward III was king of England. Edward III wanted to -rule France as well as England. He said he was related to the former -king of France and had a better right to the country than the one who -was ruling. So he started a war to take France, and the war he started -lasted more than a hundred years. So this is known as the Hundred -Years’ War and it is: - - The Longest War that Ever Was! - -The English army sailed over from England and landed in France. The -first great battle was fought at a little place called Crécy. The -English army was on foot and was made up chiefly of the common people. -The French army were mostly knights clad in armor on horseback--the -society people. - -The French knights on horseback thought themselves much finer than the -common English soldiers who were on foot, as a man in a motor-car is -likely to look down on the man who is walking. - -The English soldiers, however, used a weapon called the _longbow_, -which shot arrows with terrific force, and they completely whipped the -French knights in spite of the fact that the knights were nobles, were -trained to be fighters, rode on horses, and were protected by armor. - -Cannon were used by the English in this battle for the first time. The -cannon, however, did not amount to much nor do very much harm. They -were so weak that they simply tossed the cannon-balls at the enemy as -one might throw a basketball or football. They scared the horses of the -French but did little other damage. But this was the beginning of what -was before long to be the end of knights and armor and feudalism. - -The battle of Crécy was only the beginning of the Hundred Years’ War. -The next year after the battle of Crécy a horribly contagious disease -called the Black Death attacked the people of Europe. It was like the -plague in Athens in the Age of Pericles, but the Black Death did not -attack just one city or country. It was supposed to have started in -Cathay, but it spread westward until it reached Europe. There was no -running away from it. It spread far and wide over the whole land and -killed more human beings than any war that has ever been. It was called -Black Death because black spots came out all over the body of any one -who caught it, and he was certain to die within a few hours or a day -or two. There was no hope. No medicine had any effect. Many people -committed suicide just as soon as they found they had the disease. Many -died just from fright, actually “scared to death.” - -It lasted two years, and millions upon millions caught the disease. -Half of the people of Europe died of it. Whole towns were wiped out, -and in many places no one was left to bury the dead. Dead bodies -lay where they had fallen--on the street, in the doorway, in the -market-place. - -The crops in the fields went to waste, for there was no one to gather -them. Horses and cows roamed over the country at will, for there was -no one to care for them. The plague attacked even sailors at sea, and -ships were found drifting about on the water with not a soul alive left -on board, with not even one left to steer the ship. - -What if it had killed every last man, woman, and child in the world! -What then would have been the future history of the world? - -But, as if there were not enough people dead already, the Hundred -Years’ War still went on year after year. The soldiers who had fought -at Crécy had been dead for years. Their children had grown up, fought, -and died; their grandchildren had grown up, fought and died, and their -great-grandchildren had done the same; and the English army was still -fighting in France. The French prince at that time was very young and -weak, and the French were almost in despair--hopeless--because they had -no strong leader to help them drive out the English after all these -many years. - -Now, in a little French village there was living a poor peasant girl, -a shepherdess, called Joan of Arc. As she watched her flocks of sheep, -she had wonderful visions. She heard voices calling to her, telling her -she was the one who must lead the French armies and save France from -England. She went to the prince’s nobles and told them her visions. -But they did not put any faith in her or her visions, and they did not -believe she was able to do the things she thought she could. - -To test her, however, they dressed up another man as the prince and put -him on the throne while the prince stood at one side with the nobles. -Then they let Joan into the room. When Joan entered the royal hall, she -gave one look at the man who was seated on the throne and dressed up as -prince. Then without hesitating she walked directly past him and went -straight to the _real_ prince. Before him she knelt and said, “I have -come to lead your armies to victory.” The prince at once gave her his -flag and a suit of armor, and she rode out at the head of all the army -and had him crowned king. - -[Illustration: Joan of Arc at the stake.] - -The French soldiers took heart again. It seemed as if the Lord had -sent an angel to lead them, and they fought so hard and so bravely that -they won many battles. - -The English soldiers, however, thought that it was not the Lord but -the devil who had sent Joan and that she was not an angel but a witch, -and they were very much afraid of her. At last, the English made her -prisoner. The French king, whom she had saved, in spite of all she -had done for him, didn’t even try to save her. Now that things were -going his way, he didn’t like to have a woman running things, and the -soldiers didn’t like to have a woman ordering them around, and they -were glad to be rid of her. - -The English tried her for a witch, judged her guilty of being a witch, -and then they burned her alive at the stake. - -But Joan seemed to have brought the French good luck, to have put -new life into their armies, for from that time on, France increased -in strength, and after more than a hundred years of fighting at last -drove the English out of the country. In one hundred years of fighting -hundreds of thousands of people had been wounded and crippled and -blinded and killed, and after it all England was no better off, just -the same as when she started--all the fighting all for nothing. - - - - -58 - -Print and Powder or Off with the Old On with the New - - -Up to this time there was not a printed book in the whole world. There -was not a newspaper. There was not a magazine. All books had to be -written by hand. This, of course, was extremely slow and expensive, so -there were very few of even these handwritten books in all the world. -Only kings and very wealthy people had any books at all. Such a book as -the Bible, for instance, cost almost as much as a house, and so no poor -people could own such a thing. Even when there was a Bible in a church, -it was so valuable that it had to be chained to keep it from being -stolen. Think of stealing a Bible! - -But about 1440 a man thought of a new way to make books. First he put -together wooden letters called type, and then smeared them with ink. -Then he pressed paper against this inky type and made a copy. After -the type was once set up, thousands of copies could be made quickly -and easily. This, as you of course know, was printing. It all seems so -simple, the wonder is that no one had thought of printing thousands of -years before. - -It is generally believed that a German named Gutenberg made the first -printed books about 1440, so he is called the inventor of printing. And -what do you suppose was the first book ever printed? Why, the book that -people thought the most important book in the world--the Bible. This -Bible was not printed in English, however, nor in German, but in Latin! - -The first book printed in English was made in England by an English -man named Caxton, and you would never guess what the English book was. -It was a description of the game of chess, the game that the Arabs had -invented. - -[Illustration: Gutenberg at his press. Comparing a printed sheet with a -manuscript.] - -Before this time few people, even though they were kings and princes, -knew how to read, because there were no books to teach them how to -read and few books for them to read if they had learned, and so what -was the use of learning. - -You can see how difficult it must have been for people throughout the -Middle Ages, without books or newspapers or anything printed, to learn -what was going on in the world, or to learn about anything that one -wanted to know. - -But, now that printing had been invented, all that was changed. -Story-books and school-books and other books could be made in large -numbers and very cheaply. People who never before were able to have -any books could now own them. Every one could now read all the famous -stories of the world and learn about geography, about history, about -anything he wanted to know. So the invention of printing was soon to -change everything. - -The Hundred Years’ War had at last come to an end soon after the -invention of printing. - -At the same time something else that was a thousand years old came to -an end. - -The Mohammedans whom we haven’t heard of for a long time, had tried to -capture Constantinople in the seventh century, but had been stopped, as -I told you, by tar and pitch that the Christians poured down on them. - -But in 1458 the Mohammedans once again attacked Constantinople. This -time, however, the Mohammedans were Turks, and they didn’t try to -batter down the walls of the city with arrows. They used gunpowder and -cannon. Cannon had been used at Crécy more than a hundred years before, -but they had done little damage. Since that time, however, they had -become greatly improved. Against the power of this new invention the -walls of Constantinople could not stand, and finally the city fell. -So Constantinople became Turkish, and the magnificent Church of Santa -Sophia, which Justinian had built a thousand years before, was turned -into a Mohammedan mosque. This was the end of all that was left of the -old Roman Empire--the other half of which had fallen in 476. - -Ever after the downfall of Constantinople in 1453, wars were fought -with gunpowder. No longer were castles of any use. No longer were -knights in armor of any use. No longer were bows and arrows of any -use--against this new kind of fighting. There was a new sound in the -world, the sound of cannon-firing: “Boom! boom! boom!” Before this, -battles had not been very noisy except for shouts of the victors and -the moans of the dying. So 1453 is called the end of the Middle Ages, -and the beginning of the New Ages that were to follow. - -Gunpowder had put an end to the Middle Ages. The invention of printing -and that little magic needle, the compass, did a great deal to start -the New Ages. - - - - -59 - -A Sailor Who Found a New World - - -What book do you like best? - -“Alice in Wonderland”? - -“Gulliver’s Travels”? - -One of the first books to be printed and one that boys at that time -liked best was - - “The Travels of Marco Polo” - -One of the boys who loved to read these stories of those far-away -countries of the East with their gold and precious jewels was an -Italian named Christopher Columbus. Christopher Columbus was born in -the city of Genoa, which is in the top of the “boot.” Like a great many -other boys who were born in seaport towns, he had heard the sailors on -the wharves tell yarns of their travels, and his greatest ambition in -life was to go off to sea and visit all the wonderful lands of which -he had read and been told. At last the chance came, and, though only -fourteen years old, he made his first voyage. After that, Columbus made -many other voyages and grew to be a middle-aged man, but he never got -to these countries he had read about in “The Travels of Marco Polo.” - -Many sea-captains of that time were trying to find a shorter way to -India than the long and tiresome one that Marco Polo had taken. They -felt sure there was a shorter way by sea and now that they had the -compass to guide them they dared to go far off searching for such a -waterway. - -By this time many books had already been printed. Some of these books -on travel were written by the old Greeks and Romans and declared what -was thought to be a crazy notion that the world was not flat but round. -Columbus had read these books and he said to himself that if the world -is really round, one should be able to reach India by sailing toward -the west. It should be much easier and shorter that way than if one -took a boat to the end of the Mediterranean Sea and then went over land -for thousands of miles the way Marco Polo had gone. - -The more Columbus thought of the idea, the surer he was that this could -be done and the more eager he was to get a ship to try out his idea. -But every one laughed at him and his notion as foolish. Of course, -being only a sailor, he had no money to buy or hire a ship in which to -make the trial and he could find no one to help him. - -So first Columbus went to the little country called Portugal. Portugal -was right on the ocean’s edge. It was to be expected then that the -people of Portugal would be famous sailors, and they _were_--as famous -as the Phenicians had been of old. So Columbus thought they might -be interested and help. Besides, the king of Portugal was extremely -interested in discovering new lands. - -But the king of Portugal thought, as the others did, that Columbus -was foolish and would have nothing to do with him. The king wanted to -make quite sure, however, that there was nothing in Columbus’s idea. -Furthermore, if there were any new land, he wanted to be the first to -discover it himself. So he secretly sent some of his sea-captains off -to explore. After a while they one and all returned and stated that -they had been as far as it was safe to go and that positively there was -nothing at all to the west but water, water, water. - -So Columbus in disgust then went to the next country--Spain--which at -that time was ruled by King Ferdinand and his queen Isabella. King -Ferdinand and Queen Isabella were just then too busy to listen to -Columbus. They were fighting with the Mohammedans, who had been in -their country ever since 732, when, you remember, they got as far north -as France. But at last Ferdinand and Isabella succeeded in driving the -Mohammedans out of their country, and then Queen Isabella became very -much interested in Columbus’s ideas and plans and finally promised to -help him. She even said she would sell her jewels, if necessary, to -give him the money to buy ships. But she didn’t have to do this. So -Columbus with her help was able to buy three little ships named the -_Niña_, _Pinta_, and _Santa María_. So small were these three boats -that nowadays we would have been afraid to go even out of sight of -shore in them. - -At last everything was ready, and Columbus set sail from the Spanish -seaport of Palos with about a hundred sailors. Many of the sailors -were criminals, who had been given a choice between prison and this -dangerous voyage. They chose to risk their lives rather than to stay -in prison. Directly toward the setting sun into the broad Atlantic, -Columbus steered. Past the Canary Islands he sailed, on and on, day and -night, always in the same direction. - -See if you can get this idea--the idea that every one had at that -time--that all there was of the world was what we have so far been -studying about. Try to forget that you ever heard of North and South -America. They, of course, knew of no such lands. Try to think of -Columbus on deck scanning the waves in the daytime or peering off in -the darkness at night, hoping sooner or later to sight, not a new -land--he wasn’t looking for a new land--but for China or India. - -[Illustration: Columbus arguing with his crew.] - -Columbus had been out for over a month, and his sailors began to -get worried. It seemed impossible that any sea could be so vast, so -endless, with nothing in sight before, behind, or on either side. They -began to think about returning. They began to be afraid they would -never reach home. They begged Columbus to turn back. They said it was -crazy to go any farther; there was nothing but water ahead of them, and -they could go on forever and ever, and there would never be anything -else. - -Columbus argued with them, but it was no use. Finally he promised -to turn back if they did not reach something very soon. As the days -went on still with nothing new, the sailors plotted to throw Columbus -overboard at night and so get rid of him. They would then sail home and -tell those back in Spain that Columbus had fallen overboard by accident. - -At last, when all had given up hope except Columbus, a sailor saw a -branch with berries on it floating in the water. Where could it have -come from? Then birds were seen flying--birds that never get very far -away from shore. Then one dark night, more than two months after they -had set sail, they saw far off ahead a twinkling light. Probably no -little light ever gave so much joy in the world. A light meant only -one thing--human beings--and land, land--land at last! And then on -the morning of October 12, 1492, the three boats ran ashore. Columbus -leaped out, and falling on his knees, offered up a prayer of thanks -to God. He then raised the Spanish flag, took possession of the land -in the name of Spain, and called it “San Salvador,” which means in -Spanish, “Holy Saviour.” - -Now, Columbus thought this land was India that he had at last reached, -though of course we know now that a great continent, North and South -America, blocked his way to India. In fact, it was only a little island -off the coast of America where he had landed. - -Strange men were the human beings he saw there. Their bodies and faces -were painted, and they had feathers in their hair. As Columbus thought -they must be people of India, he called them Indians, the name they -still bear. - -Columbus went on to other islands near-by; but he did not find any gold -nor precious stones such as he had expected, or the wonders that Marco -Polo had described; and as he had been away so long, he started back -again to Spain the way he had come. With him he took several Indians -to show the people at home, and also some tobacco, which he found them -smoking and which no one had even seen or heard of before. - -When he at last reached home safely again, people were overjoyed -at seeing him and hearing of his discoveries. Everyone was wildly -excited--but only for a while. People soon began to say it was nothing -for Columbus to have sailed westward until land was found, that anyone -could do that. - -One day when Columbus was dining with the king’s nobles, who were -trying to belittle what he had done, he took an egg and, passing it -around the table, asked each one if he could stand it on end. No one -could. When it came back to Columbus, he set it down just hard enough -to crack the end slightly and flatten it. Of course, _then_ it stood -up. “You see,” said Columbus, “it’s very easy if you only know how. So -it’s easy enough to sail west until you find land after I have done it -once and shown you how.” - -Columbus made three other voyages to America, four in all, but he never -knew he had discovered a new world. Once he landed in South America, -but he never reached North America itself. - -As Columbus did not bring back any of the precious jewels or wonderful -things that those in Spain expected him to, people lost interest in -him. Some were so spiteful and jealous of his success that they even -charged him with wrongdoing, and King Ferdinand sent out a man to -take his place. Columbus was put in chains and shipped home. Although -he was promptly set free, Columbus kept the chains as a reminder of -men’s ingratitude and asked to have them buried with him. After this, -Columbus made one other voyage, but when at last he died in Spain he -was alone and almost forgotten even by his friends. What an end for the -man who had given a new continent to the world and changed all history! - -Of all the men of whom we have heard, whether kings or queens, princes -or emperors, none can compare with Columbus. Alexander the Great, -Julius Cæsar, Charlemagne, were all killers. They took away. But -Columbus _gave_. He gave us a new world. Without money or friends or -luck, he stuck to his ideas through long years of discouragement. -Although made fun of and called a crank and even treated as a criminal -he never - - gave up, - gave out, nor - gave in! - - - - -60 - -Fortune-Hunters - - -The New World had no name. - -It was simply called the “New World,” as one might speak of the “new -baby.” - -It had to have a name, but what should it be? - -Of course if we could have chosen the name, we should have called it -“Columbia” after Columbus. But another name was selected, and this is -how it happened. - -An Italian named Americus made a voyage to the southern part of the New -World. Then he wrote a book about his travels. People read his book and -began to speak of the new land that Americus described as Americus’s -country. And so the New World came to be called America after Americus, -although in all fairness it should have been named after Columbus; -don’t you think so? Children sometimes have names given them which they -would like to change when they grow up. But then it is too late. So we -often speak and sing of our country as Columbia, although that is not -the name on the map. And that is why we call a great many cities and -towns and districts and streets Columbus or Columbia. - -After Columbus had shown that there was no danger of falling off the -world and that there really was land off to the west, almost every one -who had been hunting for India now rushed off in the direction Columbus -had taken. “Copy cats!” A genius starts something; then thousands -follow--imitate. Every sea-captain who could do so now hurried off to -the west to look for new countries, and so many discoveries were made -that this time is known as the Age of Discovery. Most of these men were -trying to get to India. They were after gold and jewels and spices, -which they thought they would find in India in great quantities. - -Now we can understand why people might go long distances in search -of gold and precious stones, but they also went after spices--such -as cloves and pepper--and you may wonder why they were so eager to -get spices? You yourself may not like pepper very much, and you may -dislike cloves. But in those days they didn’t have refrigerators filled -with ice, and meats and other foods were often spoiled. We would have -thought such food unfit to eat. But they covered it with spices to kill -the bad flavor, and then food could be eaten that otherwise one could -not have swallowed. Spices didn’t grow in Europe--only in the far east. -So people paid big prices to get them, and that is why men made long -journeys after them. - -A Portuguese sailor named Vasco da Gama was one of those who were -trying to get to India all the way by water. He did not, however, sail -_west_ as Columbus had done, but _south_ down around Africa. Others -had tried before to get to India by going south and around Africa, but -none had gone more than part way. Many frightful stories were told by -those who had tried but had at last turned back. These stories were -like the tales of “Sindbad the Sailor.” They said that the sea became -boiling hot; they said that there was a magnetic mountain which would -pull out the iron bolts in the ship, and the ship would then fall to -pieces; they said that there was a whirlpool into which a ship would -be irresistibly drawn--down, down, down to the bottom; they said there -were sea-serpents, monsters so large that they could swallow a ship at -one gulp. The southern point of Africa was called the Cape of Storms, -and the very name seemed to be bad luck, so that it was changed to Cape -of Good Hope. - -In spite of all such scary stories, Vasco da Gama kept on his way -south. Finally, after many hardships and many adventures, he passed -round the Cape of Good Hope. Then he sailed on to India, got the spices -that then were so highly prized, and returned safely home. This was in -1497, five years after Columbus’s first voyage, and Vasco da Gama -was the first one to go to India by water. Spain had the honor of -discovering a new land. Portugal had the honor of first reaching India -by water. - -[Illustration: 15ᵗͪ Century Map of Africa] - -England also was to have the honor of making discoveries. In the same -year that Vasco da Gama reached India, a man named Cabot set sail -from England on a voyage of discovery. His first trip was a failure, -but he tried again and finally came to Canada and sailed along the -coast of what is now the United States. These countries he claimed for -England, but he returned home, and England did nothing more about his -discoveries until about a hundred years later. - -Another Spaniard named Balboa explored the central part of America. He -was on the little strip of land that joined North and South America -which we now call the Isthmus of Panama. Suddenly he came to another -great ocean. This strange new ocean he named the South Sea, for -although the Isthmus of Panama connects North and South America, it -bends so that one looks _south_ over the ocean. - -Then came the longest trip of all. A Portuguese named Magellan wanted -to find a way to India _through_ the New World, for he thought there -must be some opening through which he might pass this new land that -blocked the way. He tried to get his own country to help him. But -again Portugal made the same mistake she had made in the case of -Columbus. She would not listen to Magellan. So Magellan went to Spain, -and Spain gave him five ships. - -With these five ships Magellan sailed off across the sea. When he -reached South America he sailed south along the shore trying to find -a passage through the land. One place after another seemed to be the -passage for which he was looking, but each one turned out to be nothing -but a river’s mouth. Then one of his ships was wrecked, and only four -were left. - -With these four ships he still kept on down the coast until he finally -reached what is now Cape Horn. Through the dangerous opening there, -since called after him the Straits of Magellan, he worked his way. One -ship deserted and went back home the way it had come. Only three were -then left. - -With these three ships he at last came into the great ocean on the -other side, the same ocean that Balboa had called the South Sea. This -Magellan named the “Pacific,” which means “calm,” because after all the -storms they had had it seemed so calm and quiet. But food and water -became scarce and finally gave out. Magellan’s men suffered terribly -from thirst and hunger and even ate the rats that are always to be -found on shipboard. Many of his men were taken sick and died. Still -he kept on, though he had lost most of the crew with which he had set -out. At last he reached what are now the Philippine Islands, where the -people were savages. Here he and his men got into a battle with the -natives, and Magellan was killed. There were now not enough men left -to sail three ships, and so one of these was burned, and only two were -then left. - -[Illustration: Magellan’s Victoria. (From an old print.)] - -Two of the ships, however, out of the five with which Magellan had -started out, still kept on. Then one of these was lost, disappeared, -and was never heard of again, and only a single ship named the -_Victoria_, remained. It seemed as if not one ship, not one man, would -be left to tell the tale. - -Around Africa the _Victoria_ struggled. Magellan’s men, worn out with -hunger and cold and hardships, still battled against wind and storm. -At last a leaky and broken ship with only eighteen men sailed into the -harbor from which it had set out more than three years before. And -so the _Victoria--Victory!_--Magellan’s ship, but without the heroic -Magellan--was the first ship to sail completely round the world. This -voyage settled forever the argument that had been going on for ages, -whether the earth was round or flat, for a ship had actually sailed -around the world! And yet in spite of this proof for many more years -thereafter there were people who still would not believe the world was -round, and even to-day there are people who say the world is flat, but -now we call them _cranks_. - -[Illustration: 1520 A.D.] - - - - -61 - -The Land of Enchantment or the Search for Gold and Adventure - - -All sorts of marvelous tales were told about the wealth and wonders of -the New World. - -It was said that somewhere in the New World there was a _fountain of -youth_, and that if you bathed in it or drank of its water, you would -become young again. - -It was said that somewhere in the New World there was a city called El -Dorado built of solid gold. - -So every one who liked adventure and could get enough money together -went off in search of these things that might make him famous or -healthy, wealthy or wise, or forever young. - -One of these men was Ponce de León. Ponce de León was looking for the -_fountain of youth_. While searching for this life-giving water, he -discovered Florida. But instead of finding the fountain of youth, he -lost his life in fighting with the Indians. - -Another one of these men was de Soto. He was searching for El Dorado, -the city of gold. While doing so he discovered the longest river in -the world--the Mississippi. But instead of finding El Dorado, de Soto -was taken sick with fever and died. Now, the Spaniards, to make the -Indians fear them, had said that de Soto was a god and could not die. -So in order to cover up the fact that de Soto had actually died his men -buried him at night in the river he had discovered. They then told the -Indians that he had gone on a trip to heaven and would presently return. - -The central part of America was called Mexico. Here lived at that time -a tribe of Indians known as Aztecs. These Aztecs were more civilized -than the other Indians that the explorers had come across. They did not -live in tents but in houses. They built fine temples and palaces. They -made roads and aqueducts, something like those of the Romans. They had -enormous treasures of silver and gold. And yet the Aztecs worshiped -idols and sacrificed human beings to them. Their king was a famous -chief named Montezuma. - -A Spaniard named Cortés was sent to conquer these Aztecs. He landed -on the shore of Mexico and burned his ships so that his sailors and -soldiers could not turn back. The Aztecs thought these white-faced -people were gods who had come down from heaven and that their ships -with their white sails were white-winged birds that had borne them. -They had never seen horses, some of which the Spaniards had brought -over across the water, and they were astonished at what seemed to them -terrible beasts that the white men rode. When the Spaniards fired their -cannons, the Aztecs were terrified. They thought it was thunder and -lightning that the Spaniards had let loose. - -Cortés moved on toward the Aztec capital, the City of Mexico, which was -built on an island in the middle of a lake. The natives he met on the -way fought desperately, but as they had only such weapons as men used -in the Stone and Bronze Ages, they were no match against the guns and -cannons of the Spaniards. - -Montezuma, their chief, wishing to make friends with these white gods, -sent Cortés rich gifts, cart-loads of gold, and when Cortés reached the -capital city Montezuma treated him as a guest instead of an enemy and -entertained him and could not do enough for him. Cortés told Montezuma -all about the Christian religion and tried to make him a Christian -also, but Montezuma thought his own gods just as good as the Christian -God, and he would not change. Then suddenly Cortés took Montezuma -prisoner, and terrible fighting began. At last Montezuma was killed, -and Cortés of course succeeded in conquering Mexico, for though the -Aztecs fought desperately and bravely, shot and shell were too much for -them. - -In Peru in South America was still another tribe of civilized Indians -even more wealthy than the Aztecs. They were called Incas, and it was -said that their cities were paved with gold. - -Another Spaniard named Pizarro went to Peru to conquer it as Cortés had -conquered Mexico. Pizarro told the ruler, who was called the Inca, that -the pope had given the country to Spain. The Inca had never heard of -the pope and must have wondered what the pope had to do with Peru and -how he could give it away. So naturally the Inca would not give up his -country to Spain. Then Pizarro _took_ it away. He had but a few hundred -men, but he had cannon, and of course the Incas could not stand out -against cannon. - -France and other countries of Europe also sent out explorers to conquer -parts of America, and then missionaries to teach the Indians the -Christian religion, but these you will hear more about when you study -American History. - -Many of the explorers were really pirates, even worse pirates than the -Norsemen who raided England and France, because they murdered people -who were without equal weapons to fight back. The excuse they often -gave for doing so was that they wanted to make the natives Christians. -No wonder that the natives did not think much of the Christian religion -if it taught murder of people who could not defend themselves. The -Mohammedans made converts with the sword, but the Christians made -converts with shot and shell. - -[Illustration] - - - - -62 - -Born Again - - -Here is a long word for you: it is Renaissance. - -It means: born again. - -Of course, nothing can be born again. But people call this time we have -now reached the Renaissance, the born-again time. This is the reason -why they call it that. - -You remember the Age of Pericles, don’t you? when such beautiful -sculptures and buildings were made in Athens. Well, in the fifteen -hundreds not every one was rushing off to the New World in search of -adventure. While the discoveries that I have told you about were taking -place, there were living and working in Italy some of the greatest -artists the world has ever known. - -Architects built beautiful buildings something like the old Greek and -Roman temples. Sculptors made statues that were almost as beautiful as -those of Phidias. People began to take an interest once more in the old -Greek writers, whose books were now printed for every one to read. It -seemed almost as if Athens in the Age of Pericles had been born again. -So that is why people speak of this time as the Renaissance. - -One of the greatest of these artists of the Renaissance was a man -named Michelangelo. But Michelangelo was not just a painter; he was -a sculptor, an architect, and a poet as well. Michelangelo thought -nothing of spending years working on any statue or painting that he was -doing. But when he had finished he had done something that people now -go from all over the world to see. - -Nowadays, sculptors first model a statue in clay and then copy it in -stone or cast it in bronze, but Michelangelo did not do this. He cut -his figures directly out of the stone, without making a model first. It -was as if he saw the figure imprisoned in the stone and then cut away -the part that closed the figure in. - -A large block of marble had been spoiled by another sculptor. -Michelangelo saw a figure of David _in_ it, and, setting to work, he -cut this young athlete _out_. - -He made also a statue of Moses sitting down. It is now in a church in -Rome, and when you walk up to it it is so lifelike that it seems as if -you were in the presence of the prophet Moses himself. The guide tells -you that when Michelangelo had finished this statue of Moses he was so -thrilled by the figure he had created that, feeling it must come to -life, he struck it on the knee with his hammer and commanded as he did -so, “Stand Up”! And then the guide shows you a crack in the marble to -prove that the story is true! - -[Illustration: Michelangelo at work.] - -The pope wanted Michelangelo to paint the ceiling of his own private -chapel in Rome. This was called the Sistine Chapel. At first -Michelangelo didn’t want to do the painting. He told the pope he was a -sculptor and not a painter. But the pope insisted, and Michelangelo at -last gave in. Once having agreed to do the work, however, Michelangelo -gave himself heart and soul to it. - -For four years he lived in this room--the Sistine Chapel--and hardly -ever left it day or night. Beneath the ceiling, he built himself a -platform, and, lying on this scaffold, he would read poetry and the -Bible and work “as the spirit moved him.” Locking himself in, he would -let no one enter, not even the pope himself. He wanted to be alone and -to be left alone. - -The pope, however, felt that he was a privileged character, and one -day, when he found the door left open, he came into the chapel to see -how things were getting along. Michelangelo, thereupon, accidentally -dropped some of his tools, and they just barely missed hitting the pope -on the head. The pope was very angry, but he never returned uninvited -again. - -People now go from all over the world to see this ceiling, which only -can be viewed comfortably by lying on the floor or by looking at it in -a mirror. - -Michelangelo lived to be nearly ninety years old, yet he had very -little to do with people. He could not stand being bored by them. So he -lived apart in the company of the gods and angels that he painted. - -Raphael was another famous Italian artist. He lived at the same time as -Michelangelo. Raphael, however, was just the opposite of Michelangelo -in most ways. Michelangelo liked to be by himself. Raphael loved -company. He was very popular and constantly surrounded by his friends -and admirers, for everybody loved him on account of his genius and -kindly nature. Young men swarmed about him, drinking in his words and -humbly copying everything he did. He had fifty or more pupils studying -and painting under him, and they went along with him whenever he went -out even for a walk. They almost worshiped the ground he walked on. - -Raphael painted many beautiful pictures of the Virgin Mary with the -infant Jesus. These were called Madonnas. Madonnas were almost the only -kind of pictures that artists painted at that time. Raphael painted -one especially beautiful picture of Mary and the Christ-child called -the “Sistine Madonna.” This is considered one of the twelve greatest -pictures in the world. It was painted for a little church, but it is -now in a great picture-gallery, where it has a whole room to itself. No -other pictures are thought worthy to have a place close by. - -Raphael died when he was still a young man, but he worked so hard and -so continuously that he has left a large number of pictures. He painted -only the very important parts of his pictures himself--perhaps only the -faces. The body and hands and clothing he usually left to be painted -by his pupils. They were glad to be allowed to do even a finger of a -painting on which their master had worked. - -Michelangelo’s paintings were strong and forcible as a man is supposed -to be. Raphael’s paintings were sweet and lovely and graceful, as a -woman is supposed to be. - -Leonardo da Vinci is another great artist who lived at this time. He -was left-handed, yet he could do any number of things exceptionally -well. He would be called a jack of all trades, but unlike most jacks -of all trades, he was good at all. He was an artist, an engineer, a -poet, and a scientist. It is said that he drew the first map of the -New World that had the name of America on it. He made, however, very -few paintings, because he did so many things beside, but these few -pictures are extremely beautiful. One of these is “The Last Supper.” It -is considered, as is the “Sistine Madonna,” one of the twelve greatest -paintings in the world. Unfortunately, it was painted directly on a -plastered wall, and in the course of time much of the plaster with the -paint has peeled off, so that there is little now left of the original -painting. - -Leonardo usually painted his women smiling. One of his most famous -paintings is the picture of a woman called “Mona Lisa.” She has a smile -that is called “quizzical.” You can hardly tell whether she is smiling -_at_ you or _with_ you. - - - - -63 - -Christians Quarrel - - -Some people say young boys and girls can’t understand this chapter. -They say it is too difficult. But I want to see if it is. - -Up to this time, as I have told you before, there had been only one -Christian religion--the Catholic. There was no Episcopalian, nor -Methodist, nor Baptist, nor Presbyterian, nor any other denomination. -All were just Christians. - -But in the sixteenth century some people began to think that changes -should be made in the Catholic religion. - -Others thought changes should not be made. - -Some said it was all right as it was. - -Others said it wasn’t all right as it was. So a quarrel started. - -This is the way the trouble began: The pope was building a great church -called St. Peter’s in Rome. It took the place of the old church that -Constantine had built on the spot where St. Peter was supposed to have -been crucified head down. The pope wanted it to be the largest and -finest church in the world, for Christ had said, “Thou art Peter, and -upon this rock [Peter means rock in Latin] I will build my church....” -So the Church of St. Peter’s was to be the Capitol of the Christian -religion. Both Michelangelo and Raphael had worked on the plans for the -new church. In order to get marble and stone and other materials for -this Church of St. Peter, the pope did as others before him had done; -he tore down other buildings in Rome and used their stone for the new -church. - -But besides all this the pope needed an enormous amount of money to -build such a magnificent church as he had planned. So he started to -collect from the people. Now, there was a man in Germany named Martin -Luther who was a monk and a teacher of religion in a college. Martin -Luther thought that not only this but also other things in the Catholic -Church were not right. So he made a list of ninety-five things that -he thought were not right and nailed them up on the church door in -the town where he lived, and he preached against doing these things. -The pope sent Luther an order, but Luther made a bonfire and burned -it publicly. Many took sides with Luther, and before long there was a -great body of people who had left the Catholic Church and no longer -obeyed the pope. - -The pope called on the king of Spain to help in this quarrel with -Luther. The reason he called on him was this: The king of Spain was -Charles V, the grandson of the Ferdinand and Isabella who had helped -Columbus. He was not only a good Catholic but the most powerful ruler -in Europe. The Spanish explorers had discovered different parts of -America, and so Charles was owner of a large part of the New World. But -he was emperor not only of these Spanish settlements in America but of -Austria and of Germany as well. So it was quite natural that the pope -should go to Charles for help. - -Charles commanded Luther to come to a city named Worms to be tried. He -promised Luther that no harm would be done him, and so Luther went. -When Luther arrived at Worms, Charles ordered him to take back all he -had said. Luther refused to do so. Some of Charles’s nobles said Luther -should be burned at the stake. But Charles, as he had promised, let him -go and did not punish him for his belief. Luther’s friends were afraid, -though, that other Catholics might do him harm. They knew Luther would -take no care of himself, and so they themselves took him prisoner and -kept him shut up for over a year, so that no one could harm him. While -Luther was in prison he translated the Bible into German; it was the -first time that the Bible had been written in that language. - -The people who protested against what the pope did were called -Protest-ants, and those Christians who are not Roman Catholics are -still called Protestants to-day. The time when these changes were made -in the Catholic form of worship was called the Re-form-ation, as the -old religion was _re-formed_. - -Now, you may be a Catholic and your best friend may not be a Catholic, -but that makes no difference in your friendship. But at that time those -who were Catholics were deadly enemies of those who were not. Each side -was sure it alone was right and the other side was wrong. Each side -fought for the things it thought were right, fought the other side as -furiously and madly and bitterly as if the other side were scoundrels -and devils. Friends and relatives murdered each other because they -thought differently about religion, and yet all were supposed to be -Christians. - -Charles was greatly worried and troubled by the religious quarrels -and other difficulties in his vast empire. He became sick and tired -of being emperor and of having to settle all the many problems he had -to solve. He wanted to be free to do other things that he was more -interested in. Being king did not mean being able to do whatever you -wanted, as some people think. So Charles did what few rulers have ever -done voluntarily: he resigned--“abdicated,” as it is called--and gave -up his throne to his son, who was named Philip II. - -Then Charles, glad to be rid of all the cares of state, went to live in -a monastery. There he spent his time doing what he liked--what do you -suppose?--making mechanical toys and watches--until he died! - -Now, the king of England at this time, when Charles was king of Spain, -was Henry VIII. His last name was Tudor. So many kings had first names -which were alike that such names were numbered to tell which Charles or -Henry was meant and how many of the same name there had been before. -Henry VIII was at first also a strong Catholic, and the pope had called -him Defender of the Faith. But Henry had a wife whom he wanted to get -rid of because she had no son. In order to get rid of her so that he -might marry again, he had to have what was called a divorce, and the -pope was the only one who could give Henry a divorce. Now, the pope at -Rome was head of the Christian Church of the whole world and said what -Christians could do or could not do, no matter whether they were in -Italy or Spain or England. So Henry asked the pope to grant him this -divorce. The pope, however, told him he would not give him a divorce. - -Now, Henry thought it was neither right nor proper that a man in -another country, even if he _were_ pope, should say what could be done -in England. He himself was ruler, and he didn’t intend to let any -foreigner meddle in his affairs or give him orders. - -[Illustration: Henry VIII and his second wife Anne Boleyn.] - -So then Henry said that he himself would be head of all the Christians -in England; then he could do as he wished without the pope’s -permission. So he made himself head, and then he divorced his wife. -All the churches in England were now told by the king what they should -do; the pope no longer had anything to say in the matter; the English -churches obeyed the king, not the pope. This made the second big break -in the Catholic Church. - -After this Henry VIII had five other wives, six in all; not of course -all at one time, for Christians could only have one wife at a time. His -first wife he divorced, the second he beheaded, the third died. The -same thing happened to his last three wives: the first he divorced, the -second he beheaded, and the third died--but Henry died before she did. - -Is this too difficult for you to understand? - - - - -64 - -King Elizabeth - - -King Henry VIII had two daughters. - -One was named Mary, and one was named Elizabeth. - -Their last name was of course Tudor, the same as their father’s, -although we do not usually think of kings and queens as having last -names. - -King Henry had a son, also, and he was first to become king after his -father died, for though he was younger than his sisters, a boy was -supposed to be more fit to rule than a girl. But he didn’t live long, -and then Mary was the first of the two sisters to become queen. - -“Mary, Mary, quite contrary” did not approve what her father had done -when he turned against the pope and the Catholic Church. Mary herself -was a strong Catholic and ready to fight for the pope and the Catholic -Church. In fact, she wanted to have all who were not Catholics, all -those who were Protestants, put to death. She thought that all those -who did not believe as she did were wicked and should be killed. Like -the queen in “Alice in Wonderland,” she was always saying, “Off with -his head!” This seems to us very unchristian, but in those days their -ideas about such things were peculiar. Mary had the heads of so many -people cut off that she was called Bloody Mary. - -Mary married a man who was just as strong a Catholic as she and even -“bloodier.” He was not an Englishman, but a Spaniard, Philip II of -Spain, son of Charles V, who had abdicated. - -Philip II was much sterner than his father had been. Philip tried -to make those who were Protestants, or who were supposed to be -Protestants, confess and give up Protestantism. If they did not do so, -they were tortured as the old Christian martyrs had been tortured. This -was called the Inquisition. Those suspected of being Protestants were -tormented in all sorts of horrible ways. Some were tied up in the air -by their hands, like a picture hung on the wall, until they fainted -from the pain or else confessed what they were told to confess. Some -were stretched on a rack, their heads pulled one way and their legs -the opposite way, until their bodies were nearly torn apart. Those who -were found guilty of being Protestants were killed outright, burned to -death, or put slowly to death, so that they would suffer longer. - -The people whom Philip chiefly persecuted were the Dutch people in -Holland. Holland then belonged to his empire, and a great many of the -Dutch people had become Protestants. - -Now, there was a Dutchman called William the Silent, because he talked -little but did a great deal. William was furious at the way his people -were treated. So he fought against Philip and at last succeeded in -making his country free and setting up the Dutch Republic. But William -the Silent was murdered by order of Philip. - -And that’s the kind of man Bloody Mary had for a husband. - -After Mary Tudor died, her sister, Elizabeth Tudor, became queen, -though she ruled like a king. Elizabeth had red hair and was very vain -and loved to be flattered. She had many lovers but she never married, -and as a woman who never marries is called a virgin she was known as -the Virgin Queen. - -Elizabeth was a Protestant and was just as bitter against the Catholics -as her sister and her sister’s husband had been against the Protestants. - -A relative of Elizabeth was queen of Scotland. Scotland was a country -north of England, but at that time it was not a part of England, and -its queen was named Mary Stuart. Mary Stuart, Queen of Scots, was -young, beautiful, and fascinating; but she was a Catholic, and so -Elizabeth and she were enemies. - -Elizabeth heard that Mary Stuart was trying to become queen of England -as well as Scotland, so she had her, although a relative, put in -prison. In prison Mary Stuart stayed for nearly twenty years and was -then at last put to death by Elizabeth’s orders. It is hard for us to -understand how any one could have his own relatives killed in this -cold-blooded way, especially any one who pretended to be a Christian, -but in those times it was a very common custom, as we see when we -hear of so many murders committed by the rulers of the people. Philip -II, the great champion of the Catholics, made up his mind to punish -Elizabeth, his sister-in-law, for killing such a good Catholic as Mary -Stuart. - -So he got together a large navy of very fine ships called the Spanish -Armada. All Spain was very proud of this fleet. It was boastfully -called the Invincible Armada; “invincible” means “unconquerable.” - -This Invincible Armada set forth in 1588 to conquer the English navy. -Lined up in the shape of a half-moon, the ships sailed grandly toward -England. - -The English fleet was composed only of little boats. But instead of -going out to meet the Armada in regular sea-battle as the Spaniards -expected, the English ships sailed out and attacked the Spanish ships -from behind and fought one ship at a time. The English were better -fighters, and their small boats were quicker and more easily managed. -They could strike a blow and get away before a Spanish ship could turn -around into position to fire. So gradually they sank or destroyed the -big Spanish boats one by one. - -Then the English set some old boats afire and started them drifting -toward the Spanish fleet. As all boats at that time were of course -made of wood, the Spaniards became frightened at these burning piles -drifting down upon them, and part of the fleet sailed away. The rest -tried to get back to Spain by sailing the long way round, north of -Scotland. But a terrible storm struck them, and almost all the boats -were shipwrecked, and thousands of dead bodies were washed up on shore. -So the great Spanish Armada was destroyed, and with it ended the power -of Spain at sea. She was no longer the great nation she had been. - -At the beginning of Elizabeth’s reign, the largest and most powerful -country in the world was Spain; at the end of her reign it was England -that was the most powerful. Ever since then her fleet, which King -Alfred started far back, has been the largest, and the saying is, -“Britannia rules the waves.” - -People at that time thought it impossible for a woman to rule as well -as a man, but under Elizabeth’s rule England in turn became the leading -country of Europe. Then people said Elizabeth ruled _like_ a man, that -she had a man’s brain, a man’s will. In fact they said she was more man -than woman--that she was a tomboy grown up--that’s why I call her “King -Elizabeth.” - -[Illustration] - - - - -65 - -The Age of Elizabeth - - -This story is about the Age of Elizabeth. - -My father always told me that it was impolite to talk about a lady’s -age. - -But I’m not going to tell you how old Elizabeth was, though she did -live and reign a great many years. - -I’m going to tell you some of the things that happened during her -long life, for the time when she lived is what is called the Age of -Elizabeth. - -There was a young man named Raleigh living when Elizabeth became queen. -One day when it was raining and the streets were muddy, Elizabeth -was about to cross the street. Raleigh saw her and, to keep her from -soiling her shoes, ran forward, took off his beautiful velvet cape, and -threw it in the puddle where she was about to step, so that she might -cross upon it as upon a carpet. The queen was greatly pleased with this -thoughtful and gentlemanly act, and she made him a knight, so that he -was then called Sir Walter Raleigh, and ever after that he was one of -her special friends. - -Sir Walter Raleigh was much interested in the new country of America. -Cabot had claimed a great part of it for England almost a hundred -years before, but England had done nothing about it. Raleigh thought -something should be done about it; he thought English people should -settle there, so that other countries like Spain, which had made so -many settlements in America, would not get ahead of England. So Raleigh -got together several companies of English people and sent them over to -an island called Roanoke, which was just off the coast of the present -State of North Carolina. At that time, however, almost the whole coast -of the United States as far north as Canada was called Virginia. It had -been named Virginia in honor of the Virgin Queen Elizabeth. - -Some of these Roanoke colonists became discouraged with the hardships -they had to suffer and so gave up and sailed back home again. Those -who remained all disappeared. Where? No one knows. We think they must -either have been killed by the Indians or have died of starvation. -At any rate, not one was left to tell the tale. Among these Roanoke -colonists was the first English child born in America--a girl, who had -been named Virginia Dare, for the queen was very popular and a great -many girls were named Virginia after her. - -Some tobacco was brought back from Virginia, and Sir Walter Raleigh -learned to smoke. This was such a strange and unknown thing at that -time that one day while he was smoking a pipe a servant who saw smoke -coming out of his mouth thought he was on fire and, running for a -bucket of water, emptied it over his head. - -Virginia is still famous for its tobacco. At first tobacco was supposed -to be very healthful, for the Indians seemed to have very good health -and they smoked a great deal. Afterward, however, in the next reign, -King James so hated tobacco that he wrote a book against it and forbade -it to be used. - -After Queen Elizabeth had died, Raleigh was put in prison, for it -was said he was plotting against the new king James, who came after -Elizabeth. The prison where he was placed was the Tower of London, the -old castle that William the Conqueror had built. Here Raleigh was kept -for thirteen long years, and to pass the time away he wrote a “History -of the World.” But at last he was put to death as many other great men -were also. - -During the reign of Queen Elizabeth, there lived the great writer of -plays, the greatest writer the world has ever known. This man was -William Shakspere. - -Shakspere’s father could not write his name. Shakspere himself spent -only six years at school. As a boy he was rather wild, and he was -arrested for hunting deer in the forest of Sir Thomas Lucy at Stratford. - -[Illustration: Shakspere reading to Elizabeth.] - -When still a boy Shakspere married a girl older than himself named Anne -Hathaway. After he had been married a few years he left her and their -three children, left the little town of Stratford, and went up to the -great city of London to seek his fortune. There Shakspere got a job -working around a theater, holding the horses of those who came to see -the plays. Then he got a chance to act in the theater, and he became an -actor, but he did not become a very good one. - -In those days the theaters had no scenery. A sign was put up to tell -what the scene was supposed to be. For instance, instead of forest -scenery, they would put up a sign saying, “This is a forest,” or -instead of a room scene a sign saying “This is a room in an inn.” There -were no actresses. Men and boys took the parts of both men and women. - -Shakspere was asked to change some of the plays that had already been -written, so that they could be better acted. He did this very well; -then he started in to write plays himself. Usually he took old stories -and made them into plays, but he did it so wonderfully well that they -are better than any plays that have ever been written before or since. - -Though Shakspere left school when only thirteen years old, he seems to -have had a remarkable knowledge of almost everything under the sun. He -shows in his plays that he knew about history and law and medicine, -and he knew and used more words than almost any writer who has ever -lived. Indeed, some people say that with the little education he had, -he could not possibly have written the plays himself, and so they have -tried to prove that some one else must have written them. Some of the -greatest of Shakspere’s plays are “Hamlet,” “The Merchant of Venice,” -“Romeo and Juliet,” and “Julius Cæsar.” - -Shakspere made a good deal of money for those times--almost a fortune. -Then he left London and went back to live in the little town of -Stratford where he was born. Here at last he died and was buried in -the village church. People wanted to move his body to a greater and -handsomer place, to a famous church in London. But some one, perhaps -Shakspere himself, had written a verse which was carved on his -tombstone. The last line of this verse said, “And curst be he who moves -my bones”; so they never were moved, for no one dared to move them. - - - - -66 - - James the Servant - or - What’s In a Name? - - -What does your name mean? - - If it is - Baker or - Miller or - Taylor or - Carpenter or - Fisher or - Cook, - -it means that at some time one of your ancestors was a - - baker, or - miller, or - tailor, or - carpenter, or - fisher, or - cook. - -If your name is Stuart or Steuart or Stewart or Steward, it means that -at some time one of your ancestors was a steward for in olden days -people knew very little about spelling, and they spelled the same name -in different ways. A steward was a chief servant. - -There was a family named Stuart in Scotland, and from chief servants -or stewards they had become rulers of the Scots. Mary Stuart, whom -Elizabeth had beheaded, was one of them. - -As Queen Elizabeth never married, she had no children to rule after -her. She was the last of the Tudor family. So the English had to look -around for a new king, and they looked to Scotland. - -Now, Scotland, as I have told you, was then a separate country and -not a part of England as now. The son of Mary Stuart was then king of -Scotland. His name was James Stuart. As he was related to the Tudors, -the English invited him to come and rule over them. He accepted the -invitation and was called James I. So we speak of his reign and that of -his children as the reign of the Stuarts. - -The Stuart family reigned for about a hundred years, that is, from 1600 -to 1700, all except about eleven years when England had no king at all. - -Many times the English must have been very sorry that they had ever -invited James to be their king, for he and the whole Stuart family -lorded it over the English people. They acted as if they were “lords of -creation,” and the English people had to fight for their rights. - -A body of men called Parliament were supposed to make the laws for the -English people. But James said that Parliament could do nothing that he -didn’t like, and if they weren’t very careful he wouldn’t let them do -any governing at all. James said that whatever the king did was right, -that the king could do no wrong, that God gave kings the right to do as -they pleased with their subjects. This was called the Divine Right of -Kings. Naturally the English people would not put up with this sort of -thing. Ever since the time of King John they had insisted on their own -rights. The Tudors had often done things that the people didn’t like, -but the Tudors were English. The Stuarts, however, were Scotch, and -the people looked on them as foreigners; what they permitted in one of -their own family they wouldn’t stand in these strangers whom they had -invited into their family. So, of course, a quarrel was bound to start. -But the real fight came with the next king and not with James. - -James was very fond of beefsteak, and one particular cut from the loin -of beef he liked especially well. It was so delicious he thought it -should be honored in some way, and so he made it a knight as if it were -a brave and gallant gentleman and dubbed it “Sir Loin,” which we still -call it to-day--although people have forgotten all about how it got -such a name, and some even say this is only a story and that he never -did such a foolish thing, anyway. - -During King James’s reign the Bible was translated into English. This -is probably the same Bible you read and that is called the King James -Bible. - -Nothing much happened in England during James’s reign, but in some -other countries a great deal did happen, although the king had little -to do with it. English people made settlements in India, that far away -country of the Brahmanists, which Columbus had tried to reach by going -west; and these settlements there grew until India at last belonged to -England. The English made settlements also in America, and these grew -until at last part of America, too, belonged to England. - -One of these settlements in America was made in the South, and one was -made in the North. Raleigh’s settlement at Roanoke had disappeared, as -I told you; but in 1607 a boatload of English gentlemen sailed over -to America looking for adventure and hoping to make their fortunes by -finding gold. They landed in Virginia and named the place where they -settled Jamestown after their king, James. But they found no gold, and -as they were not used to work, they didn’t want to do any. But their -leader, Captain John Smith, took matters in hand and said that those -that didn’t work shouldn’t eat. So then the colonists had to go to work. - -Back in England people had learned to smoke, and so the colonists -began to raise tobacco for the English people. The tobacco brought -the colonists so much money that it proved to be a gold-mine--of a -different kind--after all. But the colonial gentlemen wanted some one -to do the rough work for them. So a few years later some negroes were -brought over from Africa and sold to the colonists as slaves to do the -rough work. This was the beginning of slavery in America, which grew -and grew until in the South almost all the work was done by colored -slaves. - -A little later another company of people left England for America. -These people were not looking for fortunes, however, as the Jamestown -settlers had been. They were looking for a place where they might -worship God as they pleased, for in England they were interfered -with, and they wanted to find a place where no one would interfere -with them. So this company of people left England in 1620 in a ship -called the _Mayflower_ sailed across the ocean and landed in a place -called Plymouth, in Massachusetts, and there they settled. More than -half of them died the first winter from hardship and exposure in the -bitter weather that they have in the North, but, nevertheless, none of -those who were left would go back to England. This settlement was the -beginning of that part of the United States called New England. You -will hear more about both settlements later when you study American -History. But at present we must see what was going on in England, for -there were great “goings on” there. - -[Illustration] - - - - -67 - -A King Who Lost His Head - - -Have you ever sung, “King William was King James’ son”? - -Well, that must have been some other King James, for King Charles was -this King James’ son, and he was Charles I. - -Charles was “a chip of the old block.” Like his father he believed in -the Divine Right of Kings, that he alone had the right to say what -should be done or what should not be done, and he treated the English -people as King John had; that is, as if they were made simply to serve -his pleasure and to do as he said. - -But this time the people didn’t carry him off, as they had King John, -to agree to a paper. They started to fight. The king made ready to -fight for what he thought his rights. So he got together an army of -lords and nobles and those who agreed with him. Those who took his side -even dressed differently from those who were against him. They grew -their hair in long curls and wore a broad-brimmed hat with a large -feather and lace collars and cuffs of lace even on their breeches. - -Parliament also got together an army of the people who wanted their -rights. They had their hair cut short and wore a hat with a tall crown -and very simple clothes. A country gentleman named Oliver Cromwell -trained a regiment of soldiers to be such good fighters that they were -called Ironsides. - -[Illustration: King Charles and Oliver Cromwell.] - -The king’s army was made up of men who prepared for battle by drinking -and feasting. The parliamentary army prayed before going into battle -and sang hymns and psalms as they marched. - -At last after many battles the king’s army was beaten and King Charles -was taken prisoner. A small part of Parliament then took things in -their own hands, and though they had no right to do so they tried King -Charles and condemned him to death. They found him guilty of being a -traitor and a murderer and other terrible things. Then he was taken -out in front of his palace in London in the year 1649 and his head -was cut off. People now feel that this was a shameful thing for the -parliamentary army to do to the king, and even at that time only a part -of the English people were in favor of it. He might have been sent away -instead of being killed, or he might have had his office of king taken -away from him. - -Oliver Cromwell, the commander of the parliamentary army then ruled -over England for a few years. He was a coarse-looking person with -very rough manners, but honest and religious, and he ruled England as -a stern and strict father might rule his family. He would stand no -nonsense. Once when he was having his picture painted--for there were -no photographs then--the artist left out a big wart he had on his face. -Cromwell angrily told him, “Paint me as I am, wart and all.” Cromwell -was really a king although he called himself Protector, but he did a -great deal that was good for England. - -When Cromwell died his son became ruler after him, just as if he were -the son of a king, but the son was unable to fill his father’s shoes. -He meant well, but he hadn’t the brains or the ability that his father -had, and so in a few months he resigned. Oliver Cromwell had been so -strict that the English people had forgotten about their troubles under -the Stuarts. So in 1660 when the English found themselves without a -ruler they invited back the son of Charles I, whom they had beheaded, -and once more a Stuart became king. This was Charles II. - -Charles was called the Merry Monarch because all he seemed to think -about was eating and drinking, amusing himself, and having a good time. -He made fun of things that were holy and sacred. To revenge himself on -those who had put his father to death he had those of them who were -still living killed in the most horrible way one could think of. Those -that were dead already, Oliver Cromwell among them, were taken from -their tombs; then their dead bodies were hung and afterward beheaded. - -In his reign that old and terrible disease, the plague, broke loose -again in London. Some people thought that God had caused it, that -He was shocked by the behavior of the king and his people especially -toward holy things, that He was punishing them. The next year, 1666, a -great fire started and burned up thousands of houses, and hundreds of -churches were destroyed. But the Great Fire, as it was called, cleaned -up the disease and dirt and was therefore really a blessing. London had -been a city of wooden houses. It was rebuilt of brick and stone. - -Only one more Stuart ruler shall I tell you about--or rather a royal -pair, William and Mary--because in their reign the fight between the -people and their kings was once for all finally settled. In 1688 -Parliament drew up an agreement called the Declaration of Right, which -William and Mary signed. This agreement made Parliament ruler over the -nation, and ever since, Parliament and not the king has been the real -ruler of England. So I think we have heard enough of the Stuarts for a -while. - - - - -68 - -Red Cap and Red Heels - - -The last Louis I told you about was a saint--the Louis who went on the -last Crusade. - -The two Louis I’m going to tell you about now were not saints--not by -any means. - -They were Louis XIII and Louis XIV and they ruled France while the -Stuarts were reigning in the seventeenth century in England. - -Louis XIII was king in name only. Another man told him what to do, -and he did it. Strange to say, this other man was a great ruler of -the church called a cardinal, who wore a red cap and a red gown. The -cardinal’s name was Richelieu. - -Now, you are probably sick and tired of hearing about wars, but during -the reign of Louis XIII another long war started, and I must tell -you something about it for it lasted thirty years. It was therefore -called the Thirty Years’ War. It was different from most wars. It was -not a war of one country against another. It was a war between the -Protestants and Catholics. - -Cardinal Richelieu was of course a Catholic and the real ruler of -France, which was a Catholic country. Nevertheless, he took sides with -the Protestants, for they were fighting a Catholic country called -Austria, and he wanted to beat Austria. Most of the countries in Europe -took part in this war, but Germany was the battle-ground where most of -the fighting was done. Even Sweden, a northern country of Europe which -we have not heard of before, took part. The king of Sweden at this time -was named Gustavus Adolphus, and he was called the Snow King because he -was king of such a cold country, and also the Lion of the North, for -he was such a brave fighter. I am mentioning him particularly because -of all kings and rulers in Europe at this time he was the finest -character. Indeed, most of the other rulers thought only of themselves, -and they would lie and cheat and steal and even murder to get what -they wanted, but Gustavus Adolphus was fighting for what he thought -was right. Gustavus Adolphus was a Protestant, and so he came down -into Germany and fought on the side of the Protestants. He was a great -general, and his army won. But unfortunately he himself was at last -killed in battle. The Protestants came out ahead in the Thirty Years’ -War, and at last a famous treaty of peace was made called the Treaty of -Westphalia. By this treaty it was agreed that each country should have -whatever religion its ruler had; it could be Protestant or Catholic as -the ruler wished. - -During the Thirty Years’ War the plague, that old deadly contagious -disease we have heard of before, broke out in Germany. A little town -named Oberammergau prayed that it might be spared. The townspeople -vowed that if they were spared they would give a play of Christ’s life -once every ten years. They _were_ spared, and so every ten years, ever -since then, with only a few exceptions, they have been giving what is -called the Passion Play. As it is the only place in the world where it -is ever given, tens of thousands of Christians from all over the globe -travel to this little out-of-the-way village to see these peasants act -the stories of Christ’s life. The play is given on Sundays during the -summer of the tenth year and lasts all day long. There are about seven -hundred people who take part, half of all the people in the town. It -is a great honor to be chosen to play the part of a saint; it is the -highest earthly honor to be selected to play the part of Christ; and it -is a disgrace to be left out entirely. - -The next French king to rule after Louis XIII and Richelieu was Louis -XIV. - -The people in England had at last succeeded in getting the power to -rule themselves through their Parliament. But in France Louis would -let no one rule but himself. He said, “I am the state,” and he would -let no one have a say in the government. This was the same as the -Stuarts’ Divine Right of Kings, which the English people had put an end -to. Louis ruled for more than seventy years. This is the longest time -that any one in history has ever ruled. - -[Illustration: Louis XIV.] - -Louis XIV was called the Grand Monarch, and everything he did was to -show off. He was always parading and strutting about as if he were -the leading character in a play and not just an ordinary human being. -He wore corsets and a huge powdered wig and shoes with very high red -heels, to make himself appear taller. That, I suppose, is why some -ladies to-day wear high heels called French heels. He carried a long -cane, stuck out his elbows, turned out his toes, and strutted up and -down, for he thought these things made him seem grand, important, -imposing. - -All this may sound as if Louis were a silly person with no sense, but -you must not get that idea. In spite of his absurd manners he made -France the chief power in Europe. He was almost constantly fighting -other countries, trying to increase the size of France and to add to -his kingdom, but I have already told you so much about so many fights, -that I’m not going to tell you any more about his just now, for you -would probably not read it if I did. So France had her turn as leader -of all the other countries as Spain and England had had. - -Louis built a magnificent palace at Versailles in which were marble -halls, beautiful paintings, and many huge mirrors in which he could see -himself as he strutted along. The palace was surrounded by a park with -wonderful fountains. The water for the fountains had to be brought a -long distance, and it cost thousands of dollars to have the fountains -play just for a few minutes. Even to-day sight-seers visit Versailles -to see the magnificent palace rooms and to watch the fountains play. - -But Louis surrounded himself not only with beautiful things. He also -surrounded himself with all the most interesting men and women of his -time. All those who could do anything exceptionally well, all those who -could paint well or write well or talk well or play well or look well, -he brought together to live with him or near by him. This was called -his _court_. Those in his Court were “in society.” They were the chosen -few who looked down on all the others who were not in society. - -[Illustration: Louis XIV getting ready for bed.] - -This was all very fine for the people who were lucky enough to be “in -society”--in Louis’s court. But the poor people of France, those not in -his court, were the ones who had to pay Louis’s expenses and those of -his court. They were the ones who had to pay for his parties and balls -and feasts and for all sorts of presents which he gave his friends. So -we shall see presently what happened. The poor people would not stand -that sort of thing forever. “The worm will turn,” we say. - -[Illustration] - - - - -69 - -A Self-Made Man - - -Who was the Father of His Country? - -I know what you will say: - -“George Washington.” - -But there was another man called “The Father of His Country” before -Washington was born, and he was not an American. - -In the east of Europe there is a great country as large as our own, -and its name is Russia. Very little had been heard of Russia before -the Year 1700, for although it was the largest country in Europe, its -people were only about half civilized. The Russians were a branch of -the great Aryan family called Slavs, but although they were white -people, they were living so close to the yellow people in China that -they had become much like them in many of their ways. Then, too, the -terrible Genghis Khan and his yellow Mongols had conquered Russia -in the thirteenth century and ruled over the land. So although the -Russians were Christians, they were in every other way more like the -people of the East than like Europeans. The men had long beards and -wore long coats. The women wore veils like those the Turkish women -wore. The people counted with balls strung on wires as the Chinese did. - -Well, just before 1700 there was born a Russian prince named Peter. -When a small boy, Peter was very much afraid of the water. But he felt -so ashamed that he, a prince, should fear anything that he forced -himself to get used to the water. He would go to it and play in it and -sail boats on it, although all the time he was almost scared to death. -And so at last he not only got over this great fear but he came to like -the water and boats more than any other playthings. - -When Peter grew up the thing he wanted more than anything else in the -world was to make his country important in Europe, for before this time -it had not been. It was big but not great. And his people had to be -civilized. But before he could teach his own people, who were most of -them very poor and ignorant, he had to learn himself. As there was no -one in Russia who could teach him what he wanted to know, he disguised -himself as a common laborer and went to the little country of Holland. -Here he got a job in a shipbuilding yard and worked for several months, -cooking his own food and mending his own clothes. While he was doing -this, however, he learned all about building ships and studied many -other things besides, such as blacksmithing, cobbling shoes, and even -pulling teeth. - -Then he went to England, and everywhere he went he learned all he -could. At last he returned to his own country with the knowledge he had -gained and set to work to make Russia over. First of all, Peter wanted -Russia to have a fleet of ships as other nations had. But in order to -have a fleet he had to have water for his ships, and Russia had almost -no land bordering on the water. So Peter planned to take a sea-shore -away from the neighboring country of Sweden. - -Now the king of Sweden at this time was Charles. He was the twelfth -king named Charles that Sweden had had. Charles XII was hardly more -than a boy, and Peter thought it would be an easy matter to beat -this boy and help himself to whatever land he wanted on the water. -But Charles was not an ordinary boy. He was an extra-ordinary boy, -extra-ordinarily bright and gifted, and he had been unusually well -educated besides. He knew several languages; he had learned to ride a -horse when he was four years old and how to hunt and to fight. Besides -all this, he feared neither hardship nor danger. Indeed, he was such a -daredevil that people called him the Madman of the North. So at first -Peter’s army was beaten by Charles. - -But Peter took his beating calmly, simply remarking that Charles would -soon teach the Russian army how to win. Indeed, so successful was -Charles at first in fighting Peter and all others who threatened him -that the countries of Europe began to think of him as Alexander the -Great come to life again, and they feared he might conquer them all. -But at last the Russians did win against Charles, and Peter got his -sea-shore. Then Peter built the fleet for which he had been working and -planning for so many years. - -The capital of Russia was Moscow. It was a beautiful city but near -the center of that country and far from the water. This didn’t suit -Peter at all. Peter wanted a fine city for his capital, but he wanted -it right on the water’s edge, so that he could have his beloved ships -close to him. So he picked out a spot not only on the water but mostly -water, for it was chiefly a marsh. Then he put a third of a million -people to work filling in the marsh, and on this he built a beautiful -city. This city he called St. Petersburg in honor of his patron -saint, the apostle Peter, after whom he himself had been named. The -name of St. Petersburg was later changed to Petrograd and recently to -Leningrad. Then Peter improved the laws, started schools, and built -factories and hospitals and taught his people arithmetic, so that they -could count without having to use balls strung on strings. He made -his people dress like other Europeans. He made the men cut off their -long beards, which he thought looked countrified. The men thought it -indecent to have no beards so some saved them to be placed in their -coffins in order that at the day of resurrection they could appear -before God unashamed. He introduced all sorts of things that he found -in Europe but which were unknown in his own country, and he really made -Russia over into a great European nation, so that is why he is called -Peter the Great, the Father of his Country. - -Peter fell in love with a poor peasant girl, an orphan named Catherine, -and married her. She had no education, but she was very sweet and -lovely and bright and quick-witted, so the marriage turned out happily. -The Russians were shocked at the idea of having a queen who was not a -princess and was so low-born. But Peter had her crowned, and after he -died she ruled over Russia. - - - - -70 - -A Prince Who Ran Away - - -If you put a P in front of Russia it makes--Prussia. This is the name -of a little country in Europe, which is now a part of Germany. Russia -was big, and Peter made it great. Prussia was small, but another king -made it also great. This king was named Frederick. He, too, lived in -the eighteenth century, but a little later than Peter, and he, too, was -called “the Great”--Frederick the Great. - -Frederick’s father, who was the second king of Prussia, had a hobby for -collecting giants--as you might collect postage-stamps. Wherever he -heard of a very tall man, no matter in what country and no matter what -it cost to get him, he bought or hired him. This collection of giants -he made into a remarkable company of soldiers which was his special -pride. - -He was a very cranky, cross, and bad-tempered old king. He treated his -children terribly, especially his son Frederick, whom he called Fritz. -Fritz had curls and liked music and poetry and fancy clothes. And his -father thought he was growing up to be a girl-boy. This disgusted his -father, for he wanted a son who would be a soldier and fighter. His -father when angry used to throw dishes at him, lock him up for days -at a time, and feed him on bread and water and whip him with a cane. -Finally Fritz could stand it no longer, and he ran away. He was caught -and brought back. His father was so angry with his son for disobeying -and acting as he had done that he was actually going to have him -killed--yes, put to death--but at the last minute was persuaded not to -do it. - -But here is a funny thing: When Fritz grew up to be Frederick, he -turned out just what his father wanted him to be--a great soldier and -fighter. He still loved poetry and even tried to write poems himself, -and he was very fond of music and he played the flute very well, -indeed. But Frederick wanted above everything else to make his country -important in Europe; for before his time it was of little account, and -no one paid much attention to it. - -Now, the neighboring country to Prussia was Austria. Austria was ruled -over by a woman. This woman was named Maria Theresa. Maria Theresa had -become ruler of Austria at the same time that Frederick had become king -of Prussia. Some people thought a woman was not a fit person to rule -over a country. Frederick’s father had promised to let Maria Theresa -alone--he had promised not to fight a woman--but when Frederick became -king he wanted to add a part of Austria to his own country, and so he -simply helped himself to the piece of Maria Theresa’s country that he -wanted. He didn’t care if she was a woman or whether it was fair or -not. Of course this started a war. Before long almost every country in -Europe was fighting either with Frederick or against him. But Frederick -not only succeeded in getting what he was after; he succeeded in -holding on to it. - -Maria Theresa, however, would not give up. She wanted to get back what -had been wrongfully taken away from her. So she began quietly and -secretly to get ready for another war against Frederick. Quietly and -secretly she got other countries to promise to help her. But Frederick -heard of what she was doing, and suddenly he attacked her again, and -for seven long years this next war went on. So this was called the -Seven Years’ War. Frederick kept on fighting until he had beaten -Austria for good and until he had gained his purpose, which was to make -his little country of Prussia the most powerful country in Europe. -He still held on to the part of Austria that he had at first taken -away. Maria Theresa was a great queen, and she would have won against -Frederick had he been an ordinary king. But she had too strong a ruler -against her. Frederick was one of the world’s smartest generals and too -much for her. - -The Seven Years’ War, strange to say, was fought out not only in -Europe but in far-off America, also. England had taken Frederick’s -side. France and other countries had taken sides against him. So the -English settlers in America, who were on Frederick’s side, fought the -French settlers, who were against him. When, therefore, Frederick -won in Europe, the English in America also won against the French in -America. I am telling you all this because that is why we in America -speak English instead of French to-day. If Frederick had lost, France -would have won, and we here in America would probably now speak French -instead of English. - -Frederick, like some other kings we have heard of before, thought -nothing of lying or cheating or stealing if he had to in order to -get the better of other countries. Fair means or foul means made no -difference to him. But his own people he treated as if they were his -children and did everything he could for them. Like a lioness with her -cubs, he fought for his family, even with the world against him. - -There was a mill close by Frederick’s palace that belonged to a poor -miller. As it was not a pretty thing to be so near, the king wanted -to buy it in order to tear it down and get rid of it. But the miller -would not sell. Although Frederick the Great offered the miller a large -sum of money, he refused. A great many kings would simply have taken -the mill and perhaps put the miller in jail or put him to death, but -Frederick did neither, for he thought his lowliest subject had his -rights and that if he didn’t want to sell he shouldn’t be made to. So -he left the miller undisturbed, and the mill stands to-day as it did -then, close to the palace. - -Though Frederick was a German, strange to say, he hated the German -language. He thought it the language of the uneducated. He himself -spoke French and wrote in French and only spoke German when he had to -talk to his servants or those who did not understand French. - -[Illustration] - - - - -71 - -America Gets Rid of Her King - - - -Did you know that we once had a king? - -His name was George. - -No, George Washington wasn’t a king. - -This was another George. - -You remember the Stuarts in England--James, Charles, and the rest of -the family who ruled England for a hundred years from 1600 to 1700. -Well about 1700 England ran out of Stuarts--there were no more Stuart -children. - -As England had to have another king, they asked a distant relative of -the royal family over from one of the German states to rule England. -Yes, from Germany to rule England. His name was George, and the English -called him George I. George couldn’t even speak English. He was German -and loved his own country much better than England, but he had agreed -to come and rule over England, and he did so. You can imagine what sort -of a king he was. His son, George II ruled after him, although he, -too, was more German than English. But when the grandson, George III, -came to the throne he was a born and bred Englishman. It was in this -grandson’s reign, in the reign of George III, that our own country, the -United States, was born. - -When a wheel turns over we call it a _revolution_, which is a big name -for a little thing. - -When a _country_ turns over we also call it a revolution, which is a -big name for a big thing. - -Our country had started with the two little settlements, or colonies, -as they were called, of Jamestown and Plymouth. But it had grown and -grown until there were now a number of settlements along the coast -of the Atlantic Ocean. Most of the people who had settled here were -English, and the king of England ruled over them. The king asked all -these people to send him money, which was called taxes. Now, the money -collected from taxes was not, of course, for the king to put in his -pocketbook to use as he liked. It was supposed to be spent on the -people who were taxed, to be used for roads, schools, police, and such -things that are for the good of all. - -So these people along the coast who were paying money or taxes to the -king far off across the water thought they ought to have a vote to say -how this money should be spent and on what it should be spent. But they -did not have a vote, and so they thought they ought not to have to pay -taxes to the king away off in England. - -One of the leading citizens of America at this time was a man named -Benjamin Franklin. He was the son of a candlemaker, but from a poor boy -who had once walked the streets of Philadelphia with a loaf of bread -under each arm he had risen to a very honored position in the country. -He had learned to be a printer and had started one of the first and -best newspapers in the United States. He was a great thinker and had -invented a stove and a lamp and had succeeded in getting electricity -from the lightning in the clouds by flying a kite with a wire during a -storm. He was one of the Wise Men of the West. - -Franklin was sent over to England to try to get the king to change his -mind about taxing the colonies or to bring about some sort of agreement -with him. But King George was hardheaded, and Franklin was unable to -stop the king from doing what he had made up his mind to do. - -So the people in America, finding that talking did no good, started in -to fight. They raised an army. Then they tried to find a good man to -command the army. Such a leader must be honest and brave; he must have -a good mind; he must love his country; and he must be a good fighter. -So they looked around for a man who had all these qualities, and they -found one. The man they picked was honest and brave, for when he was a -boy, he had cut down a favorite tree of his father’s just to try a new -hatchet he had been given. In those days to cut down a cherry-tree was -a crime for which by law a man could be put to death. When this boy was -asked by his angry father if he had done it he said, “I cannot tell a -lie; I did.” Of course, now you know who it was--George Washington. - -[Illustration: George Washington surveying Lord Fairfax’s farm.] - -George learned to be a surveyor--that is, a man who measures land--and -when only sixteen years old he was employed to survey the large farm -of Lord Fairfax in Virginia; that showed he had a good mind. He then -had been a soldier and had fought the Indians bravely and well; that -showed that he loved his country and was a good fighter. So George -Washington was chosen to lead the American army against the English. - -The Americans did not at first think of starting a new country. They -simply wanted the same rights that Englishmen in England had. But -they soon found out that there was only one way to get those rights, -and that was to start a new country independent of England. So a man -named Thomas Jefferson wrote a paper which was called a Declaration of -Independence--can you say it?--because it declared that the colonies -were going to be independent of England. There were fifty-six Americans -chosen by the people to sign it. Each one of the signers would have -been put to death as a traitor to England if the United States had not -won, and each signer knew it, yet he signed it nevertheless. But just -signing this paper didn’t make England give up the colonies. Oh, no! -King George’s armies tried to stop the colonies from getting away from -the rule of England. - -Washington had a very small army with which to fight the English army, -and very little money with which to pay the soldiers or to supply them -with food or clothes or powder and shot. One winter the soldiers nearly -froze and starved to death, for they had little clothing and hardly any -food but carrots, and it seemed as if the war could not go on unless -they got help. Yet Washington kept up their spirits. - -Benjamin Franklin was sent across the ocean, not to England this time -of course, but to France to see if he couldn’t get some help from that -country. France hated England because she had lost part of America, -Canada, in the Seven Years’ War, but at first France would not help. -She took little interest in the fight for Washington’s army had lost a -number of battles against the English, and people don’t like to back a -loser. But the year after the Declaration of Independence the American -army beat the English badly at a place called Saratoga in New York -State. Then the king of France became more interested, and then he sent -help to the colonies to carry on the war. A young French nobleman named -Lafayette hurried over from France and fought under General Washington -and did so well that he has made a great name for himself. - -England, seeing that things were going against her, now wanted to make -peace with the Americans and give them the same rights that English -citizens had, but it was then too late. At the beginning of the war the -Americans would have agreed to this and been glad to agree, but now -they would agree to nothing less than entire independence of England; -and so the War went on, for England would not let the colonies go. - -The English had been beaten by the Yankees, as they called them in the -North, at a place called Saratoga. So then they sent their general, -Lord Cornwallis, to the south of our country to see if he could beat -the people there. General Greene was put in command of the Southern -American soldiers. Lord Cornwallis tried to fight Greene, but Greene -led Cornwallis a merry chase round the country until he was all tired -out and finally went into a little place called Yorktown in Virginia. -Here Cornwallis and his army were caught fast so that they could not -get out. On one side was the American army, and on the water side were -the French war-ships that had been sent over to help. So Cornwallis had -to surrender. - -King George then said, “Let us have peace”; and in 1783 the war was -ended by a treaty of peace, eight years after it had started, and the -colonies were independent of England. This was called the Revolutionary -War, and after it was over our country was called the United States. - -There were just thirteen of these original colonies that joined as -partners in this Union. That is why there are just thirteen stripes in -our flag. Some people think thirteen is an unlucky number; but our flag -with its thirteen stripes still waves over the land, and it has brought -us good luck; don’t you think so? - -Washington was made the first President, and so he is called the Father -of His Country; the First in War, the First in Peace, and the First in -the Hearts of his Countrymen. - -[Illustration] - - - - -72 - -Upside Down (header upside down) - - -Measles and Mumps are very catching. - -So are Revolutions. - -Just a little later than the Revolution of the thirteen colonies, the -people in France had a Revolution, too. They saw how successful the -Americans had been in their fight against the king of England, and so -they rebelled against their own king and queen in France. This was -called the French Revolution. - -The reason the French people rebelled against their king was because -they had very little, and the king and his royal family and nobles -seemed to have everything. Both the Americans and the French rebelled -against paying taxes. With the Americans, however, it was a matter of -principle more than anything else. Their taxes were not very large, -but they thought them unjust. The French taxes, however, not only were -unjust but they took almost everything away from the people. - -I have already told you how bad things were under Louis XIV, and they -got worse until the people could stand it no longer. - -At this time the king of France was Louis XVI, and his queen was -named Marie Antoinette. Although the people were so poor they had -hardly anything to eat except a very coarse and bad-tasting kind of -bread called black bread; they were compelled to pay the king and the -nobles money so that they could live in fine style and have “parties”; -and they had to do all sorts of work for them for nothing or next to -nothing. If any one complained he was put in a great prison in Paris -called the Bastille and left there to die. In spite of the fact that -all the people were so terribly poor, the king and the queen and their -friends lived in luxury and extravagance with everything in the world -they wanted, all paid for by the poor people. - -Neither the king nor his wife was really wicked. They were simply young -and thoughtless. They meant well, but like a great many well-meaning -people they lacked common sense and did not know how others lived. They -didn’t seem to understand that people _could_ be poor, for they had so -much themselves. Marie Antoinette was told that her subjects had no -bread to eat. “Then why don’t they eat cake?” she is said to have asked. - -To right the wrongs of the people, a body of many of the best men from -all France gathered together and, calling themselves the National -Assembly, tried to work out some plan to do away with all the injustice -the people had been suffering. They wanted to make every one free and -equal and give everybody a “say” in the government. - -But the poor had become so furiously mad at the way they had been -treated by the rich that they would stand things no longer and a wild -and angry mob of them attacked the old prison of the Bastille. They -battered down the walls and freed the prisoners and killed the guards -of the Bastille simply because they were servants of the king. Then -they cut off the heads of the guards and stuck them on poles and, -carrying them aloft, paraded through the streets of Paris. There were -only about half a dozen prisoners in the old jail, so that freeing them -didn’t matter much, but this attack was to show that the people would -no longer allow the king to imprison them. - -The Bastille was stormed on July 14, 1789. This is the beginning of -what is called the French Revolution, and this day is celebrated in -France in almost the same way that our Fourth of July is, for it is the -French Declaration of Independence against kings. - -Lafayette, who was now back in France, the same Lafayette who had -helped the Americans fight their king, sent the key of the Bastille -over to George Washington as a souvenir that his own country had now -overthrown its king and declared its independence. - -The king and queen were living in the beautiful palace at Versailles, -the palace that Louis XIV had built. All the king’s nobles, when they -heard what was taking place in Paris, became frightened and, deserting -their king and queen, took to their heels and left the country. They -knew pretty well what was going to happen, and they didn’t wait to see. - -Meanwhile the National Assembly drew up what was called a Declaration -of the Rights of Man, which was something like our Declaration of -Independence. It said that all men were born free and equal, that the -people should make the laws and the laws should be the same for all. - -Soon after the Declaration of Rights had been made, the mad mob from -Paris, ragged and wild-looking, carrying sticks and stones, and -crying, “Bread, bread!” marched out the ten miles to Versailles, where -Louis and Marie Antoinette were still living. Up the beautiful grand -staircase of the palace they rushed. The few guards remaining round -the king were unable to hold them back. They captured the king and -queen and took them prisoners to Paris. There they kept Louis and Marie -Antoinette prisoners for several years. Once the king and queen tried -to escape in disguise but were caught before they could get out of the -country and brought back. - -Then it was that the National Assembly drew up a Constitution--a set -of rules by which the country should be justly governed. This the king -agreed to and signed. - -[Illustration: French revolution crowd and guillotine.] - -But that still wasn’t enough. The people wanted no king at all to rule -over them. So about a year later they started a real republic like our -own, and the king was sentenced to death. A Frenchman had invented -a kind of machine with a big knife for chopping off heads. This was -called the guillotine, and it was used instead of an ax, for it was -quicker and surer. So the king was taken to the guillotine, and his -head was cut off. - -But the people did not settle down quiet and contented when they had -got rid of their king. They were afraid that those who were in favor -of kings might start another kingdom. The people chose red, white, and -blue as their colors and the “Marseillaise” as their national song; and -everywhere they marched they carried the tricolor, as they called the -three-colored flag, and as they marched they sang the “Marseillaise.” - -Then began what is called the Reign of Terror, and this is a tale of -blood. A man named Robespierre and two of his friends were leaders in -this Reign of Terror. Any one whom the people suspected of being in -favor of kings they caught and beheaded. The queen was one of the first -to have her head cut off. If any one even whispered, “there’s a man, -or there’s a woman, or there’s a child who is in favor of kings,” that -man, woman, or child would be rushed to the guillotine. If any one -simply hated another and wished to get rid of him, all he had to do was -to point him out as in favor of kings, and off he would be taken to the -guillotine. No one was sure of his life for a day. He never knew what -moment some personal enemy might accuse him. Hundreds, then thousands, -of suspected people were beheaded, and a special sewer had to be built -to carry off the blood. But the guillotine, fast as it was, was too -slow for the Terrorists. It could cut off but one head at a time, and -so prisoners were lined up and shot down with cannons. - -People seemed to have gone wild, crazy, mad! They insulted Christ and -the Christian religion. They put a pretty woman called the Goddess of -Reason on the altar of the beautiful Church of Notre Dame and worshiped -her instead of the Lord. They pulled down statues and pictures of -Christ and the Virgin Mary. In their places they put statues and -pictures of their own leaders. The guillotine was put up in place of -the cross. They did away with Sundays. They made a week ten days long, -and every tenth day they made a holiday instead of Sunday. They stopped -counting time from Christ’s birth, because they didn’t want anything -that had to do with Christ, and they began to call the year when the -republic was started in 1792 the year 1. - -But Robespierre wished to rule alone, and he plotted against his two -friends. One of these he had beheaded, and the other was killed in his -bath-tub by a girl named Charlotte Corday, who was in a rage at what he -had done. So Robespierre was left alone. At last the people, in fear of -this man who was such a monstrous and inhuman tyrant, rose up against -him. When he found that he too, was to be put to death, he tried to -commit suicide, but, before he could do so he was caught and taken to -the guillotine, where he went to the same death to which he had sent -countless others, and the Reign of Terror was ended. It was a pity that -he hadn’t a thousand lives with which to pay for the thousands of lives -he had taken away. - -[Illustration] - - - - -73 - -A Little Giant - - -At last the Revolution was stopped. - -It was stopped by a young soldier only about twenty years old and sixty -inches tall. - -The Government was holding a meeting in the palace while a mad mob in -the streets outside were trying to attack the palace. A young soldier -had been given a few men and told to keep the mob away. The young -soldier pointed cannons down each street that led to the palace, and -no one dared to show himself. This young soldier was named Napoleon -Bonaparte. He made such a fine record that people wanted to know who he -was and where he came from. - -Napoleon had been born on a little island called Corsica in the -Mediterranean Sea. He was born just in time to be a Frenchman, for the -island of Corsica had belonged to Italy and had only just been given to -France a few weeks before he was born. As soon as he was old enough, -he was sent off to a military school in France. There his French -schoolmates looked upon him as a foreigner and didn’t have much to -do with him. But Napoleon made high marks in arithmetic, and he loved -hard problems. Once he shut himself up in his room to work over a hard -problem, and there he stayed for three days and nights until he had -found the answer. - -Napoleon showed by the way he put an end to the French Revolution that -he was going to be a fine soldier, and so when he was only twenty-six -years old he was made a general. - -Now, at this time all the other countries of Europe had kings. France -had caught the fever of revolution from the Americans all the way -across the ocean and had got rid of her kings. The kings of these other -countries were afraid their people might catch the fever of revolution, -too. So all of these other countries became enemies of France because -France had put an end to her kings. - -Napoleon was sent off to fight Italy. He had to cross the Alps, which -Hannibal in the Punic Wars had crossed long before. But Hannibal had no -heavy cannons when he crossed; it seemed impossible for Napoleon’s army -to cross with cannons. Napoleon asked his engineers, the men who were -supposed to know about such things, if it could be done. They said they -thought it was impossible. - -“Impossible,” Napoleon angrily replied, “is a word found only in the -dictionary of fools.” Then he shouted: - -“There shall be no Alps!” and went ahead and crossed them. His army won -in Italy, and when he returned to France he was greeted by the people -as a conquering hero. But the men who were then governing France were -afraid of him. They feared he might try to make himself king because -he was so popular with the people. Napoleon, however, asked to be sent -to conquer Egypt because he had an idea he could get the better of the -English there. He thought he might then cut England off from India, the -new country that they had won in the reign of James I. England had lost -America, but she didn’t want to lose India. - -The French Government was very glad to get rid of Napoleon, and so they -sent him off to Egypt as he asked. He quickly conquered Egypt as Julius -Cæsar had done, but there was no Cleopatra to upset his plans. While -he was conquering Egypt, his fleet, which was waiting for him at the -mouth of the Nile, was caught and destroyed by the English fleet under -a great admiral, if not the greatest that ever lived. His name was Lord -Nelson. - -Napoleon had no way to take his army back to France. So he left his -army in Egypt under command of another. He himself, however, managed -to find a ship to take him back home. When he reached France he found -that the men who were supposed to be governing were quarreling among -themselves, and, seeing his chance, he had himself made one of three -men chosen to rule France. He was called first consul; and there were -supposed to be two assistant consuls, but the assistants were little -more than clerks to do Napoleon’s bidding. It was only a very short -time before he was next made first consul for life. Then, not long -after that, he became emperor of France and also king of Italy. - -The other countries of Europe began to fear that Napoleon would conquer -them, too, and make them also a part of France. So all the other -countries joined together to beat him. Napoleon planned to conquer -England first, and he got ready a fleet to cross over to England. But -his fleet was caught off Spain near a point called Trafalgar by the -same English admiral, Lord Nelson, who had beaten him in Egypt. Before -this battle, Nelson said to his sailors, “England expects that every -man will do his duty,” and they did it. Napoleon’s fleet was utterly -destroyed, though Nelson himself was killed. - -Napoleon then gave up the idea of conquering England, and he turned his -attention in the opposite direction. He had beaten Spain and Prussia -and Austria. Almost all Europe either belonged to him or had to do -what he said. Then he attacked Russia. It was a great mistake he made, -for Russia was far off, and it was wintertime and very cold. Still, he -managed to reach Moscow way off in the center of Russia with his army. -But the Russians burned the city and destroyed all the food, so that -Napoleon had nothing with which to feed his army. It was terribly cold; -there were deep snows; and, in retreating, his army suffered enormous -losses. Napoleon himself soon made a bee-line to Paris leaving his army -to get back the best way they could. Men and horses died of cold and -hunger by the thousands. Napoleon reached Paris, but his fortune had -turned. All of Europe was getting ready to put an end to the tyrant, -and it was not long after this that he was hemmed in and beaten by his -enemies. - -When Napoleon saw that he was beaten, he signed a paper saying that he -would give up and leave France. And so he did, sailing away to a little -island called Elba, just off the coast of Italy, not far from the -island where he was born. - -[Illustration: Napoleon at St. Helena.] - -But Napoleon on the island of Elba got an idea that all was not lost -and that he might return to France and get back his power again. So all -of a sudden, to the surprise of France and the rest of the world, he -landed on the coast of France. The French Government at Paris sent an -army of his old soldiers against him with orders to meet him and bring -him to Paris in an iron cage. But when his old soldiers met their old -general they went over to his side, and so with them he marched on to -Paris. The English and German armies were north of France and preparing -to fight. Napoleon quickly got together an army and went forth to meet -them. At a little town called Waterloo, Napoleon fought his last -battle, for there he was utterly beaten by an English general named -Wellington. This was the Year 1815. We still speak and probably always -will speak of any great defeat as “Waterloo.” - -There is a peculiar sentence which reads backward the same as forward. -It is what Napoleon might have said after all was over. It is: - - ABLE WAS I ERE I SAW ELBA - -After Napoleon was beaten at Waterloo, the English took him away and -put him on a little island far off in the ocean where he could not -possibly escape. It was a lonely spot named St. Helena after the mother -of Constantine. Here he lived for six years before he died. - -Napoleon was probably the greatest general that ever lived, but that -does not mean that he was the greatest man. Some say he was the worst, -for just to make himself great, he killed hundreds of thousands of -people and brought destruction and ruin to the whole of Europe wherever -he fought his battles. - -This brings us up into the nineteenth century, for Napoleon died in -1821. How long ago is that? - - - - -74 - -From Pan and His Pipes to the Phonograph - - - Frogs croak; - Cats me-ow; - Dogs bark; - Sheep bleat; - Cows moo; - Lions roar; - Hyenas laugh; - But only birds and people _sing_. - All other animals simply make noises. - But people can do what birds cannot. - They can also make music out of _things_. - -Have you ever made a cigar-box fiddle or a pin piano or musical glasses? - -In the long-ago story-book times Apollo took a pair of cow-horns and -fastened between them seven strings made from the cow’s skin. This -was called a lyre. These strings he picked with his fingers or with -a quill, making a little tinkling sound that could hardly have been -very beautiful. Yet Apollo’s son Orpheus is said to have learned from -his father to play so beautifully on the lyre that the birds and wild -beasts and even trees and rocks gathered round to hear him. - -Pan, the god of the woods, who had goat’s horns and ears and legs and -feet, tied together several whistles of different lengths and played on -these as you might on a mouth-organ. This instrument was called Pan’s -pipes. - -The lyre and Pan’s pipes were the two earliest musical instruments. -The first was a stringed instrument; the second a wind instrument. The -long strings and long pipes made low notes; the short strings and short -pipes made high tones. - -From Apollo’s lyre we get the piano with its many, many strings. Did -you ever look at the inside of a piano and see the many strings of -different lengths? They are, however, not picked as the strings of a -lyre or harp are picked, but hammered by little felt-covered blocks as -you touch the keys. - -From Pan’s pipes we get the great church organ with its pipes like -giant whistles. You don’t, of course, blow the pipes with your mouth -as you do a whistle. The pipes are so big you must blow them with a -machine like a tire-pump, and you do this as you touch the keys. - -We know what the instruments in olden times were like, but we don’t -know what the music that people made was really like; there were no -phonographs to bottle up the sounds and, when uncorked a thousand -years later, to pour forth the old notes once again. The music went off -into thin air and was lost. - -It was not until about the Year 1000 A.D. that music could even be -written down. Before then all music was played “by ear,” for there was -no written music. A Benedictine monk named Guy, or, in Italian, Guido, -thought of a way to write down musical notes, and he named the notes -do, re, mi, fa, and so on. These were the first letters of the words of -a hymn to St. John which the monks sang like the scale. - -Another Italian is sometimes called the “father of modern music.” His -name is Palestrina, and he died about 1600. He set the church service -to music, and the pope ordered all churches to follow it, but the -people didn’t like his music very much; that is, it was not what we -call “popular.” - -It was not until a hundred years later--that is, about 1700--that the -first great musician lived who wrote music that was really popular, -that the people loved, and that we still love to-day. - -He was a German named Handel. His father was a barber, a dentist, and -doctor, and he wanted his boy to become a great lawyer. But the only -thing the boy liked was music. - -In those days there were no pianos. There was a little instrument -with strings which was played by touching keys. This was called a -clavichord. Sometimes it had legs like a table. Sometimes it had no -legs and was just laid on a table. - -[Illustration: Handel is found in the attic.] - -Handel, though only six years old, got hold of one of these -instruments, and, without any one finding out about it, he had it put -up in his room in the attic of his house. After every one had gone to -bed at night he would practise on this clavichord until late, when he -was supposed to be in bed. One night his family heard sounds up under -the roof. Wondering what it could be, they took a lantern, and, quietly -climbing the attic stairs, they suddenly opened the door, and there sat -little Handel in his night-clothes on a chair with his feet reaching -only half-way to the floor, playing on the clavichord. - -After that Handel’s father saw it was no use trying to make his son -a lawyer. So he got teachers for him, and before long the boy amazed -the world with his playing. He went to England, lived there, became -an Englishman, and when he died the English people buried him in -Westminster Abbey, a church in which famous Englishmen were buried. - -Handel “set the Bible to music.” These songs with the Bible words -to be sung by a chorus of voices were called _oratorios_, and one -of these oratorios named “The Messiah” is sung almost everywhere at -Christmas-time. - -Living at the same time with Handel was another German musician named -Bach. Bach played divinely on the organ as Handel did on the clavichord -and wrote some of the finest music for the organ that ever has been -written. Strange that both Handel and Bach went blind in their old age, -but to them it was sound, not sight, that counted most. Here is another -good subject for an argument: would you rather be deaf or blind? - -Almost all musical geniuses have been musical wonders when they were -still babies. They have been great musicians even before learning to -read and write. - -One such genius was born just before Handel died. He was an Austrian -named Mozart. - -Mozart when only four years old played the piano wonderfully. He also -wrote music--composing, it is called--for others to play. - -Mozart’s father and sister played very well, so the three went on a -concert tour. Mozart, the boy wonder, played before the empress, and -everywhere he went he was treated like a prince, petted and praised and -given parties and presents. - -Then he grew up and married, and ever after he had the hardest kind of -a time trying to make a living. He composed all sorts of things, plays -with music called operas, and symphonies, which are written for whole -orchestras to play; but he made so little money that when he died he -had to be buried where they put people who were too poor to have a -grave for themselves alone. People afterward thought it a shame that -such a great composer should have no monument over his grave, but then -it was too late to find where he was buried. A monument was put up, but -to this day no one knows where Mozart’s body lies. - -A German named Beethoven had read the stories of the boy wonder, -Mozart, and he thought he, too, would like to have a boy wonder to play -before kings and queens. So when his son Louis was only five years old -he kept the boy practising long hours at the piano until he became -so tired that the tears ran down his cheeks. But Louis Beethoven, or -Ludwig, as he was called in German, finally came to be one of the -greatest musicians that have ever lived. He could sit at the piano and -make up the most beautiful music as he went along--improvise, as it is -called--but he was never satisfied with it when written down. Time and -time again he would scratch out and rewrite his music until it had been -rewritten often a dozen times. - -But Beethoven’s hearing began to grow dull. He was worried that he -might lose it entirely--a terrible thing to happen to any one, but -to one whose hearing was his fortune nothing could be worse. And at -last he did become deaf. This loss of his hearing made Beethoven -hopelessly sad and bad-tempered, cross with everything and everybody. -Nevertheless, he didn’t give up; he kept on composing just the same, -even after he could no longer hear what he had written. - -Another great and unusual German musician named Wagner lived until -1883. Though he practised all his life, he never could play very well. -But he composed the most wonderful operas that have ever been written, -and he wrote not only the music but the words, too. He took old myths -and fairy-tales and made them into plays to be sung to music. At first -some people made fun of his music, for it seemed to them so noisy and -“slam-bangy” and without tune. But people now make fun of those “some -people” who don’t like it! - -I have told you in other places of painters and poets, of architects -and wise men, of kings and heroes, of wars and troubles. I have put -this story of music of all ages in one chapter which I have tucked in -here between the acts, to give you a rest for a moment from wars and -rumors of wars. - -When I was a boy I never heard any great musicians play. Now you and I -can turn on the phonograph any time and hear the music of Palestrina or -Mozart, of Beethoven or Wagner, of dozens of other masters, played or -sung to us whenever we wish; the greatest musicians become our slaves. -No caliph in the “Arabian Nights” could command such service to his -pleasure! - - - - -75 - -The Daily Papers of 1854-1865 - - -If you could go up into your grandfather’s attic or the attic of -somebody else’s grandfather, or would dig down into some old trunk, you -might find some of the newspapers that were printed during the years -from 1854 to 1865. Then you might actually read in these daily papers -the happenings that I am now going to tell you about. Many people still -alive have taken part in some of these events themselves or know those -who have. Under the heading, “Foreign News,” you would probably find -some of the following things told about: - -ENGLISH NEWS. At this time the queen of England was named Victoria. She -was much beloved by her people because she had such a kindly nature and -Christian spirit. She was more like a mother to her people than like a -queen. She ruled for more than half a century, and the time when she -ruled is called the Victorian Age. - -The English news of 1854 would tell about a war that the English were -then fighting with Russia. Russia was a long way off, and so the -English had to send their soldiers in boats through the Mediterranean -Sea to the end, then past Constantinople in to the Black Sea. There in -a little spot of land that jutted out from Russia into the Black Sea -most of the fighting was done. This little spot of land was called the -Crimea, and the war therefore was called the Crimean War. In this war -in that far-off land thousands of English soldiers died from wounds and -disease. - -Now, there was living in England at the time of this war a lady named -Florence Nightingale. She was very tender-hearted and always looking -out for and taking care of those that were sick. Even as a little girl -she had played that her dolls were sick with headache or a broken leg, -and she would bandage the aching head or broken leg and pretend to -take care of her sick patient. When her dog was ill she nursed him as -carefully as if he were a human being. - -Florence Nightingale heard that English soldiers were dying by the -thousands in that distant land far away from home and that there were -no nurses to take care of the wounded. So she got together a number of -ladies, and they went out to the Crimea. Before she arrived almost half -the soldiers who were wounded died--fifty soldiers out of a hundred; -after she and her nurses came, only two in a hundred died. She went -about through the camps and over the battlefields at night carrying a -lamp looking for the wounded. The soldiers called her the Lady of the -Lamp, and they all loved her. - -When at last the war was over and she returned to England, the -Government voted to give her a large sum of money for what she had -done. She, however, refused the money for herself but took it to found -a home for training nurses. Nowadays trained nurses are thought almost -as necessary as doctors, and any one who is sick can call in a trained -nurse to take care of him, but at that time there were no trained -nurses and no one had ever heard of such a thing. Florence Nightingale -was the first to start trained nursing, and so she is looked upon -almost as a saint by trained nurses. - -In one battle in the Crimea a company of soldiers mounted on horseback -were given by mistake an order to attack the enemy. Though they knew it -meant certain death, they never hesitated but charged, and two-thirds -of them were killed or wounded in less than half an hour. Lord -Tennyson, the English poet, has told this story in verse which you may -know. It is called “The Charge of the Light Brigade.” - -JAPANESE NEWS. Japan is a group of islands near China. Although I have -not told you about it before, it was an old country, settled in its -ways even before Rome was founded. In Europe there have been constant -changes of kings and rulers and people and countries. But in Japan they -have had the same line of kings since before Christ. - -Japan wanted no white people in her country, and, with a very few -exceptions, she had always kept them out. But in 1854, the same year -that England began the Crimean War, an American naval officer named -Commodore Perry went to Japan and made an agreement, or treaty, as -it is called, by which Japan allowed white people to come in and do -business with her people. The Japanese seemed hungry for knowledge, to -learn how to do things in the white man’s way. When Perry first went to -Japan the Japanese lived the same way they had a thousand years before. -They knew nothing of the white man’s inventions or ways of living. But -in fifty years’ time they have jumped a thousand years in civilization! - -These are some of the things you might read about in those old -newspapers. Such news would probably have taken up little space; -perhaps they would have been found down at the bottom of a column if -the newspaper were American. But if the paper was printed between 1861 -and 1864, the greater part of it would be about a war that was going on -in our own country at that time. This was a war between our own people, -a family quarrel, which we call the Civil War. - -Two parts of our country, the North and the South, did not agree on -several matters, chief of which was the question whether the South -could own slaves. So they went to war with each other. Each side fought -for what it believed was right, and thousands upon thousands gave their -lives for what they believed. The war lasted for four years, from 1861 -to 1865, before it was decided that no one could ever again own slaves -in the United States. - -Some of you who read these pages had grandfathers or great-grandfathers -who fought in this war. Some of these fought for the South; some fought -for the North. Some of them may have died for the South; some of them -may have died for the North. - -The President of the United States at this time was a man named Abraham -Lincoln. Lincoln was a very poor boy who had been born in a log cabin. -He had taught himself to read by the light of a blazing knot of wood -at night after his day’s work was done. As he was very poor, he had -only a few books, and these he read over and over again. One of these -books was the same “Æsop’s Fables” that you read. When Lincoln was a -young man, he became a storekeeper. One day he found that he had given -a poor woman a smaller package of tea than she had paid for, and so he -closed the store and walked many miles to her house in order to return -the change. People began to call him Honest Abe after that, for he was -always very honest and kind-hearted. - -[Illustration: Lincoln visiting camp and shaking hands with the -soldiers.] - -He studied hard and became a lawyer and at last was elected President -of the United States. One day while he was in a theater watching a play -he was shot and killed by one of the actors who thought Lincoln had not -done right in freeing the slaves. - -Lincoln was one of our greatest Presidents. Washington started our -country; Lincoln prevented its splitting into two parts, and kept it -together as one big united land to grow into the great country it now -is. - - - - -76 - -Three New Postage-Stamps - - -We are getting pretty close to the present time, to “Now.” - -Let us look backward a minute to see what had been going on in Europe -since the time of Napoleon. - -After Napoleon had been sent to Elba, the French had to have another -ruler. They wanted their old kings back again. The family name of -their old kings was Bourbon. So the French thought they ought to have -a Bourbon ruler over them. Accordingly they tried out three Bourbons -one after the other, all relatives of their last king, whom they had -beheaded. - -But all of them proved no good, the French people had given the Bourbon -family a good tryout, and so at last they stopped worrying with kings -and started another republic. - -Now, a republic has a president instead of a king, so that the people -had to choose a president; and whom do you suppose they picked -out? Why, the nephew of Napoleon. The nephew of Napoleon was named -Louis Napoleon. He had planned and plotted again and again to make -himself king of France, but again and again he had failed. And now he -was elected president! But Louis Napoleon didn’t want to be _only_ -president. He wanted to be like his uncle the great Napoleon. He -dreamed of being emperor and conquering Europe, and so it was not long -after this before he had himself made emperor, and he called himself -Napoleon III.[5] - -[5] Napoleon I had a young son who might have been Napoleon II if -he had lived. The story is, that when Napoleon III was made emperor -his name was printed simply with three exclamation marks after -it--“Napoleon!!!” and this was by mistake read Napoleon III. - -Napoleon III was jealous of the neighboring country of Prussia. She was -getting to be too strong, he thought. Prussia had a king at this time -named William who was very able himself, and he had an able assistant -or prime minister named Bismarck, who was looking for an excuse to -fight France. So presently a war was started between the two countries -in 1870. Napoleon soon found he had made a bad mistake in picking the -war with Prussia. Prussia was not _getting_ too strong; she was already -too strong. - -Napoleon III was completely beaten by Prussia, and he with a large army -had to surrender. Then in disgrace he went to live in England. - -The Prussians marched into Paris and made the French agree to pay them -a billion dollars. When some of the French towns said they couldn’t -pay, Bismarck lined up the leading citizens of the place and told them -they would be shot if they didn’t raise the money that was demanded. -So France paid, and to the wonder and amazement of everybody she paid -this immense sum in two years’ time. But the French and the French -children have never forgotten the way they were made to pay and the way -they were treated by the Prussians, and so ever since then there has -been deadly enmity between these two countries. This war was called the -Franco-Prussian War, as it was between France and Prussia. - -There were a number of little countries near Prussia. They were called -German states. But though their people were related, the countries or -states were separate. As a result of this war, Prussia was able to join -all these German states together and to make for the first time one -big, strong, powerful nation called Germany, feared by other countries -on account of her great army of fighting men. William was made emperor -of all Germany and called kaiser. He was crowned in the French palace -at Versailles that Louis XIV had built. - -The French thought the Germans had been able to win this war because -they had public schools in which all their children were trained, and -because of the way their soldiers were drilled. So France set to work -and started public schools everywhere in France and imitated the German -way of drilling their army so that they would be ready for them in the -next war. - -Ever since then France has been a republic with a president and an -Assembly chosen by the people. - -At that time Italy was not a single country as now but like Germany a -collection of small states. Some of these were independent, some were -owned by France, some were owned by Austria. The king of one of these -Italian states was Victor Emmanuel. He wanted all the Italian states -to unite and become one single country like our United States. He was -helped by his prime minister, a very able man named Cavour, and by a -rough but romantic popular hero named Garibaldi, who was called the -hero of the Red Shirt. - -Garibaldi, who had been a candle-maker in New York City, was always -poor and seemed not to care for money. He was so popular that whenever -he called for soldiers to fight with him for his beloved Italy, they at -once flocked around him ready to fight to the death. - -And so at last these three, Victor Emmanuel, Cavour, and Garibaldi, -succeeded in making their country one big nation. The Italians erected -monuments to them and named streets after them. To Victor Emmanuel they -built a magnificent building on a hill in Rome overlooking the city, a -building that was intended to be more beautiful than anything built in -Athens during the time of Pericles or in Italy during the Renaissance. - -If you collect postage-stamps it would be interesting for you to get, -if you can, stamps of these countries at that time, the New French -Republic, United Germany, and United Italy. - -[Illustration: 1870] - - - - -77 - -The Age of Miracles - - -You may think the Age of Miracles was when Christ lived. - -But if a man who lived at that time should come back to earth now he -would think _this_ the Age of Miracles. - -If he heard you talk over a wire to a person a thousand miles away, he -would think you a magician. - -If you showed him people moving and acting on a movie screen, he would -think you a witch. - -If he heard you start a band playing by turning on a phonograph, he -would think you a devil. - -If he saw you fly through the air in an airplane, he would think you a -god. - -We are so used to the telephone, telegraph, and phonograph; to -steamboats, steam railroads, and trolley-cars; to electric lights, -motor-cars, moving pictures, radio, and airplanes, that it is hard to -imagine a world in which there were none of these things--absolutely -none of these things. Yet in the Year 1800 not a single one of these -inventions was known. - -Neither George Washington nor Napoleon ever saw a steam-engine, a -steam-car, nor a steamboat. They had never used a telephone nor a -telegraph nor a bicycle. My own grandfather never saw a trolley-car -nor an electric light. Even my father never saw a phonograph, a moving -picture, an automobile, nor a flying-machine. - -More wonders have been made in the last hundred years than in all the -previous centuries of the world put together. - -A Scotchman named James Watt was one of the first of these magicians -whom we call inventors. Watt had watched a boiling kettle on the stove -and noticed that the steam lifted the lid. This gave him an idea that -steam might lift other things as well as the lid of a tea-kettle. So he -made a machine in which steam lifted a lid called a piston in such a -way as to turn a wheel. This was the first steam-engine. - -Watt’s steam-engine moved wheels and other things, but it didn’t move -itself. An Englishman named Stephenson put Watt’s engine on wheels and -made the engine move its own wheels. This was the first locomotive. -Soon funny-looking carriages drawn by funny-looking engines were made -to run on tracks in America. At first these trains ran only a few miles -out from such cities as Baltimore and Philadelphia. - -Then a young fellow named Robert Fulton thought he could make a boat -go by putting Watt’s engine on board and making it turn paddle-wheels. -People laughed at him and called the boat he was building “Fulton’s -Folly,” which means “foolishness.” But the boat worked, and Fulton -had the laugh on those who had laughed at him. He called his boat the -_Clermont_, and it made regular trips up and down the river. - -No one had ever before been able to talk to another far off until -the telegraph was invented. The telegraph makes a clicking sound. -Electricity flows through a wire from one place to another place -which may be a long distance off. If you press a button at one end of -the wire you stop the electricity flowing through the wire, and the -instrument at the other end makes a click. A short click is called a -dot, and a long click is called a dash. These dots and dashes stand for -letters of the alphabet, so you can spell out a message by dots and -dashes. - - A is . -- dot-dash - B is -- ... dash-dot-dot-dot - E is . dot - H is .... dot-dot-dot-dot - T is -- dash - -An American painter named Morse invented this wonderful little -instrument. He built the first telegraph line in America between -Baltimore and Washington, and this was the first message he clicked -across it: “What hath God wrought!” - -A school-teacher named Bell was trying to find some way of making deaf -children hear, and in doing so he invented the telephone. The telephone -carries words as the telegraph carries clicks. You do not have to know -a special alphabet or spell out words by dots and dashes as you do on -the telegraph. With the telephone any one can talk from one side of -America to the other. - -Many inventions now in every-day use have been partly invented by -several people, so that it is hard to say just which one thought of -the invention first. Several people thought of a way to run a machine -by feeding it electricity. This was the electric motor. Then others -thought of a way to run a machine by exploding gas. This was the motor -used in automobiles. - -Electric lights, such as we use indoors, were invented by Thomas Alva -Edison. Edison is called a wizard, because in the Middle Ages wizards -were supposed to be able to do and to make all sorts of wonderful and -impossible things, to turn lead into gold, to make people invisible, -and that sort of thing. But Edison has done things that no wizard of a -fairy-tale had ever even thought of. Edison was a poor boy who sold -newspapers and magazines on a train. He was interested in all sorts of -experiments and fitted up a place in the baggage-car where he could -make experiments. But he made so much of a mess in the car that at last -the baggage-man kicked Edison’s whole outfit off the train. Edison -invented many things connected with the phonograph and the movies, and -he has probably made more useful and important inventions than any -other man who has ever lived, so that he is much greater than those -mere kings who have done nothing but quarrel and destroy--without whom -the world would have been much better off if they had never lived! - -Thousands of people who have lived in the past ages have tried to fly -and failed. Millions of people have said it was impossible to fly and -foolish to try. Some have even said it was wicked to try, that God -meant that only birds and angels should fly. At last, after long years -of work and thousands of trials, two American brothers named Wright did -the impossible. They invented the airplane and flew. - -An Italian named Marconi invented the radio, and others every day are -still making wonderful inventions, but you will have to read about -these yourself, for we are near the end of our history. - -Here is a good subject for an argument or debate: Are we any happier -_with_ all these inventions than people were a thousand years ago -_without_ them? - -Life is faster and more exciting; but it is more difficult and more -dangerous. Instead of enjoying a book curled up in the corner of a -sofa by a crackling fire, we leave a steam radiator and go out to -the movies. Instead of singing or playing the violin, we turn on the -graphophone or the player-piano and miss the chief joy in music, the -joy of making it ourselves. Instead of the jogging drive in an old -buggy behind a horse that goes along through the country-side almost by -himself, we speed on in dangerous autos, to which we must pay constant, -undivided attention or be wrecked. - -[Illustration: 1905] - - - - -78 - -GERMANY FIGHTS THE WORLD - - -The last chapter was one of the few without a fight in it. But now, -to make up for that, I must tell you about the greatest and the worst -fight in history. - -There is a little country in Europe called Serbia. It is next door -to Austria. A young man who lived in Serbia shot an Austrian prince. -Little Serbia apologized to Austria for what one of her people had -done. But Austria insisted that the Serbian nation was to blame for -what had been done; she refused to accept the apology and started in to -punish Serbia. - -I once saw a little dog snap at a big boy. The owner of the little dog -apologized to the big boy for what his dog had done. But the big boy -did not accept the apology, and he started in to thrash the little -boy for what his dog had done. Presently a crowd gathered round, the -friends of each boy took sides, and there was a general free-for-all -“scrap.” - -So it was in this case. One of Austria’s big friends, Germany, took -sides against Serbia, and Russia took the side of Serbia. Ever since -the time of the Franco-Prussian War and Bismarck and William, Germany -had been in training for a fight, and so had her neighbors. Nearly all -the countries of Europe had for years been getting together into two -groups, made up of the friends and the enemies of Germany; and the two -were ready to jump at each other as soon as Austria, or Germany, or -anybody else, struck at any one. - -But Germany didn’t strike at Serbia; Austria didn’t really need her -help against Serbia. Germany was sure that France, who was her enemy -and Russia’s friend, would take sides against her; and so she rushed -at France to destroy her before Russia could hit hard from the other -side. Now, to get at France Germany had to get through the little -country of Belgium. She and France had agreed that neither would march -armies through Belgium, but when the war began her armies marched in -anyway and pushed aside the Belgians, who tried to stop them. And so -her armies rushed on toward the capital of France, Paris. She got as -far as a little stream called the Marne, only twenty miles from Paris. -But here the French under General Foch stopped her army. This battle of -the Marne is probably the most famous of all the battles you have heard -about in history, for though the war was not ended for four years after -this battle, if the Germans had won at the Marne, the war would have -been over, with Germany victor, and the rest of the world would have -had to do what Germany said. - -Germany was the first to use poison gas, trying to smother her enemy; -she fought with submarines from under the sea; she attacked passenger -ships that could not fight back. The English navy was the strongest, -and it was only with submarines that Germany could fight at sea. This -war was the first one in history in which battles were fought not only -on land but up in the air and down under the water. - -England took sides with France and Russia--and these were called -Allies--to fight against Germany and Austria, and at first the war was -between these countries only. Before the war ended, however, almost all -the countries of the world had taken sides against Germany, for they -knew that if she won she would be able to tell the rest of the world -what to do. Then all of a sudden Russia had a revolution. The Russian -people killed their ruler, the czar, and his family, and refused to -fight any longer. Things began to look pretty bad for the Allies. - -The United States did not start into the war until 1917, almost three -years after it had begun; then she did so because German submarines -were sinking American passenger ships and killing Americans. - -[Illustration: Surrender of Germans.] - -America was so far off--three thousand miles away--and across an ocean -that it seemed impossible that she could do much in the war. But in -a very short time she had sent two million soldiers across in ships. -Under General Pershing they fought great battles. At last Germany was -utterly beaten, and on Armistice day, November 11, 1918, Germany -signed a paper agreeing to do everything the Allies asked; and so the -greatest war in history ended. The kaiser went to live in Holland, and -Germany became a republic. - -[Illustration: 1918] - - - - -79 - -Yesterday, To-day, and To-morrow - - -There is a candy shop near where I live. On its sign it says, “Made -Fresh Every Hour.” History is being made every day. It is being made -fresh almost every hour. The newsboy even now is calling outside of my -window, “Extra! Extra!” Is it a new war? Is it a new discovery? If you -had clipped head-lines from the papers since the World War, here are -some of the things you might have pasted in your scrapbook. - - TREATY OF PEACE - SIGNED AT VERSAILLES - - Nations Agree on Terms of Peace - - The Mohammedan Turks in the East Are - Again Threatening the Christian - Nations of the West - - - THE IRISH FREE - STATE ESTABLISHED - - After Centuries of Struggle to Become - Independent of England, Ireland at - Last, with England’s Permission, Has - Set Up a Government of Her Own - - - COLUMBUS OF THE AIR - - Read, an American, Crosses Atlantic - Ocean for First Time in an Airplane; - Lands at the Azores and Then in - Portugal; Several Others Soon Follow, - and the Ocean Is Crossed a Number of - Times - - - WOMEN CAN VOTE AT LAST - - All Through the Ages Women Have Had - Little or No “Say” in the Government; - Now, for the First Time, They Can - Vote in Our Country and in Most - Other Civilized Countries - - - STRONG DRINK PROHIBITED - - The Use of Wine and Strong Drink, - Which Has Caused So Much Crime, - Disease, Death and Unhappiness, Has - Been Forbidden in the United States - and Limited in Many Other Countries; - in the Generations to Come, Men Will - Probably Marvel That There Was Once - a Time When People Drank Poison for - Pleasure - -From now on you will have to read your history in the daily papers. - -Up to this time, history has been marked by the story of one war after -another, some big, some small, some short, some long. Almost always a -fight has been going on somewhere. It has been War, War, War; Fight, -Fight, Fight. Children scratch, kick, and bite. But the older we get, -the less do we use our fists and feet to settle quarrels. So fighting -seems to be a sign of childhood--that we are “kids”--and our fights, -that we call wars, a sign of how young the world really is and we -really are; a sign that the world is still but a minute or two old. - -Now, we admire and praise as heroes Horatius, Leonidas, Joan of Arc, -and General Foch and those others who have defended their countries -against the attacks of the enemy, as we would admire a man who shoots a -burglar or a murderer that attacks his family in the night. But those, -whether kings, generals, or princes, who do the attacking and take life -with no other excuse than to add to their power or wealth or glory, -are no better than burglars who go forth with a gun and a blackjack to -waylay, rob, and murder for the same purpose. War kills, war destroys, -war costs millions of lives and billions of dollars--money that could -be used to make us happy, instead of causing bitterness, suffering, -misery, and unhappiness; blind men and cripples, widows and orphans. No -one is better off, not even the winner. It is a terrible game, in which -even the winner loses. And yet in the long run who knows? It may be the -only way the world can grow! - -But this is certain: if wars do not end, they will be fought with -something more deadly, more terrible than shot and shell. Sooner or -later, some man of science will invent a disease more catching than -the terrible plague, more deadly than the Black Death with which to -attack the enemy. But if such a disease is let loose, once started it -will spread from one being to the next till every one has caught it and -died and no one will escape. Or he will invent a poison to poison the -air we breathe that will spread like the wind or like wildfire in dry -grass, and there will be no stopping it. The air that wraps the globe -will be a sea of poison gas. Every thing that breathes will take only -one breath, and every man, woman, and child, every beast of the field, -every bird and flying thing will drop dead. Or he will invent something -a million times more powerful than gunpowder or dynamite--something so -explosive that when discovered by some Mr. Swartz it will blow him, his -house, his town, his country, and the whole world to kingdom come--and -that will be the end of this little spark off the sun. - -Perhaps you have looked through a microscope at what seem to be wars -between germs. As germs might look up at the eye of the microscope -through which we watch their life-and-death struggles, and wonder what -is up above on the other side looking down at them, so we may look -up at the blue eye of heaven above us and wonder what all-seeing, -all-knowing, all-powerful being up there is watching our own -life-and-death struggles here below. - -Our little world, which seems so immense to us, is really only a tiny -speck, only one of countless other specks floating in space; it is like -one of the tiny motes which you may see any time in a sunbeam that -shines in at the window. Who has an eye so keen that he can count the -moving motes in such a beam of light? Who would miss one such grain of -dust if it should disappear? So this grain of dust we call the World -and all of us who live upon it could vanish without ever being noticed! - -This story ends here, but only for the present, for history is a -continued story and will never end. - -If you were living in the Year 10,000 A.D., as some boy will be, your -history would only be just begun when you had reached where we are now. -Even the World War would then seem as long ago as the fights of the -Stone Age men seem to us. You might think of us and all the inventions -we consider so wonderful as we think of the discovery of copper and -bronze. - -Will the history that is written in the Year 10,000 have any wars to -tell about? If the wars on Earth cease, will there be wars with other -worlds? - -And if there are no more wars, what will history tell about? Will it -be new inventions? What kinds? Will it be new discoveries? We know -every corner of the world now. Will it be the inside of this world or -other new worlds or a spiritual world? - -Perhaps then people will no longer use trains, steamboats, automobiles, -or even flying-machines, but go from place to place as on some magic -carpet, simply by wishing. Perhaps then they will no longer use -letters, telephones, or telegraphs, or even radio, but read each -other’s thoughts at any distance. - -And so on--World without end--AMEN! - -[Illustration: NOW] - - - - -PRONOUNCING INDEX - - -This list of the most important names in the book tells you on what -page you may find each name and how to sound those you may not know. - - Sound a as in hat. - “ aw “ “ saw. - “ ah “ “ ah! - “ ee “ “ see. - “ e or eh “ “ get. - “ er “ “ her. - “ i or ih “ “ hit - “ igh “ “ right. - “ o “ “ hot. - “ oh “ “ oh! - “ ow “ “ how. - “ u or uh “ “ up. - “ ew “ “ few. - - Aaron (air´ un), 262 - - Abednego (a bed´ nee go), 261 - - Abraham (ay´ bra ham), 49, etc. - - Acropolis (a krop´ o lis), 145 - - Adolphus, Gustavus (a dolf´ us), 396 - - Æneas (ee nee´ as), 190 etc., 196 - - Æneid (ee nee´ id), 196 - - Æsop’s Fables (ee´ sop), 447 - - Africa, 169, 348, 352 - - Age of Discovery, 347 - - Age of Miracles, 454 - - Aix-la-chapelle (ayks - la - sha pell´), 258, 298 - - Alaric (al´ a rik), 224 - - Alcuin (al´ kwin), 259, 260 - - Alexander the Great, 159 to 168 - - Alexandria, 163, 164 - - Alfred the Great, 264 to 270 - - Allah (al´ ah), 244 to 247 - - Alps, 173, 429 - - America, 271, 346 - - Americus, 346 - - Angle-land, 223 - - Angles, 223 to 230 - - Anglo-Saxons, 223, 229 - - Anno Domini, 26 - - Antony (an´ to nih), 190 to 192 - - Aphrodite (af ro digh´ tih), 60 - - Apollo (a pol´ lo), 58 to 63 - - Arabesques (air a besks´), 252 - - Arabia, 242, 252 to 256 - - Arabian Nights, 442 - - Arabs, 244 to 256 - - Ares (ay´ reez), 58 - - Arch of Constantine, 216 - - Arch of Titus, 216 - - Aristides (air is tigh´ deez), 133, 134 - - Aristotle (air is tott´ ell), 160, 166 - - Artemis (ar´ tee mis), 58 - - Arthur, 234, 311 - - Aryans (ar´ yans), 23, 56, 220, 256 - - Asia, 162, 248 - - Assurbanipal (ass er ban´ ih pal), 97, 98, 164 - - Assyria (as seer´ ih ah), 42, 94 to 98 - - Astarte (ass tar´ tih), 76 - - Athene (a thee´ nih), 59, 60, 145 to 154 - - Athene Parthenos (par´ the nos), 194 - - Athenians, 83, 114, 140 to 145, 236 - - Athens, 60, 83, 114, 126, etc. - - Attila (at´ tih lah), 225 to 227 - - Augustan Age, 196 - - Augustus, 195 to 197 - - Austria, Austrian, 396, 408, 409, 440, 462 - - Azores, 466 - - Aztecs (az´ tecks), 355 to 357 - - - Baal (bay´ al), 76 - - Babylon (bab´ in lun), 98 to 103, 106 to 108 - - Babylonia, 43 to 48 - - Babylonians, 45 to 49, 75 - - Bach (bahk), 439 - - Bacon, Roger, 324 - - Bagdad, 243, 254, 262 - - Balboa (bal boh´ ah), 350, 351 - - Baltimore, 455, 456 - - Bastille (bas teel´), 421, 422 - - Beethoven, Louis (bay´ to ven), 441, 442 - - Belgium, 461 - - Bell, 457 - - Belshazzar (bel shaz´ zar), 108 - - Benedict and Benedictines (ben´ eh dickt), 237 - - Bethlehem, 197, 216 - - Bible, King James, 387 - - Bishop of Rome, 218 - - Bismarck, 450, 451, 461 - - Black Death, 328, 468 - - Black Sea, 21, 169, 444 - - Blondel (blon dell´), 300 - - Boleyn, Anne (bool´ in), 370 - - Bourbon (boor´ bun), 449 - - Brahma, Brahmanism, Brahmanists (brah´ mah), 111, 112 - - Britain, 186, 223, 229 - - British Museum, 33 - - Bronze Age, 19 to 22 - - Brutus, 121, 189, 190 - - Bucephalus (bew sef´ a lus), 160 - - Buddha, Buddhism, Buddhists (bood´ dah), 112, 113 - - Byron, 97 - - Byzantium (bi zan´ shi um), 217 - - - Cabot (kab´ ut), 350, 379 - - Cadmus (kad´ mus), 74 - - Cæsar, Augustus (see´ zer), 193, 196 - - Cæsar, Julius, 184 to 192 - - Cairo (kigh´ ro), 38, 196 - - Canaan (kay´ nan), 50, 54, 55, 70 - - Canada, 350, 417 - - Canary Islands, 340 - - Canterbury Cathedral, 309 - - Cape of Good Hope, 348 - - Cape Horn, 351 - - Cape of Storms, 348 - - Carthage and Carthaginians (kar´ thij), 78, 170 to 176 - - Caspian Sea, 21 - - Cathay (ka thay´), 316 to 322, 328 - - Cathedral of Notre Dame (nohtr´ dam), 309 - - Cathedral of Rheims (rhance), 309 - - Cathedral of St. Peter, 201 - - Catherine, 406 - - Catholic, 365 to 371 - - Cave Man, Men, People, 12, 22, 66 - - Cavour (ka voor´), 452 - - Caxton, 334 - - Ceres (see´ reez), 61 - - Chaldea, Chaldeans (kal dee´ ah), 43, 49, 55 - - Châlons (sha lahng´), 226 - - Charge of the Light Brigade, The, 445 - - Charlemagne (sharl maign´), 257 to 263 - - Charles the Great, 257, 259, 264 - - Charles I, 390 to 393 - - Charles II, 393 - - Charles V. of Spain, 367 to 369 - - Charles XII, 404, 405 - - Charles the Hammer, 249, 250, 257 - - Cheops (k ee´ ops), 38, 39 - - China, 316, etc. - - Christ, 197 to 202 - - Church of St. Peter, 258, 366 - - Cincinnatus (sin sin nah´ tus), 122 - - Circus Maximus, 195 - - Civil War, 446 - - Clavichord (klav´ ih kord), 438 - - Cleopatra (klee o pah´ tra), 30, 188, 192 - - Clermont (kler mont´), 456 - - Clisthenes (klis´ the neez), 116, 117 133 - - Clotilda (klo till´ dah), 233 - - Clovis (klo´ vis), 233, 234 - - Cologne Cathedral, 309 - - Colosseum (kol o see´ um), 195, 205 - - Columbia, 346 - - Columbus, Christopher, 337 to 345 - - Commodus (kom´ mo dus), 213, 214 - - Confucius (kon few´ shus), 113 - - Constantine, 215 to 218 - - Constantinople, 217, 228, 231, 232, 248, 335, 336 - - Corday, Charlotte (kor day´), 427 - - Cordova (kor´ do vah), 243, 254 - - Corinthian, 148, 149 - - Cornelia, 182, 183 - - Cornwallis, Lord, 418 - - Corsica, 428 - - Cortés (kor´ te), 356, 357 - - Crécy (kres´ sih), 327 to 329, 336 - - Crimea, Crimean War (krigh mee´ ah), 444, 445, 446 - - Crœsus (kree´ sus), 104 to 106 - - Cromwell, Oliver, 391 to 393 - - Crusades (kroo say´ dz), 297 to 299, 302, 303 - - Cuneiform (kee nee´ ih form), 45, 75, 97, 99 - - Cupid, 60 - - Cyrus (sigh´ rus), 104 to 109, 124 - - Czar (zahr), 190 - - - da Gama, Vasco (day gah´ mah), 348 to 350 - - Damascus (da mas´ kus), 254 - - Danes, 265, 266 - - Dardanelles (dar da nellz´), 135 - - Dare, Virginia, 379 - - Darius (dah righ´ us), 124 to 127, 132 - - Dark Ages, 229, 231, 261 - - David, 70, 71 - - da Vinci, Leonardo (dah vin´ chih), 364 - - Declaration of Independence, 416, 417, 423 - - Declaration of Right, 394, 423 - - Defender of the Faith, 369 - - Delphi (dell´ figh), 63, 106, 139 - - Delphic Oracle, 63, 107 - - Demeter (dee mee´ ter), 61 - - Demosthenes (dee mos´ the neez), 157 to 159 - - De Soto, 354 - - Diana (digh an´ ah), 58 - - Divine Right of Kings, 386, 390, 398 - - Domesday Book, 290 - - Doric (dor´ ik), 148, 149 - - Draco (dray´ co), 114, 115 - - Dutch, Dutchman, Dutch Republic, 374 - - - Edison, Thomas Alva, 457 - - Edward III, 327 - - Egypt and Egyptians, 22, 27, 28, 30 to 41, 188, 192, 430 - - Elba, 432, 449 - - El Dorado (el do rah´ do), 354, 355 - - Elizabeth Tudor, 372, 374 to 381 - - England, 186, 223, 264 to 268, 284, 312, etc. - - Epicureans (ep ih kew ree´ ans), 236 - - Epicurus (ep ih kew´ rus), 213 - - Episcopalians, 304, 365 - - Eternal City, The, 195 - - Etruscans (ee trus´ kans), 121, 122 - - Euphrates River (ew fray´ tees), 21, 22, 26, 42, 100, 106 - - Excalibur (eks kal´ ih ber), 234 - - Exodus, 54 - - - Fairfax, Lord, 416 - - Fates, 61 - - Father of his Country--Peter the Great, 402 - Washington, 419 - - Ferdinand, King, 338, 344, 367 - - Feudal System (few´ dal), 273, 277 - - Florida, 354 - - Foch, General (fush), 461, 467 - - Forum of Rome, 195, 206, 216 - - France, 224, 297, 395, etc. - - Franco-Prussian War (frang´ ko-prush´ an), 451, 461 - - Franklin, Benjamin, 414, 417 - - Franks, 224, 233 - - Frederick Barbarossa (bar bah ross´ ah), 297, 298 - - Frederick the Great, 407 to 410 - - French Assembly, 452 - - French Revolution, 420, 422, 429 - - Freya (fray´ ah), 222 - - Fulton, Robert, 456 - - - Gabriel (gay´ brih ell), 244 - - Gargoyles (gar´ goilz), 308 - - Garibaldi (gar ih ball´ dih), 452 - - Gaul (gawl), 169, 186, 223 - - Gautama (gaw´ tah mah), 111 to 113 - - Genghis Khan (jen´ gis kahn), 316, 317, 402 - - Genoa (jen´ oh ah), 337 - - George II, 412 - - George III, 413 to 418 - - German, 297, 366, 407, 451, 460 - - Gipsies, 24, 26 - - Gladiators (gla dih ay´ tors), 181 - - Godfrey, 296 - - Goddess of Reason, 426 - - Golden Age, 19, 97, 143, 150 - - Goliath (go ligh´ eth), 70 - - Gordian Knot (gor´ dih an), 163 - - Goshen (go´ shen), 51 - - Goths (gahths), 224 - - Gracchi (grack´ igh), 183 - - Graces, 61 - - Grand Monarch (Louis XIV), 398 - - Great Fire, 394 - - Great War, 309 - - Greece, 56, etc., 64, etc., 124, etc. - - Greene, General, 418 - - Greenland, 271 - - Guido (gwee´ doh), 437 - - Gutenberg (goo´ ten berg), 334 - - Guy, 437 - - - Hamites (ham´ ights), 23, 26, 28, 56 - - Hamlet, 383 - - Hammurabi (hah mew rah´ bee), 48 - - Handel, 437 to 440 - - Hannibal, 173, 174, 175, 182, 395 - - Harold, 286, 287 - - Haroun-al-Rashid (hah roon´ al rah´ shid), 262, 263, 267 - - Hastings, Battle of, 289 - - Hathaway, Anne, 381 - - Hanging Gardens, 101, 108 - - Hegira (he jigh´ rah), 244 to 249 - - Hellas (hell´ as), 56 - - Hellen, 56 - - Helen, 65 to 67, 79 - - Helena, 216 - - Hellenes, 56 - - Hellespont (hell´ ess pont), 135, 162 - - Henry VIII, 369 to 372 - - Hephæstus (he fess´ tus), 58 - - Hera (hee´ rah), 57 - - Hercules (her´ kew leez), 214 - - Hermes (her´ meez), 58 - - Herodotus (he rod´ o tus), 149, 150, 157 - - Hieroglyphics (high´ er o gliff icks), 30, 33 - - Hiram, 76 - - Holland, 464, 374, 403 - - Holy City, Holy Land, 293, 296 - - Homer, 68, 69, 79, 89 - - Horace, 196 - - Horatius (ho ray´ shus), 121, 467 - - Horus (hoh´ rus), 34 - - Hundred Years’ War, 327 to 329, 335 - - Huns, 225 to 227 - - - Iceland, 271 - - Iliad (ill´ ih ad), 67 - - Incas (in´ kas), 357 - - India, 109, etc., 165, 387 - - Indians, 109, 343 - - Indo-Europeans, 23 - - Inquisition, 373 - - Invincible Armada (ar mah´ dah), 375 - - Ionic (igh on´ ick), 148, 149 - - Ireland, 465 - - Irish Free State, 465 - - Iron Age, 19 to 22, 64, 66 - - Ironsides, 391 - - Isabelle, Queen, 339, 367 - - Isis (igh´ sis), 34 - - Islam (iss´ lam), 245 to 250 - - Israel (iz´ rah ell), 50, 51 - - Israelites (iz´ rah ell ights), 302 - - Italy, 89, etc., 173, 452 - - - Jacob, 50 - - James I, 380, 385 to 387, 390, 412, 430 - - Jamestown, 413 - - Japan, 112, 445, 446 - - Jefferson Thomas, 416 - - Jerusalem, 70, etc., 205, 292, etc. - - Jesus, 197, 363 - - Joan of Arc (jone of ark), 330 to 332, 467 - - John, King, 311 to 314, 390 - - Joseph, 50, 51 - - Juno, 57, 65, 211 - - Jupiter, 57, 61 - - Justinian (jus tin´ i an), 231 to 233, 336 - - - Kaiser (kigh’ zer), 190 - - Knights of the Round Table, 235 - - Koran (koh´ ran), 245, 252 - - Kublai Khan (koo´ bli kahn), 318 to 320 - - - Laconia (lah koh´ ni a), 82 - - Laconic (lah kon´ ik), 82 - - Lady of the Lamp, 445 - - Lafayette (la fay et´), 417, 442 - - Laocoon (lay ock´ oh on), 66 - - Last Supper, The, 364 - - Lavinia, 90 - - Lebanon, 72, 78 - - Leif Ericson (leef ehr´ ick son), 271 - - Leningrad (len´ in grad), 405 - - Leo I (lee´ oh), 226 - - Leonidas, 137 to 140 - - Lictor (lick´ tor), 121 - - Lincoln, President Abraham, 447, 448 - - Lion of the North, 396 - - Louis I (loo´ ih), 302, 395 - - Louis XIII, 395, 397 - - Louis XIV, 395, etc. - - Louis XVI, 420 - - Lucy, Sir Thomas, 381 - - Luther, 366, 367 - - Lycurgus (ligh ker´ gus), 79 to 82 - - Lydia (lid´ i ah), 104 to 106 - - - Macedonia (mass ee doh´ ni ah) 156, etc. - - Madman of the North, 405 - - Magi (may´ jigh), 104 - - Magellan (ma jell´ an), 351,352 - - Magna Carta (mag´ nah kar´ tah), 313, 34 - - Marathon, 127 to 130 - - Marco Polo (mar´ koh po´ loh), 318, 337, 338 - - Marconi (mar koh´ nih), 458 - - Marcus Aurelius (mar´ kus ah ree´ li us), 211, 213, 220 - - Maria Theresa (ma righ a te ree´ sah), 408 to 409 - - Marie Antoinette (mah ree´ an toah net´), 321 to 423 - - Marne, 461 - - Mars, 58, 61, 222 - - Marseillaise (mar say ly ayz´), 425 - - Masks, 145 - - Massachusetts, 388 - - Mayflower, 388 - - Mazda, 104 - - Mecca (mek´ ah), 243 to 246, 248 - - Medes (meeds), 98, 103, 104 - - Media (mee´ di ah), 100 - - Medina (meh dee´ nah), 243, 244 - - Meditations, 212 - - Mediterranean Sea, 21, 22 - - Menelaus (men ee lay´ us), 65, 66 - - Menes (men eez), 28 - - Merchant of Venice, The, 383 - - Mercury, 58, 61 - - Merry Monarch (Charles II), 393 - - Mesopotamia (mes o po tay´ mi ah), 21, 42, 44, 95 - - Messiah, The (oratorio), 439 - - Methodists, 304, 365 - - Mexico, 355 to 357 - - Michelangelo (migh kell an jee loh), 360 to 366 - - Middle Ages, 304, 335, 336 - - Miltiades (mill tigh´ a deez), 128 - - Minerva, 59, 60, 65 - - Mississippi, 355 - - Mohammed (mo ham´ ed), 242 to 245, 247 - - Mohammedans, 245, etc. - - Moloch (moh´ lock), 76 - - Mona Lisa (moh’ nah lee’ zah), 364 - - Mongols (mon´ golz), 316, 402 - - Montezuma (mon tee zoo´ mah), 356 - - Morse, 456 - - Moscow (mos´ koh), 405, 432 - - Moses, 52, 154, 360 - - Moslems, 247 to 257 - - Mount Ararat (ar´ a rat), 43, 321 - - Mount of Olives, 216 - - Mount Olympus (o lim´ pus), 57, 64 - - Mount Parnassus (par nas´ us), 62 - - Mount Sinai (sigh´ nigh), 54 - - Mozart (mo´ tzart), 440 to 442 - - Muezzin (moo ez´ in), 246 - - Muses (mewz´ ez), 61 - - - Napoleon Bonaparte (na poh´ le on bon´ na part), 428 to 434 - - Napoleon, Louis, 449 - - Napoleon III, 449 - - National Assembly, 422, 423, 424 - - Nebuchadnezzar (neb oo kad nez´ ar), 99 to 103, 261 - - Nelson, Lord, 430, 431 - - Neptune, 57, 61 - - Nero, 203 to 205, 211 - - New Forest, 290 - - Nightingale, Florence, 444, 445 - - Nicæa (nigh see´ ah), 217 - - Nicene Creed (nigh´ seen), 218 - - Nile, 22, 27, 28 - - Niña (nee´ nah), 340 - - Nineveh (nin´ eh veh), 94 to 100, 168 - - Noah’s Ark, 48, 321 - - Normandy, 286, 287 - - Normans, 286, 288 - - Norsemen, 270, 284, 286, 357 - - North America, 340 to 344, 350 - - Notre Dame (nohtr dam), 309, 426 - - - Oberammergau (oh ber am´ er gow), 397 - - Octavius (ock tay´ vi us), 192, 193 - - Odysseus (o dis´e us), 68, 90 - - Odyssey (od´ ih sih), 68 - - Olympia (o lim´ pi ah), 84, 85, 101, 147 - - Olympiad (o lim´ pi ad), 87, 89 - - Olympic games, 86 to 88 - - Orpheus (or´ fe us), 436 - - Omar (oh´ mar), 247, 248 - - Osiris (o sigh´ ris), 34 - - Ostracism (os´ tra sism), 117, 118 - - Oxford, 267 - - - Palestine (pal´ es tighm), 216 - - Palestrina (pah les tree´ nah), 337, 442 - - Palos, 340 - - Pan, 436 - - Pantheon (pan’ the on), 194 - - Pariah (pay’ rih a), 110 - - Paris (the city), 234 - - Paris (the man), 65 - - Parliament, 386, etc. - - Parthenon (pahr the non), 145 to 148, 194 - - Pass of Thermopylæ (ther mop’ ih lee), 140 - - Passion Play, 397 - - Peking, 318 - - Peloponnesian War (pellv oh poh nee´ shan), 153, 156 - - Peloponnesus (pell oh poh neev sus), 152 - - Pericles, Age of (per´ i klees), 144, 147, 149, 150 - - Perry, Commodore, 446 - - Pershing, General, 464 - - Persia, 124, etc. - - Persian Bible, 104 - - Persian Gulf, 21, 22 - - Peru, 359 - - Peter the Great, 402 to 406 - - Peter the Hermit, 293, 295 - - Petrograd, 405 - - Pharaoh (fay´ roh), 33, 39, 52 - - Pharos (fay´ ros), 164 - - Pheidippides (figh dip´ ih dees), 127, 129 - - Phenicia (fee nish´ ih a), 95 - - Phenicians (fee nish´ ans), 74 to 78, 170, 171 - - Phidias (fid´ ih as), 146, 147, 154, 359 - - Philip, 156 to 159 - - Philip II, 369, 373 to 375 - - Philip of France, 297 to 299 - - Philippics (fih lip´ icks), 158 - - Philippine Islands, 352 - - Pilate, 198, 199 - - Pillars of Hercules, 77 - - Pinta (pin´ ta), 340 - - Pisistratus (pi sis´ tra tus), 115, 116 - - Pizarro (pi zair´ oh), 357 - - Plato, 161, 166, 211 - - Pluto, 61 - - Polo, 318 to 320 - - Pompeii (pom pay´ yee), 207, 208 - - Pompey (pom´ pih), 186 to 188 - - Ponce de León (pon thee dee lee´ on), 354 - - Portugal, 338, 339, 350, 351, 466 - - Portuguese (por´ chew geese´), 348 - - Poseidon (poh sigh´ don), 57 - - Priam (prigh´ am), 65 - - Primitive Men, 13, 93 - - Primitive People, 16, 17 - - Protector, 393 - - Protestants, 368, 372, 373, 374, 395 to 397 - - Protestantism, 373 - - Prussia, 407 to 409, 431, 450, 451 - - Prussians, 450 - - Ptolemy I (tol’ ih mih), 167 - - Punic War (pew´ nick), 171, 172, 175, 182 - - - Raleigh, Sir Walter, 378, 379, 380 - - Rameses (ram´ ih sees), 23, 52, 53 - - Raphael (raff´ ay ell), 362 to 366 - - Red Sea, 21, 54, 301 - - Red Shirt, Hero of, 452 - - Reformation (reff or may´ shun), 368 - - Reign of Terror, 425, 427 - - Remus (ree´ mus), 90, 91, 196 - - Renaissance (ren ay sahns´), 359, 360, 453 - - Revolution, 428 - - Richard of England (Richard the Lion-hearted), 297 to 301, 311 - - Richelieu (rish´ ih lew), 395, 397 - - Roanoke (roh´ a nohke), 379, 387 - - Robespierre (rob´ bes pyer), 425, 427 - - Robin Hood, 301 - - Rollo, 284, 286 - - Roma, 92 - - Roman Aqueduct (ack´ we duct), 179 - - Roman Catholics, 368 - - Roman Senate, 186, 189, 216 - - Rome, 89, etc. - - Romeo and Juliet, 383 - - Romulus (rom´ yew lus), 90, 92, 93, 196 - - Romulus Augustulus (a gus´ tew lus), 228 - - Rosetta Stone (roh zet´ a), 32, 33 - - Roxana (rocks an´ a), 167 - - Rubicon (rew´ bih kon), 187 - - Runnymede (run´ ih meed), 313 - - Russia, 402 to 406 - - - Sabines (say´ bighns), 92 - - Sahara (sa hah´ rah), 28 - - St. Helena (hell´ ee nah), 217, 434 - - St. John, 437 - - St. Louis, 302 - - St. Paul, 201 to 203 - - St. Peter, 201, 203, 217, 218 - - St. Petersburg, 405 - - St. Simeon Stylites (sim´ ee on stigh ligh´ tees), 236 - - Saladin, 300 - - Salamis, Bay of (sal´ ah mis), 140, 141, 151 - - Samuel, 55 - - San Salvador, 343 - - Santa Maria, 340 - - Santa Sophia, 232, 336 - - Saracens (sair´ ah sens), 248, 249 - - Saracenic Empire (sair ah sen´ ick), 243 - - Saratoga, 417, 418 - - Sargon I (sahr´ gon), 48 - - Saturn, 222 - - Saul, King, 55, 70 - - Saul (Paul), apostle, 200 - - Saxons, 223 - - Schwarz, 325 - - Scipio (sip´ ih oh), 175, 182 - - Scotland, 374 to 376, 385 - - Scots, 385 - - Semites (sem´ ights), 23, 52, 56, 76 - - Seneca (sen´ e kah), 203 - - Sennacherib (se nack´ e rib), 96, 97 - - Serbia, 460, 461 - - Seven-League Boots, 89 - - Seven Wonders of the World, 101, 147, 164 - - Seven Years’ War, 410, 417 - - Shakspere, William, 190, 380 to 383 - - Sheba, 72 - - Sicily, 170 - - Sidon (sigh´ don), 77 - - Sistine Chapel (sis´ teen), 361, 362 - - Sistine Madonna, 363, 364 - - Slavs, 402 - - Smith, Captain John, 388 - - Snow King, 396 - - Socrates (sock´ ray tees), 153 to 155, 161 - - Solomon, 71 to 73, 76, 101, 103, 104 - - Solon (soh´ lon), 115, 116 - - South Sea, 350, 351 - - Spain, 169, 339, etc. - - Spanish Armada, 375, 376 - - Sparta, 79, 82, 83, 126 to 129, 134, 151, 152, 153 - - Sphinx, 39 - - Stephen, 301 - - Stephenson, 200 - - Stoic (stoh´ ick), 210 to 213, 236 - - Stone Age, The, 11, 14, 17 - - Strait of Gibraltar, 77, 248 - - Straits of Magellan, 351 - - Stratford, 381, 383 - - Stuarts, 385, etc. - - Sweden, 396, 404 - - - Tarquin (tahr´ kwin), 119 to 121, 189 - - Tartars (tah´ tahr), 316, 317 - - Ten Commandments, 54, 55, 113 - - Tennyson, Lord, 235, 445 - - Terrorists, 426 - - Teutons, 220 to 236 - - Thames River (temz), 289, 313 - - Themistocles (thee mis´ to klees), 133, 134, 140 to 142 - - Thermopylae (ther mop´ ih lee), 137, 140 - - Thirty Years’ War, 395, 396, 397 - - Thor, 222, 230, 233 - - Tiber River, 90, 91 - - Tigris River (tigh gris), 21, 22 - - Titus (tigh´ tus), 206 to 208 - - Tiu (tih´ ew), 222 - - Toledo, 254 - - Tours (toor), 243, 249, 250, 257 - - Tower of Babel (bay´ bel), 44, 45, 108 - - Tower of London, 289, 380 - - Trafalgar (trah fal´ gar), 431 - - Travels of Marco Polo, 320, 338 - - Treaty of Westphalia (west fay´ lia), 396 - - Trojan War, 64, 67, 234 - - Trojans, 66, 67 - - Troy, 65 to 67, 90, 104 - - Tudors, 385, 386 - - Turkish, 336 - - Turks, 293, 335, 465 - - Tu-tank-amen (too tank a´ men), 36 - - Twenty-third Psalm, 71 - - Tyre (tihr), 77, 170 - - - Ultima Thule (ul´ tih mah thew lee), 20 - - Ulysses (yew liss´ ees), 68 - - United States, 413, etc. - - Ur (er), 49, 55 - - Urban (er´ ban), 293 - - - Valhalla (val hal´ lah), 222 - - Vandals (van´ dalz), 223, 224 - - Venetians, 318 - - Venice, 318, 319 - - Venus, 60, 61, 65, 154 - - Vergil, 90, 196 - - Versailles (ver´ sah´ ye), 399, 423, 451, 465 - - Vesta, 61 - - Vesuvius (vee soo’ vihus), 207, 208 - - Victor Emmanuel, 452 - - Victoria, 352, 443 - - Victorian Age, 443 - - Vikings, 270, 271 - - Vineland, 271 - - Virgin Queen, 374, 379 - - Virginia, 379, 387 - - Vulcan, 58, 60, 207 - - - Wagner (vahg’ ner), 441, 442 - - Walter the Penniless, 295 - - Washington, George, 412, 415 to 419, 422 - - Waterloo (waw ter lew´), 433 - - Watt, James, 455, 456 - - Wellington, 434 - - Western Empire, 231 - - Westminster Abbey, 439 - - William the Conqueror, 286, 290 - - William and Mary, 394 - - William of Prussia, King, 450, 451, 461 - - William the Silent, 374 - - Wise Men of the East, 161 - - Wise Men of Greece, 161 - - Woden (woh´ den), 221, 222 - - World War, 465, 469 - - Worms (vohrms), 367 - - Wright, 458 - - - Xantippe (zan tip´ e), 154 - - Xerxes (zerks´ eez), 132, etc., 140 to 143. - - - Yorktown, 418 - - - Zama (zay´ mah), 175 - - Zeno (zee´ noh), 211, 212, 213 - - Zeus (zews), 57, 84 - - Zoroaster (zoh roh as´ ter), 103, 104 - - - - - Transcriber’s Notes: - - Italics are shown thus: _sloping_. - - Small capitals have been capitalised. - - Variations in spelling and hyphenation are retained. - - Perceived typographical errors have been changed. - - - - -*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD *** - -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed. - -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the -United States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following -the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use -of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for -copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very -easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation -of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project -Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may -do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected -by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark -license, especially commercial redistribution. - -START: FULL LICENSE - -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK - -To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. - -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8. - -1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others. - -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country other than the United States. - -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and - most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no - restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it - under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this - eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the - United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where - you are located before using this eBook. - -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. - -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. - -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License. - -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that: - -* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - -* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works. - -* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - -* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of -the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set -forth in Section 3 below. - -1.F. - -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. - -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. - -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. - -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. - -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm - -Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, -Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up -to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website -and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation - -Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without -widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. - -Most people start at our website which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org - -This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. - - diff --git a/old/67149-0.zip b/old/67149-0.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 929684a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-0.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h.zip b/old/67149-h.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 6507321..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm b/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm deleted file mode 100644 index 47f5430..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/67149-h.htm +++ /dev/null @@ -1,18353 +0,0 @@ -<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" -"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> -<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> -<head> -<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" /> -<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" /> -<title>A Child’s History Of the World , by V. M. Hillyer—A Project Gutenberg eBook</title> -<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" /> -<style type="text/css"> - -body { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - - h1,h2 { - text-align: center; /* all headings centered */ - clear: both; -} - -h1 {font-size: 200%; - font-weight: normal;} - -p { - margin-top: .51em; - text-align: justify; - margin-bottom: .49em; -} - -.p2 {margin-top: 2em;} -.p4 {margin-top: 4em;} -.p6 {margin-top: 6em;} - -hr { - width: 33%; - margin-top: 2em; - margin-bottom: 2em; - margin-left: 33.5%; - margin-right: 33.5%; - clear: both; -} - - - -hr.full {width: 95%; margin-left: 2.5%; margin-right: 2.5%;} - - -div.chapter {page-break-before: always;} -h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;} - -ul.index { list-style-type: none; } -li.ifrst { - margin-top: 1em; - text-indent: -2em; - padding-left: 1em; -} -li.indx { - margin-top: .5em; - text-indent: -2em; - padding-left: 1em; -} -li.isub1 { - text-indent: -2em; - padding-left: 2em; -} - - -table { - margin-left: auto; - margin-right: auto; -} - - - -.tdl {text-align: left;} -.tdr {text-align: right;} -.tdc {text-align: center;} -.tdrb {text-align: right; vertical-align: bottom;} -.tdrt {text-align: right; - vertical-align: top;} -.tdlt {text-align: left; - vertical-align: top;} - -.tds {text-align: left; - font-variant: small-caps;} - -.tdlb {text-align: left; - font-size: 150%;} - -.tdcp {text-align: center; - padding-left: 2em;} - - -.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */ - /* visibility: hidden; */ - position: absolute; - left: 92%; - font-size: smaller; - text-align: right; - font-style: normal; - font-weight: normal; - font-variant: normal; -} /* page numbers */ - - -.blockquot { - margin-left: 5%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - -.blockquota { - margin-left: 5%; - margin-right: 10%; - font-size: 85%; -} - -.blockquotb { - margin-left: 55%; - - font-size: 85%; -} - - -.xxxlarge {font-size: 250%;} -.xxlarge {font-size: 150%;} -.xlarge {font-size: 140%;} -.large {font-size: 120%;} -.medium {font-size: 85%;} -.little {font-size: 75%;} -.more {font-size: 70%;} -.tiny {font-size: 60%;} - -.c {text-align: center;} - -.pad4 {padding-left: 4.5em;} - -.pad5 {padding-left: 2em;} - -.pad6 {padding-left: 10em;} - -.pad7 {padding-left: 15em;} - -.pad8 {padding-left: 11em;} - -.pad9 {padding-left: 14em;} - -.pad10 {padding-left: 13em;} - -.pad6a {padding-left: .5em;} - -.pad6b {padding-left: 1em;} - -.pad6c {padding-left: 1.5em;} - -.pad6d {padding-left: 2em;} - -.pad6e {padding-left: 2.5em;} - -.pad6f {padding-left: 3em;} - -.pad11 {padding-left: 5.5em;} - -.pad12 {padding-left: 6.5em;} - -.pad13 {padding-left: 7.5em;} - -.pad14 {padding-left: 8.5em;} - -.pad15 {padding-left: 12em;} - -.pad6g {padding-left: 4em;} - -.padr {padding-right: .5em;} - -.pad6h {padding-left: 5em;} - -.pad6i {padding-left: 6em;} - - - -.ph2 {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; - font-size: 160%; - } - -.narrow {margin-left: 15%; - margin-right: 15%;} - -.pc {margin-left: 42%; - margin-bottom: 0;} - -.pca {margin-left: 30%; - margin-top: 0;} - -.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} - -.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;} - -.u {text-decoration: underline;} - - -.gesperrta -{ - letter-spacing: 0.6em; - margin-right: -0.2em; -} - - -.caption {font-weight: bold; -text-align: center; -font-size: 80%;} - -.captiona {font-weight: bold; -margin-left: 7em; -font-size: 80%;} - -/* Images */ - -img { - max-width: 100%; - height: auto; -} - - -.figcenter { - margin: auto; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - -.figcenter1 { - padding-top: 4em; - margin: auto; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - -.figcenter2 { - padding-top: 6em; - margin: auto; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - -.figleft { - float: left; - clear: left; - margin-left: 0; - margin-bottom: 1em; - margin-top: 1em; - margin-right: 1em; - padding: 0; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - - -.figright { - float: right; - clear: right; - margin-left: 1em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - margin-top: 1em; - margin-right: 0; - padding: 0; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 100%; -} - - -/* Footnotes */ - -.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;} - -.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;} - -.fnanchor { - vertical-align: super; - font-size: .8em; - text-decoration: - none; -} - -/* Poetry */ -.poetry-container {text-align: center;} -.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%; - font-size:85%;} - - .poetry {display: inline-block;} -.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;} -.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;} - -@media print { .poetry {display: block;} } - - -.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;} - -/* Transcriber's notes */ -.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA; - color: black; - font-size:smaller; - padding:0.5em; - margin-bottom:5em; - font-family:sans-serif, serif; } - - - - </style> - </head> -<body> - -<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Child’s History of the World, by V. M. Hillyer</div> -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and -most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms -of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online -at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you -are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the -country where you are located before using this eBook. -</div> -<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: A Child’s History of the World</div> -<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: V. M. Hillyer</div> -<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrators: Carle Michel Boog<br /> - M. S. Wright</div> -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 12, 2022 [eBook #67149]<br /> -[Most recently updated: January 15, 2022]</div> -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div> -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div> -<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Alan, Tim Lindell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team</div> -<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD ***</div> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - - - - -<h1> -A CHILD’S HISTORY<br /> -OF THE WORLD -</h1> - - -<p class="p6 u c">By V. M. HILLYER</p> - - - -<p class="pad6"> -A CHILD’S GEOGRAPHY OF THE WORLD<br /> -A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD<br /> -CHILD TRAINING<br /> -THE DARK SECRET -</p> - - -<p class="p2 u c">With EDWARD G. HUEY</p> - -<p class="pad6"> -A CHILD’S HISTORY OF ART -</p> - - -<div class="figcenter1"> -<img src="images/fig1.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - - - - -<p class="c xxxlarge p2"> -A CHILD’S HISTORY<br /> -OF THE WORLD -</p> - -<p class="c p2"> -BY</p> - -<p class="c xxlarge"> -V. M. HILLYER -</p> - -<p class="c more"> -HEAD MASTER OF CALVERT SCHOOL<br /> -AUTHOR OF “CHILD TRAINING,” “KINDERGARTEN<br /> -AT HOME,” ETC. -</p> - -<p class="c p2"> -<i>With Many Illustrations by</i><br /> -CARLE MICHEL BOOG<br /> -<span class="little">AND</span><br /> -M. S. WRIGHT -</p> - -<div class="figcenter2"> -<img src="images/fig2.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<p class="c p4"> -D. APPLETON-CENTURY COMPANY<br /> -<span class="smcap">Incorporated</span></p> - -<p class="c"> -<span class="smcap">New York</span> <span class="smcap pad7">London</span></p> - -<p class="c"> -1934 -</p> - - - - -<p class="c p2"> -<span class="smcap">Copyright, 1924, by<br /> -The Century Co.</span></p> - -<p class="pad8"> -All rights reserved. This book, or parts<br /> -thereof, must not be reproduced in any<br /> -form without permission of the publisher. -</p> - - -<p class="c little p6"> -PRINTED IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA -</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_v"></span></p> - -<p class="ph2">LIST OF STORIES</p> -</div> - -<table summary="LIST OF STORIES"> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">STORY</span></td> -<td class="tdl"></td> -<td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">PAGE</span></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">1</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">How Things Started</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c1">3</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">2</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Umfa-Umfa and Itchy-Scratchy</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c2">10</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">3</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fire! Fire!! Fire!!!</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c3">16</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">4</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">From an Airplane</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c4">20</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">5</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Real History Begins</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c5">24</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">6</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Puzzle-Writers</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c6">30</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">7</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Tomb-Builders</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c7">36</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">8</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Rich Land Where There Was No Money</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c8">42</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">9</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Wandering Jews</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c9">49</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">10</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fairy-Tale Gods</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c10">56</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">11</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Fairy-Tale War</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c11">64</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">12</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Kings of the Jews</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c12">70</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">13</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The People Who Made Our A B C’s</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c13">74</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">14</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Hard as Nails</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c14">79</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">15</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Crown of Leaves</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c15">84</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">16</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Bad Beginning</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c16">89</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">17</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Kings with Corkscrew Curls</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c17">94</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">18</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A City of Wonder and Wickedness</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c18">99</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">19</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Surprise Party</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c19">103</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">20</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Other Side of the World</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c20">109</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">21</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Rich Man, Poor Man</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c21">114</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">22</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Rome Kicks Out Her Kings</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c22">119</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_vi"></span></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">23</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Greece vs. Persia</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c23">124</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">24</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fighting Mad</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c24">132</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">25</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">One against a Thousand</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c25">137</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">26</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Golden Age</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c26">143</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">27</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">When Greek Meets Greek</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c27">151</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">28</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wise Men and Otherwise</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c28">156</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">29</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Boy King</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c29">162</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">30</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Picking a Fight</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c30">168</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">31</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Boot Kicks and Stamps</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c31">173</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">32</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The New Champion of the World</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c32">177</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">33</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Noblest Roman of Them All</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c33">184</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">34</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">An Emperor Who was Made a God!</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c34">191</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdrt">35</td> -<td class="tdl">“<span class="smcap">Thine is the Kingdom, the Power, and the<br /> - Glory</span>”</td> -<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c35">197</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">36</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Blood and Thunder</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c36">203</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">37</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Good Emperor and a Bad Son</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c37">210</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">38</td> -<td class="tdl"> I — H — — S — — — — V — — — — —</td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c38">215</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">39</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Our Tough Ancestors</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c39">219</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdrt">40</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">White Toughs and Yellow Toughs Meet the<br /> - Champions of the World</span></td> -<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c40">225</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">41</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Nightfall</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c41">231</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">42</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Being Good</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c42">236</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">43</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Camel-Driver</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c43">242</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">44</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Arabian Days</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c44">250</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">45</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Light in the Dark Ages</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c45">257</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">46</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Getting a Start</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c46">264</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">47</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The End of the World</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c47">269</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">48</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Real Castles</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c48">272</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">49</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Knights and Days of Chivalry</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c49">278</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">50<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii"></span></td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Pirate’s Great Grandson</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c50">284</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">51</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Great Adventure</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c51">292</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">52</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Tit-Tat-To; Three Kings in a Row</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c52">297</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">53</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Bibles Made of Stone and Glass</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c53">304</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">54</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">John, Whom Nobody Loved</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c54">311</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">55</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Great Story-Teller</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c55">316</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdrt">56</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">“Thing-a-ma-jigger” and “What-cher-ma-call-it”;<br /> - or, A Magic Needle and a Magic<br /> - Powder</span></td> -<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c56">322</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">57</td> -<td class="tdl">THELON GEST WART HATE VERWAS</td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c57">327</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">58</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Off with the Old, On with the New</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c58">333</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">59</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Sailor Who Found a New World</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c59">337</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">60</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Fortune-Hunters</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c60">346</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdrt">61</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Land of Enchantment; or, The Search<br /> - for Gold and Adventure</span></td> -<td class="tdrb"><a href="#c61">354</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">62</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Born Again</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c62">359</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">63</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Christians Quarrel</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c63">365</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">64</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">King Elizabeth</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c64">372</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">65</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Age of Elizabeth</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c65">378</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">66</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">James the Servant; or, What’s in a Name?</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c66">384</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">67</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A King Who Lost His Head</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c67">390</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">68</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Red Cap and Red Heels</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c68">395</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">69</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Self-Made Man</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c69">402</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">70</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Prince Who Ran Away</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c70">407</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">71</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">America Gets Rid of Her King</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c71">412</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">72</td> -<td class="tdl"><img src="images/fig3.jpg" alt="" /></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c72">420</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">73</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">A Little Giant</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c73">428</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">74</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">From Pan and His Pipes to the Phonograph</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c74">435</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">75</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Daily Papers of 1854-1865</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c75">443</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_viii"></span></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">76</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Three New Postage Stamps</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c76">449</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">77</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">The Age of Miracles</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c77">454</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">78</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Germany Fights the World</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c78">460</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">79</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Yesterday, To-day, and To-morrow</span></td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#c79">465</a></td></tr> - -</table> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix"></span></p> - - - - -<p class="pad9"> -This page is not for you, boys and girls.<br /> -It is for that old man or woman—twenty,<br /> -thirty, or forty years old, who may peek<br /> -into this book; and is what they would<br /> -call the -</p> - -<p class="ph2">PREFACE</p> - - -<p>To give the child some idea of what has gone -on in the world before he arrived;</p> - -<p>To take him out of his little self-centered, shut-in -life, which looms so large because it is so close -to his eyes;</p> - -<p>To extend his horizon, broaden his view, and -open up the vista down the ages past;</p> - -<p>To acquaint him with some of the big events -and great names and fix these in time and space -as a basis for detailed study in the future;</p> - -<p>To give him a chronological file with main -guides, into which he can fit in its proper place all -his further historical study—</p> - -<p>Is the purpose of this first <span class="smcap">Survey of the -World’s History</span>.</p> - - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_x"></span></p> - - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi"></span></p> - - -<p class="pad10"> -This part is not for you, either. It is for<br /> -your father, mother, or teacher, and is<br /> -what they would call the -</p> - -<p class="ph2">INTRODUCTION</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">In</span> common with all children of my age, I was -brought up on American History and given no -other history but American, year in and year out, -year after year for eight or more years.</p> - -<p>So far as I knew 1492 was the beginning of -the world. Any events or characters before that -time, reference to which I encountered by any -chance, were put down in my mind in the same -category with fairy-tales. Christ and His -times, of which I heard only in Sunday-school, -were to me mere fiction without reality. They -were not mentioned in any history that I knew -and therefore, so I thought, must belong <i>not</i> to a -realm in time and space, but to a spiritual realm.</p> - -<p>To give an American child only American -History is as provincial as to teach a Texas child -only Texas History. Patriotism is usually given -as the reason for such history teaching. It only -promotes a narrow-mindedness and an absurd<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii"></span> -conceit, based on utter ignorance of any other -peoples and any other times—an intolerant -egotism without foundation in fact. Since the -World War it has become increasingly more and -more important that American children should -have a knowledge of other countries and other -peoples in order that their attitude may be intelligent -and unprejudiced.</p> - -<p>As young as nine years of age, a child is -eagerly inquisitive as to what has taken place in -the ages past and readily grasps a concept of -World History. Therefore, for many years Calvert -School nine-year-old pupils have been -taught World History in spite of academic and -parental skepticism and antagonism. But I have -watched the gradual drift toward adoption of -this plan of history teaching, and with it an ever-increasing -demand for a text-book of general history -for young children. I have found, however, -that all existing text-books have to be largely -abridged and also supplemented by a running -explanation and comment, to make them intelligible -to the young child.</p> - -<p>The recent momentous studies into the native -intelligence of children show us what the average -child at different ages can understand and what -he cannot understand—what dates, figures of -speech, vocabulary, generalities, and abstractions -he can comprehend and what he cannot comprehend—and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii"></span> -in the future all text-books will have -to be written with constant regard for these intelligence -norms. Otherwise, such texts are very -likely to be “over the child’s head.” They will -be trying to teach him some things at least that, -in the nature of the case, are beyond him.</p> - -<p>In spite of the fact that the writer has been -in constant contact with the child mind for a -great many years, he has found that whatever -was written in his study had to be revised and -rewritten each time after the lesson had been -tried out in the class-room. Even though the -first writing was in what he considered the simplest -language, he has found that each and every -word and expression has had to be subjected -again and again to this class-room test to determine -what meaning is conveyed. The slightest -inverted phraseology or possibility of double -meaning has oftentimes been misconstrued or -found confusing. For instance, the statement -that “Rome was <i>on</i> the Tiber River” has quite -commonly been taken to mean that the city was -literally built <i>on top</i> of the river, and the child -has had some sort of fantastic vision of houses -built on piles in the river. A child of nine is still -very young—he may still believe in Santa Claus—younger -in ideas, in vocabulary and in understanding -than most adults appreciate—even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiv"></span> -though they be parents or teachers—and new information -can hardly be put too simply.</p> - -<p>So the topics selected have not always been -the most important—but the most important -that can be understood and appreciated by a -child. Most political, sociological, economic, or -religious generalities are beyond a child’s comprehension, -no matter how simply told. After -all, this History is only a preliminary story.</p> - -<p>Excellent biographies and stories from general -history have been written. But biographies from -history do not give an historic outline. They do -not give any outline at all for future filling in; -and, indeed, unless they themselves are fitted -into such a general historical scheme, they are -nothing more than so many disconnected tales -floating about in the child’s mind with no associations -of time or space.</p> - -<p>The treatment of the subject in this book is, -therefore, chronological—telling the story of -what has happened century by century and epoch -by epoch, not by nations. The story of one -nation is interrupted to take up that of another -as different plots in a novel are brought forward -simultaneously. This is in line with the -purpose, which is to give the pupil a continuous -view or panorama of the ages, rather than Greek -History from start to finish, then, retracing the -steps of time, Roman History, and so on. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xv"></span> -object is to sketch the whole picture in outline, -leaving the details to be gradually filled in by -later study, as the artist sketches the general -scheme of his picture before filling in the details. -Such a scheme is as necessary to orderly classification -of historical knowledge as is a filing system -in any office that can function properly or -even at all.</p> - -<p>The Staircase of Time is to give a visual idea -of the extent of time and the progressive steps -in the History of the World. Each “flight” -represents a thousand years, and each “step” a -hundred—a century. If you have a spare wall, -either in the play-room, attic, or barn such a -Staircase of Time on a large scale may be drawn -upon it from floor to reaching height and made a -feature if elaborated with pictures or drawings -of people and events. If the wall faces the -child’s bed so much the better, for when lying -awake in the morning or at any other time, instead -of imagining fantastic designs on the wall-paper, -he may picture the crowded events on the -Staircase of Time. At any rate, the child should -constantly refer either to such a Staircase of -Time or to the Time Table as each event is -studied, until he has a mental image of the Ages -past.</p> - -<p>At first a child does not appreciate time values -represented by numbers or the relative position<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xvi"></span> -of dates on a time line and will wildly say twenty-five -hundred <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> or twenty-five thousand <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> -or twenty-five million <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> indiscriminately. -Only by constantly referring dates to position -on the Staircase of Time or the Time Table can -a child come to visualize dates. You may be -<i>amused</i>, but do not be <i>amazed</i>, if a child gives -776 thousand years <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> as the date for the First -Olympiad, or says that Italy is located in Athens, -or that Abraham was a hero of the Trojan War.</p> - -<p>If you have ever been introduced to a roomful -of strangers at one time, you know how futile it is -to attempt even to remember their names to say -nothing of connecting names and faces. It is -necessary to hear something interesting about -each one before you can begin to recall names -and faces. Likewise an introduction to World -History, the characters and places in which are -utterly unknown strangers to the child, must be -something more than a mere name introduction, -and there must be very few introductions given -at a time or both names and faces will be instantly -forgotten. It is also necessary to repeat new -names constantly in order that the pupil may -gradually become familiarized with them, for -so many strange people and places are bewildering.</p> - -<p>In order to serve the purpose of a basal outline, -which in the future is to be filled in, it is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xvii"></span> -necessary that the Time Table be made a permanent -possession of the pupil. This Time -Table, therefore, should be studied like the multiplication -tables until it is known one hundred -per cent and for “keeps,” and until the topic connected -with each date can be elaborated as much -as desired. The aim should be to have the pupil -able to start with Primitive Man and give a -summary of World History to the present time, -with dates and chief events without prompting, -questioning, hesitation, or mistake. Does this -seem too much to expect? It is not as difficult -as it may sound, if suggestions given in the text -for connecting the various events into a sequence -and for passing names and events in a condensed -review are followed. Hundreds of Calvert -children each year are successfully required -to do this very thing.</p> - -<p>The attitude, however, usually assumed by -teachers, that “even if the pupil forgets it all, -there will be left a valuable impression,” is too -often an apology for superficial teaching and -superficial learning. History may be made just -as much a “mental discipline” as some other -studies, but only if difficulties of dates and other -abstractions are squarely met and overcome by -hard study and learned to be remembered, not -merely to be forgotten after the recitation. The -story part the child will easily remember, but it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xviii"></span> -is the “who and when and where and why” that -are important, and this part is the serious study. -Instead of, “A man, once upon a time,” he -should say, “King John in 1215 at Runnymede -because—”</p> - -<p>This book, therefore, is not a supplementary -reader but a basal history study. Just enough -narrative is told to give the skeleton flesh and -blood and make it living. The idea is not how -much but how little can be told; to cut down one -thousand pages to less than half of that number -without leaving only dry bones.</p> - -<p>No matter how the subject is presented it is -necessary that the child do his part and put his -own brain to work; and for this purpose he -<i>should be required to retell each story after he -has read it</i> and should be repeatedly questioned -on names and dates as well as stories, to make -sure he is retaining and assimilating what he -hears.</p> - -<p>I recall how once upon a time a young chap, -just out of college, taught his first class in history. -With all the enthusiasm of a full-back who has -just kicked a goal from field, he talked, he sang; -he drew maps on the blackboard, on the floor, on -the field; he drew pictures, he vaulted desks, and -even stood on his head to illustrate points. His -pupils attended spellbound, with their eyes wide -open, their ears wide open, and their mouths<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xix"></span> -wide open. They missed nothing. They drank -in his flow of words with thirst unquenched; but, -like Baron Munchausen, he had failed to look at -the other end of the drinking horse that had been -cut in half. At the end of a month his kindly -principal suggested a test, and he gave it with -perfect confidence.</p> - -<p>There were only three questions:</p> - -<p class="pad5"> -(1) Tell all you can about Columbus.<br /> -(2) <span class="gesperrta"> “ “ “ “ “</span> Jamestown.<br /> -(3) <span class="gesperrta"> “ “ “ “ “</span> Plymouth.<br /> -</p> - -<p>And here are the three answers of one of the -most interested pupils:</p> - -<p class="pad5"> -(1) He was a <i>grate</i> man.<br /> -(2) <span class="gesperrta">“ “ “ “ “</span><br /> -(3) <span class="gesperrta">“ “ “ “ “</span> <i>to</i>. -</p> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xx"></span></p> - - -<p class="c">Here is the</p> - -<p class="c large">STAIRCASE OF TIME</p> - -<p class="narrow">It starts far, far, below the bottom of the -pages and rises up, <span class="smcap">Up</span>, UP to where we -are NOW—each step a hundred years, -each flight of steps a thousand. It will -keep on up until it reaches high heaven. -From where we are NOW let us look -down the flights below us and listen to -the Story of what has happened in the -long years gone by.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxi"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig4.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxiii"></span></p> - - -<p class="c large">TIME TABLE</p> - -<p class="c">with</p> - -<p class="c xlarge">DATES AND OTHER FOOD<br /> -FOR THOUGHT</p> - -<p><i>Don’t devour these dates all at once, or they’ll -make you sick, and you’ll never want to see one -again.</i></p> - -<p><i>Take them piecemeal, only one or two at a time -after each story, and be sure to digest them -thoroughly.</i></p> - -<table summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdr"><span class="tiny">PAGE</span></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Beginning of the Earth</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_3">3</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">First Rain-storm</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7">7</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Plants</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_7">7</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Mites</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Insects</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Fish</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Frogs</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Snakes</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Birds</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Animals</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Monkeys</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">People</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_8">8</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxiv"></span></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">4000</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Bronze Age Begins</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_16">16</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">3400</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Menes</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_28">28</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">2900</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Cheops</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_38">38</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">2300</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Chaldean Eclipse</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_46">46</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1900</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Abraham Leaves Ur</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_49">49</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1700</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Israelites go to Egypt</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_51">51</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1300</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Exodus; Iron Age Begins</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_54">54</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1200</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Trojan War</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_64">64</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1100</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Samuel; Saul</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_70">70</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1000</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Homer; Solomon; Hiram</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">900</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Lycurgus</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_79">79</a></td></tr> - -<tr> -<td class="tdr">776</td> -<td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> -<td class="tdl">First Olympiad</td> -<td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_87">87</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">753</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Founding of Rome</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_89">89</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">700</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Nineveh at Top</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_96">96</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">612</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Fall of Nineveh</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_98">98</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Draco; Solon</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_114">114</a>-115</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">538</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Fall of Babylon</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_108">108</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">509</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">End of Kings at Rome</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_119">119</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">500</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Brahmanism</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_111">111</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Buddhism</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_112">112</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Confucius</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_113">113</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">490</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Marathon</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">480</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Thermopylæ;</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_137">137</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Salamis</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_140">140</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">480</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Golden Age</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_143">143</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">430</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Peloponnesian War</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_151">151</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">336</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdr"></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxv"></span>323</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl">Alexander the Great</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">202</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Zama</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_175">175</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">100</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Birth of Julius Cæsar</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_184">184</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">55</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdr"></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">54</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl">Conquest of Britain</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_186">186</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">44</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Death of Julius Cæsar</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_190">190</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">27</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Augustus and the Empire</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_191">191</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">4</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Birth of Christ</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_197">197</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Nero</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_203">203</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Titus</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_206">206</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">79</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Pompeii destroyed</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_208">208</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">179</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Marcus Aurelius</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_210">210</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">323</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Constantine</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_215">215</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">476</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Downfall of Rome</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_227">227</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">622</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">The Hegira</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_244">244</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">732</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Tours</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_249">249</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">800</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Charlemagne</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_257">257</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">900</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">King Alfred the Great</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_264">264</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1000</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">First Discovery of America</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_269">269</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1066</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">William the Conqueror</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_286">286</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1100</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">The Crusades</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_292">292</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1215</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">King John; Magna Charta</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_311">311</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1300</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Marco Polo</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_318">318</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdrt">1338</td> - <td class="tdlt"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Beginning of One Hundred<br /> - Years’ War; Crécy; Black<br /> - Death; Joan of Arc</td> - <td class="tdrb"><a href="#Page_327">327</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1440</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Invention of Printing</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_333">333</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1453</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Fall of Constantinople</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_335">335</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xxvi"></span></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdrt">1492</td> - <td class="tdlt"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Columbus; Discovery of<br /> - America</td> - <td class="tdrb"><a href="#Page_337">337</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1497</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Vasco da Gama</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_348">348</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1500</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">The Renaissance</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_359">359</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">The Reformation</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_365">365</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Charles V</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_367">367</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">King Henry VIII</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_369">369</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Elizabeth</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_372">372</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1588</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Spanish Armada</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_375">375</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1600</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Shakspere</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_380">380</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1640</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Charles I and Oliver Cromwell</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_390">390</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Cardinal Richelieu</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_395">395</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr"></td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">Louis XIV</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_397">397</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1700</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Peter the Great</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_402">402</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1750</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Frederick the Great</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_407">407</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1776</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">American Revolution</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_412">412</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1789</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">French Revolution</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_420">420</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1800</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Napoleon</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_428">428</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1861</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></td> - <td class="tdl">Civil War</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_447">447</a></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1914</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdr"></td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">1918</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> }</td> - <td class="tdl">The Great War</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_460">460</a></td></tr> - -</table> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_1"></span></p> - - -<p class="c xxxlarge"> -A CHILD’S HISTORY<br /> -OF THE WORLD</p> - -<p class="c xlarge"> -BEGINS HERE -</p> - - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c1">1</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">How Things Started</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Once</span> upon a time there was a boy—</p> - -<p>Just like me.</p> - -<p>He had to stay in bed in the morning until -seven o’clock until his father and mother were -ready to get up;</p> - -<p>So did I.</p> - -<p>As he was always awake long before this time, -he used to lie there and think about all sorts of -curious things;</p> - -<p>So did I.</p> - -<p>One thing he used to wonder was this:</p> - -<p>What would the world be like if there were—</p> - -<p>No fathers and mothers,</p> - -<p>No uncles and aunts,</p> - -<p>No cousins or other children to play with,</p> - -<p><i>No people at all, except himself</i> in the whole -world!</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have wondered the same thing;</p> - -<p>So did I.</p> - -<p>At last he used to get so lonely, just from -thinking how dreadful such a world would be,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4"></span> -that he could stand it no longer and would run -to his mother’s room and jump into bed by her -side just to get this terrible thought out of his -mind;</p> - -<p>So did I—for <i>I was the boy</i>.</p> - -<p>Well, there <i>was</i> a time long, long, long ago -when there were no men or women or children, -<i>NO PEOPLE</i> of any kind in the whole world. -Of course there were no houses, for there was no -one to build them or to live in them, no towns or -cities—nothing that people make. There were -just wild animals—bears and wolves, birds and -butterflies, frogs and snakes, turtles and fish. -Can you think of such a world as that?</p> - -<p class="pad6"> -Then,</p> - -<p class="pad10"> -long, long, long -</p> - -<p>before that, there was a time when there were -<i>NO PEOPLE</i> and <i>NO ANIMALS</i> of any -sort in the whole world; there were just growing -plants, trees and bushes, grass and flowers. Can -you think of such a world as that?</p> - -<p class="pad6"> -Then,</p> - -<p class="pad10"> -long, long, long,<br /> -long, long, long -</p> - -<p>before that, there was a time when there were -<i>NO PEOPLE, NO ANIMALS, NO -PLANTS</i>, in the whole world; there was just -bare rock and water everywhere. Can you think -of such a world as that?</p> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_5"></span></p> - -<p class="pad6"> -Then,</p> - -<p class="pad10"> -long, long, long<br /> -long, long, long—you might<br /> -<span class="pad4">keep on saying—</span><br /> -“long, long, long,” all day, and<br /> -<span class="pad4">to-morrow, and all</span><br /> -<span class="pad4">next week, and next</span><br /> -<span class="pad4">month, and next</span><br /> -<span class="pad4">year, and it would</span><br /> -<span class="pad4">not be long enough—</span></p> - -<p> -before this, there was a time when there was -<i>NO WORLD AT ALL!</i> -</p> - -<p>There were only the Stars</p> - -<p>Nothing else!</p> - -<p>Now, real Stars are not things with points -like those in the corner of a flag or the gold ones -you put on a Christmas tree. The real stars in -the sky have no points. They are huge burning -coals of fire—coals of fire. Each star, however, -is so huge that there is nothing in the world now -anywhere nearly as big. One little bit, one little -scrap of a star is bigger than our whole world—than -our whole world.</p> - -<p>One of these stars is our Sun—yes, our Sun. -The other stars would look the same as the Sun -if we could get as close to them. But at that -time, so long, long ago, our Sun was not just a -big, round, white, hot ball as we see it in the sky -to-day. It was then more like the fireworks you<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6"></span> -may have seen on the Fourth of July. It was -whirling and sputtering and throwing off sparks.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig5.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">The sun sputtering and throwing off sparks.</p> -</div> - -<p>One of these sparks which the Sun threw far -off got cool just as a spark from the crackling log -in the fireplace gets cool, and this cooled-off spark -was—</p> - -<p class="pad6"> -What do you suppose?<br /> -See if you can guess—<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7"></span><br /> -It was our World!—yes, the World<br /> -on which we now live. -</p> - -<p>At first, however, our World or Earth was -nothing but a ball of rock. This ball of rock was -wrapped around with steam, like a heavy fog.</p> - -<p>Then the steam turned to rain and it rained -on the World,</p> - -<p class="c gesperrta"> -a a a<br /> -n n n<br /> -d d d<br /> -<br /> -i i i<br /> -t t t<br /> -<br /> -r r r<br /> -a a a<br /> -i i i<br /> -n n n<br /> -e e e<br /> -d d d -</p> - -<p>until it had filled up the hollows and made enormously -big puddles. These puddles were the -oceans. The dry places were bare <i>rock</i>.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came the first living things—<span class="more"><i>tiny plants</i></span> -that you could only have seen under -a microscope. At first they grew only in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8"></span> -water, then along the water’s edge, then out on -the rock.</p> - -<p>Then dirt or soil, as people call it, formed all -over the rock and made the rock into land, and -the plants grew larger and spread farther over -the land.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came the first <span class="more"><i>tiny animals</i></span> in the -water. They were wee <i>Mites</i> like drops of -jelly.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came things like <i>Insects</i>, -some that live <i>in</i> the water, some <i>on</i> the water, -some <i>on</i> the land, and some <i>in</i> the air.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came <i>Fish</i>, that live only in -the water.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came <i>Frogs</i>, that live in the -water and on the land, too.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came <i>Snakes</i> and huge <i>lizards</i> -bigger than alligators, more like dragons; and -they grew so big that at last they could not move -and died because they could not get enough food -to eat.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came <i>Birds</i> that lay eggs and -those <i>Animals</i> like foxes and elephants and cows -that nurse their babies when they are born.</p> - -<p>Then, after this, came <i>Monkeys</i>.</p> - -<p>Then, last of all, came—what do you -suppose? Yes—<i>People</i>—men, women, and -children.</p> - -<p>Here are the steps; see if you can take them:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9"></span></p> - -<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tds">Star,</td> - <td class="tds">Sun;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Sun,</td> - <td class="tds">Spark;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Spark,</td> - <td class="tds">World;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">World,</td> - <td class="tds">Steam;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Steam,</td> - <td class="tds">Rain;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Rain,</td> - <td class="tds">Oceans.</td></tr> - -</table> - -<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tds">Oceans,</td> - <td class="tds">Plants;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Plants,</td> - <td class="tds">Mites;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Mites,</td> - <td class="tds">Insects;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Insects,</td> - <td class="tds">Fish;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Fish,</td> - <td class="tds">Frogs;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Frogs,</td> - <td class="tds">Snakes.</td></tr> - -</table> - -<table cellpadding="1" cellspacing="0" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tds">Snakes,</td> - <td class="tds">Birds;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Birds,</td> - <td class="tds">Animals;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Animals,</td> - <td class="tds">Monkeys;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">Monkeys,</td> - <td class="tds">People;</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds"></td> - <td class="tds">And here we are!</td> - <td class="tds"></td></tr> - - - - -</table> - -<p>What do you suppose will be next?</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c2">2</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Umfa-Umfa and Itchy-Scratchy</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">How</span> do you suppose I know about all these -things that took place so long ago?</p> - -<p>I don’t.</p> - -<p>I’m only guessing about them.</p> - -<p>But there are different kinds of guesses. If -I hold out my two closed hands and ask you to -guess which one has the penny in it, that is one -kind of a guess. Your guess might be right or -it might be wrong. It would be just luck.</p> - -<p>But there is another kind of a guess. When -there is snow on the ground and I see tracks of a -boot in the snow, I guess that a man must have -passed by, for boots don’t usually walk without -some one in them. That kind of a guess is not -just luck but common sense.</p> - -<p>And so we can guess about a great many things -that have taken place long ago, even though there -was no one there at the time to see them or tell -about them.</p> - -<p>Men have dug down deep under the ground in -different parts of the world and have found there—what -do you suppose?</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11"></span></p> - -<p>I don’t believe you would ever guess.</p> - -<p>They have found the heads of arrows and -spears and hatchets.</p> - -<p>The peculiar thing about these arrows and -spears and hatchets is that they are not made -of iron or steel, as you might expect, but of stone.</p> - -<p>Now, we are sure that only men could have -made and used such things, for birds and fish -or other animals do not use hatchets or spears. -We are also sure that these men must have lived -long, long years ago before iron and steel were -known, because it must have taken long, long -years for these things to have become covered up -so deep by dust and dirt. We have also found -the bones of the people themselves, who must -have died thousands upon thousands of years -ago, long before any one began to write down -history. So we know that the people who were -living on the earth then were working and playing, -eating and fighting—doing many of the same -things we are to-day—especially the fighting.</p> - -<p>This time in the pre-history of the world, when -people used such things made of stone, is therefore -called <span class="smcap">The Stone Age</span>.</p> - -<p>These First Stone Age People we call <i>Primitive</i>, -which simply means First as a Primer means -First Reader. Primitive People were wild animals. -Unlike other wild animals, however, they -walked on their hind legs.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12"></span></p> - -<p>These First People had hair growing, not just -on their heads, but all over their bodies, like some -shaggy dogs. They had no houses of any sort in -which to live. They simply lay down on the -ground when night came. Later, when the earth -became cold, they found caves in the rocks or in -the hillsides where they could get away from -the cold and storms and other wild animals. So -men, women, and children of this time were -called <i>Cave People</i>.</p> - -<p>They spent their days hunting some animals -and running and hiding from others. They -caught animals by trapping them in a pit covered -over with bushes, or they killed them with a club -or a rock if they had a chance, or with stone-headed -arrows or hatchets. They even drew -pictures of these animals on the walls of their -caves, scratching the picture with a pointed stone, -and some of these pictures we can still see to-day.</p> - -<p>They lived on berries and nuts and grass-seeds. -They robbed the nests of birds for the eggs, which -they ate raw, for they had no fire to cook with. -They were blood-thirsty; they liked to drink the -warm blood of animals they killed, as you would -a glass of milk.</p> - -<p>They talked to each other by some sort of -grunts—</p> - -<p>“Umfa, umfa, glug, glug.”</p> - -<p>They made clothes of skins of animals they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13"></span> -killed, for there was no such thing as cloth. And -yet, although they were real men, they lived so -much like wild animals that we call such people -<i>savages</i>.</p> - -<p>Primitive Men were not pleasant people. They -were fearful and cruel creatures, who beat and -killed and robbed whenever they had a chance.</p> - -<p>A cave man got his wife by stealing a girl -away from her own cave home, knocking her -senseless, and dragging her off by her hair, if -necessary. The men were fighters but not brave. -They would kill other animals and other men if -the others were weaker or if they could sneak -upon them and catch them off their guard, -but if others were stronger they would run and -hide.</p> - -<p>Their only rule of life was hurt and kill what -you can, and run from what you can’t. This is -what we call the first law of nature—every man -for himself. They knew if they didn’t kill they -would be killed, for there were no laws nor police -to protect them.</p> - -<p>These primitive cave people are our ancestors, -and we get from them many of their wild ways. -In spite of our religion and manners and education, -there are many men still living who act in -the same way when they get a chance.</p> - -<p>Jails are made for such men.</p> - -<p>Suppose you had been a boy or a girl in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14"></span> -Stone Age, with a name like Itchy-Scratchy. I -wonder how you would have liked the life.</p> - -<p>When you woke up in the morning, you would -not have bathed or even washed your hands and -face or brushed your teeth or combed your hair.</p> - -<p>You ate with your fingers, for there were no -knives or forks or spoons or cups or saucers, only -one bowl—which your mother had made out of -mud and dried in the sun to hold water to drink—no -dishes to wash and put away, no chairs, no -tables, no table manners.</p> - -<p>There were no books, no paper, no pencils.</p> - -<p>There was no Saturday or Sunday, January or -July. Except that one day was warm and sunny -or another cold and rainy, they were all alike. -There was no school to go to. Every day was a -holiday.</p> - -<p>There was nothing to do all day long but make -mud pies or pick berries or play tag with your -brothers and sisters.</p> - -<p>I wonder how you would like that kind of life!</p> - -<p>“Fine!” do you think?—“a great life—just -like camping out?”</p> - -<p>But I have only told you part of the story.</p> - -<p>The cave would have been cold and damp and -dark, with only the bare ground or a pile of -leaves for a bed. There would probably have -been bats and big spiders sharing the cave with -you.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_15"></span></p> - -<p>You might have had on the skin of some -animal your father had killed but as this only -covered part of your body and as there was no -fire, you would have felt cold in winter, and when -it got very cold you might have frozen to death.</p> - -<p>For breakfast you might have had some dried -berries or grass-seed or a piece of raw meat, for -dinner the same thing, for supper still the same -thing.</p> - -<p>You would never have had any bread or milk -or griddle-cakes with syrup, or oatmeal with -sugar on it, or apple pie or ice-cream.</p> - -<p>There was nothing to do all day long but -watch out for wild animals—bears and tigers; -for there was no door with lock and key, and a -tiger, if he found you out, could go wherever you -went and “get you” even in your cave.</p> - -<p>And then some day your father, who had left -the cave in the morning to go hunting, would not -return, and you would know he had been torn to -pieces by some wild beast, and you would wonder -how long before your turn would come next.</p> - -<p>Do you think you would like to have lived -then?</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_16"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c3">3</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Fire! Fire!! Fire!!!</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> first things are usually the most interesting—the -first baby, the first tooth, the first -step, the first word, the first spanking. This -book will be chiefly the story of first things; -those that came second or third or fourth or fifth -you can read about and study later.</p> - -<p>Primitive People did not at first know what -fire was. They had no matches nor any way of -making a light or a fire. They had no light at -night. They had no fire to warm themselves by. -They had no fire with which to cook their food. -Somewhere and sometime, we do not know exactly -when or how, they found out how to make -and use fire.</p> - -<p>If you rub your hands together rapidly, they -become warm. Try it. If you rub them together -still more rapidly, they become hot. If -you rub two sticks together rapidly, they become -warm. If you rub two sticks together very, very, -very rapidly, they become hot and at last, if you -keep it up long enough and fast enough, are set -on fire. The Indians and boy scouts do this and -make a fire by twisting one stick against another.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_17"></span></p> - -<p>This was one of the first inventions, and this -invention was as remarkable for them at that time -as the invention of electric light in our own times.</p> - -<p>People of the Stone Age had hair and beards -that were never cut, because they had nothing to -cut them with, even had they wanted them short, -which they probably didn’t.</p> - -<p>Their finger-nails grew like claws until they -broke off.</p> - -<p>They had no clothes made of cloth, for they -had no cloth and nothing with which to cut and -sew cloth if they had.</p> - -<p>They had no saws to cut boards, no hammer -or nails to fasten them together to make houses -or furniture.</p> - -<p>They had no forks nor spoons; no pots nor -pans; no buckets nor shovels; no needles nor -pins.</p> - -<p>The People of the Stone Age had never seen -or heard of such a thing as iron or steel or tin -or brass or anything made of these metals. For -thousands and thousands of years Primitive -People got along without any of the things that -are made of metal.</p> - -<p>Then one day a Stone Age Man found out -something by accident; a “discovery” we call it.</p> - -<p>He was making a fire; and a fire, which is to -us such a common, every-day thing, was still to -him very wonderful. Round his fire he placed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18"></span> -some rock to make a sort of camp-fire stove. -Now, it happened that this particular rock was -not ordinary rock but what we now call “ore,” -for it had copper in it. The heat of the fire melted -some of the copper out of the rock, and it ran -out on the ground.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig6.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">A cave man discovering copper.</p> -</div> - -<p>What were those -bright, shining -drops?</p> - -<p>He examined -them.</p> - -<p>How pretty -they were!</p> - -<p>He heated some -more of the same -rock and got some -more copper.</p> - -<p>Thus was the -first metal discovered.</p> - -<p>At first people used the copper for beads and -ornaments, it was so bright and shiny. But they -soon found out that copper could be pounded -into sharp blades and points, which were much -better than the stone knives and arrow-heads -they had used before.</p> - -<p>But notice that it was not iron they discovered -first, it was copper.</p> - -<p>We think people next discovered tin in somewhat -the same way. Then, after that, they found<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19"></span> -out that tin when mixed with copper made a still -harder and better metal than either alone. This -metal, made of tin and copper together, we now -call bronze; and for two or three thousand years -people made their tools and weapons out of -bronze. And so we call the time when men used -bronze tools, and bronze weapons for hunting -and fighting, the Bronze Age.</p> - -<p>At last some man discovered iron, and he soon -saw that iron was better for most useful things -than either copper or bronze. The Iron Age -started with the discovery of iron, and we are still -in the Iron Age.</p> - -<p>As people who lived in the Bronze and Iron -Ages were able, after the discovery of metal, to -do many things they could not possibly have -done before with only stone, and as they lived -much more as we do now, we call people of the -Bronze and Iron Ages “civilized.”</p> - -<p>You may have heard in your mythology or -fairy tales of a Golden Age also, but by this is -meant something quite different. The Golden -Age means a time when everything was beautiful -and lovely and everybody wise and good. There -have been times in the World’s History which -have been called the Golden Age for this reason.</p> - -<p>But I am afraid there never has been really a -golden age—only in fairy-tales.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_20"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c4">4</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">From an Airplane</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">People</span> of the Bronze and Iron Ages thought -the world was flat, and they knew only a little -bit of the world, the small part where they lived; -and they thought that if you went too far the -world came to an end where you would</p> - -<p class="pad6"> -TU<br /> -<span class="pad6a">M</span><br /> -<span class="pad6b">B</span><br /> -<span class="pad6c">L</span><br /> -<span class="pad6d">E</span><br /> -<br /> - -<span class="pad6e">O</span><br /> -<span class="pad6f">F</span><br /> -<span class="pad6f">F</span><br /> -</p> - - -<p>The far-away land which nobody knew they -called the Ultima Thule. This is a nice name to -say—Ultima Thule, Ultima Thule—far-away -Ultima Thule.</p> - -<p>If we should go up in an airplane and look -down on the world at the place where the first -civilized people once lived, we should see two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21"></span> -rivers, a sea and a gulf, and from so high up in -the air they would look something like this:</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig7.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Map of Mesopotamia and Mediterranean.</p> -</div> - -<p>Now, you probably have never even heard -of these rivers and seas, and yet they have been -known longer than any other places in the world. -One of these lines is the Tigris River, and the -other is the Euphrates. They run along getting -closer and closer together until at last they join -each other and flow into what is called the Persian -Gulf.</p> - -<p>You might make these two rivers in the -ground of your yard or garden or draw them on -the floor if your mother will let you. Just for -fun you might name your drinking-cup “Tigris” -and your glass “Euphrates.” Then you might -call your mouth, into which they both empty,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22"></span> -the “Persian Gulf,” for you will hear a great -many new names by and by, and as grown-up -people give names to their houses and boats, to -their horses and dogs, why shouldn’t you give -names to things that belong to you? For instance, -you might call your chair, your bed, your -table, your comb and brush, even your hat and -shoes, after these strange names.</p> - -<p>Then, if we flew in our airplane to the west, we -should see a country called Egypt, another river, -the Nile, and a sea now named the Mediterranean. -Mediterranean simply means “between -the land,” for this sea is surrounded by land. It -is, indeed, almost like a big lake. It is supposed -that long, long ago in the Stone Age, there was -no water at all where this sea now is, only a dry -valley, and that people once lived there.</p> - -<p>Along the Nile in Egypt and the Tigris and -Euphrates were the only civilized nations living -in the Bronze Age. The rest of the World -people knew nothing about. There may have -been Cave Men living in other parts of the -World, but it is only of the people in these two -places that we have any written history until -after the Iron Age began.</p> - -<p>All of the people who lived in the country of -the Tigris and Euphrates were white. We don’t -know how nor when nor where colored people -first lived, though it is interesting to guess. There<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23"></span> -were, we think, just three different white families -and from these three families all the white -people in the world are descended. Yes, your -family came from here, ’way, ’way, ’way, ’way, -back. So you will want to know the names of -these three families and which one was your own. -They were:</p> - -<p class="c"> -The Indo-Europeans, often called Aryans,<br /> -The Semites, and<br /> -The Hamites. -</p> - -<p>Most of us belong to the Aryan family, some -are Semites, but very few in this part of the -World are Hamites.</p> - -<p>If your name is Henry or Charles or William, -you are probably an Aryan.</p> - -<p>If it is Moses or Solomon, you are probably -a Semite.</p> - -<p>If it is Shufu or Rameses, you are probably -a Hamite.</p> - -<p>The Aryans came from higher up on the map -than the other two families, we think. They -were the first people to tame wild horses and to -use them for riding and drawing carts. They -also had tamed cows which they used for milk, -and sheep for their wool.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c5">5</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Real History Begins or ’Way ’Way Back<br /> -to the Time of the Gipsies</p> - -<p> -<span class="smcap">You</span> can remember the big things that have -happened in your own lifetime.</p> - -<p>And you have of course heard your father -tell about things that happened in his own life—how -he fought the Germans in the Great War, -perhaps.</p> - -<p>And if your grandfather is still living, he can -tell you still other stories of things that took -place when he was a boy before even your father -was born.</p> - -<p> -Perhaps your<br /> -<span class="pad4">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad11">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad12">grandfather</span></p> - -<p> -may have been living when Washington was -President, and <i>his</i></p> -<p> -<span class="pad4">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad11">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad12">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad13">great,</span><br /> -<span class="pad14">grandfather</span> -</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25"></span></p> -<p>may have been living when there were only wild -Indians in this country.</p> - -<p>Although these ancestors, as they are called, -are dead long since, the story of what did happen -in all their lifetimes ’way, ’way back has been -written down in books and this story is history—“his -story” one boy named it.</p> - -<p>Christ was living in the Year 1—no, not the -first year of the world, of course.</p> - -<p>Do you know how many years ago that was?</p> - -<p>You can tell if you know what year this is -now.</p> - -<p>If Christ were living to-day, how old would -He be?</p> - -<p>Nineteen hundred and more years may seem -a long time. But perhaps you have seen or heard -of a man or a woman who was a hundred years -old. Have you?</p> - -<p>Well, in nineteen hundred years only nineteen -men each a hundred years old might have lived -one after the other—nineteen men one after the -other since the time of Christ—and that doesn’t -seem so long after all!</p> - -<p>Everything that happened <i>before</i> Christ was -born is called <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, which you can guess are the -initials of Before Christ, so <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> stands for Before -Christ. So much is easy.</p> - -<p>Everything that has happened in the world -<i>since</i> the time of Christ is called <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> This is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26"></span> -not so easy for though <span class="allsmcap">A.</span> might stand for After, -we know <span class="allsmcap">D.</span> is not the initial of Christ. As -a matter of fact, <span class="allsmcap">A. D.</span> are the initials of two Latin -words, “Anno Domini.” Anno means “in the -year,” Domini “of the Lord”; so that Anno -Domini is “in the year, of the Lord,” which in -ordinary, every-day language means of course -“since the time of Christ.”</p> - -<p>The things I have told you that I have had to -guess at we call Before-History, or <i>Pre-History</i>—which -means the same thing. But the things -that have happened in the lifetime of people, -who have written them down—the stories I don’t -have to guess at—we call <i>History</i>.</p> - -<p>The first history that we feel fairly sure is -really true begins with the Hamite family. The -Hamites, you remember, were one of the three -families of the white race I have already told you -about who lived by the Tigris and Euphrates. -We think that they moved away from the Tigris -and Euphrates Rivers and went down to Egypt -long before history began.</p> - -<p>Of course they didn’t pack all their furniture -on a big wagon and move to Egypt, -as you might move from the house where -you now live to another. They lived in -tents then and not in houses at all, and they only -moved along a day’s journey at a time as campers -or Gipsies might do. In fact, Gipsy is short<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27"></span> -for Egyptian. When they got tired of one place -or had eaten up everything there was near-by, -they rolled up their tents, packed them on camels, -and moved a little farther along to a new place. -And so camping here for a while, then gradually -moving farther along to the next good place and -camping there, they at last got as far off as the -land we now call Egypt. When they finally -reached Egypt they found it such a fine country -in which to live that there they stayed for good -and were called Egyptians.</p> - -<p>Why do you suppose they found Egypt such -a fine country in which to live? It was chiefly -on account of a habit of the river Nile—a bad -habit you might at first think it—a habit of flooding -the country once every year.</p> - -<p>It rains so hard in the spring that the water -fills up the river Nile, overflows its banks, and -spreads far out over the land, but not very deep. -It is as if you had left a water-spigot turned on -and the water running, or had begun to water -your garden with a hose, and then you had gone -off and forgotten it.</p> - -<p>But the people know when the overflow is -coming and they are glad for it to come, so they -put banks around some of it so that it is stored -up for watering the land during the rest of the -year when there is no rain. After most of the -water has dried up, it has left a layer of rich,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28"></span> -dark, moist earth over the whole country. In -this earth it is easy to grow dates, wheat, and -other things which are good for food.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig8.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Menes, 3400 B. C.</p> -</div> - -<p>If it were not for this yearly overflow of the -Nile, the country of Egypt would be a sandy -desert in which no plant or living thing would -grow—for all plants as well as animals must have -water and will die without it. Egypt, without -water, would be like the great Sahara Desert, -which is not far away. It is the Nile, therefore, -that makes the land so rich and Egypt such an -easy and cheap country to live in, for food grows -with little or no labor and costs almost nothing. -Besides this, the climate is so warm that people -need little clothing and do not have to buy coal -or make fires to heat their houses. So it was to -this country that the Hamites at last came, finally -settled down, and were thereafter called -Egyptians.</p> - -<p>The first Egyptian king -whose name we know was -Menes, but we do not know -much about him. We believe -he built some kind of waterworks -so that the people might -better use the water of the -Nile, and he probably lived -about 3400 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> He may have lived either earlier -or later, but as this is an easy date to remember,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29"></span> -we shall take it for a starting-point. You might -remember it by supposing it is a telephone number -of a person you wanted to call up:</p> - -<p>Menes, First Egyptian king . . 3400 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig9.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30"></span></p> -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c6">6</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Puzzle-Writers</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">People</span> of the Stone Age had learned how to -talk to each other, but they could not write, for -there was no such thing as an alphabet or written -words, and so they could not send notes or -messages to one another or write stories. The -Egyptians were the first people to think of a way -to write what they wanted to say.</p> - -<p>The Egyptians did not write with letters like -ours, however, but with signs that looked like -little pictures, a lion, a spear, a bird, a whip. -This picture-writing was called hieroglyphics—see -if you can say “Hi-e-ro-glyph-ics.” Perhaps -you have seen, in the puzzle sections of a newspaper, -stories written in pictures for you to guess -the meaning. Well, hieroglyphics were something -like that.</p> - -<p>Here is the name of an Egyptian queen, whom -you will hear about later—written in hieroglyphics; -her name you would never guess from -this funny writing. It is “Cleopatra.”</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig10.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Cleopatra in hieroglyphic<br /> -writing.</p> -</div> - -<p>A king’s or queen’s name always had a line -drawn around it, like the one you see around the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31"></span> -above name in order to mark it more prominently -and give it more importance. It was something -like the square or circle your -mother may put around her -initials or monogram on her -letter-paper.</p> - -<p>But there was no paper in -those days and so the Egyptians -wrote on the leaves of a -plant called papyrus that -grew in the water. It is from -this name “papyrus” that we -get the name “paper.” Can -you see that “paper” and “papyrus” -look and sound something -alike? The Egyptians’ -books were written by hand, of course, but they -had no pencils nor pens nor ink to write with. -For a pen they used a reed, split at the end, and -for ink a mixture of water and soot.</p> - -<p>Their books were not made of separate pages -like our books, but from a long sheet of papyrus-leaves -pasted together. This was rolled up to -form what was called a scroll, something like a -roll of wall-paper, and was read as it was unrolled.</p> - -<p>Stories of their kings and battles and great -events in their history they used to write on the -walls of their buildings and monuments. This<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32"></span> -writing they carved into the stone, so that it -would last much longer than that on the papyrus-leaves.</p> - -<p>All the old Egyptians, who wrote in hieroglyphics -and knew how to read this writing, had -died long since, and for a great many years no -one knew what such writing meant. But a little -over a hundred years ago a man found out by -accident how to read and understand hieroglyphics -once again. This is the way he happened -to do so.</p> - -<p>The Nile separates into different streams before -it flows into the Mediterranean Sea. These -separate streams are called mouths and one -of these mouths has been given the name “Rosetta.”</p> - -<p>One day a man was digging nearby this -Rosetta Mouth when he dug up a stone something -like a tombstone with several kinds of writing -on it. The top writing was in pictures which -we now call hieroglyphics, and no one understood -what it meant. Below this was written what -was supposed to be the same story in the Greek -language, and a great many people do understand -Greek. All one had to do, therefore, to -find out the meaning of the hieroglyphics, was to -compare the two writings. It was like reading -secret writing when we know what the letters -stand for. You may have tried to solve a puzzle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33"></span> -in the back of your magazine, and this was just -such an interesting puzzle, only there was no -one to tell the answer in the next number.</p> - -<p>The puzzle was not so easy as it sounds, however, -for it took a man almost twenty years to -solve it. That is a long time for any one to spend -in trying to solve a puzzle, isn’t it? But after -this “key” to the puzzle was found, men were -able to read all of the hieroglyphics in Egypt and -so to find out what happened in that country long -before Christ was born.</p> - -<p>This stone is called the Rosetta Stone, from -the Rosetta Mouth of the Nile where it was -found. It is now in the great British Museum -in London and is very famous, because from it -we were able to learn so much history which we -otherwise would not have known.</p> - -<p>Egypt was ruled over by a king who was called -a Pharaoh. When he died his son became the -Pharaoh and so on. All the other people were -divided into classes, and the children in each -class usually became just what their fathers had -been. It was very unusual for an Egyptian to -start at the bottom and work up to the top, as -a poor boy in this country may do, though once -in a great while this happened even in Egypt, as -we shall see by and by.</p> - -<p>The highest class of people were called priests. -They were not like priests or ministers of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34"></span> -church nowadays, however, for there was no -church at that time. The priests made the religion -and rules, which every one had to obey as -everybody does the laws of our land.</p> - -<p>But the priests were not only priests; they -were doctors and lawyers and engineers, as well. -They were the best-educated class, and they -were the only people who knew how to read and -write, for it was very difficult, as you might suppose, -to learn how to read and write hieroglyphics.</p> - -<p>The next highest class to the priests were -the soldiers, and below these were the lower -classes—farmers, shepherds, shopkeepers, merchants, -mechanics, and last of all the swineherds.</p> - -<p>The Egyptians did not worship one God as -we do. They believed in hundreds of gods and -goddesses, and they had a special god for every -sort of thing, who ruled over and had charge of -that thing—a god of the farm, a god of the home, -and so on. Some of their gods were good and -some were bad, but the Egyptians prayed to -them all.</p> - -<p>Osiris was the chief god, and Isis was his wife. -Osiris was the god of farming and judge of the -dead. Their son Horus had the head of a hawk.</p> - -<p>Many of their gods had bodies of men with -heads of animals. Animals they thought sacred. -The dog and the cat were sacred animals. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35"></span> -ibis, which was a bird like a stork, was another. -Then there was the beetle, which was called a -scarab. If any one killed a sacred animal he was -put to death, for the Egyptians thought it much -worse to kill a sacred and holy creature than to -kill even a human being.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig11.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c7">7</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Tomb-Builders</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig12.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Tu-tank-amen’s tomb showing foods preserved.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Egyptians believed that when they died, -their souls stayed near by their bodies. So -when a person died they put in the tomb with -him all sorts of things that he had used in daily -life—things to eat and drink, furniture and -dishes, toys and games. They thought the soul -would return to its own body at the day of judgment. -They wanted their bodies to be kept -from decaying until judgment day, in order that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37"></span> -the soul might then have a body to return to. -So they pickled the bodies of the dead by soaking -them in a kind of melted tar and wrapping -them round and round and round with a cloth -like a bandage. A dead body pickled in this way -is called a mummy, and after thousands of years -the mummies of the Egyptian kings may still be -seen. Most of them are not, however, in the -tombs where they were at first placed. They -have been moved away and put in museums, and -we may see them there now. Although they -are yellow and dried up, they still look like</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse indent0">“Little old men</div> -<div class="verse indent0">All skin and bones.”</div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - - -<p>At first only kings or important people of the -highest classes were made mummies, but after -a while all the classes, except perhaps the lowest, -were treated in the same way. Sacred animals -from beetles to cows were also made into -mummies.</p> - -<p>When an Egyptian died his friends heaped -up a few stones over his body just to cover it up -decently and keep it from being stolen or destroyed -by those wild animals that fed on dead -bodies. But a king or a rich man wanted a -bigger pile of stones over his body than just -ordinary people had. So to make sure that his -pile would be big enough, a king built it for -himself before he died. Each king tried to make<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38"></span> -his pile larger than any one else’s until at last -the pile of stones became so big it was a hill of -rocks and called a pyramid. The pyramids -therefore were tombs of the kings who built -them while they were alive to be monuments to -themselves when they were dead. In fact a king -was much more interested in building a home -for his dead body than he was in a home for -his live body. So, instead of palaces, kings built -pyramids. There are many of these pyramids -built along the bank of the Nile, and most of -them were built, we think, just after 3000 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>When a building is being put up nowadays, -men use derricks and cranes and engines to haul -and raise heavy stones and beams. But the -Egyptians had no such machinery, and though -they used huge stones to build the pyramids, -they had to drag these stones for many miles -and raise them into place simply by pushing and -pulling them. The three biggest of all the pyramids -are near the city of Cairo. The largest one -of them, which is called the Great Pyramid, -was built by a king named Cheops. To remember -when he lived, simply think of this as another -telephone number:</p> - -<p class="c"> -Cheops ..............2900 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span><br /> -</p> - -<p>It is said that one hundred thousand men worked -twenty years to build his pyramid. It is one of -the largest buildings in the world, and some of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39"></span> -the blocks of stone themselves are as big as a -small house. I have been to the top of it, and -it is like climbing a steep mountain with rocky -sides. I have also been far inside to the cave-like -room in the center where Cheop’s mummy -was placed. There is nothing in there now, -however, except bats that fly about in the darkness, -for the mummy has disappeared—been -stolen, perhaps.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig13.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Cheops building his pyramid.</p> -</div> - -<p>Near the Pyramid of Cheops is the Sphinx. -It is a huge statue of a lion with a man’s head. -It is as big as a church, and though it is so big, it -has been carved out of one single rock. The -rock, however, was already there and so did not -have to be carried. The Sphinx is a statue of -the god of the morning, and the head is that of -one of the Egyptian Pharaohs who built a pyramid -near that of Cheops. The desert sand has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40"></span> -covered the paws and most of the body. Though -the sand has been dug away from time to time, -the wind quickly covers the body with sand -again.</p> - -<p>The Egyptians carved other large statues of -men and women out of rock. These figures are -usually many times bigger than life-size, and sit -or stand stiffly erect with both feet flat on the -ground and hands close to the body in the position -some children take when they “sit” for their -photograph.</p> - -<p>They built huge houses for their gods. These -were called temples and took the place of our -churches. These temples had gigantic—that’s -the way it is spelled, though it means “giant-ic”—columns -and pillars. Ordinary people standing -beside them look like dwarfs. Here is one of -these temples, and you can see how different it -is from our churches:</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig14.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Egyptian temple.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_41"></span></p> - -<p>They decorated their temples and pyramids, -and the cases in which the mummies were put, -with drawings and paintings. The pictures -they made, however, looked something like those -a young child might draw. For example, when -they wanted to make a picture of water, they -simply made a zigzag line to represent waves; -when they tried to draw a row of men back of -a row in front, they put those in the back <i>on top</i> -of those in front. To show that a man was a -king, they made him several times larger than -the other men in the picture. When they -painted a picture they used any color they -thought was pretty, usually blue or yellow or -brown. Whether the person or thing was really -that color or not made no difference.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_42"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c8">8</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Rich Land Where There Was No<br /> -Money</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">You</span> have read in fairy-tales of a land where -cakes and candy and sugar-plums grow on trees, -where everything you want to eat or to play with -can be had just by picking it. Well, long, long -ago people used to think there had been really -such a country, and where do you suppose they -said it was? Somewhere near the Tigris and -Euphrates Rivers—those rivers with the strange -names I asked you to learn—and they called -this spot the Garden of Eden. We do not know -exactly where it was, for there is no such place -now quite as wonderful as the Garden of Eden -was supposed to be.</p> - -<p>Egypt was a land of one river, the Nile. The -land of the Two Rivers had several names.</p> - -<p>Let us suppose we are flying over the country -in an airplane and looking down at the land between -these two rivers. It is called Mesopotamia, -which is two Greek words simply meaning -“Between the Rivers.”</p> - -<p>See the land over there by the upper Tigris. -It is called <i>Assyria</i>.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43"></span></p> - -<p>See the land near where the rivers join each -other. That is called <i>Babylonia</i>.</p> - -<p>See the land near where they empty. That -is called <i>Chaldea</i>.</p> - -<p>And see over there is <i>Mount Ararat</i>, where it -is supposed Noah’s Ark rested after the flood.</p> - -<p>Here are a lot of new names. A young -friend of mine had a train of toy cars. He had -noticed that the Pullman cars on which he had -ridden had names, and so he gave his toy cars -names also. He called them:</p> - -<p class="pad6c"> -<span class="smcap">Assyria</span> <span class="smcap pad6">Mesopotamia</span><br /> -<span class="smcap pad6c">Babylonia</span> <span class="smcap pad14">Ararat</span><br /> -<span class="smcap pad6e">Chaldea</span> <span class="smcap pad6">Euphrates</span> -</p> - -<p>Babylonia was a very rich country, for the -two rivers brought down and dropped great -quantities of earth just as the Nile did in -Egypt, and this made very rich soil. Wheat, -from which we make bread, is called the staff of -life. It is the most valuable of all foods which -grow. It is supposed that wheat first grew in -Babylonia. Dates in that part of the world are -almost as important a food as wheat. Dates, -too, grow there very plentifully. Now, you may -think dates are something to be eaten almost like -candy but in Babylonia dates took the place of -oatmeal. In the rivers there were quantities of -good fish, and as fishing was just fun, you see -that the people who lived in Babylonia—the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44"></span> -Babylonians, as they were called—had plenty of -good food without having to do much work for -it. No one had any money in those days; people -had cows and sheep and goats, and a man was -rich who had much of these “goods.” But if a -man wanted to buy or sell, he had to buy or sell -by trading something he had for something he -wanted.</p> - -<p>Somewhere in Babylonia the people built a -great tower called the <i>Tower of Babel</i>, which -you have probably heard about. It was more -like a mountain than a tower. They built other -towers, too. Some say the Tower of Babel and -towers like it were built so that the people -might have a high place to which they could -climb in case of another flood. But others give -a different reason. They say that the people -who built these towers came to Babylonia from -farther north where there were mountains. In -this northern land they had always placed their -altars on the top of a mountain, to be close to -heaven. So when they moved to a flat country -like Mesopotamia and Babylonia, where there -were no mountains, they <i>built</i> mountains in -order to have a high place for the altar on top. -To reach the top of these mountains or towers, -they made, instead of a staircase on the inside, a -slanting roadway that wound around the outside -in somewhat the way a road winds around -a mountain.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45"></span></p> - -<p>There was hardly any stone either in or near -Babylonia as there was in Egypt, and so the -Babylonians built their buildings of bricks, which -were made of mud formed into blocks and dried -in the sun. In the course of time, bricks of this -sort crumble and turn back into dust again just -as mud pies that you might make would do. -This is the reason why all that is left of the -Tower of Babel and the other buildings that -were put up so long ago are now simply hills of -clay into which the brick has turned.</p> - -<p>The Egyptians wrote on papyrus or carved -their history in stone, but the Babylonians had -neither papyrus nor stone. All they had were -bricks. So they wrote on bricks before they -were dried, while they were still soft clay. This -writing was made by punching marks into the -clay with the end of a stick. It was called -<i>cuneiform</i>, which means wedge-shaped, for it -looked like little groups of wedge-shaped marks, -like chicken-tracks, made in the mud. I have -seen boys’ writing that looked more like cuneiform -than it did like English.</p> - -<p>The Babylonians as they watched their flocks -by night and by day watched also the sun and -the moon and the stars moving across the sky. -So they came to know a great deal about these -heavenly bodies.</p> - -<p>Did you ever see the moon in the daytime?</p> - -<p>Oh, yes, you can.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig15.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Babylonians watching eclipse.</p> -</div> - -<p>Well, every once in a great while the moon as -it moves across the sky gets in front of the sun -and shuts out its light—just as, if you should put -a white plate in front of an electric light, the -electric light would be darkened. It may be ten -o’clock in the morning and broad daylight when -suddenly the sun is covered up by the moon as by -a white plate and it becomes night and the stars<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47"></span> -shine out and chickens, thinking it is night, go -to roost. But in a few moments the moon passes -by and the sun shines out once again. This is -called an <i>eclipse</i> of the sun.</p> - -<p>Now you probably have never seen an eclipse -of the sun, but some day you may. At that time, -and even to-day when ignorant people see an -eclipse of the sun, they think that something -dreadful is going to happen—the end of the -world, perhaps, just because they have never -seen such a strange sight before and do not know -that it is a thing that happens regularly and that -no harm comes from it.</p> - -<p>Well, nearly twenty-three hundred years -before Christ, 2300 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, the Babylonians told -beforehand just when there was going to be an -eclipse of the sun. They had watched the moon -moving across the sky and they had figured out -how long it would be before it would catch up -with the sun and cross directly over it. So you -see how much the old Babylonians knew about -such things. Men who study the stars and other -heavenly bodies are called astronomers, and -the Babylonians, therefore, were famous astronomers.</p> - -<p>The Egyptians worshiped animals; but it -was quite natural that the Babylonians should -worship these wonderful heavenly bodies, the -sun, moon, and stars, and they did.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48"></span></p> - -<p>The first king of Babylonia whom we know -much about—and that much is very little—was -Sargon I, who may have lived about the same -time that the pyramids were built in Egypt.</p> - -<p>About 2100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> Babylonia had a king known -far and wide for the laws he made. His name -was Hammurabi, and we still have the laws he -made though we no longer obey them; for -they were carved into a stone in cuneiform, -and we have the stone. Sargon and Hammurabi -are strange names like no one’s name -you ever heard before, yet they are real names -of real kings who ruled over real people.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig16.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c9">9</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Wandering Jews</p> - - -<p>“<span class="smcap">You</span> are” spells “Ur.” It is one of the -shortest names I know. It is the name of a -little place in that part of Babylonia called -Chaldea. In this place—about nineteen hundred -years <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>—there lived a man named Abraham. -Abraham had a very large family and though -he had no money he was rich. He had large -herds of sheep and goats, and these were the -chief riches in those days. Now, Abraham believed -in one God, as we do, while his neighbors, -the Babylonians, worshiped idols and the -heavenly bodies, such as the sun, moon, and -stars, as I have just said. Abraham did not like -his neighbors for this reason; and his neighbors -didn’t like him, either, for they thought his -ideas were peculiar or even crazy. So, about -nineteen hundred years before Christ, Abraham -took his large family, his flocks, and his herds -and moved to a land called Canaan, far away -on the edge of the Mediterranean Sea.</p> - -<p>Abraham lived to be a very old man, and he -had a large family. One of his grandsons named<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50"></span> -Jacob, who was also known by the name of -Israel, had a son Joseph. You probably remember -the Bible story of Jacob’s favorite son -Joseph with the coat of many colors. Joseph’s -brothers were jealous of him, as boys and even -dogs are apt to be jealous of any one who is -liked better than they are. So they put Joseph -into a well and then sold him as a slave to -some Egyptians who were passing by. Then -they told their father Jacob that Joseph had -been killed by wild animals. The Egyptians -took Joseph to far-off Egypt—far away from -Canaan.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig17.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Abraham leaving Ur. 1900 B.C.</p> -</div> - -<p>But although Joseph was a slave in Egypt, -and although, as I told you, it was very difficult -for any one to work his way up out of his class -to a higher class, he was so bright that at last -he became one of the rulers in Egypt.</p> - -<p>Now, at that time when he was ruler there -came a famine in Canaan and there was no food. -In Egypt, however, there was plenty of food -stored up. So Joseph’s wicked brothers went<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51"></span> -down to Egypt to beg the rulers for bread. They -probably thought by that time their brother was -dead. They did not know that he had become -such a great man and that he was now the ruler -of whom they were begging food. You can -imagine how surprised they were and how -ashamed they must have felt when they found -out that the great ruler was their own brother, -whom they had planned to kill and then had sold -as a slave.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig18.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Rameses’ mummy.</p> -</div> - -<p>Joseph might have let his brothers starve to -death or put them in prison, or sent them back -to Canaan without anything, if he had wanted -to revenge himself on them. But instead of doing -any of these things, he gave them not only -all the food they wanted and more to take back -home, but made them rich presents besides. -Then he told them to go back and get the rest -of his family and return with them to Egypt, -and he promised to give them a piece of land -called Goshen where there would be no famines -and they might live happily. So they did as they -were told, and Israel and his sons and all their -families came down and settled in Goshen about -1700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> They were called Israelites, which -means of course the children of Israel, and they -believed they were God’s chosen people. These -are the people we now call the Jews.</p> - -<p>After Joseph, who was of course an Israelite<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52"></span> -himself, died, the kings or Pharaohs of Egypt -did not like these foreign people who belonged -to the Semite family, and treated them very -badly, as other peoples have always treated the -Jews badly ever since. Though the Jews and -their sons and sons’ -sons lived in -Egypt for about -four hundred -years, they were -always hated by -the Egyptians.</p> - -<p>Now about four -hundred years -from the time the -Jews first came into -Egypt—400 from -1700 is 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>—there -was a ruler -of Egypt called -Rameses the Great.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_53"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig19.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Rameses the Great.</p> -</div> - -<p>Rameses so hated the Jews that finally he gave -orders to have every Jewish boy baby killed. In -this way he thought to get rid of these people. -One little Jewish boy named Moses, however, -was saved, and when he grew up he became the -greatest leader of his people. Moses wanted to -get the Jews out of this unfriendly country -where the people worshiped false gods. And -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54"></span>so at last he led all his people out of Egypt across -the Red Sea. This was called the Exodus, and -it took place about 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>After the Jews had left Egypt they first -stopped at the foot of a mountain called Mount -Sinai, while Moses went up to the top where he -could be by himself and learn what God wanted -him and the Jews to do. Moses spent forty days -praying on top of the mountain. When he came -down from the mountain-top, he brought with -him the Ten Commandments, the same Ten -Commandments you may have learned in Sunday-school. -But Moses had been gone so long -that when he came back again to his people he -found them worshiping a golden calf as the -Egyptians had done. They had lived in Egypt -until they had come to think it was all right to -worship idols.</p> - -<p>Moses was very angry. It was high time, he -thought, that they should get rid of the bad influence -of their old Egyptian neighbors. And -at last he succeeded in making them worship -God again and gave them the Ten Commandments -for their rule of life. So Moses is called -a lawgiver and the founder of the Jewish religion. -Then Moses died, and the Jews wandered -from place to place for a great many -years before they finally settled in Canaan.</p> - -<p>The Jews had no kings. They were ruled by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55"></span> -men called judges, but the judges lived very -simply, just like every one else and not like -kings in palaces with servants and fine robes and -rich jewels. But the Jews wanted a real king as -their enemies had and other nations who were -their neighbors. Strange they wanted a king -which so many countries have tried to get rid -of—we should think they would have preferred -a President as we have.</p> - -<p>So at last a judge who was named Samuel -said they should have a king, and Saul was -chosen. Then Samuel poured olive-oil over -Saul’s head. This may seem a queer thing to do, -but it took the place of putting a crown on his -head and was a sign that he was to be king. -Samuel, therefore, was the last one of their -judges, and Saul was their first king.</p> - -<p>All other nations at that time believed as the -Egyptians and Chaldeans did, in fairy-tale gods -or idols. But the Jews alone believed in one -God. They had a Holy Book which had been -written by their prophets. This book is the Old -Testament part of the Christian Bible.</p> - -<p>So this is the story of the Wandering Jews -who gave us the Old Testament and the Ten -Commandments, and here is the way they wandered:</p> - -<p> -From Ur to Canaan—1900 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> -<p> -From Canaan to Egypt—1700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> -<p> -From Egypt back to Canaan—1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56"></span></span> -</p> - - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c10">10</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Fairy-Tale Gods</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">There</span> was once a man named Hellen—strange-sounding -name for a man, isn’t it? He -was not a Semite and not a Hamite. He was -an Aryan. He had a great many children and -children’s children, and they called themselves -Hellenes. They lived in a little scrap of a -country that juts out into the Mediterranean -Sea, and they called their land Hellas. I once -upset a bottle of ink on my desk, and the ink ran -out into a wriggly spot that looked exactly as -Hellas does on the map. Though Hellas is -hardly any bigger than one of our States, its -history is more famous than that of any other -country of its size in the world. We call Hellas -“Greece” and the people who lived there -“Greeks.”</p> - -<p>About the same time the Jews were leaving -Egypt, about the time when people were beginning -to use iron instead of bronze, that is, -about 1300 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, we first begin to hear of Hellas -and the Hellenes, of Greece and the Greeks.</p> - -<p>The Greeks believed in many gods, not in one -God as we do and as the Jews did, and their -gods were more like people in fairy-tales than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57"></span> -like divine beings. Many beautiful statues have -been made of their different gods, and poems -and stories have been written about them.</p> - -<p>There were twelve—just a dozen—chief gods. -They were supposed to live on Mount Olympus, -which was the highest mountain in Greece. -These gods were not always good, but often -quarreled and cheated and did even worse -things. The gods lived on a kind of food that -was much more delicious than what we eat. It -was called nectar and ambrosia, and the Greeks -thought it made those who ate it immortal; that -is, so that they would never die.</p> - -<p>Let me introduce you to the family of the -gods. I know you will be pleased to meet them. -Most of them have two names.</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p><i>Jupiter or Zeus</i> is the father of the gods and the -the king who rules over all human beings. -He sits on a throne and holds a zigzag -flash of lightning called a thunderbolt in -his hand. An eagle, the king of birds, is -usually by his side.</p> - -<p><i>Juno or Hera</i> is his wife and therefore queen. -She carries a scepter, and her pet bird, -the peacock, is often with her.</p> - -<p><i>Neptune or Poseidon</i> is one of the brothers of -Jupiter. He rules over the sea. He -rides in a chariot drawn by sea-horses -and carries in his hand a trident, which -looks like a pitchfork with three points.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58"></span> -He can make a storm at sea or quiet the -waves simply by striking them with his -trident.</p> - -<p><i>Vulcan or Hephæstus</i> is the god of fire. He -is a lame blacksmith and works at a -forge. His forge is said to be in the -cave of a mountain, and as smoke and -fire come forth from some mountains they -are called volcanoes after the god Vulcan -inside.</p> - -<p><i>Apollo</i> is the most beautiful of all the gods. He -is the god of the sun and of song and -music. Every morning—so the Greeks -said—he drives his sun-chariot across the -sky from the east to the west, and this -makes the sun-lighted day.</p> - -<p><i>Diana or Artemis</i> is the twin sister of Apollo. -She is the goddess of the moon and of -hunting.</p> - -<p><i>Mars or Ares</i> is the terrible god of war, who is -only happy when a war is going on—so -that he is happy most of the time.</p> - -<p><i>Mercury or Hermes</i> is the messenger of the -gods. He has wings on his cap and on -his sandals, and he carries in his hand a -wonderful winged stick or wand, which, -if placed between two people who are -quarreling, will immediately make them -friends. One day Mercury saw two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59"></span> -snakes fighting and he put his wand between -them, whereupon they twined -around it as if in a loving hug, and ever -since the snakes have remained entwined -around it. This wand is called a <i>caduceus</i>.</p> -</div> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig20.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Birth of Minerva or Athene.</p> -</div> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p><i>Minerva or Athene</i> is the goddess of wisdom. -She was born in a very strange way. One -day Jupiter had a terrible headache—what -we call a “splitting” headache. It -got worse and worse, until at last he -could stand it no longer, but he took a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60"></span> -very strange way to cure it. He called -Vulcan, the lame blacksmith, and told -him to hit him on the head with his hammer. -Though Vulcan must have thought -this a funny request, of course he had to -obey the father god. So he struck -Jupiter a terrible blow on the head, -whereupon there sprang forth Minerva -in all her armor, and the headache, of -which she had been the cause, had gone. -So she was born from his brain, that is -why she is the goddess of wisdom. Minerva’s -Greek name is Athene, and she -founded a great city in Greece and named -it after herself, Athens. She is supposed -to look out for this city as a -mother does for her child.</p> - -<p><i>Venus or Aphrodite</i> is the goddess of love and -beauty. She is the most beautiful of the -goddesses as Apollo is the most beautiful -of the gods. She is said to have been -born from the sea-foam. Cupid, her son, -is a little chubby boy with a quiver of -arrows on his back. He goes about -shooting his invisible arrows into the -hearts of human beings, but instead of -dying when they are hit they at once fall -in love with some one. That is why we -put hearts with arrows through them on -valentines.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_61"></span></p> - -<p><i>Vesta</i> is the goddess of the home and fireside, -who looks out for the family.</p> - -<p><i>Ceres or Demeter</i> is the goddess of the farmer. -These are the twelve gods of the Olympian -family.</p> - -<p><i>Pluto</i> is a brother of Jupiter. He rules the -world underground and lives down there.</p> -</div> - -<p>There are many other less important gods -and goddesses as well as some gods that are half -human, such as the three Fates and three Graces -and the nine Muses.</p> - -<p>Some of the planets in the sky which look -like stars are still called by the names of these -Greek gods. Jupiter is the name of the largest -planet. Mars is the name of one that is reddish—the -color of blood. Venus is the name of -one that is very beautiful. There is also a Mercury -and a Neptune.</p> - -<p>It is hard for us to understand how the -Greeks could have prayed to such gods as these, -but they did. Their prayers, however, were not -like ours. Instead of kneeling and closing their -eyes as we do, they stood up and stretched their -arms straight out before them. They did not -pray to be forgiven for their sins and to be -made better. They prayed for victory over -their enemies or to be protected from harm.</p> - -<p>When they prayed they often made the god -an offering of animals, fruit, honey, or wine in -order to please him so that he would grant their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62"></span> -prayer. The wine they poured out on the -ground, thinking the god would like to have -them do this. The animals they killed and then -burned by building a fire under them on an altar. -This was called a sacrifice. Their idea seemed to -be that even though the gods could not eat the -meat of the animals nor drink the wine themselves, -they liked to have something <i>given up</i> -for them. And so even to-day we say a person -makes a sacrifice when he <i>gives up</i> something -for another.</p> - -<p>When the Greeks were sacrificing they usually -looked for some sign from the god to see whether -he was pleased or not with the sacrifice and -whether he would answer their prayer and do -what they asked him or not. A flock of birds -flying overhead, a flash of lightning, or any unusual -happening they thought was a sign which -meant something. Such signs were called -“omens.” Some omens were good and showed -that the god would do what he was asked, and -some omens were bad and showed he would not. -Omens were very much like some of the signs -that people believe in even to-day when they -say it is a good sign or good luck if you see the -new moon over the right shoulder or a bad sign -or bad luck if you spill the salt.</p> - -<p>Not so very far from Athens is a mountain -called Mount Parnassus. On the side of Mount<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63"></span> -Parnassus was a town called Delphi. In the -town of Delphi there was a crack in the ground, -from which gas came forth, somewhat as it does -from cracks in a volcano. This gas was supposed -to be the breath of the god Apollo, and -there was a woman priest called a priestess who -sat on a three-legged stool or tripod over the -crack so as to breathe the gas. She would become -delirious, as some people do when they are -sick with fever and we say they are “out of their -heads,” and when people asked her questions -she would mutter strange things and a priest -would tell what she meant. This place was -called the Delphic Oracle, and people would go -long distances to ask the oracle questions, for -they thought Apollo was answering them.</p> - -<p>The Greeks went to the oracle whenever they -wanted to know what to do or what was going -to happen, and they firmly believed in what the -oracle told them. Usually, however, the answers -of the oracle were like a riddle, so that -they could be understood in more than one way. -For instance, a king who was about to go to -war with another king asked the oracle who -would win. The oracle replied, “A great kingdom -will fall.” What do you suppose the -oracle meant? Such an answer, which you can -understand in two or three ways, is still called -“oracular.”</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c11">11</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Fairy-Tale War</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> history of countries usually begins—and -also ends—with war. The first great happening -in the history of Greece was a war. It was -called the Trojan War and was supposed to -have taken place about twelve hundred years -before Christ, or not long after the beginning of -the Iron Age. But we are not only not sure of -the date; we are not even sure that there ever -was such a war, for a great deal of it, we know, -is simply fairy-tale. This is the way the tale -goes.</p> - -<p>Once there was a wedding feast of the gods -and goddesses on Mount Olympus, when suddenly -a goddess who had not been invited threw -a golden apple on the table. On the apple was -written these words:</p> - -<p class="c medium"> -To the Fairest. -</p> - -<p>The goddess who had thrown the apple was -the goddess of quarreling; and true to her name -she <i>did</i> start a quarrel, for each of the goddesses, -like vain human beings, thought she was the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65"></span> -fairest and should have the apple. At last they -called in a shepherd boy named Paris to decide -which was the fairest.</p> - -<p>Each goddess offered Paris a present if he -would choose her. Juno, the queen of the gods, -offered to make him a king; Minerva, the goddess -of wisdom, offered to make him wise; but -Venus, the goddess of beauty, offered to give -him the most beautiful girl in the world for his -wife.</p> - -<p>Now, Paris was not really a shepherd boy but -the son of Priam, the king of Troy, which was -a city on the sea-shore opposite Greece. Paris -when a baby had been left on a mountain to die, -but had been found by a shepherd and brought -up by him as his own child.</p> - -<p>Paris didn’t care about being wise; he didn’t -care about being king; what he did want was to -have the most beautiful girl in the world for his -wife, and so he gave the apple to Venus.</p> - -<p>Now the most beautiful girl in the world was -named Helen, and she was already married to -Menelaus, the king of Sparta. But in spite of -that fact Venus told Paris to go to Sparta in -Greece, where he would find Helen, and then -run away with her. So Paris went to Sparta to -visit King Menelaus and was royally entertained -by him. And then Paris, although he had been -treated so kindly and been trusted, one night<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66"></span> -stole Helen away and carried her off across the -sea to Troy. Though this was in the Iron Age, -it was the way a Cave Man of the Stone Age -might have acted.</p> - -<p>Menelaus and the Greeks were naturally very -angry and immediately prepared for war and -sailed off for Troy to get Helen back. Now, in -ancient times all cities had walls built around -them to protect them from the enemy. As there -were no cannons nor guns nor deadly weapons -such as are used in war nowadays, it was very -hard to get into a walled city or capture it. -Troy was protected in this way with walls; and -though the Greeks tried for ten years to capture -it, at the end of the ten years Troy was still unconquered.</p> - -<p>So at last the Greeks decided to try a trick to -get into the city. They built a huge horse of -wood, and inside this wooden horse they put -soldiers. They placed the horse in front of the -city walls and then sailed away as if at last they -were giving up the war. The Trojans were told -by a spy that the horse was a gift of the gods -and that they ought to take it into the city. A -Trojan priest named La-oc-o-on, however, told -his people not to have anything to do with the -horse, for he suspected a trick. But people seldom -take advice when told <i>not</i> to do what they -want to do.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67"></span></p> - -<p>Just then some huge snakes came out of the -sea and attacked Laocoon and his two sons and, -twining round them, strangled them to death. -The Trojans thought this was a sign from the -gods, or an omen as they would have said, that -they should not believe Laocoon; so they determined -to take the horse into the city against his -advice. The horse was so big, however, that it -would not go through the gates, and in order to -get it inside of the walls they had to tear down -part of the wall itself. When night fell, the -Greek soldiers came out of the horse and opened -the gates of the city. The other Greeks, who -had been waiting just out of sight, returned and -entered through the gates and the hole the Trojans -had made in the wall. Troy was easily conquered -then, and the city was burned to the -ground, and Helen’s husband carried her back -to Greece. For reason of this horse trick, we -still have a saying, “Beware of the Greeks bearing -gifts,” which is as much as to say, “Look -out for an enemy who makes you a present.”</p> - -<p>The story of the Trojan War was told in two -long poems. Some people think they are the -finest poems that were ever written. One of -these poems is called the “Iliad,” from the name -of the city of Troy, which was also known as -Ilium. The “Iliad” describes the Trojan War -itself. The other poem is called the “Odyssey”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68"></span> -and describes the adventures of one of the Greek -heroes on his way home after the war was over. -This Greek hero’s name was Odysseus, which -gives the name Odyssey to the book, but he was -also called Ulysses. These poems, the “Iliad” -and the “Odyssey,” were composed by a blind -Greek poet named Homer, who is supposed to -have lived about two hundred years after the war; -that is about 1000 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>Homer was a bard; that is, a singing poet who -went about from place to place and sang his -poems to the people. Usually a bard played on -the lyre as he sang, and the people gave him -something to eat or a place to sleep to pay him -for his songs. Nowadays, instead of a Homer -singing the “Iliad” and “Odyssey,” we have the -organ-grinder and street piano playing their -tunes in front of our houses.</p> - -<p>Homer never wrote down his poems, for he -was blind; but the people were very fond of -hearing his songs, and they learned them by -heart, and mothers taught them to their children -after Homer had died. At last, many years -later, another man wrote the poems down in -Greek, and you may some day read them in -Greek, if you study that language, or at least -in an English translation.</p> - -<p>Although the Greeks thought so much of -Homer, he could hardly make a living, and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69"></span> -almost had to beg his daily bread. After his -death however, the people of nine different cities -each proudly said that Homer was born in their -city. And so some one has made this rime:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse indent0">Nine cities claimed blind Homer dead,</div> -<div class="verse indent0">Through which, alive, he’d begged his bread.</div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>Some people now doubt that there ever was -a poet named Homer. Others think that instead -of only one man there must have been several -men, perhaps nine, who composed these poems, -and this might explain how he could be born in -nine different cities.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig21.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c12">12</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Kings of the Jews</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">While</span> the blind beggar Homer was singing -his wonderful songs through the streets of -Greece, a great king of the Jews was singing -other wonderful songs in Canaan. This king -was named David, and he wasn’t born a king. -He was only a shepherd boy in King Saul’s -army. This is the way he happened to become -king.</p> - -<p>At first, as you remember, the Jews had no -kings; but they had asked for kings, and at last -they were given one by the name of Saul.</p> - -<p>David had killed the giant Goliath. We all -love this Bible story because we are always glad -when the skilful little chap beats the great, big, -bragging bully.</p> - -<p>Well, King Saul had a daughter, and she fell -in love with this brave and athletic young David -the Giant-Killer, and at last they were married.</p> - -<p>So after Saul died David became king, and -he was the greatest king the Jews ever had. -Although Saul had been king he had lived in a -tent, not in a palace, and he didn’t even have a -capital city.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71"></span></p> - -<p>So David conquered a city in Canaan called -Jerusalem and made this city the capital of the -Jews.</p> - -<p>But David was not only a brave warrior and -a great king; he wrote beautiful songs as well.</p> - -<p>The blind beggar Homer sang of his fairy-tale -gods. The great King David sang of his -one God.</p> - -<p>These songs are the Psalms, which you hear -read and sung in church.</p> - -<p>Nowadays even a popular song is popular for -only a few months, but the songs which David -wrote almost three thousand years ago are still -popular to-day! The Twenty-third Psalm, -which starts, “The Lord is my shepherd,” is one -of the most beautiful and a good one to learn -by heart. David likens himself to a sheep and -his Lord to a good shepherd who tenderly looks -out for the comfort and safety of his sheep.</p> - -<p>David’s son was named Solomon, and when -David died Solomon became king.</p> - -<p>If a good fairy had asked you what you would -rather have than anything in the world, I wonder -what you would have chosen. When -Solomon became king, God is said to have appeared -to him in a dream and asked him what -he would rather have than anything else in the -world. Instead of saying he wanted to be made -rich or powerful, Solomon asked to be made wise,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72"></span> -and God said He would make him the wisest -man that ever lived. Here is a story that shows -how wise he was.</p> - -<p>Once upon a time two women came to Solomon -with a baby, and each woman said the baby was -her own child. Solomon called for a sword and -said, “Cut the baby in two, and give each a half.” -One of the women cried out to give the baby to -the other rather than do this, and Solomon then -knew who was the real mother and ordered the -baby to be given to her.</p> - -<p>Solomon built a magnificent temple made of -cedar-wood from the famous forest of Lebanon, -and of marble and gold and studded with jewels. -Then he built himself a wonderful palace, which -was so gorgeous and splendid that people came -from all over the world to see it. The Bible tells -us just how large this temple and palace were, -not in feet but in cubits. A cubit was the distance -from a man’s elbow to the end of his middle finger, -which is about one foot and a half.</p> - -<p>The queen of Sheba, among others, came a -long distance across Arabia to hear the wise sayings -of Solomon and see his palace and the temple -he had built.</p> - -<p>Although the palace and temple were considered -extraordinarily magnificent at that time, -you must remember that this was a thousand -years before Christ.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73"></span></p> - -<p>Solomon’s temple and palace have disappeared -long since, and there is left of them neither stick -nor stone. But his wise sayings are preserved in -every language and read by every people in every -part of the world. There are thousands of buildings -now in the world that would make his palace, -if still standing, look like a child’s toy-house. -But no one has ever been able to say any better -the things he said. Do you think you could? -Suppose you try. Here are some of them. They -are called proverbs.</p> - -<div class="blockquota"> - -<p>A soft answer turneth away wrath; but grievous words -stir up anger.</p> -</div> - -<p> -What’s that mean? -</p> - -<div class="blockquota"> - -<p>A good name is rather to be chosen than great riches -and loving favor rather than silver and gold.</p> -</div> - -<p> -What’s that mean? -</p> - -<div class="blockquota"> - -<p>Let another man praise thee and not thine own mouth.</p> -</div> - -<p> -What’s that mean? -</p> - -<p>Solomon was the last great king the Jews ever -had. After he died the Jewish nation gradually -broke up and went to pieces, and the great Jewish -people are to-day without a king, without a capital, -and without a country of their own, but are -found in every other country of the world.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c13">13</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The People Who Made Our A B C’s</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Long</span> before people knew how to write, there -lived a carpenter named Cadmus. One day he -was at work on a house when he wanted a tool -that he had left at home. Picking up a chip of -wood, he wrote something on it and, handing it -to his slave, told him to go to his home and give -the chip to his wife, saying that it would tell her -what he wanted. The slave, wondering, did as -he was told. Cadmus’s wife looked at the chip, -and without a word handed the tool to the amazed -slave, who thought the chip in some mysterious -way had spoken the message. When he returned -to Cadmus with the tool, he begged for the remarkable -chip, and when it was given him, hung -it around his neck for a charm.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig22.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Cadmus’ slave and the chip.</p> -</div> - -<p>This is the story the Greeks told of the man -they say invented the alphabet. We believe, -however, that Cadmus was a mythical person, for -the Greeks liked to make up such stories, and -we think no <i>one</i> man made the alphabet. But -Cadmus was a Phenician and we do know that -the Phenician people invented the alphabet. -You probably call it your A B C’s, but the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75"></span> -Greeks had much harder names for the letters. -They called <i>A</i> “alpha,” <i>B</i> “beta,” and so on. -So the Greek boy spoke of learning his “alpha -beta,” and that is why we call it the “alphabet.”</p> - -<p>You may never have -heard of Phenicia or -the Phenician people. -Yet, if there had been -no such country as -Phenicia, you might -now be learning at -school to read and write -in hieroglyphics or in -cuneiform.</p> - -<p>Up to this time, you -know, people had very -clumsy ways of writing. -The Egyptians had to draw pictures, and -the Babylonians made writing like chicken-tracks. -The alphabet that the Phenicians invented had -twenty-two letters, and from it we get the alphabet -we use to-day.</p> - -<p>Of course, we do not use just the same alphabet -now that the Phenicians did, but some of the letters -are almost, if not quite, like those we now have -after three thousand years. For instance the</p> - -<table cellpadding="0" cellspacing="2" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tdr">Phenician A</td> - <td class="tdc">was</td> - <td class="tdc">written</td> - <td class="tdl">on its side</td> - <td class="tdr">—𐤀</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">E</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdl">backward</td> - <td class="tdr">—Ǝ</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">Z</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdl">just the same</td> - <td class="tdr">Z</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdr">O</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdc">"</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="gesperrta"> " " " </span></td> - <td class="tdr">O</td></tr> - - -</table> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_76"></span></p> - -<p>The Phenicians lived next door to the Jews; -in fact they belonged to the same family—the -Semites. Their country was just north of the -kingdom of the Jews; that is, above it on the -map and lying along the shore of the Mediterranean -Sea.</p> - -<p>The Phenicians had a great king named Hiram -who lived at the same time as Solomon. In fact, -Hiram was a friend of Solomon and sent him -some of his best workmen to help build a temple -at Jerusalem. And yet Hiram himself and -the Phenicians did not believe in the Jewish -God.</p> - -<p>The Phenicians worshiped idols, terrible monsters -named Baal and Moloch, which they called -gods of the sun. They also believed in a goddess -of the moon named Astarte and made sacrifices -of live children to her idol, Fe-Fi-Fo-Fum; -this is a real story and not a fairy-tale. -Just suppose you had been a child then!</p> - -<p>The Jews, as we have learned, were very religious, -but their neighbors, the Phenicians, -though Semites and therefore relatives, were -business people and thought of nothing but -money, money, money—all the time. And they -were not particular how they earned it, whether -honestly or not. Nowadays, dealers know that -they must be honest if they are to be very successful, -but the Phenicians were usually tricky in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77"></span> -their trading with people. They always drove -a good bargain and sometimes even cheated when -they had a chance.</p> - -<p>The Phenicians made many things to sell, and -then they went far and near to sell them.</p> - -<p>They knew how to make beautiful cloth and -glassware and objects in gold and silver and -ivory.</p> - -<p>They knew the secret of making a wonderful -purple dye from the body of a little shell-fish -that lived in the water near the city of Tyre. -This dye was known as Tyrian purple from the -name of that city, and it was so beautiful that -kings’ robes were colored with it.</p> - -<p>Tyre and Sidon were the two chief cities of -Phenicia, and once upon a time they were two -of the busiest cities in the world.</p> - -<p>In order to find people to sell to, the Phenicians -traveled in boats all over the Mediterranean -Sea and even went outside this sea into the Great -Ocean. This opening is now called the Strait -of Gibraltar but was then known as the Pillars -of Hercules. They went as far as the British -Isles. Other people in those days had not dared -to go so far in boats; they thought they would -come to the edge of the ocean and tumble off. -But the Phenicians had no such fear, and so they -were the greatest sailors as well as the greatest -traders of their times. Their ships were built<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78"></span> -from the cedar-trees that grew on the slopes of -their hills, which were called Lebanon.</p> - -<p>Wherever the Phenicians found good harbors -for their boats, they started little towns where -they traded with the natives, who at that time -were almost savage. With ignorant savages they -found they could drive a good bargain. For a -few glass beads or a piece of purple dyed cloth -worth very little they could get in return gold -and silver and other things worth a great deal. -On the African coast, one of these towns they -started was called Carthage. Of Carthage we -shall hear more by and by, for it grew to be so -wealthy and important that—but wait until I -come to that story.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig23.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c14">14</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Hard as Nails</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Our</span> story goes back again to Greece, the land -of Homer and the fairy-tale gods and to Sparta, -where Helen once lived.</p> - -<p>About nine hundred years before Christ was -born, there lived in Sparta a man named -Lycurgus. That is a hard name, and when you -hear about this man you may think he was hard, -too. Lycurgus wanted his city to be the greatest -in the world.</p> - -<p>But first he had to find out what it was that -made a city and a people great.</p> - -<p>So he started off and traveled for years and -years visiting all the chief countries of the world -to see if he could learn what it was that made -them great. And this is what he learned.</p> - -<p>Wherever the people thought chiefly of fun -and pleasure, of amusing themselves and having -a good time—he found they were not much good, -not much account—<i>not</i> great.</p> - -<p>Wherever the people thought chiefly of hard -work and did what they ought, whether it was -pleasant or not, he found they were usually good -for something—some account—great.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80"></span></p> - -<p>So Lycurgus came back to his home Sparta -and set to work to make a set of rules which he -thought would make his people greater than all -other people in the world. These rules were -called a Code of Laws, and I think you’ll agree -they were very hard, and they made the Spartans -hard, too—as “hard as nails.” We shall see -whether they made the Spartans really great, -also.</p> - -<p>To begin with, babies, as soon as they were -born, were examined to see that they were strong -and perfect. Whenever one was found that did -not seem to be so, he was put out on the mountain-side -and left to die. Lycurgus wanted no -weaklings in Sparta.</p> - -<p>When boys were seven years old, they were -taken from their mothers and put in a school, -which was more like a soldiers’ camp than a -school, and they never lived anywhere else until -they were sixty years old.</p> - -<p>In this school they were not taught the things -you are, but only the things that trained them -to be good soldiers.</p> - -<p>There were no such things as school-books then.</p> - -<p>There were no spelling-books.</p> - -<p>There were no arithmetics.</p> - -<p>There were no geographies. No one knew -enough about the world to write a geography.</p> - -<p>There were no histories. No one knew much -about things that had happened in the world<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81"></span> -before that time, and of course none of the history -since then that you now study had taken -place.</p> - -<p>At certain times, the Spartan boy was whipped, -not because he had done anything wrong, but -just to teach him to suffer pain without whimpering. -He would have been disgraced forever -if he had cried, no matter how badly he was -hurt.</p> - -<p>He was exercised and drilled and worked -until he was ready to drop. But still he was -obliged to keep on, no matter how tired or hungry -or sleepy or aching he might be, and he must -never show by any sign how he felt.</p> - -<p>He was made to eat the worst kind of food, -to go hungry and thirsty for long periods of -time, to go out in the bitter cold with little or -no clothing, just to get used to such hardships -and able to bear all sorts of discomforts. This -kind of training, this kind of hardening, is therefore -called “Spartan discipline.” How do you -think you would have liked it?</p> - -<p>The Spartans’ food, clothing, and lodging -were all furnished them, though it was very poor -food and poor clothing and poor lodging. They -were not allowed good things to eat, soft beds -to lie on, or fine clothing to wear. Such things -were called luxuries, and luxuries, Lycurgus -thought, would make people soft and weak, and -he wanted his people hard and strong.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82"></span></p> - -<p>The Spartans were even taught to speak in a -short and blunt manner; they were taught not -to waste words; they must say what they had to -say in as few words as possible. This manner -of speaking we call “Laconic” from the name -Laconia, the state in which Sparta was located.</p> - -<p>Once a king wrote to the Spartans a threatening -letter, saying that they had better do what -he told them to, for <i>if</i> he came and took their -country, he would destroy their city and make -them slaves.</p> - -<p>The Spartans sent a messenger back with their -answer, and when the letter was opened, it contained -only one word:</p> - -<p>“<i>IF!</i>”</p> - -<p>Even to-day, we call such an answer, short but -to the point, a Laconic answer.</p> - -<p>Did all this hard training and hard work make -the Spartans the greatest people in the world?</p> - -<p>Lycurgus did make the Spartans the strongest -and best fighters in the world—but—</p> - -<p>The Spartans conquered all the peoples -around about them, though there were ten times -as many—but—</p> - -<p>They made these people their slaves, who did -all their farming and other work—but—</p> - -<p>We shall see later whether Lycurgus’s idea -was right.</p> - -<p>North of Sparta was another great city of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83"></span> -Greece called Athens. There were, of course, -many other towns in Greece, but Sparta and -Athens were the most important. In Athens -the people lived and thought quite differently -from those in Sparta.</p> - -<p>The Athenians were just as fond of everything -beautiful as the Spartans were of discipline and -of everything military.</p> - -<p>The Athenians loved athletic games of all -sorts just as the Spartans did, but they also -loved music and poetry and beautiful statues, -paintings, vases, buildings, and such things that -are known as the “arts.”</p> - -<p>The Athenians believed in training the mind -<i>as well</i> as the body. The Spartans believed the -training of the body was the all-important thing. -Which do you like better, the Athenians’ idea or -the Spartans’ idea?</p> - -<p>Once at a big game a very old man was looking -for a seat on the Athenians’ side. There was -no seat empty, and no Athenian offered to give -him one. Whereupon the Spartans called to the -old man and gave him the best seat on their -side. The Athenians cheered the Spartans to -show how fine they thought this act. At this -the Spartans said:</p> - -<p>“The Athenians <i>know</i> what is right but they -don’t <i>do</i> it.”</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c15">15</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Crown of Leaves</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Greek</span> boys and young men and even girls -loved all sorts of outdoor sports.</p> - -<p>They didn’t play football or baseball or -basketball, but they ran and jumped and wrestled -and boxed and threw the discus—a thing like a -big, heavy dinner-plate of iron.</p> - -<p>From time to time matches were held in different -parts of Greece to see who was the best in -these sports.</p> - -<p>The Big Meet, however, took place only once -every four years at a place called Olympia in -southern Greece; and these Olympic games, as -they were called, were the most important affairs -held in Greece, for all the winners from different -parts of the country were here matched -against each other to see who should be the -champion of all Greece.</p> - -<p>The time when the games were held was a -great national holiday, for the games were in -honor of the head god Jupiter, or Zeus as the -Greeks called him. People came from all over -the known world to see the games much as they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85"></span> -do now when a World’s Fair is held or a big -football game.</p> - -<p>Only Greeks could enter this contest, and only -those who had never committed a crime or broken -any laws—as a boy nowadays must have a clean -record in order to be allowed to play on his -college or school team.</p> - -<p>If there happened to be a war going on at the -time, and there usually was, so important was -this holiday that a truce was declared, and everybody -went off to the games. Nothing could be -allowed to interfere with the games, and even -war was not as important. “Business before -pleasure!” When the games were finished, they -started fighting again!</p> - -<p>The Greek boys and young men would train -for four years getting ready for this big event, -and then nine months before the great day they -would go to Olympia to get in training at an -open-air gymnasium near the field.</p> - -<p>The games lasted five days and began and -ended with a parade and prayers and sacrifices to -the Greek gods, beautiful statues to whom were -placed all about the field, for this was not only -sport, but a religious service in honor of Jupiter -and the other gods.</p> - -<p>There were all sorts of matches—in running, -jumping, wrestling, boxing, chariot-racing, and -throwing the discus.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86"></span></p> - -<p>Any one who cheated would have been put out -and never again allowed to take part. The Greek -believed in what we call being a good sport. He -didn’t brag if he won. He didn’t make excuses -if he lost; he didn’t cry out that the decision was -unfair.</p> - -<p>The athlete who won one or more of these -games was the hero of all Greece, and in particular -of the town from which he came. The -winner received no money prize but was crowned -with a wreath made of laurel leaves. This he -valued much more than an athlete nowadays does -the silver cup or gold medal he may win. Besides -receiving the laurel wreath, the winner had songs -written to him by poets, and often statues were -made of him by sculptors.</p> - -<p>There were not only athletic matches but contests -between poets and musicians to see who -could write the best poetry or compose and play -the sweetest music on a kind of small harp called -the lyre. The winners of these contests did not -receive a laurel wreath, but they were carried in -triumph on the shoulders of the throng, as you -may have seen the captain of a winning team -picked up and raised aloft by his fellow-players -after he has won.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig24.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Greek runner.</p> -</div> - -<p>Now, in Greek History the first event which -we can be absolutely sure is true is the record -of the winner of a foot-race in these Olympic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87"></span> -Games 776 years before Christ was born. And -from this event the Greeks began to count their -history dates, as we do now from the birth of -Christ. It was their Year 1.</p> - -<p>The four years’ time between the Olympic -Games was called an Olympiad. Up to this time, -they had no calendar that gave the year or date, -so 776 is the date of -the first Olympiad. -Greek History before -that time may have -been partly true, but -we know much of it -was mythical. Beginning -with 776, however, -Greek history is -pretty much all true.</p> - -<p>After a long while -they stopped having -the games, but a few -years ago it was -thought it would be a -good thing to start -them again. So, for the first time since before -Christ, new Olympic Games were again held in -1896 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, not in Olympia, however, but in -Athens. The games used to be held only in -Greece. Now they are held each time in a different -country. Only Greeks used to be allowed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88"></span> -to take part. Now, however, athletes from almost -all the countries of the world are invited -to compete. War used to be stopped when the -time for the games arrived. Now the games are -stopped when war is on.</p> - -<p>From what we have learned of the Spartans’ -training, we might guess that they used to win -most of the athletic prizes, and they did.</p> - -<p>Do the Spartans still continue to win most of -the prizes in the New Olympic Games?</p> - -<p>No. Not even the Greeks now carry off the -chief prizes.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig25.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c16">16</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Bad Beginning</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever heard of the Seven-League -Boots, the boots in which one could take many -miles at a single step?</p> - -<p>Well, there is a still bigger boot; it is over five -hundred miles long, and it is in the Mediterranean -Sea.</p> - -<p>No, it’s not a real boot, but it would look like -one if you were miles high in an airplane and -looking down upon it.</p> - -<p>It is called Italy.</p> - -<p>Something very important happened in Italy, -not long after the First Olympiad in Greece. -It was so important that it was called the Year 1, -and for a thousand years people counted from -it as the Greeks did from the First Olympiad, -and as we do now from the birth of Christ. This -thing that happened was not the birth of a man, -however. It was the birth of a city, and this city -was called Rome.</p> - -<p>The history of Rome starts with stories that -we know are fairy-tales or myths in the same -way that the history of Greece does. Homer told<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90"></span> -about the wanderings of the Greek, Odysseus. -A great many years later a poet named Vergil -told about the wanderings of a Trojan named -Æneas.</p> - -<p>Æneas fled from Troy when that city was -burning down and started off to find a new home. -Finally after several years he came to Italy and -the mouth of a river called the Tiber. There -Æneas met the daughter of the man who was -ruling over that country, a girl by the name of -Lavinia, and married her, and they lived happily -ever after. So the children of Æneas and -Lavinia ruled over the land, and they had children, -and their children had children, and their -children had children, until at last boy twins were -born. These twins were named Romulus and -Remus. Here endeth the first part of the story -and the trouble begins, for they did not live -happily ever after.</p> - -<p>At the time the twins were born, a man had -stolen the kingdom, and he feared that these two -boys might grow up and take his stolen kingdom -away from him. So he put the twins in a basket -and set them afloat on the river Tiber, hoping -that they might be carried out to sea or upset and -be drowned. This, he thought, was nearly all -right, so long as he didn’t kill them with his own -hands. But the basket drifted ashore instead of -going out to sea or upsetting, and a mother wolf<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91"></span> -found the twins and nursed them as if they were -her own babies. And a woodpecker also helped -and fed them berries. At last a shepherd found -them and brought them up as if they were his -own sons until they grew up and became men. -This sounds a good deal like the story of Paris -who was left out to die and was found and -brought up by a shepherd also.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig26.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Romulus and Remus with the wolf.</p> -</div> - -<p>Each of the twins then wished to build a city. -But they could not agree which one was to do -it, and in quarreling over the matter, Romulus -killed his own twin brother Remus. Romulus -then built the city by the Tiber River, on the -spot where he and his brother had been saved -and nursed by the mother wolf. Here there were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92"></span> -seven hills. This was in 753 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, and he named -the city Roma after his own name, and the people -who lived there were called Romans. So that -is why, ever afterward, the Roman kings always -said they were descended from the Trojan hero, -Æneas, the great-great-great-grandfather of -Romulus.</p> - -<p>Don’t you believe this story? Neither do I. -But it is such an old, old story every one is supposed -to have heard it even though it is only a -legend.</p> - -<p>In order to get people for the city which he -had started, it is said that Romulus invited all -the thieves and bad men who had escaped from -jail to come and live in Rome, promising them -that they would be safe there.</p> - -<p>Then as none of the men had wives, and there -were no women in his new city, Romulus thought -up a scheme to get the men wives. He invited -some people called Sabines, who lived near-by, -both men and women, to come to Rome to a -big party.</p> - -<p>They accepted, and a great feast was spread. -In the middle of the feast, when every one was -eating and drinking, a signal was given, and each -of the Romans seized a Sabine woman for his -wife and ran off with her.</p> - -<p>The Sabine husbands immediately prepared -themselves for war against the Romans, who had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93"></span> -stolen their wives. When the battle had begun -between the two armies, the Sabine women ran -out in the midst of the fighting between their -new and old husbands and begged them both to -stop. They said they had come to love their -new husbands and would not return to their old -homes.</p> - -<p>What do you think of that?</p> - -<p>It sounds like a pretty bad beginning for a -new city, doesn’t it? and you may well wonder -how Rome turned out—a city that started with -Romulus killing his brother and that was settled -by escaped prisoners who stole the wives of their -neighbors. We must remember, however, that -then they were nearer the time when Primitive -Men lived whose only rule of life was: kill or be -killed, steal or be stolen; and whose usual way -of getting wives was to knock them in the head -and drag them off to their caves while they were -senseless. Besides, they believed in the same -gods as the Greeks, and we have heard how their -gods did all sorts of wicked things themselves. -This, too, was long before Christ was born, and -at that time they did not know anything about the -Christian religion or what we call right and -wrong.</p> - -<p>You see I have tried to think of some good -excuses for the actions of these first Romans.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c17">17</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Kings with Corkscrew Curls</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">After</span> Rome’s bad start she had one king -after another, and some of these kings were -pretty good and some were pretty bad.</p> - -<p>But the most important city in the world at -this time was far away from Rome on the Tigris -River. This city was called Nineveh, and here -lived the kings of the country called Assyria, -which I told you about some time ago.</p> - -<p>As usual, the chief thing we hear about Assyria -and the Assyrians is that they were fighting with -their neighbors. This, however, was not the fault -of their neighbors.</p> - -<p>The Assyrian kings who lived in Nineveh -wanted more land and power, and so they fought -their neighbors in order to take their land away -from them. These kings had long corkscrew -curls, and you may think that only girls wear -long curls and that a man with curls would be -“girl-like.” But these kings were not at all that -kind. They were such terrible fighters that they -were feared far and near. They treated their -prisoners terribly; they skinned them alive, cut<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95"></span> -off their ears, pulled out their tongues, bored -sticks into their eyes, then bragged about it. -They made the people whom they conquered pay -them huge sums of money and promise to fight -with them whenever they went to war.</p> - -<p>And so Assyria became so strong and powerful -that she at last owned everything of importance -in the world, the land between the rivers -called Mesopotamia, and the land to the east, -north, and south, and Phenicia, and Egypt, and -pretty nearly everything except Greece and -Italy.</p> - -<p>This big, big country of Assyria was ruled by -the kings at Nineveh, who lived in great magnificence. -They built wonderful palaces for -themselves, and on each side of the way that led -to the palace they placed rows of huge statues -of bulls and lions with wings and men’s heads -as a rich man nowadays might plant a row of -trees along the driveway that leads up to his -home. These winged animals are what are called -cherubs in the Bible.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have heard a particularly sweet -and pretty little baby called a cherub. Isn’t it -strange that these hideous Assyrian monsters -should be called cherubs also?</p> - -<p>When the Assyrian kings were not fighting -men they were fighting wild animals, for they -were very fond of hunting with bow and arrow,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96"></span> -and they had pictures and statues made of themselves -on horseback or in chariots fighting lions. -Often they would capture the animals they -hunted alive and put them in cages so that the -people could come and see them. This was something -like a “zoo” such as we have nowadays.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig27.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">An Assyrian cherub.</p> -</div> - -<p>The rulers of Assyria had very strange names. -Sennacherib was one of the most famous. Sennacherib -lived about 700 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Once upon a time -Sennacherib was fighting Jerusalem. His whole<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97"></span> -army was camped one night when as they lay -asleep something happened, for when the morning -came, none woke up; all were dead, both men -and horses. An English poet named Byron has -written a poem called “The Destruction of Sennacherib” -describing this event. Perhaps they -were poisoned; what do you think?</p> - -<p>Assur-bani-pal was another king who ruled -later—about 650 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> He was a great fighter -too, but he was also very fond of books and reading; -so Assur-bani-pal started the first public -library. The books in that first public library -were, however, very peculiar. Of course they -were not printed books, and they were not even -made of paper. They were made of mud with -the words pressed into the clay before it dried. -This writing was cuneiform, which I have already -told you about. The books were not arranged -in bookcases, either, but were placed in piles on -the floor. They were, however, kept in careful -order and numbered so that a person who wanted -to see a book in the library could call for it by its -number.</p> - -<p>Assyria reached the height of her power during -the reign of Sennacherib and Assur-bani-pal, and -everything in Nineveh was so lovely for the Ninevites -that the time when Assur-bani-pal reigned -was called the Golden Age.</p> - -<p>But although everything in Nineveh was so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98"></span> -lovely for the Ninevites, everywhere else the -Assyrians were hated and feared, for their armies -brought death and destruction wherever they -went.</p> - -<p>So it came to pass that not long after Assur-bani-pal -died, two of the neighbors of Nineveh -could stand it no longer. These two neighbors -were the king of Babylon, who lived south, and -a people called the Medes, who lived to the east -and belonged to the Aryan family. So the king -of Babylon and the Medes got together and attacked -Nineveh, and together they wiped that -city off the face of the earth. This was in 612 -<span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>—Six-One-Two—and the power of Nineveh -and Assyria was killed dead. This, therefore is -called the Fall of Nineveh, the end of Nineveh. -We might put up a tombstone:</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig28.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c18">18</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A City of Wonders and Wickedness</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> king of Babylon had beaten Nineveh. -But he didn’t stop with that. He wanted his -Babylon to be as great as Nineveh had been. So -he went on conquering other lands to the left -and right until Babylon, in its turn, became the -leader and ruler of other countries. Was Babylon, -also, in its turn, to fall, as Nineveh had -fallen?</p> - -<p>When at last the king of Babylon died, he left -his vast empire to his son. Now, the king’s son -was not called John or James or Charles or anything -simple like that. It was—Nebuchadnezzar, -and I wonder if his father called him by all that -long name or shortened it to a nickname like -“Neb,” for instance, or “Chad,” or perhaps -“Nezzar.” This is the way Nebuchadnezzar -wrote his name, for he used cuneiform writing. -How would you like to write your name in such -a queer way?</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig29.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Name of Nebuchadnezzar in cuneiform writing.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100"></span></p> - -<p>Nebuchadnezzar set to work and made the city -of Babylon the largest, the most magnificent and -the most wonderful city of that time and perhaps -of any time. The city was in the shape of a -square and covered more ground than the two -largest cities in the world to-day—New York -and London—put together. He surrounded it -with a wall fifty times as high as a man—fifty -times—whew!—and so broad that a chariot could -be driven along on the top, and in this wall he -made one hundred huge brass gates. The Euphrates -River flowed under the wall, across the -city, and out under the wall on the other side.</p> - -<p>Nebuchadnezzar could not find any one in -Babylon who was beautiful enough to be his -queen. The Babylonian girls must have felt -pretty bad—or mad—about that. So he went to -Media, the country that had helped his father -conquer Nineveh. There he found a lovely princess, -and so he married her and brought her home -to Babylon.</p> - -<p>Now, Media was a land of hills and mountains, -whilst Babylon was on level ground and without -even a hill in sight. Nebuchadnezzar’s queen -found Babylonia so flat and uninteresting that -she became homesick, and she longed for her own -country with its wild mountain scenery. So, -just to please her and keep her contented Nebuchadnezzar -set to work and <i>built</i> a hill for her,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101"></span> -but the queer thing was he built it on top of the -roof of his palace! On the sides of this hill he -made beautiful gardens, and these gardens he -planted not only with flowers but also with trees, -so that his queen might sit in the shade and enjoy -herself. These were called Hanging Gardens. -The Hanging Gardens and the tremendous walls -were known far and wide as one of the Seven -Wonders of the world.</p> - -<p>Would you like to know what the other Wonders -were?</p> - -<p>Well, the pyramids in Egypt were one; the -magnificent statue of Jupiter at Olympia, where -the Olympic Games were held, was another—so -those with the Hanging Gardens make three.</p> - -<p>Nebuchadnezzar believed in idols like those -terrible monsters the Phenicians worshiped. The -Jews away off in Jerusalem believed in one God. -Nebuchadnezzar wanted the Jews to worship his -gods, but they would not. He also wanted them -to pay him taxes, and they would not. So he -sent his armies to Jerusalem, destroyed that city, -burnt the beautiful Temple that Solomon had -built, and brought the Jews and all their belongings -to Babylon. There in Babylon Nebuchadnezzar -kept the Jews prisoners, and there in -Babylon the Jews remained prisoners for fifty -years.</p> - -<p>Babylon had become not only the most magnificent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102"></span> -city in the world; it had become also the -most wicked. The people of Babylon gave themselves -up to the wildest pleasures. Their only -thought seemed to be, “Let’s eat, drink, and be -merry”; they thought nothing of the morrow; -the more wicked the pleasure the more they liked -it.</p> - -<p>But although Nebuchadnezzar seemed able to -do and able to have everything in the world he -wanted, he finally went crazy. He thought he -was a bull, and he used to get down on his hands -and knees and eat grass, imagining he was a -beast of the field.</p> - -<p>And Babylon, in spite of its tremendous walls -and brass gates, was doomed. Babylon was to -be conquered. It didn’t seem possible. How -could it be conquered, and who was to do the -conquering? You would probably never guess.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c19">19</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Surprise Party</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">When</span> I was a boy I was always told, and you -have probably been told the same thing:</p> - -<p>“You can have no dessert until you have eaten -your dinner.”</p> - -<p>No matter whether I was hungry or not, “No -dinner, no dessert.” This was a rule which my -father said was “like the laws of the Medes and -Persians.”</p> - -<p>I didn’t know then who the Medes and Persians -were, but I know now that they were two -Aryan families living next to Babylon—you -remember Nebuchadnezzar had married a -Median girl—and that they were governed by -laws which were fixed so hard and fast and were -so unchangeable that we still speak of any such -thing that does not change as like “the laws of -the Medes and Persians.”</p> - -<p>The Medes and the Persians had a religion -which was neither like that of the Jews nor like -the idol worship of the Babylonians. It had been -started by a Persian named Zoroaster, who was -a wise man like Solomon. He may even have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104"></span> -lived about the same time as Solomon, but probably -a good deal later.</p> - -<p>Zoroaster went about among the people, teaching -them wise sayings and hymns. These wise -sayings have been gathered into a book, which is -now the Persian Bible.</p> - -<p>Zoroaster taught that there were two great -spirits in the world, the Good Spirit and the Bad -Spirit.</p> - -<p>The Good Spirit, he said, was Light, and the -Bad Spirit, Darkness. The Good or Light he -called Mazda; where have you heard that word, -I wonder. So the Persians kept a fire, in which -they thought was the Good Spirit, constantly -burning on their altars, and they had men watch -over this flame to see that it never went out. -These men who watched the flame were called -Magi, and they were supposed to be able to do -all sorts of wonderful things, so that we call such -wonderful things “magic,” and the people who -are able to do them we call “magicians.”</p> - -<p>At the time of this story which I’m telling you, -the ruler of the Medes and the Persians was a -great king named Cyrus.</p> - -<p>But before I go on with this story I must tell -you about a little country not far from Troy. -This little country was called Lydia. Perhaps -you may know a girl named Lydia. I do. Lydia -was ruled over by a king named Crœsus who was -the richest man in the world. When we want to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105"></span> -describe a man as very wealthy, we still say he -is “as rich as Crœsus.”</p> - -<p>Crœsus owned nearly all the gold-mines, of -which there were a great many in that country, -and besides this he collected money in the form -of taxes from all the cities near him.</p> - -<p>Before the time of Crœsus people did not have -money such as we have now. When they wished -to buy anything, they simply traded something -they had for something they wanted—so many -eggs for a pound of meat or so much wine for -a pair of sandals. To buy anything expensive, -such as a horse, they paid with a lump of gold or -silver, which was weighed in the scales to see just -how heavy it was. It is hard for us to think how -people could get along without cents and nickels, -dimes, quarters and dollars—with no money at -all—and yet they did.</p> - -<p>Crœsus, in order to make things simpler, cut -up his gold into small bits. Now, it was not -easy for every one to weigh each piece each time -it was traded, for he might not have any scales -handy. So Crœsus had each piece weighed and -stamped with its weight and with his name or -initials to show that he guaranteed the weight. -These pieces of gold and silver were only lumps -with Crœsus’ seal pressed into them, but they -were the first real money even though they were -not round and beautifully engraved like our -coins.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106"></span></p> - -<p>Now, Cyrus, the great Persian king, thought -he would like to own this rich country of Lydia -with all its gold-mines, so he set out to conquer it.</p> - -<p>When Cyrus was on the way Crœsus sent in a -hurry to the oracle in Greece to ask what was -going to happen and who was going to win. You -will remember what I said about the oracle at -Delphi and how people used to ask the oracle -questions—to have their fortunes told, as nowadays -some people ask the ouija board.</p> - -<p>The oracle replied to Crœsus’ question:</p> - -<p>“A great kingdom shall fall.”</p> - -<p>Crœsus was delighted, for he thought the -oracle meant that Cyrus’ kingdom would fall. -The oracle <i>was</i> right, but not in the way Crœsus -had thought.</p> - -<p>A great kingdom did fall, but it was his own -kingdom of Lydia and not Cyrus’ that fell.</p> - -<p>But Cyrus was still not satisfied with the capture -of Lydia, and so at last he attacked Babylon.</p> - -<p>Now, the people in Babylon who thought of -nothing but pleasure were busy feasting and -drinking and having a good time. Why -should they worry about Cyrus? Their city had -walls that were so high and thick and was protected -by such strong gates of brass that it -seemed as if no one could possibly have captured -it.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig30.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Delphic Oracle.</p> -</div> - -<p>But you remember that the Euphrates River -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108"></span>ran beneath the walls and crossed right through -the city. Well, one night when the young prince -of Babylon named Belshazzar was having a gay -party and enjoying himself, feeling quite certain -that no one could enter the city, Cyrus made a -dam and turned the waters of the river to one -side. Then Cyrus’ army marched into the city -through the dry river-bed and captured the surprised -Babylonians without even a fight. It is -supposed that some of the Babylonian priests -helped him to do this and even opened the gates, -for Babylon had become so wicked that they -thought it time for it to be destroyed.</p> - -<p>Old Lycurgus would have said: “I told you -so. People who think of nothing but pleasure -never come to a good end.”</p> - -<p>This surprise party was in 538—5 and 3 are 8.</p> - -<p>Two years later Cyrus let the Jews, who had -been carried away fifty years before from Jerusalem, -return to the home of their fathers, thus -ending the Babylonian Captivity.</p> - -<p>To-day the only thing left of this great city of -Babylon, which was once bigger than New York -and London together—Babylon the Wicked, -Babylon the Magnificent, Babylon with all its -great walls and brass gates and Hanging Gardens—is -only a mound of earth. A few miles -away is a ruined tower. This tower, we think, -may once have been the Tower of Babel.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c20">20</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Other Side of the World</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">There</span> used to be a “missionary box” in my -Sunday-school, and into this box we dropped -our pennies to send a missionary to the heathen.</p> - -<p>The heathen, we were told, were people who -lived on the other side of the world and worshiped -idols.</p> - -<p>There was the heathen “Chinee,” the heathen -“Japanee,” and the heathen Indian.</p> - -<p>These heathen Indians were not our American -Indians. They lived in a country called India -on the other side of the world. India looks on the -map like the little thing that hangs down in the -back of your mouth when the doctor says: “Stick -out your tongue. Say ’Ah.’” Our Indians are -red, but the Indians from India are white. The -white Indians belong to the Aryan family, the -same family that Cyrus belonged to.</p> - -<p>Two thousand years before the time of Cyrus, -an Aryan family had moved away from the other -Aryan families in Persia until they had come to -this country we now call India.</p> - -<p>In the course of time there came to be four -chief classes of people in India, four chief classes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110"></span> -of society—high society, low society, and two -classes of society in between. These classes were -called castes, and no one in one caste would have -anything to do with one in another caste. A boy -or girl in one caste would never play with a boy -or girl in another caste. A man from one caste -would never marry a woman in another. No one -from one caste would eat with one in another -caste, even though he were starving. Men in -different castes were even afraid of touching each -other in passing on the street. It was almost as if -they were afraid of catching some horrible -disease.</p> - -<p>The highest caste of all were the Fighters and -Rulers. The Rulers were the Fighters, and the -Fighters were the Rulers, for they had to be -fighters in order to keep their rule.</p> - -<p>In the next caste were the Priests; and, as -in the case of the Egyptian priests, these men -were not what we think of as priests nowadays. -They were what we should call professional men—doctors, -lawyers, engineers, etc.</p> - -<p>Next came the farmers and tradespeople—the -butcher, the baker, and candlestick maker.</p> - -<p>Fourth and last were the common laborers. -These were the men who knew nothing and could -do nothing but dig or chop wood or carry water.</p> - -<p>Below these four castes were still other people -so low and mean that they were called outcastes -or Pariahs. We now call any person who has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111"></span> -done something so disgraceful that no one, not -even the lowest, will have anything to do with -him a “pariah.”</p> - -<p>The people in India believed in a god whom -they called Brahma, and so we call their religion -Brahmanism. The Brahmanists believed that -when a person died his soul was born again in the -body of another person or perhaps of an animal. -If he had been good while alive they thought his -soul went into the body of a higher caste man -when he died—as if he were promoted from one -grade to the next. If, however, he had led a bad -life they thought his soul went into the body of -a lower caste man or even of an animal.</p> - -<p>When a man died, his body was not buried, it -was burned. If he were a married man, his wife -was obliged to throw herself alive upon the burning -flames. She was not allowed to live after -her husband was dead. If the wife died, that -was another matter; the man simply got another -wife. In the Brahman temples were hideous -idols, which the people worshiped as gods. These -idols had several heads apiece or many arms, or -many legs, or they had tusks sticking out of their -mouths—or they had horns coming out of their -heads.</p> - -<p>About the year 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> there was born a prince -in India by the name of Gautama. Gautama -saw so much suffering and trouble in the world -that he felt it was not right that he himself, just<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112"></span> -because he by chance had been born rich, should -be happy while others were miserable and unhappy. -So he gave up the life to which he had -been born and brought up, a life of ease and -luxury with all its good things, and spent his -entire time trying to make things better for his -people.</p> - -<p>Gautama taught the people to be good; he -taught them to be honest; and he taught them -to help the poor and unfortunate. After a while -people began to call him Buddha, and he was so -holy and pure that at last they thought he must be -god himself, and so they worshiped him as god.</p> - -<p>These people who believed in Buddha were -called Buddhists, and many, many Brahmanists -left their hideous idols and became Buddhists. -You see there was no such thing as a Christian -religion as yet, for this was still five hundred -years before Christ was born, and Buddhism -seemed so much better than Brahmanism that -we do not wonder that great numbers of people -became Buddhists.</p> - -<p>Buddhists thought their religion was so good -that they wanted everyone to become Buddhists; -so they sent missionaries across country and sea -to the island of Japan just as we send Christian -missionaries now, and this new religion spread far -and wide.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have never met nor seen nor even<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113"></span> -heard of a Buddhist, and yet to-day there are -many more Buddhists on the other side of the -world than there are Christians!</p> - -<p>About the same time that Gautama was starting -Buddhism in India, a man in China, a teacher -by the name of Confucius, was teaching the -people of China what they ought to do and what -they ought not to do. His teachings filled several -books and formed what came to be a religion -for the Chinese.</p> - -<p>Confucius taught his people to obey their parents -and teachers and to honor their ancestors. -This sounds something like one of the Ten Commandments: -“Honor thy father and thy mother.”</p> - -<p>Confucius also taught the golden rule, the same -golden rule you are taught to-day, only instead -of saying, “<i>Do</i> unto others as you would be done -by,” he said, “Do <i>not</i> do to others what you -would <i>not</i> want others to do to you.”</p> - -<p>In China there are still as many people who -follow the teachings of Confucius as there are -Christians in all the rest of the world. So here -are two religions each as large or larger than the -Christian religion.</p> - -<p>China was highly civilized, even at this time, -500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>, and many inventions were known and -used in that country long before the rest of the -world ever heard of them. Yet we know little of -China’s history until a great deal later.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c21">21</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Rich Man, Poor Man</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Whenever</span> I pass a group of street boys -playing ball, I almost always hear some one -shout, “That’s no fair!”</p> - -<p>There always seem to be some players who -think the others are not playing fair. Sides are -always quarreling.</p> - -<p>They need an umpire.</p> - -<p>When Athens was young there were two sides -among the people—the rich and the poor, the -aristocrats and the common people—and they -were always quarreling. Each side was trying -to get more power, and each side said the other -wasn’t playing fair.</p> - -<p>They needed an umpire.</p> - -<p>Athens had had kings, but the kings took the -side of the rich, and so at last the Athenians -had kicked out the last king, and after that they -would have no more kings.</p> - -<p>About the year 600 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> things became so very -bad that a man named Draco was chosen to make -a set of rules for the Athenians to obey. These -rules he made were called the Code of Draco.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115"></span></p> - -<p>Draco’s Code made terrible punishments for -any one who broke the rules. If a man stole -anything, even as small a thing as a loaf of bread, -he was not just fined or sent to jail; he was put -to death! And no matter how small the wrong -a man had done, he was put to death for it. Draco -explained the reason for such a severe law by -saying that a thief deserved to be put to death -and should be. A man who killed another deserved -<i>more</i> than to be put to death, but unfortunately -there was no worse punishment to give -him.</p> - -<p>You can understand how much trouble the laws -of Draco caused. They were so hard that a -little later another man was called upon to make -a new set of laws. This man was named Solon, -and his laws were very just and good. We now -call senators and other people who make our -laws “Solons” after this man Solon who lived so -long ago, even though their laws are not always -just and good.</p> - -<p>Still the people were not satisfied with Solon’s -laws. The upper classes thought the laws gave -too much to the lower classes, and the lower -classes thought they gave too much to the upper. -Both classes, however, obeyed the laws for a -while, although both classes complained against -them.</p> - -<p>But about 560 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> a man named Pisistratus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116"></span> -stepped in and took charge of things himself. He -was not elected nor chosen by the people. He -simply made himself ruler, and he was so powerful -that no one could stop him. It was as if a -boy made himself captain or umpire without -being chosen by those on the teams.</p> - -<p>There were others from time to time in Greece -who did the same thing, and they were called -tyrants. So Pisistratus was a tyrant. Nowadays -only a ruler who is cruel and unjust is -called a tyrant. Pisistratus, however, settled the -difficulties of both sides, and, though a tyrant in -the Greek sense, he was neither cruel nor unjust. -In fact, Pisistratus ruled according to the laws -of Solon, and he did a great deal to improve -Athens and the life of the people. Among other -things he did, he had Homer’s poems written -down, so that people could read them, for before -this time people knew them only from hearing -them recited. So the people put up with Pisistratus -and also with his son for a while. But -finally the Athenians got tired of the son’s rule -and drove all the Pisistratus family out of Athens -in 510 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>The next man to try and settle the quarrels of -the two sides was named Clisthenes. It is hard, -sometimes, to learn the name of a stranger to -whom we have just been introduced unless we -hear his name repeated several times. So I will<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117"></span> -say over his name so that you can get used to -hearing it:</p> - -<p> -<span class="smcap pad6">Clisthenes;</span><br /> -<span class="smcap pad15">Clisthenes;</span><br /> -<span class="smcap pad9">Clisthenes.</span> -</p> - -<p>Your father may be poor or he may be rich.</p> - -<p>If he is poor he has one vote when there is -an election.</p> - -<p>If he is rich he has -one vote but only one -vote and no more.</p> - -<p>If he breaks the -laws, whether he is -rich or whether he is -poor, he must go to -jail.</p> - -<p>It was not always -so; it is not always so -even now. But long -ago it was much worse.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig31.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Ostracism.</p> -</div> - -<p>Clisthenes gave every one a vote—rich and -poor alike—and ruled wisely and well.</p> - -<p>Clisthenes started something called ostracism. -If for any reason the people wanted to get rid -of a man, all they had to do was to scratch his -name on any piece of a broken pot or jar they -might find and drop it in a voting-box on a certain -day. If there were enough such votes, the -man would have to leave the city and stay away<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118"></span> -for ten years. This was called ostracism, and -a man so treated was said to be ostracized, from -the Greek name for such a broken piece of pottery, -on which the name was written. Even to-day -we use this same word to speak of a person -whom no one will have anything to do with, -whom no one wants around, saying he has been -ostracized.</p> - -<p>Have you ever been sent away from the table -to the kitchen or to your room for being naughty?</p> - -<p>Then you, too, have been ostracized.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig32.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c22">22</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Rome Kicks Out Her Kings</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">In</span> 509 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> something happened in Rome.</p> - -<p>There were two classes of people in Rome, -just as there were in Athens; the wealthy people -who were called patricians and the poor people -who were called plebeians. We use the same -words now and call people who are rich and -aristocratic “patricians,” and the people who are -poor and uneducated “plebeians.” The patricians -were allowed to vote, but the plebeians -were not allowed to vote.</p> - -<p>At last, however, the plebeians had been given -the right to vote. But in 509 Rome had a king -named Tarquin. He didn’t think the plebeians -should be allowed to vote, and so he said they -should not. The plebeians would not stand this, -and so they got together and drove Tarquin out -of the city, as the Athenians had driven out their -king. This was in 509, and Tarquin was the -last king Rome ever had.</p> - -<p>After King Tarquin had been driven out, -the Romans started what is called a republic, -something like our own country, but they were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120"></span> -afraid to have only one man as president for fear -he might make himself king, and they had had -enough of kings.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig33.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Lictor carrying fasces.</p> -</div> - -<p>So the Romans elected -<i>two men</i> each year to be -rulers over them, and these -two men they called consuls. -Each consul had a -body-guard of twelve men—just -a dozen. These men -were given the name “lictors,” -and each lictor carried -an ax tied up in a -bundle of sticks. This -bundle of sticks with the -ax-head sticking out in the -middle or at the end was -known as “fasces” and signified -that the consuls had -power to punish by whipping -with the sticks or by -chopping off one’s head -with the ax.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have seen -fasces used as ornaments -or as a decoration around -monuments or on buildings like a court-house, city -hall, or capitol. Why do you suppose they are -used in this way?</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121"></span></p> - -<p>One of the first two consuls was named Brutus -the Elder, and he had two sons. The king, -Tarquin, who had been driven out of the city, -plotted to get back to Rome and become king -once more. He was able to persuade some -Romans to help him. Among those whom he -persuaded were, strange to say, the two sons of -Brutus—the new consul of Rome.</p> - -<p>Brutus found out this plot and learned that -his own children had helped Tarquin. So Brutus -had his sons tried. They were found guilty, -and in spite of the fact that they were his own -children, he had the lictors put both of them to -death as well as the other traitors to Rome.</p> - -<p>Tarquin did not succeed in getting back the -rule of Rome in this way, and so the next year he -tried again. This time he got together an army -of his neighbors, the Etruscans, and with this -army he attacked Rome.</p> - -<p>Now, there was a wooden bridge across the -Tiber River, which separated the Etruscans from -the city of Rome. In order to keep the Etruscans -from crossing into the city, a Roman -named Horatius, who had already lost one eye -in fighting for Rome, gave orders to have this -bridge broken down.</p> - -<p>While the bridge was being chopped down, -Horatius with two of his friends stood on the far -side of the bridge and fought back the whole<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122"></span> -Etruscan army. When the bridge was cracking -under the blows of the Roman soldiers, Horatius -ordered his two friends to run quickly to the -other side before the bridge fell.</p> - -<p>Then Horatius, all by himself, kept the enemy -back until at last the bridge crashed into the river. -Horatius then jumped into the water with all -his armor on and swam toward the Roman shore. -Though arrows the Etruscans shot were falling -all around him, and though his armor weighed -him down, he reached the other side safely. Even -the Etruscans were thrilled at his bravery, and, -enemies though they were, they cheered him -loudly.</p> - -<p>There is a very famous poem called “Horatius -at the Bridge,” which describes this brave deed, -and most boys like to learn at least a part of it.</p> - -<p>A few years after Horatius, there lived another -Roman named Cincinnatus. He was only -a simple farmer with a little farm on the bank -of the Tiber, but he was very wise and good, and -the people of Rome honored and trusted him.</p> - -<p>One day when an enemy was about to attack -the city—for in those days there always seemed -to be enemies everywhere ready to attack Rome -on any excuse—the people had to have a leader -and a general. They thought of Cincinnatus -and went and asked him to be dictator.</p> - -<p>Now, a dictator was the name they gave to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123"></span> -a man who in case of sudden danger was called -upon to command the army and in fact all the -people for the time being while there was danger. -Cincinnatus left his plow, went with the people to -the city, got together an army, went out and -defeated the enemy, and returned to Rome, all -in twenty-four hours!</p> - -<p>The people were so much pleased with the -quick and decided way in which Cincinnatus had -saved Rome that they wanted him to keep right -on being their general in time of peace. Even -though they hated kings so much, they would -have made him king if he would have accepted.</p> - -<p>But Cincinnatus did not want any such thing. -His duty done, he wanted to return to his wife -and humble home and his little farm. So in -spite of what many would have thought a wonderful -chance, he did go back to his plow, choosing -to be just a simple farmer instead of being -king.</p> - -<p>The city of Cincinnati in Ohio is named after -a society which was founded in honor of this old -Roman, who lived nearly five hundred years -before Christ.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c23">23</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Greece <i>vs.</i> Persia</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Do</span> you know what those two little letters “vs.” -mean between Greece and Persia in the name of -this story?</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have seen them used on football -tickets when there was to be a match between two -teams, as, for example, Harvard vs. Yale.</p> - -<p>They stand for “versus,” which means -“against.”</p> - -<p>Well, there was to be a great match between -Greece and Persia, but it wasn’t a game; it was -a fight for life and death, a fight between little -Greece and great big Persia.</p> - -<p>Cyrus, the great Persian king, had conquered -Babylon and other countries, as well, and he had -kept on conquering until Persia ruled most of -the world, all except Greece and Italy.</p> - -<p>About the Year 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> the new ruler of this -vast Persian Empire was a man named Darius. -Darius looked at the map, as you might do, and -saw that he owned and ruled over a large part -of it. What a pity, thought he, that there should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125"></span> -be a little country like Greece that did not belong -to him!</p> - -<p>So Darius said to himself, “I must have this -piece of land called Greece to complete my -empire.” Besides, the Greeks had given him -some trouble. They had helped some of his -subjects to rebel against him. Darius said, -“I must punish these Greeks for what they -have done and then just add their country to -mine.”</p> - -<p>So he called his son-in-law and told him to go -over to Greece and conquer it.</p> - -<p>His son-in-law did as he was told and started -out with a fleet and an army to do the punishing. -But before his fleet could reach Greece it was -destroyed by a storm, and he had to go back -home without having done anything.</p> - -<p>Darius was very angry at this, mad with his -son-in-law and mad with the gods who he thought -had wrecked his ships, and he made up his mind -that he himself would go and do the punishing -and conquering the next time.</p> - -<p>First, however, he sent his messengers to all the -Greek cities and ordered each of them to send -him some earth and some water as a sign that -they would give him their land and become his -subjects peaceably without a fight.</p> - -<p>Many Greek cities were so frightened by the -threat of Darius and by his mighty power that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126"></span> -they gave in at once and sent earth and water -as they were told to do.</p> - -<p>But little Athens and little Sparta both hotly -refused to do so, in spite of the fact that they -were only two small cities against the vast empire -of Darius.</p> - -<p>Athens took Darius’ messenger and threw -him into a well, saying, “There is earth and -water for you; help yourself”; and Sparta did -likewise. Then these two cities joined their -forces and called on all their neighbors to join -with them to fight for their native land against -Darius and Persia.</p> - -<p>So Darius made ready to conquer Athens and -then Sparta.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig34.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">A Trireme.</p> -</div> - -<p>In order to reach -Athens his army had to -be carried across the sea -in boats. Of course, in -those days there were no -steamboats. Steamboats -were invented thousands -of years later. The only -way to make a boat go -was with sails or with -oars. To make a large boat move with oars, it -was necessary to have a great many rowers—three -rows one above the other on each side of -the boat.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127"></span></p> - -<p>Such a boat was called a trireme, which means -three rows of oars. It took about 600 of these -boats to carry Darius’ army over to Greece. -Each of these 600 boats carried, besides the -rowers or crew, about 200 soldiers. So you can -see for yourself how many soldiers Darius had -in this army, if there were 600 ship-loads of them -and 200 soldiers on each ship. Yes, that is an -example in multiplication—120,000 soldiers—that’s -right.</p> - -<p>So the Persians sailed across the sea; and this -time there was no storm, and they reached the -shore of Greece safely. They landed on a spot -called the plain of Marathon, which was only -about twenty-six miles away from Athens. You -will see presently why I have told you just the -number of miles—twenty-six.</p> - -<p>When the Athenians heard that the Persians -were coming, they wanted to get Sparta in a -hurry to help, as she had promised to do.</p> - -<p>Now, there were no telegraphs or telephones -or railroads, of course, in those days. There was -no way in which they could send a message to -Sparta except to have it carried by hand.</p> - -<p>So they called on a famous runner named -Pheidippides to carry the message. Pheidippides -started out and ran the whole way from -Athens to Sparta, about one hundred and fifty -miles, to carry the message. He ran night and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128"></span> -day, hardly stopping at all to rest or to eat, and -on the second day he was in Sparta.</p> - -<p>The Spartans, however, sent back word that -they couldn’t start just then; the moon wasn’t -full, and it was bad luck to start when the moon -wasn’t full, as nowadays some superstitious -people think it bad luck to start on a trip on Friday. -They said they would come after a while, -when the moon was full.</p> - -<p>But the Athenians couldn’t wait for the moon. -They knew the Persians would be in Athens before -then, and they didn’t want them to get as -far as that.</p> - -<p>So all the fighting men in Athens left their -city and went forth to meet the Persians on the -plain of Marathon—twenty-six miles away.</p> - -<p>The Athenians were led by a man named -Miltiades, and there were only ten thousand soldiers -of them. Besides these, there were one -thousand more from a little near-by town, which -was friendly with Athens and wished to stand by -her—eleven thousand in all. If you figure it out, -you will see that there were perhaps ten times as -many Persians as there were Greeks, ten Persian -soldiers to one Greek soldier.</p> - -<p>The Greeks, however, were trained athletes, -as we know, and their whole manner of life made -them physically fit. The Persians were no match -for them. And so, in spite of the small number -of Greeks, the large number of Persians were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129"></span> -beaten, and beaten badly. Of course the Greeks -were far better soldiers than the Persians, for all -their training made them so, but more than all -this, they were fighting for themselves to save -their homes and their families.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have heard the fable of the hound -who was chasing a hare. The hare escaped. The -hound was made fun of for not catching the little -hare. To which the hound replied, “I was -only running for my supper; the hare was running -for his life.”</p> - -<p>The Persian soldiers were not fighting for their -homes or families, which were away back across -the sea; and it made little difference to them who -won, anyway, for they were merely hirelings on -slaves; they were fighting for a king because he -ordered them to.</p> - -<p>Naturally the Greeks were overjoyed at this -victory.</p> - -<p>Pheidippides, the famous runner, who was now -at Marathon, started off at once to carry the joyful -news back to Athens, twenty-six miles away. -The whole distance he ran without stopping for -breath. But he had not had time to rest up from -his long run to Sparta, which he had taken only -a few days before, and so fast did he run this -long distance that as soon as he had reached -Athens and gasped the news to the Athenians in -the market-place he dropped down dead!</p> - -<p>In honor of this famous run, they have nowadays,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130"></span> -in the new Olympic Games, what is called -a Marathon race, in which the athletes run this -same distance.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig35.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">“The First Marathon Race.”</p> -</div> - -<p>This battle of Marathon took place in 490 -<span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> and is one of the most famous battles in all -history, for the great Persian army was beaten -by one little city and its neighbor, and the -Persians had to go back to their homes in -disgrace.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131"></span></p> - -<p>A little handful of people, who governed themselves, -had defeated a great king with a large -army of only hired soldiers or slaves.</p> - -<p>But this was not the last the Greeks were to see -of the Persians.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig36.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c24">24</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Fighting Mad</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Darius</span> was now angrier than ever, and still -more determined to whip those stubborn Greeks, -who dared to defy him and his enormous power; -and he began to get ready for one more attempt. -This time, however, he made up his mind that -he would get together such an army and navy -that there would be no chance in the world against -it, and he made a solemn oath to destroy the -Greeks. So for several years he gathered troops -and supplies, but something happened, and in -spite of his oath he did not carry out his plan. -Why? You guessed it. He died.</p> - -<p>But Darius had a son named Xerxes—pronounced -as if it began with a Z.</p> - -<p>When I was a boy, there was an alphabet rime -that began, “A is for Apple,” and went on down -to, “X is for Xerxes, a great Persian king.” I -learned the rime, though I did not know at that -time anything either about Xerxes or Persia.</p> - -<p>Xerxes was just as determined as his father -had been that the Greeks must be beaten, so he -went on getting ready.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133"></span></p> - -<p>But the Greeks also were just as determined -that they must <i>not</i> be beaten, so they, too, went -on getting ready, for they knew the Persians -would sooner or later come back and try again.</p> - -<p>At this time there were two chief men in -Athens, and each was trying to be leader. One -was named Themistocles—pronounced The-mis-to-klees—and -the other Aristides—pronounced -Air-is-tie-dees. Notice how many Greek names -seem to end in “es.”</p> - -<p>Themistocles urged the Athenians to get ready -for what he knew was coming, the next war with -Persia. Especially did he urge the Athenians to -build a fleet of boats, for they had no boats and -the Persians had a great many.</p> - -<p>Aristides, on the other hand, didn’t believe in -Themistocles’ scheme to build boats. He thought -it a foolish expense and talked against it.</p> - -<p>Aristides had always been so wise and fair that -people called him Aristides the Just. Some of -the people wanted to get rid of him, because they -thought he was wrong and Themistocles was -right. So they waited till the time came to vote -to ostracize any one they wanted to get rid of. -Do you remember who started this custom? -Clisthenes—about 500 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>When the day for voting came, a man who -could not write and did not know Aristides by -sight happened to ask his help in voting. Aristides<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134"></span> -inquired what name he should write, and -the man replied, “Aristides.”</p> - -<p>Aristides did not tell who he was, but merely -said:</p> - -<p>“Why do you want to get rid of this man? -Has he done anything wrong?”</p> - -<p>“Oh, no,” the voter replied. “He hasn’t done -anything wrong”; but with a long sigh he said, -“I’m so tired of hearing him always called ’The -Just.’”</p> - -<p>Aristides must have been surprised by this unreasonable -answer, but nevertheless he wrote his -own name for the voter, and when the votes -were counted there were so many that he was -ostracized.</p> - -<p>Though it did not seem quite fair that Aristides -should be ostracized, it was fortunate, as it turned -out, that Themistocles had his way, and it was -fortunate the Athenians went on preparing for -war.</p> - -<p>They built a fleet of triremes. Then they got -all the cities and towns in Greece to agree to join -forces in case of war. Sparta, on account of its -fame as a city of soldiers, was made the leader -of all the others in case war should come.</p> - -<p>And then, just ten years after the battle of -Marathon, in 480 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, the great Persian army -was again ready to attack Greece. It had been, -brought together from all parts of the vast Persian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135"></span> -Empire and was far bigger than the former -army with its 120,000 men, although that was a -large army for those days.</p> - -<p>This time the army is supposed to have consisted -of over two million soldiers—two million; -just think of that! The question then was how -to get so many soldiers over to Greece. Such a -multitude could not be carried across to Greece -in boats, for even the largest triremes only held -a few hundred men, and it would have taken—well, -can you tell how many boats, to carry over -two million? Probably many more triremes than -there were in the whole world at that time. So -Xerxes decided to have his army march to Greece, -the long way but the only way round. So they -started.</p> - -<p>Now, there is a strip of water called a strait, -something like a wide river, right across the path -the Persian army had to take. This strait was -then called the Hellespont. It is, of course, still -there, but if you look on the map now you will -find it is now called the Dardanelles. But there -was no bridge across the Hellespont, for it was -almost a mile wide, and they didn’t have bridges -as long as that in those days. So Xerxes fastened -boats together in a line that stretched from one -shore to the other shore, and over these boats he -built a floor to form a bridge so that his army -could cross upon it.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136"></span></p> - -<p>Hardly had he finished building the bridge, -however, when a storm arose and destroyed it. -Xerxes, in anger at the waves, ordered that the -water of the Hellespont be whipped as if it were -a slave he were punishing. Then he built another -bridge, and this time the water behaved -itself, and his soldiers were able to cross over -safely.</p> - -<p>So vast was Xerxes’ army that it is said to -have taken it seven days and seven nights marching -continuously all the time in two long unbroken -lines to get over to the opposite shore. -Xerxes’ fleet followed the army as closely as they -could along the shore, and at last they reached -the top of Greece. Down through the north of -Greece the army came, overrunning everything -before it, and it seemed as though nothing on -earth could stop such numbers of men.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c25">25</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">One Against a Thousand</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">There</span> is a little narrow passageway with the -mountains on one side and the water on the other -through which the Persians had to go to reach -Athens. This pass is called Thermopylæ, and -you might guess what Thermopylæ means if you -notice that the first part is like Thermos bottle, -which means “hot” bottle. As a matter of fact, -Thermopylæ meant Hot Gateway, and was so -named because this natural gateway to Greece -had hot springs near-by.</p> - -<p>The Greeks decided that it was best to stop -the Persians at this gate—to go to meet them -there first before they reached Athens. In such -a place a few Greek soldiers could fight better -against a much larger number.</p> - -<p>It also seemed wise to send picked Greek -troops to meet the Persians, the very best soldiers -in Greece with the very bravest general to lead -them.</p> - -<p>So the Spartan king, who was named Leonidas—which -in Greek means “like a lion”—was -chosen to go to Thermopylæ, and with him seven<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138"></span> -thousand soldiers—seven thousand soldiers to -block the way of two million Persians! Three -hundred of these were Spartans, and a Spartan -was taught that he must never surrender, never -give up. A Spartan mother used to say to her -son:</p> - -<p>“Come back <i>with</i> your shield or <i>on</i> it.”</p> - -<p>When Xerxes found his way blocked by this -ridiculously small band of soldiers, he sent his -messengers ordering them to surrender, to give -themselves up.</p> - -<p>And what do you suppose Leonidas replied?</p> - -<p>It was what we should expect a Spartan to -answer, brief and to the point; that is, “Laconic.” -He said simply:</p> - -<p>“Come and take us.”</p> - -<p>As there was nothing left for Xerxes to do but -fight, he started his army forward.</p> - -<p>For two days the Persians fought the Greeks, -but Leonidas still held the pass, and the Persians -were unable to get through.</p> - -<p>Then a Greek traitor and coward, who thought -he might save his own life and be given a rich -prize by Xerxes, told that king of a secret path -over the mountains by which he and his army -might slip through and get around Leonidas and -his soldiers who blocked the way.</p> - -<p>The next morning Leonidas learned that the -Persians had found out this path and were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139"></span> -already on the way to pen him in from behind. -There was still a chance, however, for his men -to escape, and Leonidas told all those who wanted -to do so to leave. Those that remained knew -that the fight was absolutely hopeless and that -it meant certain death for all them. In spite of -this, however, one thousand men, including all -the three hundred Spartans stood by their leader, -for, said they:</p> - -<p>“We have been ordered to hold the pass, and -a Spartan obeys orders, and never surrenders, no -matter what happens.”</p> - -<p>So there Leonidas and his thousand men -fought to the bitter end until all except one of -their number was killed.</p> - -<p>The gateway to the city of Athens was now -open, and things looked very black for the -Greeks, for there was nothing to prevent the -Persians from marching over the dead bodies of -Leonidas and his men straight on to Athens.</p> - -<p>The Athenians, wondering what was to happen -to them, hurriedly went to the oracle at Delphi -and asked what they should do.</p> - -<p>The oracle replied that the city of Athens itself -was doomed, that it would be destroyed, there -was no hope for it, but that the Athenians themselves -would be saved by wooden walls.</p> - -<p>This answer, as was usually the case in whatever -the oracle said, was a riddle, the meaning of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140"></span> -which seemed hard to solve. Themistocles, however, -said that he knew the answer. You remember -that it was he who had been working so hard -to have a fleet of ships built. Themistocles said -that the oracle meant these ships when it spoke -of the wooden walls.</p> - -<p>So the Athenians, following the supposed advice -of the oracle, left their city as Themistocles -told them and went on board the ships, which -were not far away, in a bay called Salamis.</p> - -<p>The Persian army reached Athens and found -it deserted. So they burned and destroyed the -city as the oracle said. Then they marched on -to the Bay of Salamis, where the Athenians were -on board the ships. There, on a hill overlooking -the bay, Xerxes had a throne built for himself -so that he could sit, as if in a box at the theater -looking at a play, and watch his own large fleet -destroy the much smaller one of the Greeks with -all the Athenians on board.</p> - -<p>The Greek fleet was commanded, of course, by -Themistocles. His ships were in this narrow bay -or strait of water, somewhat in the same way that -the soldiers of Leonidas had been in the narrow -valley at Thermopylæ.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig37.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Xerxes on his throne watching battle of Salamis.</p> -</div> - -<p>Themistocles, seeing that the Bay of Salamis -looked somewhat like the Pass of Thermopylæ, -had an idea. He made believe he was a traitor -like the traitor at Thermopylæ and sent word to -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142"></span>Xerxes that if the Persian fleet divided and one -half stayed at one end of the strait and the other -half closed off the other end of the strait, the -Greeks would be penned in between and caught -as in a trap.</p> - -<p>Xerxes thought this a good idea, so he gave -orders to have his ships do as Themistocles had -suggested. But Xerxes, sitting smiling on his -throne, had the surprise of his life. The result -was just the opposite of what he had expected. -With the Persian fleet separated in two parts, -the Greeks in between could fight both halves of -the divided fleet at the same time, and the space -was so narrow that the Persians’ ships got in -the way of each other and rammed and sank their -own boats.</p> - -<p>And so the Persian fleet was completely beaten, -and the proud and boastful Xerxes, with most of -his army and all the navy that was left, made a -hasty retreat back to Persia the way they had -come.</p> - -<p>And this was the last time the Persians ever -tried to conquer little Greece.</p> - -<p>If Themistocles had not had his way and built -such a strong fleet, what do you think would have -become of Athens and Greece!</p> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143"></span></p> -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c26">26</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Golden Age</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">When</span> we were talking about the Stone Age -and the Bronze Age, I told you that later we -should also hear of a Golden Age.</p> - -<p>Well, we have come to the Golden Age now. -This doesn’t mean that people at this time used -things made of gold, nor that they had a great -deal of gold money. It means—well, let us see -what sort of a time it was, and then you can tell -what it means.</p> - -<p>After the wars with Persia, Athens seemed to -have been cheered up by her victory to do wonderful -things, and the next fifty years after the -Persians were driven out of Greece—that is, 480 -to 430 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>—were the most wonderful years in -the history of Greece and perhaps the most wonderful -years in the history of the world.</p> - -<p>Athens had been burned down by Xerxes. -At the time it happened this seemed like a terrible -misfortune. But it wasn’t. The people -set to work and built a much finer and much -more beautiful city than the old one had been.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144"></span></p> - -<p>Now, the chief person in Athens at this time -was a man named Pericles. He was not a king -nor a ruler, but he was so very wise and such a -wonderful speaker and such a popular leader -that he was able to make the Athenians do as he -thought best. He was like the popular captain of -a football team, who is a fine player himself and -can make fine players of all the others on his -team. Athens was his team, and he trained it so -well that any one of the team would have been -able to fill any position no matter how important -it was. Some men became great artists. Some -men became great writers. Some men became -great philosophers. Do you know what philosophers -are? They are wise men who know a great -deal and love knowledge.</p> - -<p>The artists built many beautiful buildings, -theaters, and temples. They made wonderful -statues of the Greek gods and goddesses and -placed them on the buildings and about the city.</p> - -<p>The philosophers taught the people how to be -wise and good.</p> - -<p>The writers composed fine poems and plays. -The plays were not like those we have nowadays -but were all about the doings of the gods and -goddesses.</p> - -<p>The theaters were not like those we have nowadays, -either. They were always out of doors, -usually on the side of a hill, where a “grand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145"></span> -stand” could be built facing the stage. There -was little or no scenery, and instead of an -orchestra of musicians there was a chorus of -singers to accompany the actors. The actors -wore false faces or masks to show what their feelings -were, a “comic” mask with a grinning face -when they wanted to be funny and a “tragic” -mask with a sorrowful face when they wanted -to seem sad.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have seen pictures of these masks, -for in the decorations of our own theaters these -same comic and tragic masks are sometimes used.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig38.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Tragic and comic masks.</p> -</div> - -<p>Athens had been -named after the -goddess Athene, -who was supposed -to watch out for -and look after the -city. So the -Athenians thought she should have a special -temple. Accordingly, they built one to her on -the top of a hill called the Acropolis. This -temple they called in her honor the Parthenon, -meaning the “maiden,” one of the names by -which she was known.</p> - -<p>The Parthenon is considered the most beautiful -building in the world, though as you see by -the picture, as it is to-day, it is now in ruins. In -the center of this temple was a huge statue of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146"></span> -Athene made of gold and ivory by a sculptor -named Phidias. We are told that it was the most -beautiful statue in the world as the Parthenon -was the most beautiful building, but it has completely -disappeared, and no one knows what became -of it. One might guess, however, that the -gold and ivory tempted thieves, who may have -stolen it piece by piece.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig39.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">The Parthenon.</p> -</div> - -<p>Phidias made many other statues on the outside -of the Parthenon, but most of these have -been carried away and put in museums or have -been lost or destroyed.</p> - -<p>This statue of Athene and the other sculptures<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147"></span> -on the Parthenon made Phidias so famous that -he was asked to make a statue of Jupiter to be -placed at Olympia, where the Olympic Games -were held. The statue of Jupiter was finer even -than the one he had made of Athene and was so -splendid that it was called one of the Seven -Wonders of the World. You remember the -pyramids of Egypt and the Hanging Gardens -of Babylon were two others of the Seven -Wonders.</p> - -<p>Phidias is probably the greatest sculptor that -ever lived, but he did a thing which the Greeks -considered a crime and would not forgive. We -do not see anything so terribly wrong in what he -did, but the Greeks’ idea of right and wrong was -different from ours. This is what he did. On -the shield of the statue of Athene that he had -made, Phidias carved a picture of himself and -also one of his friend Pericles. It was merely -a part of the decoration of the shield, and hardly -any one would have noticed it. But according to -the Greek notion it was sacrilege to make a picture -of a human being on a statue of a goddess. -So when the Athenians found out what Phidias -had done they threw him into prison, and there -he died.</p> - -<p>The Greeks used different kinds of columns -on their buildings, and these columns are used -in many public and in some private buildings<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148"></span> -to-day. I’ll tell you what each kind is like; -then see how many you can find.</p> - -<p>The Parthenon -was built in a style -called Doric.</p> - -<p>The top of the -column is called the -capital, and the capital -of the Doric -column is shaped like -a saucer with a -square cover on top -of it. There was no -base or block at the -bottom of the -column. It rested -directly on the floor. As the Doric column is -so plain and strong-looking it is called the man’s -style.</p> - -<p>The second style is called <i>Ionic</i>.</p> - -<p>The capital of the Ionic column has a base, and -the capital has ornaments like curls underneath -the square top, and the column has a base.</p> - -<p>As this column is more slender and more ornamental -than the Doric, it is called the woman’s -style.</p> - -<p>The third style is called <i>Corinthian</i>.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig40.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="captiona">1. Doric.<br /> 2. Ionic.<br /> 3. Corinthian.</p> -</div> - -<p>The capital of the Corinthian column is higher -than either of the other two and still more ornamental.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149"></span> -It is said that the architect who first -made this column got his idea for its capital -from seeing a basketful of toys that had been -placed on a child’s grave as was the custom instead -of flowers. The basket had been covered -with a slab, and leaves of the thistle called the -acanthus had grown up around the basket. It -looked so pretty that the architect thought it -would make a beautiful capital for a column, -and so he copied it.</p> - -<p>I asked some boys which one could find the -most columns. The next day one boy said he had -seen two Ionic columns, one on each side of the -door of his house. The second had seen ten Doric -columns on the savings-bank. But the third said -he had seen 138 Corinthian columns.</p> - -<p>“Where on earth did you see so many?” I -asked.</p> - -<p>“I counted the lamp-posts from my house to -the school,” he said. “They were kind of -Corinthian columns.”</p> - -<p>One of the friends of Pericles was a man named -Herodotus. He wrote in Greek the first history -of the world. For this reason Herodotus is -called the Father of History, and some day if -you study Greek you may read what he wrote -in his own language. Of course, at that time -there was very little history to write. What has -happened since <i>hadn’t</i> happened then, and before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150"></span> -his time little was known of what had taken place. -So Herodotus’s history was chiefly a story of the -wars with Persia, which I have just told you -about. After that he had to stop; there was -nothing more to write about.</p> - -<p>In those days every once in a while a terrible -contagious disease, called a plague, would -break out, and people would be taken sick and -die by the thousands, for the doctors knew very -little about the plague or how to cure it. Such -a plague came upon Athens, and the Athenians -died like poisoned flies. Pericles himself nursed -the sick and did all he could for them, but finally -he, too, was taken sick with the plague and died. -So ended the Golden Age, which has been called -in honor of its greatest man the Age of Pericles.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig41.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c27">27</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">When Greek Meets Greek</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Golden Age, when Athens was so wonderful, -lasted for only fifty years.</p> - -<p>Why, do you suppose, did it stop at all?</p> - -<p>It stopped chiefly because of a fight.</p> - -<p>This time, however, the fight was not between -Greece and some one outside, as in the Persian -Wars. The fight was between two cities that -had before this been more or less friendly—mostly -less—between Sparta and Athens. It -was a family quarrel between Greeks. And the -fight was all because one of these cities—Sparta—was -jealous of the other—Athens.</p> - -<p>The Spartans, as you know, were fine soldiers. -The Athenians were fine soldiers, too. But ever -since Themistocles with the ships he had built -had beaten the Persians at Salamis, Athens had -also a fine fleet, and Sparta had no fleet. -Furthermore, Athens had become the most -beautiful and most cultured city in the whole -world.</p> - -<p>Sparta did not care much about Athens’s -beautiful buildings and her education and culture<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152"></span> -and that sort of thing; that did not interest -her. What did make her jealous was Athens’s -fleet. Sparta was inland, not on nor near the -sea-shore as Athens was; so she could not have -a fleet at all. Sparta did not intend, however, -to let Athens get ahead of her, and so on one -excuse or another Sparta with all of <i>her</i> neighbors -started a war against Athens with all of <i>her</i> -neighbors.</p> - -<p>Sparta was in a part of Greece which was -called by the hard name, the Peloponnesus. -But in those days the boys did not think this a -hard name, for they were as familiar with it as -you are with such a name as Massachusetts, for -instance, which would seem just as hard to a -Greek as Peloponnesus does to you. This war -between Athens and Sparta was therefore -called the Peloponnesian War from the fact -that it was not only Sparta but all of the Peloponnesus -that fought against Athens.</p> - -<p>We think a war lasts entirely too long if it -lasts four or five years, but the Peloponnesian -War lasted twenty-seven years! There is a saying, -“When Greek meets Greek then comes a -tug of war!” which means to say, “When two -equal fighters such as Athens and Sparta, both -Greek, meet each other in battle, who knows -how it will end?”</p> - -<p>I am not going to tell you about all the battles<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153"></span> -that took place during these twenty-seven years, -but at the end of this long and bloody war both -cities were tired and worn out, and the glory of -Athens was gone. Although Sparta was ahead, -neither city ever amounted to much afterward. -The Peloponnesian War ruined them both. -That’s the way war does!</p> - -<p>All during the Peloponnesian War there -was a man at Athens by the name of Socrates -who, many think, was one of the wisest and best -men who ever lived. He was called a philosopher -and went about the city teaching the -people what was right and what they ought to -do. But instead of actually <i>telling</i> the people -what he thought was right, he asked them questions -which made them see what was right. In -this way, chiefly by asking questions, he led -people to find out for themselves what he wanted -them to know. This kind of teaching, simply by -asking questions, has ever since been called -Socratic.</p> - -<p>Socrates had a snub nose and was bald and -quite ugly, and yet he was very popular with -the Athenians, which may seem strange, for the -Athenians loved beautiful faces and beautiful -figures and beautiful things, and Socrates was -anything but beautiful. It must have been the -beauty of Socrates’s character that made them -forget his ugliness, as I know some boys and girls<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154"></span> -who think their teacher is perfectly beautiful just -because she is so good and kind that they love -her, although she is really not pretty at all.</p> - -<p>Socrates had a wife named Xantippe. She -had a bad temper and was the worst kind of a -crosspatch. She thought Socrates was wasting -his time, that he was a loafer, as he did no work -that brought in any money. One day she -scolded him so loudly that he left the house, -whereupon she threw a bucket of water on him. -Socrates, who never answered back, merely remarked -to himself:</p> - -<p>“After thunder, rain may be expected.”</p> - -<p>Socrates didn’t believe in all the Greek gods, -Jupiter, Venus, and the rest, but he was careful -not to say so himself, for the Greeks were very -particular that no one should say or do anything -against their gods. Phidias, you remember, was -thrown into prison for merely putting his picture -on the shield of the goddess Athene, and -one would have been put to death for teaching -young men not to believe in the gods.</p> - -<p>At last, however, Socrates, as he had feared -he would be, was charged with not believing in -the Greek gods and with teaching others not to -believe in them. And so for this he was condemned -to death. He was not hanged or put to -death as prisoners are now, however. He was -ordered to drink a cup of hemlock, which was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155"></span> -deadly poison. Socrates’s pupils, or disciples, as -they were then called, tried to have him refuse -to drink the cup, but he would not disobey the -order; and so, when he was nearly seventy years -old, he drank the cup of hemlock and died with -all his disciples around him.</p> - -<p>Although this was four hundred years before -Christ was born, and before, therefore, there -were any such things as Christians or a Christian -religion, yet Socrates believed and taught -two things that are just what Christians also -believe.</p> - -<p>One of these things he believed was that each -of us has inside a conscience, which tells us what -is right and what is wrong; we don’t have to -read from a book or be told by another what is -right or what is wrong.</p> - -<p>Another thing he taught was that there is a -life after death and that when we die our souls -live on.</p> - -<p>No wonder he was not afraid himself to die!</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_156"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c28">28</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Wise Men and Otherwise</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever been playing in your yard -when a strange boy who had been watching from -the other side of the fence asked to be let into -the game, saying he would show you how to -play? You didn’t want him around, and you -didn’t want him in, but somehow or other he -got in and was soon bossing everybody else.</p> - -<p>Well, there was a man named Philip who -lived north of Greece, and he had been watching -Sparta and Athens—not playing but fighting—and -he wanted “to get into the game.” -Philip was king of a little country called Macedonia, -but he thought he would like to be king -of Greece, also, and it seemed to him a good -time, when Sparta and Athens were “down and -out” after the Peloponnesian War, to step in -and make himself king of that country. Philip -was a great fighter, but he didn’t want to fight -Greece unless he had to. He wanted to be made -king peaceably, and he wanted Greece to do it -willingly. So he thought up a scheme to bring -this about, and this was his scheme.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_157"></span></p> - -<p>He knew, as you do, how the Greeks hated -the Persians whom they had driven out of their -country over a hundred years before. Although -the Persian Wars had taken place so long ago, -the Greeks had never forgotten the bravery of -their forefathers and the tales of their victories -over the Persians. These stories had been told -them over and over by their fathers and grandfathers, -and they loved to read and reread them -in Herodotus’s history of the world.</p> - -<p>So Philip said to the Greeks:</p> - -<p>“Your ancestors drove the Persians out of -Greece, to be sure, but the Persians went back -to their country, and you didn’t go after them -and punish them as you should have done. You -didn’t try ’to get even’ with them. Why don’t -you go over to Persia and conquer it now, and -make the Persians pay for what they did to -you?” Then he slyly added:</p> - -<p>“Let me help you. I’ll lead you against -them.”</p> - -<p>No one seemed to see through Philip’s -scheme—nobody except one man. This man -was an Athenian named Demosthenes.</p> - -<p>Demosthenes, when he was a boy, had decided -that he would some day be a great speaker -or orator, just as you might say you are going -to be a doctor, or an aviator, or a lawyer when -you grow up.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_158"></span></p> - -<p>But Demosthenes had picked the one profession -which by nature he was worst fitted for. In -the first place, he had such a very soft, weak -voice that one could hardly hear him. Besides -this, he st-st-stammered very b-b-badly and -could not re-cite even a sh-sh-short p-p-poem -without hesit-t-tating and st-st-stumbling so that -people laughed at him. It seemed absurd, therefore, -that he should aim to be a great speaker.</p> - -<p>But Demosthenes practised and <i>practised</i> and -<i>practised</i> by himself. He went down on the -sea-shore and put pebbles in his mouth to make -it more difficult to speak clearly. Then he -spoke to the roaring waves, making believe that -he was addressing an angry crowd, who were -trying to drown the sound of his voice, so that -he would have to speak very loud indeed.</p> - -<p>So at last, by keeping constantly at it, -Demosthenes did become the greatest speaker -that ever lived. He spoke so wonderfully that -he could make his audience laugh or make them -cry whenever he wanted to, and he could persuade -them to do almost anything he wished.</p> - -<p>Now, Demosthenes was the man who saw -through Philip’s scheme for conquering Persia. -He knew that Philip’s real aim was to become -king of Greece. So he made twelve speeches -against him. These speeches were known as -Philippics, as they were against Philip. So<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159"></span> -famous were they that even to-day we call a -speech that bitterly attacks any one a Philippic.</p> - -<p>The Greeks who heard Demosthenes were -red-hot against Philip while they listened to -him. But as soon as they got away from the -sound of Demosthenes’s words the same Greeks -became lukewarm and did nothing to stop -Philip.</p> - -<p>So at last, in spite of everything that Demosthenes -had said, Philip had his way and became -king over all Greece.</p> - -<p>Before, however, he could start out, as he had -promised, to conquer Persia, he was killed by -one of his own men, so that he was unable to -carry out his plan.</p> - -<p>But Philip had a son named Alexander. -Alexander was only twenty years old, not old -enough even to vote if he had lived in our country, -but when his father died he became king of -Macedonia and also of Greece.</p> - -<p>When Alexander was a mere child, he saw -some men trying without success to tame a -young and very wild horse that shied and reared -in the air so that no one was able to ride it. -Alexander asked to be allowed to try to ride -the animal. Alexander’s father made fun of -his son for wanting to attempt what those older -than he had been unable to do, but at last gave -his consent.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_160"></span></p> - -<p>Now, Alexander had noticed what the others, -although much older, had not noticed. The -horse seemed to be afraid of its own shadow, -for young colts are easily frightened by anything -black and moving, as some children are -afraid of the dark.</p> - -<p>So Alexander turned the horse around facing -the sun, so that its shadow would be behind, out -of sight. He then mounted the animal and, to -the amazement of all, rode off without any further -trouble.</p> - -<p>His father was delighted at his son’s cleverness -and gave him the horse as a reward. Alexander -named the horse Bucephalus and became -so fond of him that when the horse died Alexander -built a monument to him and named several -cities after him.</p> - -<p>Now, Alexander was a wonderful boy, but -he had such a wonderful teacher named Aristotle -that some people think part, at least, of -his greatness was due to the teacher.</p> - -<p>Aristotle was probably the greatest teacher -that ever lived. If there were more great -teachers like Aristotle, it seems likely there -would have been more great pupils like -Alexander.</p> - -<p>Aristotle wrote books about all sorts of -things—books about the stars called astronomy, -books about animals called zoölogy, and books<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161"></span> -on other subjects that you probably have never -even heard of, such as psychology and politics.</p> - -<p>For thousands of years these books that -Aristotle wrote were the school-books that boys -and girls studied, and for a thousand years they -were the <i>only</i> school-books. Nowadays, a school-book -is usually old-fashioned a few years after -it is written and is then no longer used. So you -see how remarkable it was that Aristotle’s school-books -should have been used for so long a time.</p> - -<p>Aristotle had been taught by a man named -Plato, who was also a great teacher and philosopher. -Plato had been a pupil of Socrates, so -that Aristotle was a kind of “grand-pupil” of -Socrates. You have heard of the Wise Men of -the East. These were the three Wise Men of -Greece.</p> - -<p> -<span class="smcap pad6">Socrates</span>,<br /> -<span class="smcap pad15">Plato</span>,<br /> -<span class="smcap pad9">Aristotle.</span> -</p> - -<p>Some day you may read what they wrote or -said over two thousand years ago.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c29">29</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Boy King</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">When</span> you are twenty years old, what do -you think you will be doing?</p> - -<p>Will you be playing football on your college -team?</p> - -<p>Will you be working in a bank, or what?</p> - -<p>When Alexander was twenty he was king of -both Macedonia and Greece. But Macedonia -and Greece were entirely too small for this -wonderful young man. He wanted to own a -much bigger country; in fact, he thought he -would like to own the whole world; that was -all—nothing more.</p> - -<p>So Alexander went right ahead with his -father’s plan to conquer Persia. The time had -come to pay back Persia for that last invasion -one hundred and fifty years before.</p> - -<p>He got together an army and crossed the -Hellespont into Asia and won battle after -battle against the first Persian armies sent out -to stop him.</p> - -<p>He kept moving on, for Persia was a vast -empire.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163"></span></p> - -<p>Soon he came to a town where in a temple -there was kept a rope tied into a very far-famed -and puzzling knot. It was called the Gordian -Knot, and it was very famous because the oracle -had said that whoever should undo this knot -would conquer Persia. But no one had ever -been able to untie it.</p> - -<p>When Alexander heard the story, he went to -the temple and took a look at the knot. He -saw at once that it would be impossible to untie -it, so, instead of even trying, as others had done, -he drew his sword and with one stroke cut the -knot in two.</p> - -<p>So now when a person settles something difficult, -not by fussing with it as one untangles a -snarl, but at a single stroke, cutting through all -difficulties, we say he “cuts the Gordian Knot.”</p> - -<p>From that time on, Alexander conquered one -city after another and never lost any battle of -importance until he had conquered the whole of -Persia.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig42.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">A scroll, pens and ink.</p> -</div> - -<p>Then he went into Egypt, which belonged to -Persia, and conquered that country, too. To -celebrate this victory, he founded a town near -the mouth of the Nile and named it after himself, -Alexandria. Then he started there a great -library which later grew to be so big that there -were said to be five hundred thousand books in -it—that is, half a million—and was the largest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164"></span> -library of ancient times. The books were not -like those in the library of Assur-bani-pal nor -the kind we have -now, of course, -because printing -had not been invented. -They -were every one of -them written by -hand, and not on -pages, but on long sheets which were rolled up -on sticks to form a scroll.</p> - -<p>In the harbor of Alexandria was a little island -called Pharos, and on this island some years -later was built a remarkable lighthouse named -from the island, the Pharos, and its light could -be seen for many miles. It was really a building -more like a modern sky-scraper with a tower. -It was over thirty stories high, which seemed -most remarkable at that time when most buildings -were only one or two stories high, and its -light could be seen for many miles. So the -Pharos of Alexandria was called one of the -Seven Wonders of the World. You have -already heard of three others, so this makes -the fourth.</p> - -<p>Alexandria grew in the course of time to be -the largest and most important seaport of the -ancient world. Now, however, the Pharos and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165"></span> -the library and all the old buildings have long -since disappeared.</p> - -<p>But Alexander did not stay very long in any -one place. He was restless. He wanted to -keep on the move. He wanted to see new -places and to conquer new people. He almost -forgot his own little country of Macedonia and -Greece. Instead of being homesick, however, as -most any one would have been, he kept going -farther and farther away from home all the -time. We should call such a man an adventurer -or an explorer, as well as a great general. And -so he kept on conquering and didn’t stop conquering -until he had reached far-off India.</p> - -<p>There in India his army, which had stayed on -with him all the way, became homesick and -wanted to go back. They had been away from -home for more than ten years and were so far -off that they were afraid they would never -get back.</p> - -<p>Alexander was now only thirty years old, but -he was called Alexander the Great, for he was -ruler of the whole world—at least, all of it that -was then known and inhabited by civilized -people, except Italy, which was still only a collection -of little, unimportant towns at that time. -When Alexander found there were no more -countries left for him to conquer, he was so disappointed -that he wept!</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166"></span></p> - -<p>And so at last, when there was nothing more -to conquer, he agreed to do what his army -begged him and started slowly back toward -Greece.</p> - -<p>He got as far as Babylon, the city once so -large and so magnificent. There he celebrated -with a feast, but while feasting and drinking he -suddenly died. So he never reached Greece.</p> - -<p>This was in 323 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> when he was but 33 -years old. You can remember these figures -easily, for they are all 3’s except the middle figure -in the date, which is one less than 3.</p> - -<p>Alexander the Great had conquered the -largest country that has ever been under the rule -of one man, and yet this was not the only reason -we call him the “Great.”</p> - -<p>He was not only a great ruler and a great -general, but—this may surprise you—he was -also a great teacher. Aristotle had taught him -to be that.</p> - -<p>Alexander taught the Greek language to the -people whom he conquered so that they could -read Greek books. He taught them about -Greek sculpture and painting. He taught -them the wise sayings of the Greek philosophers, -Socrates and Plato and his own teacher, -Aristotle. He trained the people in athletics -as the Greeks did for their Olympic Games. -And so we can say that he taught far more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167"></span> -people than any other teacher who has ever -lived.</p> - -<p>Alexander had married a beautiful Persian -girl named Roxana, but their only child was a -baby, not born until after his father’s death; so -when the great king died there was no one to rule -after him. He had told his generals before he -died that the strongest one of them should be -the next ruler; to fight it out among themselves, -as we sometimes say, “May the best man win.”</p> - -<p>So his generals did fight to see who should -win, and finally four of them, who were victorious, -decided to divide up this great empire -and each have a share.</p> - -<p>One of his generals was named Ptolemy I, -and he took Egypt as his share and ruled well; -but the others did not amount to much, and -after a while their shares became unimportant -and went to pieces. Like a red toy balloon -which stretches and stretches as you blow it up, -Alexander’s empire grew bigger and bigger until—all -of a sudden—“<i>pop</i>”—nothing was left but -the pieces.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_168"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c30">30</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Picking a Fight</p> - - -<p>“<span class="smcap">Every</span> dog has his day.”</p> - -<p>A tennis or golf champion wins over the one -who was champion before him and then has a -few years during which he is unbeaten. Sooner -or later, however, some younger and better man -beats him and in turn takes the championship.</p> - -<p>It seems almost the same way with countries -as with people. One country wins the championship -from another, holds it for a few years, -and then, when older, finally loses it to some -new-comer.</p> - -<p>We have seen that</p> - -<p> -<i>Nineveh</i> was champion for a while; then<br /> -<span class="pad6b"><i>Babylon</i> had her turn; then</span><br /> -<span class="pad6d"><i>Persia</i>, had her turn; then</span><br /> -<span class="pad6f"><i>Greece</i>; and, lastly,</span><br /> -<span class="pad6g"><i>Macedonia</i>.</span> -</p> - -<p>You may wonder who was to be the next -champion after Alexander’s empire went to -pieces—who was to have the next turn.</p> - -<p>When Alexander was conquering the world -he went east toward the rising sun, and south.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169"></span> -He paid little attention to the country to the -west toward the setting sun. Rome, which we -have not heard of for some time, was then only -a small town with narrow streets and frame -houses. It was not nearly important enough -for Alexander to think much about. Rome herself -was not thinking of anything then except -keeping the neighboring towns from beating her.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig43.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Map of Mediterranean showing Carthage, Spain, etc.</p> -</div> - -<p>It is usual to speak of a city as “her” or “she” -as if a city were a girl, but Rome was more like -a small boy whom all the other boys were -“picking” on. In the course of time, however, -Rome began to grow up and was not only able -to take care of herself but could put up a very -stiff fight. She was then no longer satisfied -with just defending herself. So she fought and -won battles with most of the other towns in -Italy, until at last she found herself champion -of the whole of the “boot.” Then she began to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170"></span> -look around to see what other countries there -were outside of Italy that she might conquer.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have noticed that Italy, the -“boot,” seems about to kick a little island as if -it were a football. This island is Sicily, and just -opposite Sicily was a city called Carthage.</p> - -<p>Carthage had been founded by the Phenicians -many years before and had become a very rich -and powerful city. As she was by the sea, she -had built many ships and traded with all the -other seaports along the Mediterranean, just as -the old Phenician cities of Tyre and Sidon -had done.</p> - -<p>Carthage did not like to see Rome getting so -strong and growing so big and becoming so -powerful. In other words, Carthage was jealous -of Rome.</p> - -<p>Rome, on her side, was jealous of the wealth -and trade of Carthage. So Rome anxiously -looked around for some excuse to get into a fight -with her.</p> - -<p>Now, you know how easy it is to pick a quarrel -and start a fight when you are “looking for -trouble.” One boy sticks out his tongue, the -other gives him a kick, and the fight is on.</p> - -<p>Well, two countries are at times just like -little boys; they start a fight with just as little -excuse, and though they call the fight “war” it -is nothing but a “scrap.” Only there are no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171"></span> -fathers to come along and give them both a -spanking and send them to bed without any -supper.</p> - -<p>So it didn’t take long for Rome and Carthage -to find an excuse, and a war was started between -them. The Romans called this fight a -Punic War, for “Punic” was their name for -Phenician, and the Carthaginians were Phenicians.</p> - -<p>As Carthage was across the water, the -Romans could not get to her except in boats. -But Rome had no boats. She was not on the -sea-shore, and she knew nothing about making -boats, nor about sailing them, if she had -had them.</p> - -<p>The Carthaginians, on the other hand, had -many, many boats, and, like all the Phenicians, -were old and experienced sailors.</p> - -<p>But Rome happened to find the wreck of a -Carthaginian ship that had been cast ashore, -and she at once set to work to make a copy of -it. In a remarkably short time she had built -one ship, then another and another, until she -had a great many ships. Then, though she was -new at the game, she attacked the Carthaginian -fleet.</p> - -<p>It would seem that the Carthaginians could -easily have won, for the Romans knew so little -about boats. But in sea battles, before this, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172"></span> -fighting had been done by running into the -enemy and ramming and sinking their ships.</p> - -<p>The Romans knew they were no match for -the Carthaginians in this sort of fighting. So -they thought up a way in which they could -fight them as on land.</p> - -<p>To do this they invented a kind of big hook -which they called a “crow.” The idea was for -a ship to run close alongside a Carthaginian -ship and, instead of trying to sink her, to throw -out this big hook or “crow,” catch hold of the -other ship, and pull both boats dose together. -The Roman soldiers would then scramble over -the sides into the enemy’s boat and fight them -the same way they would on land.</p> - -<p>The scheme worked.</p> - -<p>This new kind of fighting took the Carthaginians -by surprise, and they were no match for -the Romans at first.</p> - -<p>But Rome did not have things all her own -way by any means. The Carthaginians soon -learned how to fight in this fashion, too. So -Rome lost, as well as won, battles both on land -and on sea. But at last she did win, and the -Carthaginians were beaten. Thus ended the -first Punic War.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c31">31</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Boot Kicks and Stamps</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">But</span> the Carthaginians were not beaten for -good. They were only waiting for another -chance to get even. As, however, they had been -unsuccessful in attacking Italy from in front -as they had been doing, they made up their -minds to attack her from the back. Their -scheme was to go the long way round through -Spain and down into Italy from the north.</p> - -<p>In order to do this, they had first of all to -conquer Spain so that they could get through. -They did this, however, rather easily, for the -Carthaginians had a very great general named -Hannibal. But then came the great difficulty, -to get into Italy by this back way.</p> - -<p>Across the top of the “boot,” at the north of -Italy, there are the great mountains called the -Alps. They are miles high and covered even -in summer with ice and snow. There are crags -and steep cliffs along which any one passing -who made a single misstep would be dashed to -death thousands of feet below.</p> - -<p>It was the Alps, therefore, that formed a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174"></span> -bigger and better wall than any city or country -could possibly build. Of course the Romans -thought it impossible for any army to climb -over such a terribly high and dangerous wall.</p> - -<p>Time and again there have been things that -people call impossible to do, and then some one -has come along and done them.</p> - -<p>People said it was impossible to fly.</p> - -<p>Then some one did it.</p> - -<p>People said it was impossible to cross the -Alps with an army.</p> - -<p>Then Hannibal came along, and before the -Romans knew what had happened he had done -it. He had crossed the Alps with his army and -was in at the back door!</p> - -<p>The Romans were unable to keep him from -marching on toward their city, winning battle -after battle as he came along. They were unable -to prevent him marching up and down -Italy, conquering other towns in Italy and doing -pretty much as he pleased. It seemed as -if Rome were beaten and she were to lose all -of Italy.</p> - -<p>Now, in some games, if you can’t defend -your own goal, it may be a good plan to try -attacking your opponent’s goal.</p> - -<p>Rome thought she would try this plan. While -Hannibal was attacking her, she herself would -attack Carthage while its general was away and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175"></span> -there was no strong goal-keeper to defend that -city.</p> - -<p>So the Romans sent a young man named -Scipio with an army to do this.</p> - -<p>First, however, Scipio went to Spain to cut -Hannibal off from the way he had come, and -this country Scipio reconquered.</p> - -<p>Then he went over to Africa to attack Carthage -itself.</p> - -<p>The Carthaginians, frightened at being attacked -with their general and his army far off -in Italy, sent as fast as they could for Hannibal -to come home. When at last he arrived, it was -too late. Scipio fought a famous battle at -Zama near Carthage, and the Carthaginians -were beaten, beaten a second time by the -Romans. Thus ended the second Punic War -in 202 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> This is another easy name and -easy date—just like a telephone number:</p> - -<p class="c"> -Zama—two-O-two. -</p> - -<p>The Romans had won two wars against -Carthage; you would think that they would now -have been satisfied. But they weren’t. They -thought they had not beaten Carthage badly -enough. They were afraid she was not quite -dead or that she might come to life. They -thought there might be a little spark left that -might start a fire if it weren’t trampled out.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_176"></span></p> - -<p>Now, it is bad sport to pummel your opponent -after he is beaten, and Carthage was -beaten—beaten, black and blue—there was no -hope of her “coming back.” And yet a few -years later the Romans attacked her again for -the third and last time.</p> - -<p>Carthage was unable to defend herself, and -the Romans viciously burned the city to the -ground. It is said they even plowed over the -land so that no trace of the city should remain, -and sowed it with salt which prevented anything -growing there. After that Carthage was -never rebuilt, and now it is hard to tell even -where the old city once was.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig44.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c32">32</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The New Champion of the World</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">You</span> can well imagine how proud all the -Romans now were that they <i>were</i> Romans, for -Rome was the champion fighter of the world. -If a man could toss his head and say, “I am a -Roman citizen,” people were always ready to -do something for him, afraid to do him any -harm, afraid what might happen to them if they -did. Rome was ruler not only of Italy but of -Spain and Africa. Like other nations before -her, once she had started conquering, she kept -on conquering, until by 100 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> she in her turn -was ruler of almost all the countries bordering -the Mediterranean Sea—all except Egypt.</p> - -<p>The New Champion of the World, who was -to be champion for a great many years, was -very businesslike and practical.</p> - -<p>The Greeks loved beautiful things, beautiful -buildings, beautiful sculpture, beautiful poems. -The Romans copied the Greeks and learned -from them how to make many beautiful things, -but the Romans were most interested in practical -and useful things.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178"></span></p> - -<p>For example, now that Rome ruled the -world, she had to be able to send messengers -and armies easily and quickly in every direction -to the end of her empire and back again. So -it was necessary for her to have roads, for of -course there were no railroads then. Now, an -ordinary road made by simply clearing away -the ground gets full of deep ruts and in rainy -weather becomes so muddy that it can hardly -be used at all.</p> - -<p>So Rome set to work and built roads. These -roads were like paved streets. Large rocks were -placed at the bottom for a foundation, smaller -stones placed on top, and large, flat paving-stones -laid over all. Thousands of miles of such -roads she built to all parts of her empire. One -could go from almost anywhere all the way to -Rome on paved roads. We still have an expression, -“All roads lead to Rome.” So well were -these roads made that many of them still exist -to-day, two thousand years after they were built.</p> - -<p>The Romans also showed their practical -minds by making two very important city improvements. -If you live in a city, you turn on -a spigot and you get plenty of pure water -whenever you want it. The people in cities at -that time, however, usually had to get their -water both for drinking and for washing from -wells or springs near-by. These springs and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179"></span> -wells often became dirty and made the people -very sick. And so every once in a while because -of such dirty water there were those terrible -plagues, those terribly contagious diseases like -the one I told you about in Athens when people -died faster than they could be buried.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig45.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Roman Aqueduct.</p> -</div> - -<p>The Romans wanted pure water, and so -they set to work to find lakes from which they -could get pure water. As oftentimes these -lakes were many miles away from the city, they -then built big pipes to carry the water all the -way to the city. Such a pipe was not made of -iron or terra-cotta as nowadays, but of stone -and concrete, and was called an “aqueduct,” -which in Latin means “water-carrier.” If this -aqueduct had to cross a river or a valley, they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180"></span> -built a bridge to hold it up. Many of these -Roman aqueducts are still standing and in use -to-day.</p> - -<p>Now, up to this time waste water, after it -had been used, and also every other kind of dirt -and refuse, was simply dumped into the street. -This naturally made the city or town filthy and -unhealthy and was another cause of plagues. -But the Romans built great underground sewers -to carry off this dirt and waste water and -empty it into the river or into some other place -where it would do no harm and cause no sickness. -Nowadays, every large city has aqueducts -and sewers as a matter of course, but the -Romans were the first to build them on a large -scale.</p> - -<p>One of the most important things that Rome -did was to make rules that every one had to -obey; laws, we call them. Many of these laws -were so fair and just that some of our own laws -to-day are copied from them.</p> - -<p>All the cities and towns of the Roman Empire -had to pay money or taxes to Rome. So Rome -became the richest city in the world. Millions -of this money, which was brought to her, was -spent in putting up beautiful buildings in the -city, temples to the gods, splendid palaces for -the rulers, public baths and huge open-air -places called amphitheaters where the people -could be amused.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_181"></span></p> - -<p>The amphitheaters were something like our -football and baseball fields or stadiums. They -did not have football or baseball, however. They -had chariot-races, and deadly fights between -men, or between men and animals. Chariots -were small carts with large wheels drawn by -two or by four horses and driven by a man -standing up. Perhaps you have seen chariot-races -in the circus.</p> - -<p>But the sport that the Romans enjoyed most -of all was a Fight of Gladiators. Gladiators -were very strong and powerful men who had -been captured in battle by the Romans. They -were made to fight with one another or with -wild animals for the amusement of the crowd. -These gladiatorial fights were very cruel, but -the Romans enjoyed seeing blood shed. They -liked to see one man kill another or a wild -animal. It was so amusing. The movies would -not have interested them half so much. Usually -the gladiators fought until one or the other was -killed, for the people were not, as a rule, satisfied -until this was done.</p> - -<p>Sometimes, however, if a gladiator, who had -been knocked out, had shown himself particularly -brave and a good fighter or a good sport, -the people seated all around the amphitheater -would turn their thumbs <i>up</i> as a sign that his -life was to be spared by the other gladiator. So -the winning gladiator, before killing his opponent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182"></span> -whom he had down, would wait to see what -the people wished. If they turned their thumbs -<i>down</i>, it meant he was to finish the fight by killing -his man.</p> - -<p>But although Rome had become such a fine -and beautiful and healthy city in which to live, -the rich people were getting most of the money -that came there from all over the empire. They -were getting richer and richer all the time, while -the poor people, who got nothing, were getting -poorer and poorer all the time. The Romans -brought the people whom they conquered in -battle to Rome and made them work for them -without pay. These were slaves and they did -all the work. It is said that there were more -than twice as many slaves as Romans—two -slaves for every Roman citizen.</p> - -<p>Now, Scipio, who had conquered Hannibal -in the Punic War, had a daughter named Cornelia -Graccha, and she had two sons. They -were very fine boys, and Cornelia was naturally -very proud of them.</p> - -<p>One day a very rich Roman woman was visiting -Cornelia and showing off all her rings and -necklaces and other ornaments, of which she -had a great many and was very proud.</p> - -<p>When she had shown off all she had, she -asked to see Cornelia’s jewels.</p> - -<p>Cornelia called to her two boys, who were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183"></span> -playing outside, and when they came in to -their mother she put her arms around them and -said:</p> - -<p>“<i>These</i> are <i>my</i> jewels.”</p> - -<p>But boys who are jewels when they are young -do not always turn out to be jewels when they -grow up. So you may wonder how Cornelia’s -jewels tinned out.</p> - -<p>When they grew up, the Gracchi, as they -were called, saw such great extravagance among -the rich and such great misery among the poor -that they wanted to do something about it. -They saw that the poor had hardly anything to -eat and no place to live. This did not seem fair. -So they tried to lower the price of food, so that -the poor might be able to buy enough to eat. -Then they tried to find some way to give the -poor at least a small piece of land where they -might raise a few vegetables. They were partly -successful in bringing this about. But the rich -people didn’t like giving up anything to the -poor, and they killed one of the Gracchus -brothers, and later they killed the other one, -also. These were Cornelia’s jewels.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c33">33</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Noblest Roman of Them All</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Here’s</span> a puzzle for you:</p> - -<p>A man once found a very old piece of money -that had on it the date “100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>”</p> - -<p>That couldn’t be so. Why not? See if you -can tell without looking at the answer at the -bottom of the page.<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[1]</a> People living 100 years before Christ was born could not have -known when he was to be born and so could not put such a date -on the coins they made.</p> - -</div> - -<p>In the year 100 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> was born in Rome a boy -who was named Julius Cæsar.</p> - -<p>If you had asked him when he was born, he -would have said in the Year 653.</p> - -<p>Why do you suppose?</p> - -<p>Because Roman boys counted time from the -founding of Rome in 753 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, and Cæsar was -born 653 years after the city was founded. That -makes it 100 years before Christ, doesn’t it?</p> - -<p><i>Pirates</i> seemed to be everywhere in the -Mediterranean Sea at that time—<i>Pirates</i>. Now -that Rome was ruler of the world, there were -many ships carrying gold from different parts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185"></span> -of the empire to Rome. So the pirates sailed up -and down, lying in wait to capture and rob these -ships laden with gold.</p> - -<p>When Cæsar grew to be a young man, he was -sent off to sea to fight these pirates, and he was -captured by them. The pirates kept Cæsar a -prisoner and sent to Rome saying they would not -let him go unless Rome sent them a great deal -of money. Cæsar knew that he would be killed -if the money was not sent. He knew, too, that -he might be killed, anyway. But he was not only -not afraid but he told the pirates that if he lived -to get back home he would return with a fleet and -punish every one of them. When at last the -money came they let him go, nevertheless. They -thought Cæsar would not dare to do what he said. -They thought he was just “talking big.” At any -rate, they did not believe he would be able to -catch them. Cæsar, however, kept his word, came -back after them as he said he would do, and took -them prisoners. Then he had them all put to -death on the cross, which was the Roman way of -punishing thieves.</p> - -<p>The far-off places of the Roman Empire were -always fighting against Rome trying to get rid -of her rule, and had to be kept in order by a -general with an army. As Cæsar had shown such -bravery in fighting the pirates he was given an -army and sent to fight two of these far-off places—Spain<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186"></span> -and a country north of Spain then -known as Gaul, which is now France.</p> - -<p>Cæsar conquered these countries, and then he -wrote a history of his battles in Latin, which -of course was his own language. Nowadays this -book, called “Cæsar’s Commentaries,” is -usually the first book which those who study -Latin read.</p> - -<p>In 55 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span> Cæsar crossed over in ships to the -island of Britain, which is now England, conquered -it, and went back again next year in -54 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span></p> - -<p>Cæsar was becoming famous for the way he -conquered and ruled over the western part of the -Roman Empire. Besides this, he was very -popular with his soldiers.</p> - -<p>Now there was in Rome at this time another -general named Pompey. Pompey had been successfully -fighting in the eastern part of the -Roman Empire while Cæsar had been fighting in -the west. Pompey had been a great friend of -Cæsar, but when he saw how much land Cæsar -had conquered and how popular he was with his -soldiers, he became very jealous of him. Notice -how many quarrels and wars are caused simply -by jealousy. You have heard of at least two -already.</p> - -<p>So while Cæsar was away with his army -Pompey went to the Roman Senate and persuaded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187"></span> -the senators to order Cæsar to give up the -command of his army and return to Rome.</p> - -<p>When Cæsar received the order from the -Senate to give up his command and return to -Rome, he thought over the matter for some time. -Then at last he made up his mind that he would -return to Rome, but he would <i>not</i> give up his -command. Instead, he decided that he and his -army would take command of Rome itself.</p> - -<p>Now, there was a little stream called the -Rubicon which separated the part of the country -over which Cæsar was given charge from that of -Rome. The Roman law forbade any general to -cross this stream with an army ready to fight—this -was the line beyond which he must not pass, -for the Romans were afraid that if a general with -an army got too close to Rome he might make -himself king.</p> - -<p>When Cæsar decided not to obey the Senate, -he crossed this stream—the Rubicon—with his -army and marched on to Rome.</p> - -<p>People now speak of any dividing line from -danger as “the Rubicon” and say that a person -“crosses the Rubicon” when he takes a step from -which there is no turning back, when he starts -something difficult or dangerous which he must -finish.</p> - -<p>When Pompey heard that Cæsar was coming -he took to his heels and fled to Greece. In a few<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188"></span> -days Cæsar had made himself head not only of -Rome but of all Italy. Cæsar then went after -Pompey in Greece and in a battle with his army -beat him badly.</p> - -<p>Now that Pompey was out of the way, Cæsar -was the chief ruler of the whole of the Roman -Empire.</p> - -<p>Egypt did not yet belong to Rome. So Cæsar -next went there and conquered that country. -Now, in Egypt there was ruling a beautiful queen -named Cleopatra. Cleopatra was so charming -that she seemed able to make every one fall in -love with her. Cleopatra flirted with Cæsar and -so fascinated him that he almost forgot everything -else except making love to her. So although -he had won Egypt he made Cleopatra -queen over that country.</p> - -<p>Just at this time some people in the far eastern -part of the empire started a war to get rid of the -rule of Rome. Cæsar left Egypt, traveled -rapidly to the place where the enemy were, made -quick work of conquering them, then sent back -the news of his victory to Rome in the most -laconic (do you remember what that means?) -description ever given of a battle. There were -only three words in the message. Although the -messenger could have carried three thousand as -easily as three words, Cæsar sent a message that -would have been short even for a telegram. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189"></span> -wrote, “Veni, vidi, vici,” which means, “I came, -I saw, I conquered.”</p> - -<p>When Cæsar at last got back to Rome, the -people wanted to make him king, or said they -did. Cæsar was already more than king, for he -was head of the whole Roman Empire. But he -wasn’t called king, for there had been no kings -since 509 <span class="allsmcap">B. C.</span>, when Tarquin was driven out. -The Romans had been afraid of kings and hated -them, or were supposed to hate them.</p> - -<p>A few of the people thought that Cæsar was -getting too much power and believed it would -be a terrible thing to make him a king. They, -therefore, decided on a plot to prevent such a -thing happening. One of these plotters was a -man named Brutus who had been Cæsar’s very -best friend.</p> - -<p>One day when Cæsar was expected to visit the -Roman Senate they lay in wait for him until he -should appear—in the same way I have seen boys -hide around the corner for some schoolmate, -against whom they had a grudge, until he should -come out of school.</p> - -<p>Cæsar came along, and just as he was about -to enter the Senate the plotters crowded around -him, and one after another they stabbed him.</p> - -<p>Cæsar, taken by surprise, tried to defend himself; -but all he had was his stylus, which was a -kind of pen he used for writing, and he could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190"></span> -not do much with that, in spite of a famous saying, -“The pen is mightier than the sword.”</p> - -<p>When at last Cæsar saw Brutus—his best -friend—strike at him, his heart seemed broken -and he gave up. Then, exclaiming in Latin, -“Et tu, Brute!” which means, “And thou, O -Brutus!” he fell down dead. This was in 44 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span></p> - -<p>Antony, one of Cæsar’s true friends, made a -speech over Cæsar’s dead body, and his words so -stirred the crowd of people that gathered round -that they would have torn the murderers to pieces -if they could have caught them.</p> - -<p>Shakspere has written a play called “Julius -Cæsar,” and the month of July is named after -him.</p> - -<p>Now whom do you suppose Antony called -“The Noblest Roman of Them All”?</p> - -<p>“Julius Cæsar”?</p> - -<p>No, you’re wrong. Brutus, the friend who -stabbed Cæsar, was called, “The Noblest Roman -of Them All.”</p> - -<p>Why, do you suppose?</p> - -<p>You’ll have to read Antony’s speech at the -end of the play to find out.</p> - -<p>Cæsar was pronounced in Latin “Kaiser”; and -in later years the rulers of Germany were called -this, and those of another country by the -shortened form, “Czar.”</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_191"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c34">34</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">An Emperor Who Was Made a God</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">A man</span> is famous who has a town or a street -named after him.</p> - -<p>Will you ever do anything great enough to -have even an alley named after you?</p> - -<p>But just suppose a month, one of the twelve -months of the year, was given your name!</p> - -<p>Millions upon millions of people would then -write and speak your name forever!</p> - -<p>But I’m going to tell you about a man who -not only had a month named after him but who -was made a god!</p> - -<p>After Cæsar had been killed, three men ruled -the Roman Empire. One of these three men -was Antony, the friend of Cæsar, who made the -famous speech over his dead body. The second -was Cæsar’s adopted son, who was named -Octavius. The name of the third you don’t need -to know now, for Antony and Octavius soon got -rid of him. Then no sooner had they forced -him out than each of these two began to plot to -get the share of the other.</p> - -<p>Antony’s share, over which he ruled, was the -eastern part of the empire. The capital of this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192"></span> -part was Alexandria in Egypt, and so Antony -went there to live.</p> - -<p>In Egypt Antony fell in love with Cleopatra, -as Cæsar before him had done, and he finally -married her.</p> - -<p>Octavius, in the west, which was his share, then -made war on Antony and Cleopatra together, -and in the end beat them both. Antony felt so -bad at being beaten by Octavius that he committed -suicide.</p> - -<p>His widow, Cleopatra, thereupon, flirted with -Octavius as she had with Julius Cæsar and -Antony, hoping to make him also fall in love -with her and so win him in that way.</p> - -<p>But it was no use. Octavius was a different -kind of man from both Julius Cæsar and Antony. -He was cold-blooded and businesslike. He had -no heart for love-making. He would not let a -woman charm him or turn him aside from his -plan, which was to be the greatest man in the -world!</p> - -<p>Cleopatra saw that it was no use trying her -tricks on him. Then she heard that she was going -to be taken back to Rome and paraded through -the streets, as was done with any other prisoners -taken in battle. She could not stand such a shame -as that, and so she made up her mind she would -not be taken back to Rome.</p> - -<p>Now, in Egypt there is a kind of snake called<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193"></span> -an asp, which is deadly poisonous. Taking one -of these asps in her hand, she uncovered her breast -and let it bite her, and so she died.</p> - -<p>Octavius was now ruler over all the countries -that belonged to Rome, and when he returned -home to that city, the people hailed him “Emperor.” -He then gave up the name Octavius and -had himself called “Augustus Cæsar,” which is -like saying, “His Majesty, Cæsar.” This was -in 27 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> Rome had got rid of her kings in -509. From now on she had emperors, who were -more than kings, for they ruled over many -countries.</p> - -<p>Octavius, now with his name changed to -Augustus Cæsar, was only thirty-six years old -when he became sole master of the Roman world. -Rome was the great capital of this vast empire. -The city of Rome had probably as many people -as New York City proper now has, and the -Roman Empire had perhaps as many people as -the United States has at present.</p> - -<p>Augustus set to work to make Rome a beautiful -city. He tore down a great many of the old -buildings made of brick and put up in their place -a remarkable number of new and handsome buildings -of marble. And so Augustus always -bragged that he found Rome brick and left it -marble.</p> - -<p>One of the finest buildings in Rome, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194"></span> -Pantheon, was built. Pantheon means the temple -of all the gods. Do not mix this with the -Parthenon in Athens, for the two buildings are -quite different, and though the names look something -alike and sound something alike, they mean -quite different things; Parthenon is from the -goddess Athene Parthenos; Pantheon is from the -two words “Pan theon,” which means “all gods.”</p> - -<p>The Pantheon has a dome built of concrete. -This dome is shaped like a bowl turned upside -down, and in the top of the dome is a round -opening called an eye. Though this eye is uncovered, -the height is so great above the floor that -it is said that rain coming through the eye does -not wet the floor beneath but evaporates before -reaching it.</p> - -<p>So magnificent did the city become with all -these wonderful buildings, and so permanently -did it seem to be built, that it was known as The -Eternal City and is still so spoken of.</p> - -<p>There was a public square in Rome called the -Forum. Here markets were held and the people -came together for all sorts of things. Around -the Forum were erected temples to the gods, -court-houses, and other public buildings. These -court-houses were something like the temples that -the Greeks built, only the columns were put on -the inside of the building instead of on the outside.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig46.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Roman forum.</p> -</div> - -<p>Triumphal arches also were erected to celebrate -great victories. When a conquering hero returned -from the war, he and his army passed -through this arch in a triumphal parade.</p> - -<p>There had been in Rome a great amphitheater -that is supposed to have held more people than -any structure that has ever been built—two -hundred thousand, it is said, or more than all the -people who live in some good-sized cities. This -was called the Circus Maximus. It was at last -torn down to make room for other buildings.</p> - -<p>Another amphitheater was the Colosseum, but -this was not built until some time after Augustus<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196"></span> -had died. It held about the same number as the -largest stadium in this country does to-day. -Here were held those fights between men, called -gladiators, and wild animals that I have already -told you about. It is still standing, and, though -it is in ruins, you can sit in the same seats where -the old Roman emperors did, see the dens where -the wild animals were kept, the doors where they -were let into the arena, and even bloody marks -that are said to be the stains made by the slain -men and beasts.</p> - -<p>So many famous writers lived at the time of -Augustus that this has been called the Augustan -Age. Two of the best known Latin poets, whom -every school-boy now reads after he has finished -“Cæsar’s Commentaries,” lived at this time. -These poets were Vergil and Horace. Vergil -wrote the “Æneid,” which told of the wanderings -of Æneas, the Trojan, who settled in Italy, -and was the great-great-great-grandfather of -Romulus and Remus. Horace wrote many short -poems called Odes. They were love-songs of -shepherds and shepherdesses and songs of the -farm and country life. People liked his songs, -and many still name their sons after him.</p> - -<p>When Augustus Cæsar died, he was made a -god, because he had done so much for Rome; -temples were built in which he was worshiped, -and the month of August was named after him.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c35">35</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">“Thine is the Kingdom, the Power, and<br /> -the Glory”</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Augustus Cæsar</span> had been Ruler of the -World.</p> - -<p>He had found Rome brick and left it marble.</p> - -<p>He had had a month named after him, and</p> - -<p>He had been made a god!</p> - -<p>Surely no one could ever be greater than he! -Yet a greater than he was living at the very same -time—a greater ruler of a greater kingdom with -greater power and greater glory, although -Augustus himself knew nothing about Him and -lived and died without ever having heard of Him. -This Man was born in the eastern part of Augustus’s -empire in a tiny little village called -Bethlehem, and His name was Jesus Christ.</p> - -<p>For many, many years after Christ was born -no one except His family and friends knew or -cared anything about His birth or paid the slightest -attention to it.</p> - -<p>Christ was a Jew, the son of a carpenter. As -a boy and young man He led a very simple and -quiet life working in His father’s shop. He did<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198"></span> -not begin to preach until He was more than thirty -years old. Then He went about teaching the -people what we learn to-day as the Christian -religion.</p> - -<p>He taught that there was one God over all.</p> - -<p>He taught brotherly love, that one should love -one’s neighbor as oneself.</p> - -<p>He taught the golden rule; that is, “do unto -others as you would be done by.”</p> - -<p>He taught that there was a life after death -for which this short life on earth was only a -preparation; that therefore you should “lay up -your treasures in heaven” by doing good works -here.</p> - -<p>The poorer Jews listened to Christ and believed -what He taught them. But they thought -He was going to set them free from the rule of -the Romans, which they hated. The Jewish -priests, however, were afraid of what Christ -taught. He was teaching some things that were -just the opposite of what they themselves taught. -So they plotted to have Him put to death.</p> - -<p>Now, the Jews could not put Christ to death -without the permission of the Roman ruler of -that part of the empire where Christ lived. This -ruler was named Pilate. So they went to Pilate -and told him that Christ was trying to make -himself king. Christ of course meant and always -said that He was a heavenly ruler and not an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199"></span> -earthly king. The Jews knew that Pilate would -not care at all what religion Christ taught. -There were all sorts of religions in the Roman -Empire—those that believed in mythological -gods and those that believed in idols and those -that believed in the sun, moon, and so on—one -more new religion made little difference to the -Romans, and Christ would not be put to death -simply for teaching another. But the Jews knew -if they could make Pilate believe that Christ was -trying to make himself a king, that was a thing -He could be crucified for. Pilate did not believe -much in what the Jews said against Christ. It -was a small matter to him, one way or the other, -however. But he wanted to please the Jews, so -he told them to go ahead and put Christ to death -if they wanted to. So He was crucified.</p> - -<p>Christ had chosen twelve men to teach what -He told them. These twelve men were called -apostles. After Christ was crucified these -apostles went through the land teaching the -people what Christ had taught them. Those who -believed in and followed His teachings were -called disciples of Christ or Christians. The -apostles were teachers; the disciples were pupils.</p> - -<p>The Romans thought these disciples of Christ -were trying to start a new world empire, and -that they were against Rome and the emperor and -should be arrested and put in prison. So the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200"></span> -Christians usually held their meetings in secret -places, sometimes even underground, so that they -would not be found and arrested.</p> - -<p>But after a while the leaders of the Christians -became bolder. They came out of their secret -places and taught and preached openly, although -they knew they would sooner or later be thrown -into prison and perhaps killed. Indeed, so -strongly did they believe in the teachings of -Christ that they seemed even glad to die for His -sake, as He had died on the cross for them.</p> - -<p>In the first hundred years after Christ, there -were a great many Christians put to death because -they were thought traitors. Christians who -died for Christ’s sake were called martyrs. -The first martyr was named Stephen. He was -stoned to death about 33 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p> - -<p>One of the men who helped in putting Stephen -to death was a man named Saul. Saul was a -Roman citizen and, like other Roman citizens, -was proud of that fact. He thought the Christians -were enemies of his country, and he did -everything he could to have the Christians -punished. Then, all of a sudden, Saul had a -change of heart and came to believe in the religion -of the very people whom he had been fighting. -Whatever Saul did or whatever he believed he -did or believed with his whole soul. Though he -had never seen Christ, he became one of the chief<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201"></span> -Christians and then was made an apostle and was -called by his Roman name, Paul.</p> - -<p>Paul preached the new religion far and wide -just as earnestly as he had fought against it at -first. Then he, too, was condemned to death. -Paul, however, was, as I have said, a Roman -citizen, and a Roman citizen could not be put to -death by the ordinary judges who were not -Roman citizens nor in the ordinary way by crucifying. -So Paul appealed to the emperor. -Nevertheless, he was put in prison in Rome and -afterward beheaded. And so he is called St. -Paul.</p> - -<p>Peter was another of the chief apostles. Christ -had said to him, “I will give unto thee the keys -of the kingdom of heaven.”<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> Peter, too, was -thrown into prison, and was sentenced to be -crucified. But he asked to be crucified with his -head downward. He thought it too great an -honor to die in just the same way as his Lord. -On this spot in Rome where Peter was put to -death was built long afterward the largest church -in the world, the Cathedral of St. Peter.</p> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[2]</a> Matthew, xvi, 19.</p> - -</div> - -<p>As everything before Christ’s birth is called -<span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span> and everything since His birth is called <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, -you would naturally suppose that 0 would be the -date of His birth.</p> - -<p>But it was not until some five hundred years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202"></span> -later that people began to date from Christ’s -birth. And then, when they did begin to date -from this event, they made a mistake. It was -found out that Christ was really born four years -before He was supposed to have been born—that -is, in 4 <span class="allsmcap">B.C.</span>—but when the mistake was found -out, it was then too late to change.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig47.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_203"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c36">36</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Blood and Thunder</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">I once</span> had a big Newfoundland dog, and he -was one of the best friends a boy ever had. I -don’t know who it was that named him; he was -named before I got him; but whoever it was must -either have been ignorant of history or a bad -chooser of names. He was called Nero, and even -a dog would have hated such a name, had he -known whose it once was.</p> - -<p>Every good story usually has a villain to make -it interesting. Nero is the prize villain of history. -He was a Roman emperor who lived not long -after Christ, and he is considered the most -terribly cruel and wicked ruler that ever lived.</p> - -<p>He killed his mother.</p> - -<p>He killed his wife.</p> - -<p>He killed his teacher, who was named Seneca. -He was not a bad teacher, either.</p> - -<p>We think that Nero ordered both St. Peter and -St. Paul put to death, for they were executed at -this same time.</p> - -<p>Nero seemed to take great pleasure in making -others suffer. He loved to see men torn to pieces -by wild beasts; it amused him greatly. I have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204"></span> -seen boys who liked to throw stones at dogs just -to hear them yelp, or tear the wings off of butterflies. -Such boys must have some Nero in them; -don’t you think?</p> - -<p>If a man was a Christian, that gave Nero -an excuse to torture him horribly. Nero had -some of the Christians wrapped in tar and -pitch, then placed around the garden of his -palace and set fire to, as if they were torches. It -is even said that Nero set Rome on fire just for -the fun of seeing the city burn. Then he sat -in a tower and, while he watched the blaze spreading, -played on a harp. The saying is that “Nero -fiddled while Rome burned”; but there were no -fiddles at that time, and so we know it must have -been a harp. The fire burned day and night for -a whole week and destroyed more than half of -the city. Then Nero laid the blame on the Christians, -who, he said, started the fire. Did you ever -blame another for something you had done?</p> - -<p>Some think Nero really was crazy, and we -hope he was, for it is hard to think any human -being who was not crazy could act as he did.</p> - -<p>Nero built himself an immense palace and -overlaid it extravagantly with gold and mother-of-pearl. -It was known as Nero’s House of -Gold. At its front door he put up a colossal -statue of himself in bronze fifty feet high. Both -the House of Gold and the statue were later<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205"></span> -destroyed, but the Colosseum, which was built a -few years afterward, was named Colosseum from -this “coloss-al” statue of Nero that was once -there.</p> - -<p>Nero was very conceited. He thought he could -write poetry and sing beautifully. Although he -did both very badly, he liked to show off, and no -one dared to laugh at him. Had any one been -so bold as to make fun of him or even to smile, -he would have had that person put to death -instantly.</p> - -<p>Even the Roman people who were not Christians -feared and hated Nero. So they voted to -have him put out of the way. But before they -had a chance to do anything, Nero heard what -they were planning, and in order to save himself -the disgrace of being put to death by his own -people he decided to kill himself. He was such -a coward, however, that he couldn’t quite bring -himself to plunge the sword into his heart. But as -he hesitated, holding the sword to his breast and -whimpering, his slave, impatient to finish the job, -shoved the blade in. Thus was Rome rid of its -worst ruler.</p> - -<p>So much for the first part of this “blood and -thunder” story. Here is the second part:</p> - -<p>The Jews in Jerusalem didn’t like to have -Rome rule over them. They never had. But -they were afraid to do much about it. But in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206"></span> -the Year 70 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> they rebelled; that is, they said -they would no longer obey Rome or pay her -money. The emperor sent his son, who was -named Titus, with an army to put an end to the -rebellion, to punish them as if they were disobedient -children.</p> - -<p>The Jews crowded into their city of Jerusalem -to make a last stand against the Romans. But -Titus destroyed that city completely and the -Jews in it, a million of them, it is supposed. Then -he robbed the great temple of all its valuable -ornaments and brought them back to Rome.</p> - -<p>To celebrate this victory over Jerusalem an -arch was built in the Forum at Rome, and -through this arch Titus and his army marched in -triumph. On this arch was carved a procession, -showing Titus leaving the city of Jerusalem with -these ornaments. Chief among these ornaments -was a golden seven-branched candlestick he had -taken from the temple. To-day we see many -copies in brass of this famous seven-branched -candlestick. Perhaps you may have one in your -home on the mantelpiece.</p> - -<p>The city was rebuilt later, but most of the Jews -who were left have ever since been living in all -the other countries of the earth.</p> - -<p>Titus became emperor, but in spite of the way -in which he had massacred so many Jews, he was -not such a bad emperor as you might suppose. -He thought he was doing right in killing these<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207"></span> -men because they had rebelled against Rome. -But Titus had a rule of life, much like that the -Boy Scouts now have. This rule was, “Do at -least one good turn a day.”</p> - -<p>The third part of this story is the “thunder.”</p> - -<p>In Italy there is a volcano named Vesuvius. -You remember that “volcano” came from the -name “Vulcan,” the blacksmith god, and people -imagined that his forge in the heart of a volcano -made the smoke and flame and ashes. From time -to time this volcano, Vesuvius, thunders and -quakes and spouts forth fire and throws up stones -and gas and boils over with red-hot melted rock -called lava. It is the hot inside of the earth exploding. -Yet people build houses and towns -near-by and live even on the sides of the volcano. -Every once in a while their homes are destroyed -when the volcano quakes or pours forth fire. Yet -the same people go right back and build again -in the same place!</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig48.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Vesuvius erupting, Pompeii in foreground.</p> -</div> - -<p>There was at the time of Titus a little town<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208"></span> -named Pompeii near the base of Vesuvius. -Wealthy Romans used to go there to spend the -summer. Suddenly, one day in the year 79 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, -just after Titus had become emperor, Vesuvius -began to spout forth fire. The people living in -Pompeii rushed for their lives, but they hadn’t -time to get away. They were smothered with the -gases from the volcano before they hardly had -time to move and, falling down dead, were buried -deep in a boiling rain of fire and ashes, just where -they happened to be when the eruption, as it was -called, took place.</p> - -<p>The people and their houses lay buried beneath -the ashes for nearly two thousand years, and in -the course of time every one had forgotten there -ever had been such a place. People came back -as they had before and built houses over the spot -where every one had forgotten there once was -a city. Then one day a man was digging a well -over the spot where Pompeii had once been. He -dug up a man’s hand—no, not a real hand, but -the hand of a statue. He told others, and they -set to work and dug and dug to see what else -they could find until the whole town was dug out. -And now one can go to Pompeii and see it very -much as it was in 79 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, before it had ever been -destroyed.</p> - -<p>There are houses of the Romans who went -there to spend their vacations. There are shops<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209"></span> -and temples and palaces and public baths and the -theater and the market place or forum. The -streets were paved with blocks of lava, once -melted stone. They still show ruts which were -worn into them by the wheels of the chariots that -the Romans used to drive. Stepping-stones were -placed at some crossings, so that in case of heavy -rains, when the streets were full of water, one -could cross on them from curb to curb. These -stepping-stones are still there. The floors of the -houses were made of bits of colored stone to form -pictures. They are still there. In the vestibule -of one house, there is in the floor a mosaic picture -of a dog. Under it are the Latin words, “Cave -canem.” What does that mean? Can you guess? -It means, “Look out for the dog!” That was a -Roman’s idea of a joke two thousand years ago!</p> - -<p>The bones of the people who were caught and -buried alive in the ashes were also found. There -were also found bronze ornaments worn by the -women, vases that decorated the home, lamps -which they used to light the houses, pots and pans -and dishes. Beds and chairs were found just as -they had been buried. Still more remarkable, -cakes were found on the table, a loaf of bread -half eaten, meat ready to be cooked, a kettle on -the fire with the ashes still underneath it—beans -and peas and <i>one egg</i> unbroken—probably the -oldest egg in the world!</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_210"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c37">37</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Good Emperor and a Bad Son</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever said, “I don’t care,” when you -really did care?</p> - -<p>I have. Every one has.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have been naughty and have been -told you could have no dessert or must go to bed -early, and you tossed your head and said, “I -don’t care.”</p> - -<p>Well, once upon a time there was a society or -club formed of grown-up people who said they -weren’t ever going to care what happened to -them; whether it was good or whether it was bad -would make no difference. I should call them -the “Don’t Care Club,” but they called themselves -“Stoics,” and they thought the way to be -good was “not to care.”</p> - -<p>If a Stoic’s house burned down, he would say -to himself and try to make himself believe, “I -don’t care; it doesn’t matter.”</p> - -<p>If some one gave him a million dollars, he -would say, “I don’t care; it doesn’t matter.”</p> - -<p>If he was told by the doctor he was going to -die next week, he would say, “I don’t care; it -doesn’t matter.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_211"></span></p> - -<p>This Society of Stoics was started by a Greek -philosopher named Zeno.</p> - -<p>Zeno lived in Athens later than those philosophers, -Socrates and Plato, whom you have already -heard about. Zeno said that the only way -to be good and the only way to be happy was -not to care for pleasure and not to mind pain or -suffering but calmly to put up with everything, -no matter how unpleasant or disagreeable it was, -and the Stoics believed him. Even to-day people -who bear troubles and pain and hardships without -a murmur are called stoics.</p> - -<p>One of the chief members of the society was a -Roman emperor.</p> - -<p>Rome’s worst emperor, Nero, had been dead -a hundred years when there came to the throne -this new emperor, who was just as good as Nero -was bad. This emperor was named Marcus -Aurelius. Although he was so very good and -pious, he was not a Christian. Indeed, Marcus -Aurelius treated the Christians terribly, as they -had been treated terribly by the previous emperors, -for he thought them traitors to the empire.</p> - -<p>At this time most of the Romans had very little -religion of any sort. They were not Christians, -but neither did they put much faith in their own -gods, Jupiter and Juno and the rest. They -honored them because they were brought up to -honor them and because they thought if they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212"></span> -didn’t honor them they might have bad luck, so -they took no chances. But instead of believing -in such gods, people usually believed in the teachings -of some wise man or philosopher and obeyed -more or less the rules he made. Zeno was one of -these philosophers, and the Stoics were the members -of this society.</p> - -<p>Although Marcus Aurelius was an emperor, he -would rather have been a Stoic philosopher or a -priest. Although he had to be a soldier and a -general, he would rather have been a writer. -When he was off, fighting with his army, he -carried his writing-materials with him, and he -would go to his tent at night and write out his -thoughts. These thoughts he called his “Meditations.” -Here is one of the things he wrote:</p> - -<div class="blockquota"> - -<p>When you find you do not want to get up early in the -morning, make this short speech to yourself. I am getting -up now to do the business of a man. Was I made to do -nothing but doze and keep warm under the covers?</p> -</div> - -<p>That was written long years ago, yet your -father might have told you the same thing this -morning.</p> - -<p>People read this book of Marcus Aurelius to-day, -either in the Greek in which it was written -or translated into English.</p> - -<p>A great many of Marcus Aurelius’ sayings -seem almost as if they might have been in the -Bible. Indeed, some people keep his book by -their bedside as if it were a Bible.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_213"></span></p> - -<p>One of his rules was, “Forgive your enemies,” -and he seemed almost glad to have enemies so -that he might have a chance to forgive them. Indeed, -he took such a special delight in forgiving -his enemies that he even went out of his way to -do so. Though Marcus Aurelius was not a Christian, -nevertheless he was more Christian in the -way he acted than some of the later emperors -who were supposed to be Christians.</p> - -<p>But like many people who are very good -themselves, Marcus Aurelius was unable to -bring up his son to be so. His son was named -Commodus, and Commodus was just as bad as -his father was good. He may have been bored -when a child by too many of his father’s instructions, -for when he grew up and was able to -choose for himself and do as he pleased, instead -of following Zeno and joining the Stoics, he -joined the society of another philosopher called -Epicurus.</p> - -<p>Epicurus had lived about the same time as -Zeno. But he had taught what at first seems -almost the opposite of what Zeno taught. Epicurus -said that the chief end and aim of man -and the only good in the world was pleasure; -<i>but</i>, said he, the pleasure must be of the right -kind. Nowadays people who are very fond of -eating nice things, whose whole thought in life -is the pleasure of eating, are called “epicures.”</p> - -<p>Commodus’s one thought was pleasure, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214"></span> -the worst kind of pleasure at that. A friend of -mine thought Marcus Aurelius was such a fine -man that he named his son after him, “Marcus -Aurelius Jones,” but when the son grew up he -was not at all like his namesake. The name -“Commodus” would have suited him much better, -for instead of being good and pious, he thought -of nothing but pleasure and he was so bad that -he ended in jail.</p> - -<p>Commodus thought nothing of giving his -people a good government; he only thought of -giving himself a good time. He was an athlete -and had beautiful muscles and a handsome figure, -of which he was so proud that he had a -statue made of himself. The statue showed him -as the strong and muscular god Hercules. -Commodus made the people worship him as if -he were this god. Just to show off his muscles -and his muscular ability, he himself took part in -prize-fights—quite bad taste for an emperor. -He poisoned or killed any one who found fault -with or criticized him. He led a wild and dissipated -life, but at last he met the end he deserved. -He was strangled to death by a -wrestler.</p> - -<p>Lycurgus would have said again:</p> - -<p>“I told you so.”</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_215"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c38">38</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">I — H — — S — — — — V — — — — —</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> name of this story I’m going to put at -the end, for you wouldn’t know what it means, -anyway, until you have heard the story, and so -it’s no use looking ahead.</p> - -<p>All through the years since Christ was crucified, -those who said they believed in Christ had -been terribly treated—“persecuted,” we call it—because -they were Christians. They had been -flogged; they had been stoned; they had been -torn with iron hooks; they had been roasted and -burned to death. Yet, strange as it may seem, -in spite of this terrible treatment, more and more -people were becoming Christians every day. -They believed so strongly in life after death, and -they believed that they would be so much happier -after death if they died for Christ’s sake, that -they seemed even glad to suffer and to be killed. -But at last the emperor himself put a stop to all -these persecutions. This is how it happened.</p> - -<p>About the year 300 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> Rome had an emperor -by the name of Constantine. Constantine was -not a Christian. His gods were the old Roman -gods. He probably did not put much faith in -them, however.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_216"></span></p> - -<p>Well, once upon a time Constantine was -fighting with an enemy when he dreamed one -night that he saw in the sky a flaming cross. -Beneath this cross were written the Latin -words, “In hoc signo vinces.” In English this -is, “In this sign thou shalt conquer.” Constantine -thought this meant that if he carried the -Christian cross into battle he would conquer. -He thought it would at least be worth while to -give the Christian God a trial. So he had his -soldiers carry the cross, and he did win the battle. -Then immediately he became a Christian himself -and asked every one in the Roman Empire to -become a Christian also. From that time on, all -the Roman emperors who came after Constantine, -all except one, were Christians.</p> - -<p>To celebrate Constantine’s victory the Roman -Senate built a triumphal arch in the Forum of -Rome and called it the Arch of Constantine. If -has three openings; the Arch of Titus has -only one.</p> - -<p>Constantine’s mother was named Helena. -She was one of the very first to become a Christian -and be baptized. Then she gave up her -life to Christian works and built churches at -Bethlehem and on the Mount of Olives. It is -said that she went to Palestine and found the -actual cross on which Christ had been crucified -three hundred years before and sent part of it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217"></span> -to Rome. When she died she was made a saint, -and so she is now called St. Helena.</p> - -<p>Constantine built a church over the spot -where St. Peter was supposed to have been crucified. -Many years later, this church was torn -down so that a much larger and grander church -to St. Peter might be built there.</p> - -<p>But Constantine did not care for Rome. He -preferred to live in another city in the Eastern -part of the Roman Empire. This city was -called Byzantium. So he moved from Rome to -Byzantium and made that city his capital. -Byzantium was called New Rome, and then the -name was changed to Constantine’s city. In -Greek, the word for “city” is “polis.” We see -the word used in Anna<i>polis</i> and Indiana<i>polis</i>. -So Constantine’s City became Constantinepolis, -and then shortened to Constantinople.</p> - -<p>Hardly had the Roman Empire become -Christian before a quarrel arose between those -Christians who believed one thing and those who -believed another. The chief thing they quarreled -about was whether Christ was equal to God the -Father or not equal to Him. Constantine called -the two disagreeing sides together at a place -called Nicæa to settle the question. There the -leaders of each side argued the matter hotly. -Finally, it was decided that the Christian Church -should believe that God the Son and God the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218"></span> -Father were equal. Then they agreed to put -what they believed in words. This was called a -creed, which means “believe,” and because it -was made at Nicæa it was known as the Nicene -Creed, which many Christians still say every -Sunday.</p> - -<p>Before the time of Constantine, there were -no weekly holidays. Sunday was no different -from any other day. People worked or did just -the same things on Sunday as they did on other -days. Constantine thought Christians should -have one day a week for the worship of God—a -“holy day,” or holiday, as we call it—so he -made Sunday the Christian day of rest, a “holy -day” such as Saturday was for the Jews.</p> - -<p>But although Constantine was head of the -Roman Empire, there was another man whom -all Christians throughout the world looked to as -their spiritual head. This man was the Bishop -of Rome. In Latin he was called “papa,” -which means the same thing in Latin that it does -in English, “father.” So the bishop of Rome -was called “papa,” and this became “pope.” St -Peter was supposed to have been the first -Bishop of Rome. For many centuries the pope -was the spiritual ruler of all Christians everywhere, -no matter in what country they lived.</p> - -<p>As now you know what the name of this story -means I’m putting it here:</p> - -<p class="c xlarge">In Hoc Signo Vinces</p> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_219"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c39">39</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Our Tough Ancestors</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">But</span> Rome with the Roman Empire had had -her day. She had risen as high as she could. -It was her turn to fall. She had become as -large as she ever was to be. It was her turn to -be conquered. But you cannot guess what -people were to do the conquering and to be next -in power.</p> - -<p>When I was a boy there was a gang of toughs -who lived down by the gas-house and railroad -tracks. They were ragged, unwashed, unschooled, -but terrible fighters. Their leader -was known to us as Mug Mike, and the very -mention of him and his gang struck terror to -our souls. Every now and then they paid our -neighborhood a visit. Once we had offered -fight, but with such terrible results that ever -after at word of their approach the alarm would -be sounded and we would hide indoors.</p> - -<p>For ages there had been such a gang of half-civilized -toughs living on the northern borders -of the Roman Empire. Every now and then -they tried to cross over the border into the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220"></span> -Roman lands, and the Romans had to be constantly -fighting them to keep them back where -they belonged. Julius Cæsar had fought with -them. So had Marcus Aurelius and so had Constantine. -These wild and warlike people were -called Teutons and—you may be shocked to -hear it, but—they are the ancestors of most of us!</p> - -<p>They had light hair and blue eyes; that is, -they were what we call blonds. The Greeks -and Romans and other people who lived around -the Mediterranean Sea had black hair and dark -eyes. They were what we call brunettes. If -you have light or brown hair, you are probably -a Teuton. If you have black hair, you are probably -not.</p> - -<p>The Teutons were white people, and they -were Aryans, but they were uneducated toughs -and could neither read nor write.</p> - -<p>They wore skins of animals instead of clothes -made of cloth. They lived in huts made of -wood, sometimes of branches woven together—like -a large basket. The women raised vegetables -and took care of the cows and horses. -The men did the hunting and fighting and -blacksmithing. Blacksmithing was very important, -for the blacksmith made the swords and -spears with which they fought and the tools with -which they worked. That is why the name -“Smith” was so honored among them.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_221"></span></p> - -<p>When the men went to battle they wore the -heads of animals they had killed, an ox’s head, -horns and all, or the head -of a wolf or bear or fox. -This was to make themselves -look fierce and to -frighten the enemy.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig49.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Teuton warrior.</p> -</div> - -<p><i>Bravery</i> was the chief -thing the Teuton thought -good. A man might lie, -he might steal, he might -even commit murder, but -if he was a brave warrior, -he was called a “good” -man.</p> - -<p>The Teutons did not -have a king. They elected -their chiefs, and of course -they always chose the man -who was the bravest and -strongest. But he could -not make his son ruler -after him. So he was -more like a president -than a king.</p> - -<p>The Teutons had an -entirely different set -of gods from those of Greece and Rome. Their -chief god, as you might guess, was the god of -war, and they called him Woden. Woden was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222"></span> -also the god of the sky. He was like the two -Greek gods, Jupiter and Mars, put together. -Woden was supposed to live in a wonderful -palace in the sky called Valhalla, and many -tales are told of the wonderful things he -did and of the adventures he had. Wednesday, -which was once Wodensday, is named after -him. That is why there is a letter “d” in this -word, although we don’t pronounce it.</p> - -<p>After Woden, Thor was the next most important -god. He was the god of thunder and -lightning. He carried a hammer with which -he fought great giants who lived in the far-off -cold lands and were called “ice-giants.” Thursday, -which was once Thorsday, is named after -him.</p> - -<p>Another god was named Tiu, and from his -name we get Tuesday, and another Freya, from -whom we get Friday, so that four out of seven -of our days are named after Teuton gods, in -spite of the fact that we are—most of us—Christians -and no longer believe in these gods.</p> - -<p>Of the other three days of the week, Sunday -and Monday of course are named after the sun -and moon, and Saturday is named after a Greek -god, Saturn.</p> - -<p>From these wild people all fair-haired people -to-day are said to be descended—the English, -French, German, and such of us whose forefathers -are English or French or German.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_223"></span></p> - -<p>About the Year 400 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> these Teuton toughs -were becoming particularly troublesome to the -Romans. They began to push their way down -into the northern part of the Roman Empire, -and after a few years the Romans could hold -them back no longer. Two of these Teuton -gangs, or tribes, as they were called, went over -into Britain, and the Romans who were living -there found it wisest to get out, go back to Rome, -and leave the country to the Teutons.</p> - -<p>These tribes who settled in Britain were -known as Angles and Saxons. So the country -came to be called the land of the Angles, or, -for short, “Angle-land.” After the words -“Angle-land” were said over for many years, -they became “England,” which is what we call -the country to-day. The people of England -are still known by the full name “Anglo-Saxons,” -and this is the name by which we call -everything descended from these old Teuton -tribes of Angles and Saxons who settled in -Britain about 400 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p> - -<p>Another gang or tribe called the Vandals -went into Gaul. Gaul is where France is now. -Then they kept on down into Spain, stealing, -smashing, and burning like Mug Mike’s gang -of toughs on Hallowe’en. They crossed over -by boats into Africa. They injured or destroyed -everything they came upon. So to-day -when any one damages or destroys property<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224"></span> -wickedly, we call him a vandal. If you cut up -your desk, tear your books, or scratch names -on walls or fences, you, too, are a vandal.</p> - -<p>A tribe called the Franks followed the Vandals -into Gaul, and there they stayed, giving -the name “France” to that country.</p> - -<p>The Teutons north of Italy were the Goths. -They had a leader by the name of Alaric. He -was the “Mug Mike” of the gang of Goths. -Alaric and his Goths crossed over the mountains -into Italy and robbed or destroyed everything -of value they could lay their hands on. They -then entered Rome and carried away whatever -they wanted, and the Romans could not stop -them. But the worst was yet to come.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig50.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c40">40</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">White Toughs and Yellow Toughs Meet<br /> -the Champions of the World</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Teutons were wild toughs but they were -white.</p> - -<p>Farther north of the Teutons and to the east -was a tribe of people who were still more savage -and fierce. They were called Huns. They -lived far off in the forests and wilds way beyond -the Teutons, in a part of the country that no -one then knew much about.</p> - -<p>The Huns were, we think, not white as the -Teutons were, but yellow. Even the Teutons -themselves, fierce fighters though they were, -feared the Huns, and it was chiefly because -they were afraid of them and wanted to get -away from them as far as they could that the -Teutons went over the borders into the Roman -Empire. It was much easier to fight the -Romans than it was to fight the Huns.</p> - -<p>The Huns seemed more like wild beasts than -human beings. Their leader was a dreadful -creature named Attila. He boasted that nothing -ever grew again where his horse had trod.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226"></span> -He and his Huns had conquered and laid waste -the country all the way from the East almost -to Paris. At last the Teutons made a stand -against them and fought a great battle at a -place not so very far from Paris, a place called -Châlons.</p> - -<p>The Teutons fought desperately; they fought -madly. It was white toughs against yellow -toughs, and the Huns were beaten. It was -lucky they were beaten, for if they had won, -these dreadful wild, yellow people might have -conquered and ruled the world. The white -toughs were bad enough, but the yellow would -have been worse. So the battle of Châlons, 451 -<span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, is written in history in capital letters and -large figures—<span class="xlarge">CHÂLONS 451</span>.</p> - -<p>After Attila and his Huns had been beaten -at Châlons they left the Teutons alone, but -they then went after the Romans. Turning -back they went down into Italy, where there -was no one able to stop them. They destroyed -everything as they moved on. The people of -the country didn’t even attempt to fight. They -thought the Huns were monsters and simply -fled before them. So on to Rome the Huns -went.</p> - -<p>Now, there was at Rome at this time a Pope -named Leo I, which means Lion. Leo, of -course, was neither a soldier nor a fighting man,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227"></span> -but he and his cardinals and bishops went out -from Rome to meet Attila. They were not clad -in armor, and none of them carried any weapons -with which to fight. The pope and those with -him were dressed in gorgeous robes and richly -colored garments. It seemed as if they must -be slaughtered by Attila and his Huns like -lambs before wolves.</p> - -<p>But something strange happened when Attila -and the pope met; exactly what no one -knows. Perhaps Attila was awed by the pomp -and splendor of those Christians. Perhaps he -feared what Heaven might do to him if he destroyed -those holy beings who had come out to -meet him as if from heaven. At any rate, he -did not destroy them, nor did he enter Rome, -but turned about and left Italy, left it for good -and all, and he and his Huns returned to the -unknown land to the north from which they had -come.</p> - -<p>Now that the dreaded Attila was out of the -way, the Vandals in Africa saw their chance to -attack Rome. Attila had barely left Italy before -the Vandals crossed over from Africa and -sailed up the Tiber to Rome. They captured -the city without any difficulty, helped themselves -to everything they wanted, and carried -away all Rome’s treasures.</p> - -<p>Poor old Rome! She was at last beaten,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228"></span> -beaten for good! She had been the Champion -for a great many years. But now all her -strength was gone. She was old and weak and -no longer able to defend herself against these -gangs of toughs. Rome’s last emperor had the -high-sounding name “Romulus Augustulus,” -the same name as the first king, Romulus, with -the addition of Augustulus, which means the -little Augustus. But in spite of his high-sounding -name, Romulus Augustulus could do nothing. -He was like the little boy living in the -marble house on the avenue, the little boy with -curls and a velvet suit, whom Mug Mike caught -out one day and—you can guess the rest. -“Great Cæsar’s ghost!” How Cæsar’s ghost -must have felt!</p> - -<p>It was the Year 476 that Rome was beaten. -The western half of the empire, of which Rome -had been the capital, broke up into pieces, and -the pieces were ruled over by Teutons. Like -Humpty Dumpty, Rome had had a great fall, -and all the king’s horses and all the king’s men -couldn’t put it together again. Only the eastern -part, of which Constantinople was the capital, -still went on. This eastern half was not -conquered by the barbarians, and it still kept -going for nearly a thousand years longer until—but -wait till we come to that time in history.</p> - -<p>People speak of this date, 476, as the end of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229"></span> -Ancient History. After Ancient History, -there was a time over five hundred years long -which was known as the Dark Ages—the Night-time -of History. The Dark Ages lasted from -476 to about 1000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> These centuries are -called the Dark Ages, because during that long -time the Teutons, those uneducated toughs who -were unable even to read and write, were the -chief people in Europe, and they ruled over -those who had once been the educated and cultured -people.</p> - -<p>The Teutons, though such rough toughs, barbarians -as they were called, were, strange to -say, quick to learn many things from the -Romans whom they had conquered. Even before -they had conquered Rome, most of the -Teutons had already become Christians.</p> - -<p>Of course they had to learn the Latin language -in order to talk to their subjects. But -they changed the Latin a good deal and mixed -it with their own language. This mixture of -their own language with the Latin at last became -Italian. The Teutons who went to Spain -in a like way mixed their language with the -Latin, and this mixture was Spanish. In -France the mixture of the two languages became -French.</p> - -<p>In Britain, however, the Anglo-Saxons would -have nothing to do with the Romans and would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230"></span> -not use the Roman language but kept their own -language. After a while this language of the -Anglo-Saxons was called English. The Anglo-Saxons -also kept their own religion, and they -worshiped Thor and Woden and their other -gods until about one hundred years later, or -about 600 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p> - -<p>At that time some English slaves were being -sold in the slave-market at Rome. They were -very handsome. The pope saw them and asked -who they were.</p> - -<p>“They are Angles,” he was told.</p> - -<p>“Angles!” exclaimed he; “they are handsome -enough to be ’angels,’ and they should certainly -be Christians.”</p> - -<p>So he sent some missionaries to England to -convert the English; to change Angles to -Angels. So at last the English, too, became -Christians.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_231"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c41">41</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Nightfall</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was 500 o’clock by History Time.</p> - -<p>Night was coming on.</p> - -<p>The Dark Ages had begun.</p> - -<p>At least, that is what people call it now. But -people didn’t call it so then.</p> - -<p>Crazy people don’t think they are crazy.</p> - -<p>Ignorant people don’t think they are ignorant.</p> - -<p>So the Dark Ages didn’t think they were -dark.</p> - -<p>The ignorant Teutons were ruling over the -pieces of the Western Empire.</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> -<div class="stanza"> -<div class="verse indent0">They couldn’t read; they couldn’t write.</div> -<div class="verse indent0">They didn’t know much except to fight.</div> -<div class="verse indent0">They didn’t know ’twas dark as night.</div> -</div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>At Constantinople, however, a Roman was -still ruling over the Eastern Empire. This -Roman was named Justinian. Now, up to this -time there had been a great many rules or laws -by which the people were governed. But there -were so many of these rules and they were so -mixed up that one law would tell you you could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232"></span> -do one thing and another would tell you you -couldn’t. It was as if your mother said you -could stay up till nine o’clock to-night and your -father said you must go to bed at eight. It was -hard for people to tell, therefore, what one must -do and what one must not do.</p> - -<p>In order to untangle this snarl, Justinian had -a set of laws made for the government of his -people, and many of these were so good and so -just that they are still the law to-day. If you -notice that Justinian begins with “Just,” this -will help you to remember that he was the one -who made <i>just</i> laws.</p> - -<p>Another thing Justinian did that has lasted -to the present time. He built in Constantinople -a very beautiful church called Santa Sophia. -Though it is no longer a church, it is still standing -after all these years and is a beautiful sight -to see. Still another thing he did which you -could never guess. It had nothing to do with -war or law or buildings.</p> - -<p>Travelers from the Far East, where China -now is, had brought back tales of a wonderful -caterpillar that wound itself up with a fine, thin -thread over a mile long, and they told stories of -how the Chinese unwound this thread and wove -it into cloth of the finest and smoothest kind. -This thread, as you might guess, was called silk, -and the caterpillar that made it was called the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233"></span> -silkworm. People in Europe had seen this -beautiful silk cloth, but how it was made had -been a mystery—a secret. They thought it so -wonderfully beautiful that it was supposed to -have been made by fairies or elves or even sent -down from heaven. Justinian found out about -these caterpillars and had men bring these silkworms -into Europe so that his people also might -make silk cloth and have silk ribbons and fine -silk garments, and therefore we give him the -honor of starting the manufacture of silk in -Europe.</p> - -<p>Outside of Justinian’s empire the ignorant -Teutons were living. It took them nearly a -thousand years to learn as much as any school-boy -now knows, and the first thing they learned -was not reading, nor writing, but the Christian -religion.</p> - -<p>About the same time that Justinian lived -there was a king in France named Clovis. -Clovis, of course, was a Teuton and belonged -to the tribe called the Franks, which gave the -name “France” to that country. Clovis believed -in Thor and Woden as all of his people -did. Clovis had a wife named Clotilda, whom -he loved very dearly. Clotilda, though a -Teuton, thought all the fighting and cruelty -which her people seemed to like was wrong. -She had heard about the religion of Christ,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234"></span> -which did not believe in quarreling and fighting, -and she thought she would like to be a -Christian. So she was baptized. Then she -tried to persuade her husband, Clovis, to become -a Christian, also.</p> - -<p>Clovis was just then going to war—the very -thing the Christians preached against. But, -just to please his wife, he promised her, if he -won the battle, he would become a Christian. -He did win, and he kept his word and was baptized -and had his soldiers baptized, also. Clovis -made Paris his capital, and Paris is still the capital -of France.</p> - -<p>It was about this same time, also, that a king -named Arthur was ruling in England. Many -stories and poems have been written about him, -which, however, we know are fairy-tales and not -history. But although we know these stories -are not true, they are, nevertheless, interesting—like -those tales that are told about the heroes of -the Trojan War.</p> - -<p>It was said that there was a sword called -Excalibur stuck so fast in a stone that no one -could draw it out except the man who should -be king of England. All the nobles had tried -without success to draw the sword, when one -day a young boy named Arthur pulled it out -with the greatest ease, and he was accordingly -proclaimed king.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_235"></span></p> - -<p>King Arthur chose a company of the nobles -to rule with him, and as they sat with him at a -Round Table, they were known as the Knights -of the Round Table. Tennyson, the great -English poet, has written in verse an account of -all the doings of King Arthur and his knights -in a long poem called “The Idylls of the King,” -which you will have to read yourself, for we -must go on to the next story.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig51.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_236"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c42">42</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">“Being Good”</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">What</span> do you mean by “being good”?</p> - -<p>The Teutons thought “being good” meant -being brave.</p> - -<p>The Athenians thought whatever was beautiful -was “good.”</p> - -<p>The Stoics thought “not caring” was “being -good.”</p> - -<p>The Epicureans thought having a good time -was “being good.”</p> - -<p>The martyrs thought “being good” meant suffering -and dying for Christ’s sake.</p> - -<p>Ever since the time of the martyrs, Christians -who wanted to be very, very good indeed, -went off into the wilderness and lived by themselves. -They wished to be far away from other -people, so that they could spend all their time -praying and thinking holy thoughts. This, they -believed was “being good.”</p> - -<p>One of the strangest of these men who -wanted to get away from others was named St. -Simeon Stylites. He built for himself a pillar<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237"></span> -or column fifty feet high, and on the top of it -he lived with room only to sit but not to lie down. -There on the top he lived for many years, day -and night, winter and summer, while the sun -shone on him and the rain rained on him, and he -never came down at all. He could be reached -only by a ladder, which his friends used to bring -him food. High up out of the world, he thought -he could best lead a holy life. That was his idea -of “being good” although we should think such -a person simply crazy.</p> - -<p>In the course of time, however, men who -wanted to lead holy lives, instead of living alone -as they had done at first, gathered in groups -and built themselves homes. These men were -called monks, and the house where they lived -was known as a monastery or abbey. The head -monk of such an abbey was called an abbot, and -he ruled over the other monks like a father over -his children, giving them orders and punishing -them when he thought they needed it.</p> - -<p>In the five hundreds there lived an Italian -monk named Benedict. He believed very -strongly that one must work if he was to be -holy, that work was a necessary part of being -holy. He thought, also, that monks should -have no money of their own, for Christ had said -in the Bible, “If thou wilt be perfect, go and -sell that thou hast, and give to the poor.” So<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238"></span> -Benedict started a club or order of monks for -those people who would agree to three things:</p> - -<p>The first thing they were to agree to was to -have no money.</p> - -<p>The second thing was to obey.</p> - -<p>The third thing was not to marry.</p> - -<p>Monks who joined this club were called -Benedictines.</p> - -<p>Now, you might think there would have been -hardly any one who would promise for life three -such things as to have no money, to obey the -abbot—no matter what he told them to do—and -never to marry. Nevertheless, there were -a great many men in every country of Europe -who did become Benedictines.</p> - -<p>Usually the monks lived in little bare rooms -like prison cells, and ate their very simple meals -together at a single table in a room called the -refectory. They prayed at sunrise and sunset, -and many times during the day besides, and -they even woke up at midnight to say their -prayers. But praying was not all they had to -do. Work of every kind they were obliged to -do, and they did it joyfully, whether the work -was scrubbing floors or digging in the garden.</p> - -<p>Oftentimes the monastery was situated in a -barren or swampy spot on land that had been -given the monks because it was no good, or even -worse than no good, dangerously unhealthy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239"></span> -But the monks set to work and drained off the -water, tilled the soil, and made the waste places -bloom like the rose. Then they raised vegetables -for their table, fodder for their horses -and cattle and sheep. Everything they ate or -used or needed, they raised or made.</p> - -<p>But they did not only the rougher hand-work; -they did fine hand-work, too. Printing -had not been invented at -this time; all books had to -be written by hand, and the -monks were the ones who -did this. They copied the -old books in Latin and -Greek. Sometimes one -monk would slowly read -the book to be copied, and -several other monks at one -time would copy what he -dictated. In this way a -number of copies would be made.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig52.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Monk writing a manuscript.</p> -</div> - -<p>The pages of the books were not made of -paper but of calfskin or sheepskin, called vellum, -and this vellum was much stronger and -lasted much longer than paper.</p> - -<p>These old books which the monks wrote were -called “manuscripts,” which means “hand-written.” -Many of these may now be seen in museums -and libraries. Some of these manuscripts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240"></span> -have been beautifully hand-printed with loving -care and the initial letters and borders ornamented -with designs of flowers and vines and -birds and pictures in red and gold and other -colors. If the monks hadn’t done this copying, -many of the old books would have been lost and -unknown to us.</p> - -<p>The monks also kept diaries, writing down -from day to day and year to year an account of -the important things that happened. These old -diaries, or chronicles, as they were called, tell us -the history of the times. As there were then no -newspapers, if these chronicles had not been written -we should not know what went on at that -time.</p> - -<p>The monks were the best educated people of -those days, and they taught others—both young -and old—the things they themselves knew. The -monasteries were also inns for travelers, for -any one who came and asked for lodging was -received and given food and a place to sleep, -whether he had any money to pay or not.</p> - -<p>The monks helped the poor and needy. The -sick, too, came to the monastery to be treated -and taken care of, so that a monastery was often -something like a hospital, too. Many people -who had received such help or attention made -rich gifts to the monasteries, so they became -very wealthy, although the monks could own -not so much as a spoon for themselves.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241"></span></p> - -<p>So you see the monks were not merely holy -men; they were most useful citizens. They -were in many ways more nearly everything -that Christ would have wished than perhaps any -one large group of men has ever been since. They -were really “<span class="smcap">Good for Something</span>.”</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig53.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_242"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c43">43</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Camel-Driver</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Every</span> hundred years is called a century, but -a thing that seems a little strange is this—the -hundred years from 500 to 600 is called the <i>sixth</i> -century, not the fifth; the hundred years from -600 to 700 is called the <i>seventh</i> century, not the -sixth; and so on. Thus 615, 625, 650, and so on -are all <i>seventh</i> century.</p> - -<p>Well, we have now reached the seventh century—the -six hundreds, and we are to hear of a -man who was to make a change in the whole -world. He was neither a Roman nor a Greek -nor a Frank nor a Goth nor a Briton. He was -neither a king nor a general, but only a—</p> - -<p>What do you suppose?</p> - -<p><span class="smcap">A Camel-Driver!</span></p> - -<p>and he lived in a little town called Mecca in -far-off Arabia. His name was Mohammed. -Mohammed went on an errand for a wealthy -Arabian lady, and the lady fell in love with -him. Although he was a poor camel-driver and -only a servant and she was rich, they were married. -They lived happily together, and nothing -remarkable happened until Mohammed was -forty years old.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_243"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig54.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Map of Saracenic empire showing Mecca, Medina, Constantinople, Tours, Cordova, Bagdad, Jerusalem, also<br /> -Europe.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_244"></span>Mohammed had been in the habit of going -out to a cave in the desert to study and think. -One day when he visited this cave he had a -dream, or a vision, as it is called when such -things happen in the daytime when one is awake. -In this vision, so Mohammed said, the angel -Gabriel had appeared and told him that God, -whom the Arabs called Allah, said he must go -forth and teach the people a new religion.</p> - -<p>So Mohammed went home to his wife and -told her what had happened, and she believed -his story and became his first follower. Mohammed -then went forth as he had been directed -and taught his relatives and friends what he said -Allah had told him, and they, too, believed what -he said and became his followers.</p> - -<p>But when he set out to teach others, who were -not his friends nor relatives, they simply -thought him crazy and perhaps dangerous. So -they got together and planned to get rid of -him—even kill him if necessary. But he heard -what they were planning, and so he packed up -all his belongings and, with his wife and those -who believed in him, left the city of Mecca and -fled to the town of Medina, a little way off. -This was in 622—Six-Two-Two—and was -called the Hegira, which in the Arabic language -means “flight.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245"></span></p> - -<p>I have told you this exact date, for later as -you will see this religion, which Mohammed -started, grew bigger and bigger, and now at -this very day there are one third as many people -who believe in Mohammed and the religion he -started as there are who believe in Christ and -the religion He started; that is, there are now -one third as many Mohammedans in the world -as there are Christians. The Mohammedans began -to count from the Hegira, 622, calling it the -Year 1 as the Christians did from the Birth of -Christ, as the Greeks did from the First Olympiad, -as the Romans did from the Founding of -Rome. So the Greeks, the Romans, the Mohammedans, -and the Christians each had a different -Year 1.</p> - -<p>This new religion was called Islam. From -time to time Mohammed received messages -which he said came from God. Mohammed -himself could neither read nor write, and so he -had some one else write down these messages -on palm-leaves. There were so many of these -messages that when they were finally gathered -together they made a big book. This book is -called the “Koran,” and it is the Mohammedan -Bible and tells what Mohammedans must do -and what they must not do.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig55.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Muezzin on minaret<br /> -calling to prayer.</p> -</div> - -<p>As Mohammed was born in Mecca, Mecca is -the sacred city of the Mohammedans. To -Mecca each good Mohammedan tries to go at -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246"></span>least once in his lifetime, no matter -how far off from it he may -live; and toward Mecca he always -faces when he prays. There -are always pilgrims, as such -travelers are called, wending -their way to Mecca. The Mohammedans -worship in a temple -called a <i>mosque</i>, but they also -pray five times each day wherever -they may be. A man -called a muezzin cries out this -time for prayer. He goes out -on a little balcony on the minaret -of the mosque and calls aloud: -“Come to prayer; come to prayer. There is but -one god and he is Allah.” Then, no matter who -the Mohammedan is, no matter where he may be -or what he may be doing, even though he is in -the street or market-place, whether he is working -or playing, he faces toward Mecca, falls on -his knees, bows -his head and -hands to the -ground and -prays. Sometimes -he carries -a small rug -called a prayer-rug<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247"></span> -with him so that he may have something holy -to kneel on when he prays.</p> - -<p>Many people liked this new religion. Those -who believed in Islam were known as Moslems, -and before long, as I have told you, there were -as many Moslems or Mohammedans as there -were Christians. At first the Moslems tried to -persuade others to join simply by talking to them -and telling them how fine their religion was, and -how much better than what they had already had. -But very soon they began to <i>force</i> others to become -Moslems whether they wanted to or not. -Like the highway robber who says, “Money or -your life,” they gave every one a choice. “Money -or your life, or be a Moslem!” This may seem a -strange way for people to make others believe -their religion, but the Moslems said that Allah -wanted all people to be Mohammedans, and -didn’t want any one who was not.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig56.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Mohammedan praying.</p> -</div> - -<p>Mohammed only lived for ten years after the -Hegira; that is, until 632. But those who came -after Mohammed went on with the new religion -and kept on conquering and making people -Mohammedans with the sword.</p> - -<p>The new leaders and rulers of the Mohammedans -were called caliphs. The second caliph -was named Omar. Omar went on to Jerusalem -and built a Mohammedan mosque in the place -where the temple of Solomon had stood. This<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248"></span> -mosque which Omar built still stands to-day in -the same place in Jerusalem.</p> - -<p>The Arabs, or Saracens, as they are also -called, kept on northward toward Europe and -conquered and converted every one to Islam as -they went along. Those they could not convert -they put to death. At last they reached the -City of Constantine, Constantinople, where the -people were Christians. This was the gateway -from Asia to Europe, and the Arabs tried to -get by. But the Christians poured down red-hot -tar and burning oil from the walls of the -city, and the Moslems had to stop. They could -get no farther. Again and again the Moslems -tried to capture the city, but without success. -Finally, they had to give up trying to get into -Europe by this way.</p> - -<p>Then they tried the opposite direction from -Mecca, the long, long, way round to Europe. -Across Egypt they went with little difficulty, -converting every one to Islam. Further on still -they kept going, along the coast of Africa, conquering -everything before them until they -reached the ocean. Then they turned north, -took boats, and crossed over the Strait of Gibraltar -and marched on up into Spain. Farther -and farther on they went up into France. It -seemed as if they would soon conquer all of -Europe and make the whole civilized world<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249"></span> -Mohammedan. But finally, near the town of -Tours in France, they met their match. The -king of France had a right-hand man named -Charles who had been nicknamed Charles the -Hammer because he could strike such terrific -blows. Charles was called Mayor of the Palace, -which merely meant that he was the chief servant -of the king, but he was much more able -than the king himself. In fact, the king was -of very little account.</p> - -<p>Charles the Hammer, with his French soldiers, -went forth to meet the Moslems, and near -Tours he beat them so badly that they never attempted -to go farther. So Europe at last was -saved from Islam and the Saracens. This battle -of Tours was in 732, just 110 years from the -time of the Hegira. The Mohammedan religion -had only been started 110 years before; yet -in this short time the Mohammedans had conquered -and converted the whole of the country -bordering the Mediterranean from Constantinople -all the way round the southern edge and -as far up into France as Tours. The people -south and east of the Mediterranean are still -Mohammedans to-day.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c44">44</h2> -</div> - -<div class="blockquota"> -<p>Perhaps you have read the “Arabian Nights.” -This is the story of</p></div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Arabian Days</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Moslems had tried to get into Europe -by the front gate and failed.</p> - -<p>They had then tried the back gate and failed.</p> - -<p>Burning tar and oil had stopped them at -Constantinople.</p> - -<p>Charles the Hammer had stopped them at -Tours.</p> - -<p>So Europe was saved from the Moslems and -from the Moslem religion of Islam. Yet we -may wonder what Europe would have been like -if the Moslem Arabs had conquered, for the -Arabs were in many ways a great people, and -we have learned many things from them. Here -are some of the things.</p> - -<p>The Phenicians invented our alphabet, but -the Arabs invented the figures which we use to-day -in arithmetic. 1, 2, 3, 4, and so on are -called Arabic figures. The Romans used letters -instead of figures, V stood for 5, X for 10, C<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251"></span> -for 100, M for 1000, and so on. Think how -difficult it must have been for a Roman boy to -add such numbers as</p> - -<table cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">IV</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">XII</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl"><span class="large padr">+</span></td> - <td class="tdl">MC</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">CXII</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">VII</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl"></td> - <td class="tdl">——</td></tr> -</table> - -<p>They could not be added up in columns as we -do. And when you think of multiplying and -dividing with Roman numbers, it seems almost -impossible, for example:</p> - -<p class="c"> -MCMCXVII<br /> -× XIX -</p> - -<p>Occasionally you may see Roman figures still -used—on clock-faces, for instance—but all the -figures that you use every day in your arithmetic -and that your father uses at the bank or -store or office are Arabic figures.</p> - -<p>Another thing:</p> - -<p>The Arabs built many beautiful buildings; -but these buildings look quite different from -those that the Greeks and Romans and Christians -built. The doors and window-openings, -instead of being square or round, were usually -horseshoe-shaped. On the top of their mosques -they liked to put domes shaped something like<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252"></span> -an onion, and at the corners they put tall spires -or minarets from which the muezzin could call -aloud the hour for prayer. They covered the -walls of their buildings with beautiful mosaics -and designs. The Mohammedans, however, -were very careful that these designs were not -copies of anything in nature, for they had a -commandment in the “Koran” something like -the Christian commandment, “Thou shalt not -make ... any likeness of anything that is in -heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or -that is in the water under the earth.” Because -of this commandment they never made drawings -or pictures of any living thing, neither of -plants nor flowers nor animals. They thought -they would be breaking the commandment if -they did. So they made designs out of lines -and curves without copying anything from nature. -These designs were called Arabesques, -and although they were not like anything in -nature, they were often very beautiful.</p> - -<p>Still another thing:</p> - -<p>In Arabia there grew a little bush on which -were small berries with seeds inside. The sheep -seemed to like these berries and, when they ate -them, became very lively. The Arabs themselves -tried eating the seeds of these berries with -the same effect. Then they made a drink out -of these seeds by roasting and grinding them<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253"></span> -and boiling them in water. This was coffee—which -the Arabs had discovered and which is -now drunk all over the world.</p> - -<p>Still another thing:</p> - -<p>The Arabs found out that when the juice of -grapes or other fruits or grains spoiled, or fermented, -as we call it, a peculiar change took -place. Any one who drank this changed juice -became greatly excited and even crazy. They -called the new thing to which these juices -changed, “alcohol,” and they were so much -afraid of it and what it did to those who drank -it that they forbade every Mohammedan to -drink anything containing alcohol, such as wine, -beer, or whisky. So the Moslems not only discovered -alcohol, but, believing it to be poison, -they prohibited its use. They have been prohibitionists, -therefore, for more than a thousand -years, while all the rest of the world has been -using wine and beer and other drinks containing -alcohol until the United States only recently -forbade their use in this country.</p> - -<p>Still another thing:</p> - -<p>Woolen cloth which people used for clothes -was made from the hair of sheep or goats. As -it took the hair of a great many such animals to -make a very little cloth, woolen cloth was expensive. -The Arabs found out a way of making -cloth from a plant, the cotton plant, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254"></span> -of course was much cheaper. Then in order to -decorate the cloth and make it pretty and attractive, -they stamped the plain cloth with -wooden blocks shaped in different forms and -dipped in color. This printed cloth that the -Arabs had invented was called calico.</p> - -<p>Still another thing:</p> - -<p>The Arabs made swords and knives of such -wonderful steel that the blades could be bent -double without breaking. The blades were said -to be so keen they could cut through the finest -hair if floated on water, a thing that only the -sharpest razor will do, and yet at the same time -so strong that they could cut through a bar of -steel. Such swords were made in the East at -a place called Damascus, which is in Arabia, -and in the West at a place called Toledo, which -is in Spain; and these swords and knives were -known as Damascus or Toledo blades. Unfortunately, -no one now knows the Arab’s secret -for making such marvelous blades. It is what -is called a lost art.</p> - -<p>Near where Babylon once was the Arabs -built a city named Bagdad. You have heard -of it if you have ever read any of the “Arabian -Nights,” for most of these stories were told -about Bagdad. It was the eastern capital of -the Moslems. There at Bagdad the Arabs built -a great school that was famous for many, many -years. At Cordova in Spain was the western<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255"></span> -capital of the Moslems, and there they built another -great school.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig57.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Mohammedan veiled woman standing by Saracenic ornamented<br /> -arch.</p> -</div> - -<p>I might tell you many other things these -people did—how they invented the game of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256"></span> -chess, of all games the one that needs the most -thought; how they made clocks with pendulums -to keep time—people had no real clocks before; -how they started wonderful libraries of books; -and so on—but this is enough for the present to -show you what intelligent people they were.</p> - -<p>The Arabs were not Aryans. They belonged -to the Semite family, the same family to which -the Phenicians and Jews belong. The Arabs -were as clever as their cousins the Phenicians, -who, you remember, were very clever, but they -were also as religious as their other cousins the -Jews, who, you remember, were very religious.</p> - -<p>But the Moslems had peculiar ideas about -women. They thought it was immodest for a -woman to show her face to men, and so every -woman had to wear a thick veil which hid her -face all except her eyes whenever she went out -where there were men. With such a veil she -could see but not be seen.</p> - -<p>But here are their two most peculiar ideas: -they believed women were only fit to be slaves to -the men, and they thought that a man might have -as many wives as he wished all at one time!</p> - -<p>So we may wonder, then, what Europe would -really have been like if the Moslems had conquered -all the rest of the world at that time—if -they had left no country Christian—<i>if we were -all of us Moslems to-day instead of Christians</i>!</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c45">45</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Light in the Dark Ages</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Europe</span> had been “dark” for three hundred -years. You know what I mean.</p> - -<p>There were not enough “bright” people to -make it light. Ignorant Teutons had been ruling -over the pieces of the old Roman Empire.</p> - -<p>The Arabs were bright, but they were not in -Europe.</p> - -<p>But in 800 there was a very “bright light”—a -man—a king—who by his might and power -was able to join the pieces of Europe together -once again to form a new Roman Empire. He -was not a Roman, however, but a Teuton, as you -can tell from his name, which was Charles. He -was a grandson of that Charles the Hammer -who had stopped the Moslems at Tours, and he -was called by the French name Charlemagne, -which means Charles the Great.</p> - -<p>Charlemagne at first was king of France alone, -but he was not satisfied to be king of that country -only, and so he soon conquered the countries on -each side of him, parts of Spain and Germany. -Then he moved the capital of his empire from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258"></span> -Paris to a place in Germany called Aix-la-Chapelle, -which was more convenient than Paris -to this larger empire, and besides at Aix-la-Chapelle -there were warm springs which made -fine baths, and Charlemagne was very fond of -bathing and was a fine swimmer.</p> - -<p>Italy was then ruled over by the pope. But -the pope was having a good deal of trouble with -some tribes in the north of Italy, and he asked -Charlemagne if he wouldn’t come down and -conquer them. Charlemagne was quite ready -and willing to help the pope, so he went over into -Italy and easily settled those troublesome tribes. -The pope was grateful to Charlemagne for this -and wished to reward him.</p> - -<p>Now, Christians everywhere used to make trips -to Rome in order to pray at the great Church -of St. Peter, which had been built over the spot -where St. Peter had been crucified. Well, at -Christmas-time in the Year 800 Charlemagne -paid such a visit to Rome. On Christmas day -he went to the Church of St. Peter and was praying -at the altar when suddenly the pope came -forward and put a crown on his head. The pope -then hailed him “Emperor,” and as the pope -at that time could make kings and emperors, -Charlemagne became emperor of Italy added to -the other countries over which he already ruled. -These countries together were really about the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259"></span> -same as the western part of the old Roman Empire. -So Charlemagne’s empire was now like a -new Roman Empire, but with this big difference: -it was ruled over not by a Roman, but by a Teuton.</p> - -<p>Charlemagne started out an ignorant uneducated -Teuton, but he was not like most other -Teutons who didn’t know they were ignorant -and didn’t care whether they were ignorant or -not. He was anxious to know everything there -was to be known. He wanted to be able to do -everything any one could do.</p> - -<p>In those days when the Teutons were ruling, -few people had any education, and hardly any -one could read or write. Charlemagne wanted -an education, but there was no one in his own -country who knew enough or was able to teach -him. In England, however, there was a very -learned monk named Alcuin. He knew more -than any one of that time, and so Charlemagne -invited Alcuin to come over from England and -teach him and his people. Alcuin taught Charles -about the sciences; he taught him Latin and -Greek poetry; he taught him the wisdom of the -Greek philosophers.</p> - -<p>Charlemagne learned all these things very -easily, but when it came to the simple matter of -learning to read and write he found this too hard. -He did learn to read a little, but he seemed unable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260"></span> -to learn to write. It is said that he slept -with his writing-pad under his pillow and practised -whenever he awoke. And yet he never -learned to write anything more than his name. -He did not begin to study until he was a grown -man, but he kept on studying all the rest of his -life. Except for reading and writing, he became, -next to his teacher, Alcuin, the best-educated -man in Europe.</p> - -<p>In spite of the fact that Charlemagne’s daughters -were princesses, he had them taught how to -weave and sew and make clothes and cook just -as if they had to earn their own living.</p> - -<p>Although Charlemagne was such a rich and -powerful monarch and could have everything he -wanted, he preferred to eat plain food and dress -in plain clothes. He did not like all the finery -that those about him loved. One day, just to -make his nobles see how ridiculously dressed they -were in silks and satins, he took them out hunting -in the woods while a storm was going on, so that -he could laugh at them. That was his idea of -a good joke. You can imagine how their silk -and satin robes looked after being soaked with -rain, covered with mud, and torn by briers. -Charlemagne thought it was very funny.</p> - -<p>But although his tastes were simple in matters -of dress, he made his home a magnificent palace. -He furnished it with gold and silver tables and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261"></span> -chairs and other gorgeous furniture. He built -in it swimming-pools and a wonderful library and -a theater and surrounded it with beautiful gardens.</p> - -<p>At this time and all through the Dark Ages -people had a strange way of finding out whether -a person had stolen or committed a murder or -any other crime. The person suspected was not -taken into court and tried before a judge and a -jury to see whether he was telling the truth and -had done the thing or not. Instead he was made -to carry a red-hot iron for ten steps, or to dip -his arm into boiling water, or to walk over red-hot -coals. If he was not guilty it was thought -no harm would come to him, or if he were burned -it was thought that the burn would heal right -away. This was called <i>trial by ordeal</i>. It probably -started from the story told in the Bible of -Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, who, you remember, -in the time of Nebuchadnezzar, had -walked through the fiery furnace unharmed because -they had done no wrong. Strange to say, -though Charlemagne was so intelligent, he believed -in the trial by ordeal. To-day we have -no such cruel and unfair way of finding out -whether one is guilty or not. Yet we say of a -person who has a lot of trouble that seems to -be a test of his character, “He is going through -an ordeal.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_262"></span></p> - -<p>While Charlemagne was living, there was a -caliph in far-off Bagdad named Haroun, which is -the Moslem spelling of Aaron. You may have -heard of him if you have read any of the “Arabian -Nights,” for the “Arabian Night” stories -were written at this time, and Haroun is described -in them. Although Haroun was a Mohammedan, -not a Christian, and though he was ruler -of an empire that hated the Christians, nevertheless -he admired Charlemagne very much. To -show how much he thought of him, he sent him -valuable presents; among other things, a clock -which struck the hours, which you remember, was -an invention of the Arabs. This was a great -curiosity, for there were then no clocks in Europe. -People had to tell time by the shadow the -sun cast on a sun-dial, or else by the amount of -water or sand that dripped or ran out from one -jar to another.</p> - -<p>Haroun was a very wise and good ruler over -the Moslems, and so he came to be called “al -Rashid,” which means “the Just.” Do you remember -what Greek was also called “the Just”?<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> -Haroun used to disguise himself as a workman -and go about among his people. He would -talk with those he met along the street and in the -market-place, trying to find out how they felt -about his government and about things in general.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263"></span> -He found they would talk freely to him -when dressed in old clothes, for then they did not -know who he was but thought him a fellow-workman. -In this way, Haroun learned a great -deal about his people’s troubles and what they -liked or didn’t like about his rule. Then he -would go back to his palace and give orders to -have rules and laws made to correct anything -that seemed wrong or unjust.</p> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[3]</a> Aristides.</p> - -</div> - -<p>After Charlemagne died there was no one -great enough or strong enough to hold the new -Roman Empire together, and once again it broke -up into small pieces, and “all the king’s horses -and all the king’s men could not put it together -again.”</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig58.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c46">46</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Getting a Start</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">I once</span> knew a boy who had a red birthmark -on his arm. It was just the shape of England -on the map, and he used to call it “My England.”</p> - -<p>England is just a little island.</p> - -<p>It was quite an unimportant little island in -900 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span></p> - -<p>England is still just a little island.</p> - -<p>But it is now the most important island in the -world!</p> - -<p>About one hundred years after Charles the -Great—that is, 900—there was a king of England -named Alfred. When Alfred was a boy -he had a hard time learning to read, for he did -not like to study. In those days many of the -hand-written books made by the monks had -pretty drawings and letters made in bright colors -and even in gold. One day Alfred’s mother -showed such a book to her children and promised -to give it to the one who could read it first. That -was a game. Alfred wanted to win the book, -and so, for the first time in his life, he really -tried. He studied so hard that in a very short -time he had learned to read before his brothers -and so he won the book.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_265"></span></p> - -<p>When Alfred grew up, England was being -troubled by pirates. These pirates were cousins -of the English—a tribe of Teutons called Danes. -The English had long ago become Christians and -civilized, but their cousins, the Danes, were still -rough and wild. They came over from their own -country across the water, landed on the coast of -England, robbed the towns and villages, and then -sailed back to their homes, carrying off everything -valuable they could lay their hands on—like -bad boys who climb a farmer’s fence and -steal apples from his orchard. At last the Danes -became so bold that they didn’t even run away -after robbing the country; they were like the -bad boys who stick out their tongues and throw -stones at the farmer who comes after them. -The king’s armies went out to punish these -pirates, but, instead of beating, they were beaten. -It began to look as if these Danes, who were -able to do pretty much as they pleased, might -conquer England and rule over the English.</p> - -<p>Once when things looked pretty black for -England, King Alfred was without an army. -Alone, ragged, tired out, and hungry, he came -to the hut of a shepherd and asked for something -to eat. The shepherd’s wife was baking some -cakes by the fire, and she told Alfred he should -have one if he watched them while she went out -to milk the cow. Alfred sat down by the fire,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266"></span> -but in thinking about what he could do to beat -the Danes he forgot all about the cakes, and -when the shepherd’s wife returned they were all -burned. Thereupon she scolded him roundly -and drove him off, not knowing that it was her -king that she was treating in this way, for he -never told her who he was.</p> - -<p>Alfred decided that the best way to fight the -Danes was not on land but on the water, and -so he set to work to build boats bigger and better -than those the Danes had. After a while he -had something of a fleet, and the boats he built -were bigger than those of the Danes, but they -were so big that they could not go into shallow -water without running aground. The Danes’ -boats, on account of their small size, could go -safely close in to shore. In deep water, however, -Alfred’s fleet was very strong and powerful. -This was the first navy that England ever had. -England’s navy is now the largest in the world, -and Alfred the Great was the one who started it -more than a thousand years ago.</p> - -<p>After fighting with the Danes for many years, -Alfred finally thought it best to make an agreement -with them and give them a part of England -to live in if they would promise to stop -stealing and live peaceably. So the Danes did -agree to this, and they settled down peaceably on -the land that Alfred gave them—and then became<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267"></span> -Christians. After that there was no further -trouble.</p> - -<p>Alfred made very strict laws and severely -punished those who did wrong. Indeed, it is -said that the people of England were so careful -to obey the law in his reign that one might leave -gold by the roadside, and no one would steal it.</p> - -<p>Alfred also brought over learned men from -Europe to show his people how to make things -and to teach the boys and girls and the older people -how to read and write. He is also said to -have started a school that is now one of the -greatest places of learning in the world, a university -called Oxford that is now more than a -thousand years old.</p> - -<p>But Alfred not only built a navy and made -wise laws and started schools and colleges which -the English had not had before; he did many -other useful things, besides.</p> - -<p>He invented, for instance, a way of telling time -by a burning candle. You have heard how wonderful -the clock, that which Haroun-al-Rashid -sent to Charlemagne one hundred years before -was thought to be. Although striking clocks -are, of course, very common nowadays, it was -an extraordinary thing then when there were no -clocks nor watches at all in England. Alfred -found out how fast candles burned down and -marked lines around them at different heights—just<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268"></span> -the distance apart that they burned in one -hour. These were called time-candles.</p> - -<p>Candles were also used for lighting, but when -they were carried outdoors they were very likely -to be blown out by the wind. So Alfred put the -candle inside of a little box, and in order that the -light might shine through the box, he made sides -of very thin pieces of cow’s-horn, for glass then -was very scarce. This box with horn sides was -called a horn lamp or “lamphorn,” and after a -while this word when said rapidly became “lanthorn,” -and finally “lantern,” which we still call -such a thing to-day, although horn is, of course, -no longer used, but glass. This is one explanation -of the word as the old spelling was -“lanthorn,” but it seems more likely that lantern -came from the Latin word “lanterna.”</p> - -<p>Such inventions may seem very small and unimportant, -and they are when you think of the -marvelous inventions and wonderful machines -that are made by the thousands nowadays. These -inventions of Alfred were no more than the -household ideas for which some magazines now -offer only a dollar apiece. But I have told you -about them just to show you how ignorant and -almost barbarian the English, as well as other -Teuton tribes of Europe, were in those days. -How much superior were the Arab thinkers with -their striking clocks. The English were just -“getting a start.”</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_269"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c47">47</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The End of the World</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">What</span> would you do if you knew the world -was coming to an end next week, or even next -year?</p> - -<p>The people who lived in the tenth century -thought the Bible said<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> something that meant -that the world was coming to an end in the Year -1000—which was called the millennium from the -Latin word meaning a thousand years.</p> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[4]</a> Book of Revelations, chapter xx.</p> - -</div> - -<p>Some people were glad that the world was -coming to an end. They were so poor and -miserable and unhappy here that they were -anxious to go to heaven, where everything would -be fine and lovely—if they had been good here. -So they were particularly good and did everything -they could to earn a place for themselves in -heaven when this old world should end.</p> - -<p>Others were not so anxious to have the world -come to an end. But, they thought, if it were -coming to an end so soon, they might as well -hurry up and enjoy themselves here while they -still had a chance.</p> - -<p>Well, the Year 1000 came, and nothing happened. -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270"></span>At first people simply thought that a -mistake had been made in counting the years—that -there had not really been one thousand years -since Christ’s birth. The years went by, and -still people waited for the end. They re-read -their Bibles and thought perhaps it meant a -thousand years after Christ’s <i>death</i>, instead of his -birth. As time went on, without any change, -they began to think the end was delayed for some -reason they could not explain. But it was not -for many years after the millennium that people -came at last to realize that the world was not -going to stop after all.</p> - -<p>Every once in a while some one who thinks he -knows more than others says the end of the world -is not far off, but we may be quite sure that the -world will keep on going and that it will keep on -going long after we have all grown up and died -and our children have done the same.</p> - -<p>At this time, when people were looking for -the end of the world there was in the north of -Europe a tribe of Teutons who were not Christians -and knew and cared nothing about what -the Bible said as to the end of the world. They -belonged to the same family as the Danes who -had come to England in the time of King Alfred. -They were called Norsemen or Vikings. They -were bold seafaring men, even more hardy and -unafraid than the Phenician sailors of old. Their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271"></span> -boats were painted black and had prows carved -with figures of sea-monsters or dragons. They -sailed the northern seas and went farther westward -toward the setting sun than any sailors -had ever gone. They had discovered Iceland -and Greenland, and at last under their chief -who was named Leif Ericson they reached the -shores of America. So about the same year that -the Christians in Europe were expecting the end -of the world—the Year 1000—the Vikings had -gone to what they thought was “the end of the -world.”</p> - -<p>They called the new country Vineland or -Wineland, because they found grapes, from -which wine is made, growing there. They did -not go far on shore, however, and they thought -this new land was only another small island. -They had no idea it was a new world. But it -was too far away from their own country, and -they found wild savages there who made it so -uncomfortable for them that they sailed back -home leaving the country for good. The Vikings -did nothing more about their discovery, and -people forgot all about this new country until -nearly five hundred years later.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c48">48</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Real Castles</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">You</span> may think that castles belong only in -fairy-tales of princes and princesses.</p> - -<p>But about the Year 1000 there were castles -almost everywhere over Europe, and they were -not fairy-castles but real ones with real people -in them.</p> - -<p>After the downfall of Rome in 476, the Roman -Empire was broken to pieces like a cut-up puzzle-map, -and people built castles on the pieces, and -they kept on building castles up to the fourteen -hundreds. And this is why and how people built -them and why they at last stopped building -them.</p> - -<p>Whenever any ruler, whether he was a king -or only a prince, conquered another ruler, he -gave to his generals, who had fought with him -and helped him to win, pieces of the conquered -land as a reward instead of paying them in -money. The generals in turn gave pieces of their -land to the chief men who had been under them -and helped them in battle. These men who were -given land were called lords or nobles, and each<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273"></span> -lord was called a vassal of him who gave the -land. Each vassal had to promise to fight with -his lord whenever he was needed. He could not -make this promise lightly in an offhand way, -however. He had to do it formally so that it -would seem more binding. So the vassal had to -kneel in front of -his lord, place -his folded hands -between the -folded hands of -his lord, and -make the solemn -promise to fight -when called upon. -This was -called “doing -homage.” Then -once a year, at -least, thereafter, -he had to make -the same promise -over again. This method of giving away land -was known as the Feudal System.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig59.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Castle, drawbridge, moat and knights.</p> -</div> - -<p>Each of these lords or nobles then built himself -a castle on the land that was given him, and -there he lived like a little king with all his work-people -about him. The castle was not only his -home, but it had to be a fort as well to protect<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274"></span> -him from other lords who might try to take his -castle away from him. So he usually placed it -on the top of a hill or a cliff, so that the enemy -could not reach it easily, if at all. It had great -stone walls often ten feet or more thick. Surrounding -the walls there was usually a ditch -called a moat filled with water to make it more -difficult for an enemy to get into the castle.</p> - -<p>In times of peace when there was no fighting -the men farmed the land outside of the castle; -but when there was war between lords, all the -people went inside the castle walls, carrying all -the food and cattle and everything else they had, -so that they could live there for months or even -years while the fighting was going on. A castle, -therefore, had to be very large to hold so many -people and animals for so long a time, and often -it was really like a walled town.</p> - -<p>Inside the walls of the castle were many -smaller buildings to house the people and animals -and for cooking and storing the food. There -might even be a church or chapel. The chief -building was, of course, the house of the lord himself -and this was called the <i>keep</i>.</p> - -<p>The main room of the keep was the hall, which -was like a very large living-room and dining-room -combined. Here meals were served at -tables which were simply long and wide boards -placed on something to hold them up. These<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275"></span> -boards were taken down and put away after the -meal was over. That is where we get the names -“boarding” and “boarding-house.” There were -no forks nor spoons nor plates nor saucers nor -napkins. Every one ate with his fingers and -licked them or wiped them on his clothes. Table -manners were more like <i>stable</i> manners. The -bones and scraps they threw on the floor or to -the dogs, who were allowed in the room. Itchy-scratchy! -At the end of the meal a large bowl -of water and towels were brought in so that those -who wished might wash their hands.</p> - -<p>After dinner the household was entertained -during the long evenings with songs and stories -by men called minstrels, who played and sang -and amused the company.</p> - -<p>Shut up within the castle walls, it seemed as -if the lord and his people would be absolutely -safe against any attacks of his enemies. In the -first place, any enemy would have had to cross -the moat or ditch which surrounded the castle. -Across this moat there was a drawbridge to the -entrance or gate of the castle. In the entrance -itself was an iron gate called a portcullis, which -was usually raised like a window to allow people -to pass. In time of war the drawbridge was -raised. But in case an enemy was seen approaching -and there was no time to raise the drawbridge, -this portcullis could be dropped at a moment’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276"></span> -notice. When the drawbridge was raised there -was no way of getting into the castle except -by crossing the moat filled with water. Any one -trying to do this would have had stones or melted -tar thrown down on him. Instead of windows -in the wall of the castle there were only long -slits through which the fighters could shoot arrows -at the enemy. At the same time, it was -very difficult for any one on the outside to hit -the small crack-like opening with an arrow.</p> - -<p>And yet attacks <i>were</i> made on castles. Sometimes -the enemy built a tall wooden tower on -wheels. This they would roll up as closely as -they could get to the walls, and from its top shoot -directly over into the castle.</p> - -<p>Sometimes they built tunnels from the outside -right under the ground, under the moat, and -under the castle walls into the castle itself.</p> - -<p>Sometimes they built huge machines called -battering-rams, and with these they battered -down the walls.</p> - -<p>Sometimes they used machines like great slingshots -to throw stones over the walls. Of course -there were no cannons nor cannon-balls nor guns -nor gunpowder then.</p> - -<p>The lord and his family were the society people; -all the others were little better than slaves. -In times of peace most of the common people -lived outside the castle walls on the land called<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277"></span> -the <i>manor</i>. The lord gave them just as little as -he could and took from them just as much as he -could. He had to feed and take some care of -them so that they could fight for him and serve -him, just as he had to feed and take care of his -horses that carried him to battle, and the cattle -that provided him with milk and meat. But he -didn’t treat them as well as he did his domestic -animals. The common people had to give their -time and labor and a large part of the crops they -raised to the lord. They themselves lived in -miserable huts more like cow-sheds, with only -one room, and that had a dirt floor. Above this -was perhaps a loft reached by a ladder where -they went to bed. But bed was usually only a -bundle of straw, and they slept in the clothes they -wore during the day.</p> - -<p>These work-people were called serfs. Sometimes -a serf could stand this kind of life no -longer, and he would run away. If he was not -caught within a year and a day, he was a free -man. But if he was caught before the year and -a day were up, the lord might whip him, brand -him with hot irons, or even cut off his hands. -Indeed, a lord could do almost anything he -wished with his serfs—except kill them, or sell -them.</p> - -<p>So what do you think of the Feudal System?</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_278"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c49">49</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Knights and Days of Chivalry</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Those</span> <i>years</i> in history which I have been -telling you about are known as the <i>days</i> of -chivalry—which means the times of ladies and -gentlemen. The lord and his family were the -gentlemen and the ladies. All the other people, -by far the greater number, were just common -people.</p> - -<p>There were no schools for these common people. -Little was done for them. They were -taught to work and nothing else. The sons of -a lord of a castle, however, were very carefully -taught. But even they were taught only two -things, how to be gentlemen and how to fight. -Reading and writing were thought of no importance; -in fact, it was usually considered a waste -of time to learn such things.</p> - -<p>And this is the way the son of a lord was -brought up. He stayed with his mother until he -was seven years old. When he reached the age -of seven he was called a page; and for the next -seven years—that is, until he was fourteen, he -remained a page. During the time he was a page<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279"></span> -his chief business was to wait on the ladies of the -castle. He ran their errands, carried their messages, -waited on table, etc. He also learned to -ride a horse and to be brave and courteous.</p> - -<p>When he was fourteen years old he became a -squire and remained a squire for the next seven -years; that is, until he was twenty-one. During -the time he was a squire he waited on the men, as -he had waited on the ladies when he was a page. -He attended to the men’s horses, went to battle -with them, led an extra horse, and carried another -spear or lance, in case these should be needed.</p> - -<p>When he was twenty-one years old, if he had -been a good squire and had learned the lessons -that he was taught, he then became a knight. Becoming -a knight was an important ceremony like -graduating exercises, for the grown boy was now -to take up the business of a man.</p> - -<p>To get ready for this ceremony, first, he -bathed. This may not seem worth mentioning, -but in those days one very rarely took a bath, -sometimes not for years. He was then dressed -in new clothes. Thus washed and dressed, he -prayed all night long in the church. When day -came he appeared before all the people and -solemnly swore always to do and to be certain -things:</p> - -<p> -To be brave and good;<br /> -To fight for the Christian religion;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280"></span><br /> -To protect the weak;<br /> -To honor women. -</p> - -<p>These were his vows. A white leather belt -was then put on him and gold spurs fastened on -his boots. After this had been done he knelt, -and his lord struck him over the shoulders with -the flat side of a sword, saying as he did so, “I -dub thee knight.”</p> - -<p>A knight went into battle covered with a suit -of armor made of iron rings or steel plates like -fish-scales, and with a helmet or hood of iron. -This suit protected him from the arrows and -lances of the enemy. Of course if they had had -any shot or shell, armor would have been no -use at all, but they had no such things then.</p> - -<p>Knights were so completely covered by their -armor that when sides became mixed up in fighting, -they could not tell one another apart. It -was impossible to know which were friends and -which were enemies.</p> - -<p>So the knights wore, on the outside of the coat -that went over their armor, a design of an animal, -such as a lion, or of a plant or a rose or a cross -or some ornament, and this design was known as -a coat of arms. Perhaps your father may use -a coat of arms on his letter-paper to-day, and -if so he has inherited it from some great-great-grandparent -who was a knight.</p> - -<p>A knight, as I told you, was first of all taught<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281"></span> -to be a gentleman, and so we still speak of one -who has good manners and is courteous, especially -to ladies, as knightly or chivalrous. When a -knight came into the presence of a lady he took -off his helmet. It meant, “You are my friend, -and so I do not need my helmet.” That is why -gentlemen raise their hats nowadays when they -meet ladies.</p> - -<p>But the most important thing the knights had -to learn was to fight. Even their games were -play fights.</p> - -<p>Each country and each age has had its own -games or sports in which it has taken special -delight. The Greeks had their Olympic Games. -The Romans had their chariot-races and gladiatorial -contests. We have football and baseball. -But the chief sport of the knights was a kind of -sham battle called the tournament.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig60.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Lady with falcon.</p> -</div> - -<p>The tournament was held in a field known as -the <i>lists</i>. Large crowds with banners flying and -trumpets blowing would gather around the lists -to watch the sham fight, as crowds nowadays -flock to a big football game waving pennants -and tooting horns. The knights on horseback -took their places at opposite ends of the lists. -They carried lances, the points of which were -covered so that they would not make a wound. -At a given signal, they rushed toward the center -of the field and tried with their lances to throw<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282"></span> -each other off their horses. The winner who -succeeded in throwing the other knights was -presented with a ribbon or a keepsake by one of -the ladies, and -a knight thought -as much of this -trophy of victory -as the winner -of a cup in -a tennis tournament -nowadays.</p> - -<p>Knights were -very fond of -hunting with -dogs. But they -also hunted with -a trained bird -called a falcon, -and both lords -and ladies delighted -in this -sport. The falcon -was trained -like a hunting-dog to catch other birds, such as -wild ducks and pigeons and also small animals. -The falcon was chained to the wrist of the lord -or lady, and its head was covered with a hood -as it was carried out to hunt. When a bird was -seen the hood was removed, and the falcon, which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283"></span> -was very swift, would swoop upon its prey and -capture it. Thereupon the hunter would come -up, take the captured animal, and put the hood -on the falcon again. The men, however, usually -preferred hunting the wild boar, which was a -kind of pig with sharp tusks, for this was more -dangerous and therefore supposed to be more of -a man’s sport.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig61.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c50">50</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Pirate’s <i>Great</i> Grandson</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">When</span> Alfred was king the Danes had raided -England.</p> - -<p>At the same time their cousins the Norsemen -had raided the coast of France.</p> - -<p>King Alfred at last had to give the Danes a -part of the English coast, and they then settled -down and became Christians.</p> - -<p>The French king likewise did the same thing. -In order to save himself from further raids, he -gave the Norsemen a part of the French coast. -Then the Norsemen, as the Danes had done, settled -down and became Christians.</p> - -<p>These Norsemen who raided France were led -by a very bold and brave pirate named Rollo. -In return for this gift of land Rollo was supposed -to do homage by kissing the king’s foot. But -Rollo thought it beneath him to kneel and kiss -the king’s foot, so he told one of his men to do it -for him. His man did as he was told, but he -didn’t like to do it, either, and so as he kissed the -king’s foot he raised it so high that he tipped his -Majesty over backward.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig62.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286"></span></p> - -<p>That part of France which was given the -Norsemen came to be called Normandy, and it is -so called to-day, and the people were known -thereafter as Normans.</p> - -<p>In 1066 there was a very powerful duke ruling -over Normandy. His name was William, and -he was descended from Rollo the pirate. Perhaps -your name may be William. Perhaps you -may even be descended from this William.</p> - -<p>William was strong in body, strong in will, and -strong in rule over his people. He could shoot -an arrow farther, straighter, and with more -deadly effect than any of his knights. No one -else was strong enough even to bend the bow he -used.</p> - -<p>William and his people had become Christians, -but according to their idea the Christian -God was more like their old god Woden under -a new name. William believed that “might made -right,” for he was descended from a pirate, and -he still thought and acted like a pirate. So whatever -he wanted he went after and took, even -though he was supposed to be a Christian.</p> - -<p>Now, William was only a duke, not a king, -and he wanted to be a king. In fact, he thought -he would like to be king of England, which was -just across the channel from his own dukedom.</p> - -<p>It so happened that a young English prince -named Harold was shipwrecked on the coast<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287"></span> -of Normandy and was found and brought before -William. Now, it seemed likely that some day -Harold would be king of England, and William -thought this a good chance to get England for -himself. So before he would let Harold leave, -he made the young man promise that when his -turn came to be king he would give him England -just as if that country were a horse or a suit of -armor that could be given away. Then, in order -that this promise should be solemnly binding, -William made Harold place his hand on the altar -and swear, just as people place a hand on the -Bible nowadays, when they take an oath. After -Harold had sworn on the altar, William had the -top lifted and showed Harold that below it were -the bones of some of the Christian saints. Swearing -on the bones of a saint was the most solemn -kind of an oath one could possibly take. It was -thought one would not dare to break such an -oath for fear of the wrath of God.</p> - -<p>Then Harold returned to England. But when -the time came that he should be king the people -naturally would not let him give England to -William. Besides that, Harold said that such -an oath, which he had taken against his will, an -oath which had been forced on him by a trick, -was not binding. So Harold became king.</p> - -<p>When William heard that Harold had been -made king, he was very angry. He said that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288"></span> -had been cheated and that Harold had broken -his oath. So at once he got ready an army and -sailed over to take the country away from Harold.</p> - -<p>As William landed from his boat he stumbled -and fell headlong on the shore. All his -soldiers were shocked and greatly worried by this, -for they thought it very bad luck—a bad omen, -the Greeks would have called it. But William -was quick-witted, and as he fell he grabbed up -some of the earth in both hands. Then, rising, -he made believe he had fallen on purpose and, -lifting his hands in the air, exclaimed that he had -taken up the ground as a sign that he was going -to have <i>all</i> the land of England. This changed -the bad omen into good luck.</p> - -<p>The battle started, and the English fought -furiously to defend themselves against these foreigners -who were trying to take their country -away from them. Indeed, they had almost won -the battle when William gave an order to his men -to pretend they were running away. The English -then followed, wildly rejoicing, and running pell-mell -after the Normans. Just as soon, however, -as the English were scattered and in disorder, -William gave another signal, and his men faced -about quickly. The English were taken by surprise, -and before they could get into fighting -order again, they were defeated, and Harold, -their king, was shot through the eye and killed.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289"></span> -This was the battle of Hastings, one of the most -famous battles in English History.</p> - -<p>Harold had put up a brave fight. But luck -was against him. Only a few days before this, -he had had to fight a battle with his own brother, -who in a traitorous way had got together an -army against him. We are sorry for Harold, -and yet it was probably better for England that -things turned out as they did—yet who can tell?</p> - -<p>William marched on to London and had himself -crowned king on Christmas day, 1066. Ever -since then he has been known as William the -Conqueror, and the event is called the Norman -Conquest. After this England had a new line -of kings—a Norman family and a pirate family—to -rule over her.</p> - -<p>William divided England up among his nobles -as if it were a pie, and gave each a share in the -feudal way. They had to do homage to him -as his vassals and promise to fight for him and to -do as he said. Each of William’s nobles built a -castle on the property he was given. William -himself built a castle in London by the Thames -River. On the same spot Julius Cæsar had built -a fort, but it had disappeared; and Alfred the -Great had built a castle there, but it, too, had -disappeared. But the castle William built is -still standing to-day. It is known as the Tower -of London.</p> - -<p>William was a splendid boss and very businesslike. -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290"></span>He set to work and had a list made of all -the land in England, a list of all the people and -of all the property they had. This record was -called the Domesday Book and was something -like the <i>census</i> now taken in this country every -ten years. This list gave the name of every one -in England and everything each owned, even -down to the last cow and pig. If your ancestors -were living in England then you can look in the -Domesday Book and find their names, how much -land they owned, and how many cows and pigs -they had.</p> - -<p>In order that no mischief might take place at -night, William started what was called the <i>curfew</i>. -Every evening at a certain hour a bell was -rung. Then all lights had to be put out, and -every one had to go indoors—supposedly to bed.</p> - -<p>One thing, however, that William did made -the English very angry. He was extremely fond -of hunting, but there was no good place where -he could hunt near London. So in order to have -a place for hunting, he destroyed a large number -of village houses and farms and turned that part -of the country into a forest. This was called the -New Forest, and though it is now nearly nine -hundred years <i>old</i> it is still called New to this -day.</p> - -<p>But on the whole, William, although descended -from a pirate, gave England a good government<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291"></span> -and made it a much safer and better place in -which to live than it ever had been under its -former rulers. So 1066 was almost like the -Year 1 for the English.</p> - -<p>We think it is remarkable when children of -low-bred immigrants become society leaders, -when, as we say, they rise from overalls to dress-suits, -but here we have the son’s son of a pirate -rising to be king of England, and those living -now who find they are descended from him brag -of it!</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig63.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_292"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c51">51</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Great Adventure</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever played the game called “Going -to Jerusalem” in which every one scrambles to -get a seat when the music stops playing?</p> - -<p>Well, all during the Dark Ages “Going to -Jerusalem” was not a game but a real journey -which Christians everywhere in Europe wanted -to take and did take if they could. They wanted -to see the actual spot where Christ had been -crucified, to pray at the Holy Sepulcher, and -to bring back a palm-leaf as a souvenir, which -they could show their friends, hang on the wall, -and talk about all the rest of their lives.</p> - -<p>So there were always some good Christians—and -also some bad ones—“going to Jerusalem.” -Sometimes they went all by themselves, but more -often they went with others. As of course there -were no such things as trains in those days, poor -people had to walk nearly the whole way from -France and from England, from Spain and from -Germany, and so it took them many months and -sometimes years to reach Jerusalem. These -travelers were called <i>pilgrims</i>, and their trip was -called a <i>pilgrimage</i>.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293"></span></p> - -<p>Jerusalem at that time belonged to the Turks, -who were Mohammedans. The Turks did not -like these Christian pilgrims who came to see -Christ’s tomb, and they didn’t treat them very -well. Indeed, some of the pilgrims on their return -told frightful stories of the way they had -been treated by the Turks and the way the holy -places in Jerusalem were also treated.</p> - -<p>Just before the Year 1100 there was a pope at -Rome named Urban. He was the head of all the -Christians in the world. Urban heard these tales -that the pilgrims told, and he was shocked. He -thought it was a terrible thing, anyway, for the -Holy City, as Jerusalem was called, and the -Holy Land, where Jerusalem was located, to be -ruled over by Mohammedans instead of by -Christians. So Urban made a speech and urged -all good Christians everywhere to get together -and go on a pilgrimage to the Holy Land, with -the idea of fighting the Turks and taking the -city of Jerusalem away from them.</p> - -<p>Now, there lived at that same time a monk -whom people called Peter the Hermit. A hermit -is a man who goes off and lives entirely by -himself, usually in a cave or hut where no one -can find him or go to see him, where he can spend -all day in prayer. Peter the Hermit thought -such a life was good for his soul, that it made -him a better man to be hungry and cold and uncomfortable.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_294"></span></p> - -<p>Peter the Hermit had made a pilgrimage to -Jerusalem and was very angry at what he saw -there. So he, too, began to tell people everywhere -he went how disgraceful it was for them -to allow Christ’s tomb to belong to the Mohammedans -and called on every one to start on a -pilgrimage with him to save Jerusalem. He -talked to people in the churches, on the street-corners, -in the market-places, on the roadside. -He was such a wonderful orator that those who -heard him wept at his descriptions and begged -to go with him.</p> - -<p>Before long, thousands upon thousands of -people, old and young, men and women, and even -some children had pledged themselves to join a -band to go to Jerusalem and take it away from -the Mohammedans. As Christ had died on the -cross, they cut pieces of red cloth in the form of a -cross and sewed them on the fronts of their coats -as a sign that they were soldiers of the cross. -So these pilgrims were called <i>Crusaders</i>, which -is the Latin word for a cross-bearer. As they -knew they would be gone a long time and perhaps -never return, they sold all they had and left their -homes. Not only poor people but lords and -nobles and even princes joined the army of the -Crusaders, and there were, besides the crowds on -foot, large companies of those who rode on horseback.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_295"></span></p> - -<p>The plan was to start in the summer of 1096, -four years before 1100, but a great many were so -anxious to get started that they didn’t wait for -the time that had been set. With Peter the Hermit -and another pious man named Walter the -Penniless as their leaders, they started off before -things were really ready.</p> - -<p>They had no idea how very far off Jerusalem -was. They hadn’t studied geography nor maps. -They had no idea how long it would take, no -idea how they would get food to eat on their -journey, no idea where they would sleep. They -simply trusted in Peter the Hermit and believed -that the Lord would provide everything and show -them the way.</p> - -<p>Onward they marched, “Onward, Christian -Soldiers,” thousands upon thousands, toward the -east and far-off Jerusalem. Thousands upon -thousands of them died from disease and from -hunger on the way. Every time they came within -sight of another city, they would ask, “Is this -Jerusalem?” so little did they know of the long -distance that still lay between them and that -city.</p> - -<p>When the Mohammedan army in Jerusalem -heard that the Crusaders were coming they went -forth to meet the Christians and killed almost -all of those who had started out with Peter ahead -of the rest. But those Crusaders that had started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296"></span> -out later, as had been planned at the beginning, -marched on.</p> - -<p>Finally, after nearly four years, only a small -band of that vast throng that had set out so long -before reached the walls of the Holy City. When -at last they saw Jerusalem before them, they -were wild with joy. They fell on their knees and -wept and prayed and sang hymns and thanked -God that he had brought them to the end of -their journey. Then they furiously attacked the -city. The Christians fought so terribly that at -last they beat the Mohammedans and captured -Jerusalem. Then they entered the gates and -killed thousands, so that it is said the streets of -the Holy City ran with blood. This seems -strange behavior for the followers of Christ, who -preached against fighting and commanded, “Put -up thy sword, for he that taketh the sword shall -perish by the sword.”</p> - -<p>The Crusaders then made one of their leaders -named Godfrey ruler of the city. Most of the -other Crusaders that were left then went back -home. So ended what is known as the First -Crusade.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_297"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c52">52</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Tit-Tat-To; Three Kings in a Row</p> - - -<p> -<span class="smcap">Here</span> are three kings:</p> - -<p> -Richard of England,<br /> -Philip of France, and<br /> -Frederick Barbarossa of Germany. -</p> - -<p>If you say their names over several times, they -keep ringing through your mind and you cannot -seem to stop thinking them whether you want to -or not.</p> - -<p>Jerusalem was captured. But it did not stay -captured very long.</p> - -<p>The Mohammedans attacked and won it back -again.</p> - -<p>So the Christians started a Second Crusade. -Then about once in a lifetime during the next -two hundred years there was one Crusade after -another—eight or nine in all. Sometimes these -later Crusades won back Jerusalem for a while, -but for a while only. Sometimes they did not -succeed at all.</p> - -<p>The Third Crusade took place about a hundred -years after the First; that is, nearly 1200 <span class="allsmcap">A. D.</span> -These three kings—Richard of England, Philip -of France, and Frederick Barbarossa—started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298"></span> -on the Third Crusade. But they didn’t all finish. -I will tell you about them in three-two-one order.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig64.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Richard of England, Philip of France, and Frederick Barbarossa</p> -</div> - -<p>Frederick’s name, Barbarossa, meant Red -Beard, for in those days it was the custom to give -kings nicknames that described them. Frederick’s -capital was in Aix-la-Chapelle, as Charlemagne’s -had been, but Frederick was king only -of Germany. When a young man he had tried to -make his country as large and powerful as the -new Roman Empire that Charlemagne had -made. But he was not a great enough man, and -so was unable to do what Charlemagne had done.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299"></span> -Frederick was quite old when he started out on -the Third Crusade with the other two kings. But -he never reached Jerusalem, for in crossing a -stream on the way he was drowned. So much for -Frederick, the third king.</p> - -<p>The second king, Philip of France, was jealous -of the first king, Richard, because Richard -was so very popular and well liked by the Crusaders. -So Philip finally gave up the Crusade -and went back to France.</p> - -<p>Richard of England was then the only king -left on the Crusade. It would have been better -if he, too, had gone back to his country instead -of gallivanting off on a Crusade. But he thought -going on a Crusade was much better sport than -staying at home and working over the difficult -business of governing his people.</p> - -<p>But although he had his faults, Richard was -the kind of a man that all men like and all women -love. He was kind and gentle, yet strong and -brave. Richard the Lion-Hearted they called -him. He was hard on wrongdoers but fair and -square. So people loved him, but they feared -him, too, for he punished the wicked and those -who misbehaved. Even long, long after he had -died, mothers would try to quiet a naughty and -crying child by saying: “Hush! If you don’t be -good, King Richard will get you!”</p> - -<p class="c"> -<span class="little">SO</span><span class="medium">HN</span>O<span class="large">FF</span><span class="xlarge">GO</span><span class="xxlarge">B</span><span class="xlarge">B</span><span class="large">E</span>LL<span class="medium">U</span><span class="little">M</span>! -</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_300"></span></p> - -<p>Even Richard’s enemies admired him. The -Mohammedan king of Jerusalem at the time of -this Third Crusade was named Saladin. Saladin, -though being attacked by Richard, admired him -very much and even became his friend. And so -Saladin, instead of fighting Richard, finally made -a friendly agreement with him to treat the Holy -Sepulcher and the pilgrims properly. As this arrangement -was satisfactory to every one, Richard -left Jerusalem to Saladin and started back home.</p> - -<p>On his way home Richard was captured by one -of his enemies and put in prison and held for -a large ransom from England. Richard’s -friends did not know where he was and did not -know how to find him.</p> - -<p>Now, it so happened that Richard had a favorite -minstrel named Blondel. Blondel had -composed a song of which Richard was very fond. -So when Richard was taken prisoner, Blondel -wandered over the country singing everywhere -this favorite song in the hope that Richard might -hear it and reveal where he was. One day he happened -to sing beneath the very tower where Richard -was imprisoned. Richard heard him and answered -by singing the refrain of the song. His -friends then knew where he was, the ransom was -paid, and Richard was allowed to go free.</p> - -<p>When, at last, Richard did reach England, he -still had adventures. This was the time when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301"></span> -Robin Hood was robbing travelers. Richard -planned to have himself taken prisoner by -Robin Hood, so that he might capture him and -bring him to justice. So Richard disguised -himself as a monk and was captured as he had -planned. But he found Robin Hood such a -good fellow after all that he forgave him and -his men.</p> - -<p>Richard’s coat of arms was a design of three -lions, one above the other; and this same design -of three lions now forms part of the shield of -England.</p> - -<p>After Richard’s Crusade there was a Fourth -Crusade, and then in the year 1212—which is an -easy date to remember, because it is simply the -number 12 repeated—one, two, one, two—there -was a crusade of children only. This was known -therefore as the Children’s Crusade. It was led -by a French boy about twelve years old named -Stephen, who was named after the first Christian -martyr.</p> - -<p>Children from all over France left their homes -and their mothers and fathers—it seems strange -to us that their mothers and fathers let them start -off on such a trip—and marched south to the -Mediterranean Sea. Here they expected the -waters of the sea would part and allow them to -march on dry land to Jerusalem, as they had read -in the Bible the waters of the Red Sea had done<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302"></span> -to allow the Israelites to leave Egypt. But the -waters did not part.</p> - -<p>Some sailors, however, offered to take the children -to Jerusalem in their ships. They said they -would do it for nothing, just for the love of the -Lord. But it turned out that these sailors were -really pirates, and as soon as they got the children -on board their ships they steered them straight -across the Mediterranean to Africa into the very -land of their enemies, the Mohammedans. Here, -it is said, the pirates sold the children as slaves. -This is not a Grimm’s Fairy-Tale, and the pirates -were not trapped by the children, so I cannot -make a happy ending, for it was not.</p> - -<p>The last or Eighth Crusade was led by a king -of France called Louis. He was so pious and so -devoted to the Lord that he was made a saint -and ever after has been called St. Louis. Yet -this Crusade failed, and ever since Jerusalem has -been ruled by the Mohammedans until just recently, -when, in 1918, it was captured by the -English, and this, then, was really the Last -Crusade.</p> - -<p>Not all the Crusaders were good Christians. -Like some people nowadays, a great many were -Christian only in name. In fact, though strange -to say, quite a number of the Crusaders were -nothing but scalawags, looking for excitement -and adventure, and they went on a Crusade -merely as an excuse to rob and plunder.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303"></span></p> - -<p>The Crusades did not succeed in their object, -which was to keep Jerusalem for the Christians. -Yet in spite of that, they did a great deal of good. -When the Crusades first started, the Crusaders -were not nearly as civilized as the people they -went to conquer. But travel sometimes teaches -people more than books, and it taught the Crusaders. -They learned the customs of the other -lands through which they went. They learned -languages and literature. They learned history -and art.</p> - -<p>There were then no public schools. Only a -very, very few people had any education at all. -So the Crusades did what schools might have -done. They taught the people of Europe and -put an end to the Dark Ages of ignorance.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig65.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_304"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c53">53</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Bibles Made of Stone and Glass</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">How</span> often do you go to church?</p> - -<p>Probably not more than once a week—on -Sundays.</p> - -<p>But in the Middle Ages people usually went to -church every day and often several times a day. -They did not go only when there was a church -service. They went to say their prayers by themselves; -they went to tell their troubles to the -priest, to get advice from him, to burn a candle -to the Virgin Mary, or simply to chat with their -friends.</p> - -<p>All during the Crusades, and immediately after -the Crusades, the chief thing that people thought -about was their church.</p> - -<p>There was only one church in a neighborhood, -and every one went to the same church for there -were no Baptists, nor Episcopalians, nor Methodists; -all were just Christians.</p> - -<p>The church was every one’s meeting-house, -and so people naturally gave as much money and -time and labor as they could to make their church -the best that could be built. That is why there<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305"></span> -were built in France and other parts of Europe -at this time many of the finest churches and cathedrals -in the world. These churches and cathedrals -are still standing, and, because they are so -beautiful, people go long distances to see them.</p> - -<p>Do you know what a cathedral is? A cathedral -is not just a large church. It is the church of a -bishop. In the chancel of this church there is a -special chair for the bishop. This bishop’s chair -is called in Latin a “cathedra,” and so his church -is named a cathedral after this chair.</p> - -<p>These churches and cathedrals were nothing -like the old Greek and Roman temples; they were -not like anything that had ever been built before.</p> - -<p>If you have ever built a house out of blocks, -you probably did it this way: first you stood two -blocks upright, and then you laid another block -across the top of these for a roof. This is the -way the Greeks and Romans built.</p> - -<p>But the Christians throughout Europe at that -time did not build in this way at all.</p> - -<p>When you were building toy-houses, instead of -laying a single block across the two standing ones, -you may perhaps have tried leaning two blocks -together like the sides of a letter A for a roof? -If you did, you know what happened: the two -leaning blocks pushed over the sides, and <i>crash</i>! -everything tumbled. Well, these churches were -built somewhat in this way, with stones arched<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306"></span> -across the standing stone columns. But to keep -the stone arches from pushing over the standing -stone columns the builders put up props or -braces. These props or braces were made of -stone, too, and these props of stone were called -<i>flying buttresses</i>.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig66.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Flying buttresses—Apse of Notre Dame.</p> -</div> - -<p>The people in Italy thought this a crazy way -of building. They thought such buildings must -be shaky and might easily topple over—like a -house of cards. The Goths who had conquered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307"></span> -Italy in 476 were wild and ignorant and after -that people called anything wild and ignorant -“Gothic.” So people called all buildings such as -I have just described “Gothic,” although the -Goths had nothing to do with the buildings, for -they had all died long years before.</p> - -<p>Indeed, from my description you, too, may -think such buildings propped up by flying buttresses -must have been tottering and ugly, but -they were neither. They were not rickety, for -though occasionally one that was not carefully -built did collapse, the largest and best are still -standing to-day. And although there were old-fashioned -people who thought no building was -beautiful that was not built in the Roman or -Greek style, we have come to admire the great -beauty of these so called Gothic buildings.</p> - -<p>But there were other ways in which the Gothic -churches were different from the Greek and -Roman temples. Before a Gothic church was -started, a very large cross was first drawn on the -ground with its head towards the east, because -that is the direction of Jerusalem. On this cross-shaped -plan, the church was built so that if you -looked down from above on the finished building, -it was shaped like a cross with the altar always -toward the east.</p> - -<p>Gothic churches had beautiful spires or <i>arrows</i>, -which have been likened to <i>fingers pointing to</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_308"></span> -<i>heaven</i>. The doorways and windows were not -square or round at the top, but pointed, like -hands placed together in prayer.</p> - -<p>Nearly the whole side of a Gothic church was -made of glass. These large windows were not, -however, plain white glass, but beautiful pictures -made of colored glass. Small pieces of different -colors were joined together at their edges with -lead to make what looked like wonderful paintings. -But these pictures were much finer than -ordinary paintings, for the light shone through -the stained glass and made the colors brilliant as -jewels—blue like the clear sky, yellow like sunlight, -red like a ruby. These pictures in glass -told stories from the Bible. They were like colored -illustrations in a book. So the people who -could not read, and very few could read, were -able to know the Bible stories just by looking -at these beautiful illustrations.</p> - -<p>Statues of saints and angels and characters in -the Bible were carved in the stonework of the -church. So the churches were like Bibles of stone -and glass.</p> - -<p>Besides these holy beings, strange, grotesque -beasts were also made in stone—monsters like no -animal that has ever been seen in nature. These -creatures were usually put on the outside edge -or corner of the roof or they were used for waterspouts -and called <i>gargoyles</i>. They were supposed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309"></span> -to scare away evil spirits from the holy -place.</p> - -<div class="figright"> -<img src="images/fig67.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Gargoyle.</p> -</div> - -<p>No one now knows who were the architects or -the builders of these Gothic churches or who were -the sculptors or artists. Almost -every one did some work on the -church, for it was <i>his</i> church. -Instead of giving money he gave -his time and labor. If he had -any skill, he carved stone or -made stained glass. If he had -no skill he did the work of a common -laborer.</p> - -<p>Some of these Gothic churches took hundreds -of years to build, so that the workmen who started -them never lived to see them finished. Some of -the most famous cathedrals are Canterbury -Cathedral in England, the Cathedral of Notre -Dame in Paris, and Cologne Cathedral in Germany.</p> - -<p>Cologne Cathedral took the longest of all to -build, as it was not entirely finished until about -seven hundred years after it was begun! The -beautiful Cathedral of Rheims in France was -almost destroyed by the gun-fire of the Germans -in the Great War only a few years ago.</p> - -<p>Gothic churches were built, with loving care, -of stone and jeweled glass. Nothing but the best -was thought good enough. To-day almost all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310"></span> -churches are still built with spires, pointed doors -and some stained glass windows, and often the -altar is toward the east. But although they imitate -the Gothic style in these things, they seldom -have stone ceilings, as Gothic churches had, nor -flying buttresses, nor walls of stained glass. The -ceilings are usually of wood, the spire often of -wood, also, and even the whole building of wood -or some cheap material. Real Gothic was enormously -expensive and difficult, and nowadays -people haven’t the time, the money, nor the -interest to build in such a way.</p> - -<p>And that is the story of Gothic churches that -the Goths had nothing to do with.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig68.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_311"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c54">54</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">John, Whom Nobody Loved</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Richard</span>, the Lion-Hearted, whom everybody -loved, had a brother named John, whom nobody -loved.</p> - -<p>This brother John became king, but he turned -out to be a very wicked king.</p> - -<p>He is another one of the villains in history, -whom we do not like, but like to hear about, and -like to clap when he gets what he deserves.</p> - -<p>John was afraid that his young nephew named -Arthur might be made king in his place, and so -he had him murdered. Some say he hired others -to do the killing; some say he murdered him with -his own hands. This was a very bad beginning -for his reign, but things got worse and worse as -time went on.</p> - -<p>John got into a quarrel with the pope in Rome. -The pope at that time was head of all Christians -in the world and said what should be done -and what should not be done in all churches everywhere. -The pope ordered John to make a certain -man bishop in England, and John said he -wouldn’t do it. He wanted another man, a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312"></span> -friend of his, to be bishop. The pope then said -he would close up all the churches in England if -John didn’t do as he was told. John said he -didn’t care. Let the pope go ahead and -close up all the churches if he wanted to. So -the pope ordered all churches in England to be -closed until John should give in. Nowadays -this might not have made much difference, but -then, as I have told you, the church was -the one most important thing in every one’s -life; in fact, nothing else mattered so much. The -closing of the churches meant that no services -could be held in any church. It meant that children -could not be baptized, and so, if they died, -it was believed they could not go to heaven. It -meant that couples could not be married. It -meant that the dead could not be given a Christian -burial.</p> - -<p>The people of England were shocked. It was -as if Heaven had put a curse on them. They -were afraid that terrible things would happen to -them. Of course the people blamed John, for he -was the cause of the churches’ being closed. They -were so angry at him that he became scared—afraid -what his people might do to him. When at -last the pope threatened to make another man -king of England in his place—yes, the pope had -as much power as that—John in fear and trembling -gave in and agreed to do everything that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313"></span> -at first he had said he would not do and more besides. -But John was pig-headed. He was always -doing the wrong thing and sticking to it.</p> - -<p>John had an idea that the world was made for -the king and that people were put upon the earth -simply so that the king might have servants to -work for him, to earn money for him, to do what -he wished them to do. Many of the kings of -olden days felt the same way, though they did not -go as far as John did. John would order people -who were rich to give him whatever money he -wanted. If they refused to give him all he asked, -he would put them in prison, have their hands -squeezed in an iron press until the bones cracked -and the blood ran, or he would even put them -to death.</p> - -<p>John got worse and worse until at last his -barons could not stand his actions any longer. -So they made him prisoner and took him to a -little island in the Thames River called Runnymede. -Here they forced John to agree to certain -things which they had written down in Latin. -This was in the Year 1215; and 1215 was a bad -date for John, but a good date for the English -people. This list of things which the barons -made John agree to was called by the Latin name -for a great agreement, which is Magna Carta, -or Charta.</p> - -<p>John did not agree to Magna Carta willingly,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314"></span> -however. He was as angry and furious as a -spoiled child, who kicks and screams when forced -to do something he does not want to do. But he -had to agree, nevertheless.</p> - -<p>John was unable to write his name, and so he -could not sign the agreement as people sign contracts -nowadays. But he wore a seal-ring which -was used by people who could not sign their -names, and this seal he pressed into a piece of -hot wax which was dropped on the agreement -where one would have signed.</p> - -<p>John agreed in Magna Carta to give the barons -some of the rights that we think every human -being should have anyway, without an agreement. -For instance, a person certainly has the right -to keep the money that he earns, and he has the -right not to have it taken away from him unlawfully. -A person also has the right not to be put -in prison or be punished by the king or any one -else unless he has done something wrong and unless -he has had a fair trial. These are two of the -rights that John agreed to in Magna Carta. -There were quite a number of others.</p> - -<p>John didn’t keep his agreement, however. He -broke it the very first time he had a good chance, -as a person usually does when he is forced to -agree to something against his will. But John -died pretty soon; and so, as far as he was concerned, -Magna Carta didn’t matter much. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315"></span> -kings who came after him were made to agree -to the same things. So ever after 1215 the king -in England was supposed to be the servant of the -people, and not the people servants of the king -as they had been before that time.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig69.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_316"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c55">55</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Great Story-Teller</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Far</span> away from England,</p> - -<p class="pad6b">Far off in the direction of the rising sun,</p> - -<p><span class="pad6d">’Way</span> beyond Italy and Jerusalem and the -Tigris and Euphrates and Persia and all the -other places we have so far heard about, was a -country called Cathay—C-A-T-H-A-Y.</p> - -<p>If you looked down at your feet, and the world -were glass, you would see it on the other side.</p> - -<p>Cathay is the same place we now call China. -The people in Cathay belonged to the yellow -race, the same race to which the Chinese belong.</p> - -<p>There had been people living in Cathay, of -course, all through the centuries that had passed, -but little was known of this land or of its people.</p> - -<p>But in the thirteenth century or twelve hundreds, -one of these tribes of yellow people called -Mongols or Tartars, arose out of the East, like -a black and terrifying thunderstorm, and it -seemed for a while as if they might destroy all -the other countries whose histories we have been -hearing about. The ruler of these people was a -terrible fighter named Genghis Khan. Genghis<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317"></span> -Khan had an army of Tartar horsemen who were -terrific fighters. Genghis and his Tartars were -a good deal like Attila and his Huns—only -worse. Indeed, some people think Attila and his -Huns were Tartars also.</p> - -<p>Genghis usually found some excuse for making -war on others, but if he couldn’t find a good excuse -he made up one, for he was bent on conquering. -He and his Tartars thought no more of -killing than would tigers or lions let loose.</p> - -<p>So Genghis and his horsemen swept over the -land from Cathay toward Europe. They burned -and destroyed thousands upon thousands of -towns and cities and everything in their way. -They slew men, women, and children by the million. -No one was able to stop them. It seemed -as if they were going to wipe off of the face of -the earth all white people and everything that -white people had built.</p> - -<p>Genghis Khan had conquered the whole land -from the Pacific Ocean to the eastern part of Europe. -But at last he stopped. With this kingdom -he seemed to be satisfied. And he might well -have been satisfied, for it was larger than the -Roman Empire or that of even Alexander the -Great.</p> - -<p>Even when Genghis died, things were no better, -for his son was just as frightful as his father -and conquered still more country.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_318"></span></p> - -<p>But the grandson of Genghis Khan was much -less ferocious than his grandfather had been. He -was named Kublai Khan, and he was quite different -from his father and grandfather. He -made his capital at a place in China now called -Peking and ruled over this vast empire that he -had inherited from his father. Kublai’s chief -interest was in building magnificent palaces and -surrounding himself with beautiful gardens, and -he made such a wonderful capital for himself that -Solomon in all his glory did not live in such splendor -as did Kublai Khan.</p> - -<p>Now, far, far off from Peking and the palace -of Kublai Khan, in the north of Italy was a city -built on the water. Its streets were of water, -and boats were used instead of carriages. This -city was called Venice. About the Year 1300 -there were living in Venice two men named Polo. -The Polos got an idea in their heads that they -would like to see something of the world. So -these two Venetians, and the son of one of them -named Marco Polo, started off toward the rising -sun looking for adventure, just like boys in story-books -who go off to seek their fortunes. After -several years of travel, always toward the east, -they at last came to the gardens and to the magnificent -palace of Kublai Khan.</p> - -<p>When Kublai Khan heard that strange white -men from a far-off place and an unknown country<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319"></span> -were outside the palace, he wanted to see -them. So they were brought into his presence. -They told Kublai Khan all about their own land. -They were good story-tellers, and they made it -interesting. They told him also about the Christian -religion and many other things that he had -never heard of.</p> - -<p>The emperor was so much interested in the -Polos and in the stories they told about their -country that he wanted to hear more. So he persuaded -them to stay with him and tell him more. -He gave them rich presents. Then he made them -his advisers and assistants in ruling his empire. -So the Polos stayed on for years and years and -years and learned the language and came to be -very important people in Cathay.</p> - -<p>At last after they had spent about twenty years -in Cathay the Polos thought it was about time to -go home and see their own people again. So they -begged leave to return. Kublai Khan did not -want them to go. They were so useful to him and -helped him so much in ruling that he didn’t want -to lose them. But in the end he did let them go, -and they started back to what once had been -their home.</p> - -<p>When they at last arrived in Venice, they had -been away so long and had been traveling so far -that no one knew them. They had almost forgotten -how to speak their own language, and they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320"></span> -talked like foreigners. Their clothes had become -worn out and ragged by their long trip. They -looked like tramps, and not even their old friends -recognized them. No one would believe that -these ragged, dirty strangers were the same fine -Venetian gentlemen who had disappeared almost -twenty years before.</p> - -<p>The Polos told their townspeople all about -their adventures and the wonderfully rich lands -and cities that they had visited. But the townspeople -only laughed at them, for they thought -them story-tellers.</p> - -<p>Then the Polos ripped open their ragged garments, -and out fell piles of magnificent and costly -jewels, diamonds and rubies and sapphires and -pearls—enough to buy a kingdom. The people -looked in wonder and amazement and began to -believe.</p> - -<p>Marco Polo told his stories to a man who wrote -them down and made a book of them called “The -Travels of Marco Polo.” This is an interesting -book for you to read even to-day, although we -cannot believe all the tales he told. We know -that he exaggerated a great many things, for he -liked to amaze people.</p> - -<p>Marco Polo described the magnificence of -Kublai Khan’s palace. He told of its enormous -dining-hall, where thousands of guests could sit -down at the table at one time. He told of a bird<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321"></span> -so huge that it could fly away with an elephant. -He said that Noah’s Ark was still on Mount -Ararat, only the mountain was so high and so -dangerous to climb on account of the ice and -snow with which it was covered that no one could -go to see if the ark really were there.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig70.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_322"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c56">56</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">“Thing-a-ma-jigger” and “What-cher-may-call-it”<br /> -or a Magic Needle and a<br /> -Magic Powder</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">About</span> this same time that Marco Polo returned -from his travels, people in Europe began -to hear and talk about a magic needle and a magic -powder that did remarkable things, and some -say that Marco brought them back from Cathay, -but this we doubt. The little magic needle when -floated on a straw or held up only at its middle -would always turn towards the north no matter -how much you twisted it. Such a needle put in -a case was called a compass.</p> - -<p>Now, you may not see why such a little thing -was so remarkable. But strange as it may seem, -this little thing really made it possible to discover -a new world.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have played the game in which a -child is blindfolded, twisted around several times -in the center of the room, and then told to go toward -the door or the window or some other point -in the room. You know how impossible it is for -one who has been so turned round to tell which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323"></span> -way to go, and you know how absurd one looks -who goes in quite the opposite direction when he -thinks he is going straight.</p> - -<p>Well, the sailor at sea was something like such -a blindfolded child. Of course, if the weather -were fine he could tell by the sun or the stars -which way he should go. But when the weather -was cloudy and bad there was nothing for him to -go by. He was then like the blindfolded child. -He might easily become confused and sail in just -the opposite direction from the way he wanted -to go without knowing the difference.</p> - -<p>This was perhaps one of the chief reasons why -sailors, before the compass was used, had not -gone far out of sight of land. They were afraid -they might not be able to find their way back. -So only that part of the world was known which -could be reached by land or without going far out -of sight of land.</p> - -<p>But, with the compass, sailors could sail on and -on through storm and cloudy weather and keep -always in the direction they wanted to go. They -simply had to follow the little magnetic needle -suspended in its box. No matter how much the -boat turned or twisted or tossed, the little needle -always pointed to the north. Of course sailors -did not always want to go north, but it was very -easy to tell any other direction if they knew which -was north. South was exactly opposite, east was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324"></span> -to the right, and west was to the left. So all they -had to do was to steer the boat on the course in -whatever direction they wished.</p> - -<p>It was a long while, however, before sailors -would use a compass. They thought it was bewitched -by some magic, and they were afraid to -have anything to do with such a thing. Sailors -are likely to be superstitious, and they were -afraid that if they took the compass on board it -might bewitch their ship and bring them bad luck.</p> - -<p>The other magic thing was gunpowder.</p> - -<p>Never before 1300 had there been such things -in Europe as guns or cannons or pistols. All -fighting had been done with bows and arrows or -swords or spears or with some such weapons. A -sword can only be used on a man a few feet away, -but with guns an enemy may be killed and walls -battered down miles away. But after gunpowder -was invented the armor which the old knights -wore was of course no longer of any use, for it -could not protect them from shot and shell. So -gunpowder has changed fighting completely and -made war the terrible thing it has become.</p> - -<p>Although Marco Polo was supposed to have -told about gunpowder and its use in cannons as -he had seen it in the East, most people think that -an English monk named Roger Bacon knew -about gunpowder and also about the compass and -perhaps invented them. The monk Bacon knew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_325"></span> -about so many things which people at that time -thought were magic that he was supposed to be -in league with the devil, and so he was put in -prison. Bacon was the wisest man of his time, -but he was ahead of his time. If he were living -now he would be honored as a great scientist and -inventor. But people thought he knew <i>too</i> much—that -any one who knew as much as he did was -wicked—that he was prying into God’s secrets, -which God did not want any one to know.</p> - -<p>Others, however, give the credit or the blame -for the invention of gunpowder to a German -chemist named Schwarz. They say that one day -Schwarz was mixing some chemicals in an iron -bowl with an iron mixer called a <i>pestle</i>, such as -druggists use, when, all of a sudden, the mixture -exploded and shot the iron pestle right up -through the ceiling. Schwarz was much surprised; -he had had a narrow escape from being -killed; but this gave him an idea. Immediately -he set to work to think out a way to use the same -mixture in battle to shoot iron pestles at the -enemy. Some people think it would have been -far better if the pestle had struck and killed Mr. -Schwarz at the time, and if his secret had been -destroyed with him. We might then never have -had the terrible wars and the killing of millions -of human beings which have resulted from this -discovery. It was quite a while, however, before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326"></span> -gunpowder was made strong enough to do -much damage. In fact, it was over a hundred -years before fighting with guns entirely took the -place of fighting with bows and arrows.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig71.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_327"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c57">57</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Thelon Gest Wart Hate Verwas</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Is this</span> another Latin heading?</p> - -<p>No, it’s English.</p> - -<p>Don’t you understand English?</p> - -<p>It was 1338, and Edward III was king of -England. Edward III wanted to rule France -as well as England. He said he was related to -the former king of France and had a better right -to the country than the one who was ruling. So -he started a war to take France, and the war he -started lasted more than a hundred years. So -this is known as the Hundred Years’ War and -it is:</p> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Longest War that Ever Was!</p> - - -<p>The English army sailed over from England -and landed in France. The first great battle was -fought at a little place called Crécy. The English -army was on foot and was made up chiefly -of the common people. The French army were -mostly knights clad in armor on horseback—the -society people.</p> - -<p>The French knights on horseback thought<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328"></span> -themselves much finer than the common English -soldiers who were on foot, as a man in a motor-car -is likely to look down on the man who is -walking.</p> - -<p>The English soldiers, however, used a weapon -called the <i>longbow</i>, which shot arrows with terrific -force, and they completely whipped the -French knights in spite of the fact that the -knights were nobles, were trained to be fighters, -rode on horses, and were protected by armor.</p> - -<p>Cannon were used by the English in this battle -for the first time. The cannon, however, did not -amount to much nor do very much harm. They -were so weak that they simply tossed the cannon-balls -at the enemy as one might throw a basketball -or football. They scared the horses of the -French but did little other damage. But this was -the beginning of what was before long to be the -end of knights and armor and feudalism.</p> - -<p>The battle of Crécy was only the beginning of -the Hundred Years’ War. The next year after -the battle of Crécy a horribly contagious disease -called the Black Death attacked the people of -Europe. It was like the plague in Athens in the -Age of Pericles, but the Black Death did not attack -just one city or country. It was supposed to -have started in Cathay, but it spread westward -until it reached Europe. There was no running -away from it. It spread far and wide over the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329"></span> -whole land and killed more human beings than -any war that has ever been. It was called Black -Death because black spots came out all over the -body of any one who caught it, and he was certain -to die within a few hours or a day or two. There -was no hope. No medicine had any effect. Many -people committed suicide just as soon as they -found they had the disease. Many died just -from fright, actually “scared to death.”</p> - -<p>It lasted two years, and millions upon millions -caught the disease. Half of the people of Europe -died of it. Whole towns were wiped out, -and in many places no one was left to bury the -dead. Dead bodies lay where they had fallen—on -the street, in the doorway, in the market-place.</p> - -<p>The crops in the fields went to waste, for there -was no one to gather them. Horses and cows -roamed over the country at will, for there was no -one to care for them. The plague attacked even -sailors at sea, and ships were found drifting about -on the water with not a soul alive left on board, -with not even one left to steer the ship.</p> - -<p>What if it had killed every last man, woman, -and child in the world! What then would have -been the future history of the world?</p> - -<p>But, as if there were not enough people dead -already, the Hundred Years’ War still went on -year after year. The soldiers who had fought at -Crécy had been dead for years. Their children<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330"></span> -had grown up, fought, and died; their grandchildren -had grown up, fought and died, and -their great-grandchildren had done the same; -and the English army was still fighting in -France. The French prince at that time was -very young and weak, and the French were almost -in despair—hopeless—because they had no -strong leader to help them drive out the English -after all these many years.</p> - -<p>Now, in a little French village there was living -a poor peasant girl, a shepherdess, called Joan -of Arc. As she watched her flocks of sheep, she -had wonderful visions. She heard voices calling -to her, telling her she was the one who must lead -the French armies and save France from England. -She went to the prince’s nobles and told -them her visions. But they did not put any faith -in her or her visions, and they did not believe she -was able to do the things she thought she could.</p> - -<p>To test her, however, they dressed up another -man as the prince and put him on the throne -while the prince stood at one side with the nobles. -Then they let Joan into the room. When Joan -entered the royal hall, she gave one look at the -man who was seated on the throne and dressed up -as prince. Then without hesitating she walked -directly past him and went straight to the <i>real</i> -prince. Before him she knelt and said, “I have -come to lead your armies to victory.” The prince<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331"></span> -at once gave her his flag and a suit of armor, and -she rode out at the head of all the army and had -him crowned king.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig72.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Joan of Arc at the stake.</p> -</div> - -<p>The French soldiers took heart again. It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_332"></span> -seemed as if the Lord had sent an angel to lead -them, and they fought so hard and so bravely that -they won many battles.</p> - -<p>The English soldiers, however, thought that it -was not the Lord but the devil who had sent Joan -and that she was not an angel but a witch, and -they were very much afraid of her. At last, the -English made her prisoner. The French king, -whom she had saved, in spite of all she had done -for him, didn’t even try to save her. Now that -things were going his way, he didn’t like to have -a woman running things, and the soldiers didn’t -like to have a woman ordering them around, and -they were glad to be rid of her.</p> - -<p>The English tried her for a witch, judged her -guilty of being a witch, and then they burned her -alive at the stake.</p> - -<p>But Joan seemed to have brought the French -good luck, to have put new life into their armies, -for from that time on, France increased in -strength, and after more than a hundred years of -fighting at last drove the English out of the -country. In one hundred years of fighting hundreds -of thousands of people had been wounded -and crippled and blinded and killed, and after it -all England was no better off, just the same as -when she started—all the fighting all for nothing.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_333"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c58">58</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Print and Powder<br /> -or<br /> -Off with the Old<br /> -On with the New</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Up to</span> this time there was not a printed book in -the whole world. There was not a newspaper. -There was not a magazine. All books had to be -written by hand. This, of course, was extremely -slow and expensive, so there were very few of -even these handwritten books in all the world. -Only kings and very wealthy people had any -books at all. Such a book as the Bible, for instance, -cost almost as much as a house, and so no -poor people could own such a thing. Even when -there was a Bible in a church, it was so valuable -that it had to be chained to keep it from being -stolen. Think of stealing a Bible!</p> - -<p>But about 1440 a man thought of a new way to -make books. First he put together wooden letters -called type, and then smeared them with -ink. Then he pressed paper against this inky -type and made a copy. After the type was once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_334"></span> -set up, thousands of copies could be made quickly -and easily. This, as you of course know, was -printing. It all seems so simple, the wonder is -that no one had thought of printing thousands of -years before.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig73.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Gutenberg at his press.<br /> -Comparing a printed sheet with a manuscript.</p> -</div> - -<p>It is generally believed that a German named -Gutenberg made the first printed books about -1440, so he is called the inventor of printing. -And what do you suppose was the first book ever -printed? Why, the book that people thought -the most important book in the world—the Bible. -This Bible was -not printed in -English, however, -nor in German, -but in -Latin!</p> - -<p>The first book -printed in English -was made in -England by an -English man -named Caxton, -and you would -never guess what the English book was. It was -a description of the game of chess, the game that -the Arabs had invented.</p> - -<p>Before this time few people, even though they -were kings and princes, knew how to read, because -there were no books to teach them how to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_335"></span> -read and few books for them to read if they had -learned, and so what was the use of learning.</p> - -<p>You can see how difficult it must have been -for people throughout the Middle Ages, without -books or newspapers or anything printed, to learn -what was going on in the world, or to learn about -anything that one wanted to know.</p> - -<p>But, now that printing had been invented, all -that was changed. Story-books and school-books -and other books could be made in large numbers -and very cheaply. People who never before were -able to have any books could now own them. -Every one could now read all the famous stories -of the world and learn about geography, about -history, about anything he wanted to know. So -the invention of printing was soon to change -everything.</p> - -<p>The Hundred Years’ War had at last come to -an end soon after the invention of printing.</p> - -<p>At the same time something else that was a -thousand years old came to an end.</p> - -<p>The Mohammedans whom we haven’t heard -of for a long time, had tried to capture Constantinople -in the seventh century, but had been -stopped, as I told you, by tar and pitch that the -Christians poured down on them.</p> - -<p>But in 1458 the Mohammedans once again attacked -Constantinople. This time, however, the -Mohammedans were Turks, and they didn’t try -to batter down the walls of the city with arrows.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336"></span> -They used gunpowder and cannon. Cannon had -been used at Crécy more than a hundred years -before, but they had done little damage. Since -that time, however, they had become greatly improved. -Against the power of this new invention -the walls of Constantinople could not stand, and -finally the city fell. So Constantinople became -Turkish, and the magnificent Church of Santa -Sophia, which Justinian had built a thousand -years before, was turned into a Mohammedan -mosque. This was the end of all that was left of -the old Roman Empire—the other half of which -had fallen in 476.</p> - -<p>Ever after the downfall of Constantinople in -1453, wars were fought with gunpowder. No -longer were castles of any use. No longer were -knights in armor of any use. No longer were -bows and arrows of any use—against this new -kind of fighting. There was a new sound in the -world, the sound of cannon-firing: “Boom! -boom! boom!” Before this, battles had not been -very noisy except for shouts of the victors and -the moans of the dying. So 1453 is called the -end of the Middle Ages, and the beginning of the -New Ages that were to follow.</p> - -<p>Gunpowder had put an end to the Middle -Ages. The invention of printing and that little -magic needle, the compass, did a great deal to -start the New Ages.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_337"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c59">59</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Sailor Who Found a New World</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">What</span> book do you like best?</p> - -<p>“Alice in Wonderland”?</p> - -<p>“Gulliver’s Travels”?</p> - -<p>One of the first books to be printed and one -that boys at that time liked best was</p> - -<p> -“The Travels of Marco Polo”<br /> -</p> - -<p>One of the boys who loved to read these stories -of those far-away countries of the East with their -gold and precious jewels was an Italian named -Christopher Columbus. Christopher Columbus -was born in the city of Genoa, which is in the top -of the “boot.” Like a great many other boys -who were born in seaport towns, he had heard the -sailors on the wharves tell yarns of their travels, -and his greatest ambition in life was to go off to -sea and visit all the wonderful lands of which he -had read and been told. At last the chance came, -and, though only fourteen years old, he made his -first voyage. After that, Columbus made many -other voyages and grew to be a middle-aged -man, but he never got to these countries he had -read about in “The Travels of Marco Polo.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_338"></span></p> - -<p>Many sea-captains of that time were trying -to find a shorter way to India than the long and -tiresome one that Marco Polo had taken. They -felt sure there was a shorter way by sea and now -that they had the compass to guide them they -dared to go far off searching for such a waterway.</p> - -<p>By this time many books had already been -printed. Some of these books on travel were -written by the old Greeks and Romans and declared -what was thought to be a crazy notion -that the world was not flat but round. Columbus -had read these books and he said to himself that -if the world is really round, one should be able -to reach India by sailing toward the west. It -should be much easier and shorter that way than -if one took a boat to the end of the Mediterranean -Sea and then went over land for thousands -of miles the way Marco Polo had gone.</p> - -<p>The more Columbus thought of the idea, the -surer he was that this could be done and the more -eager he was to get a ship to try out his idea. -But every one laughed at him and his notion -as foolish. Of course, being only a sailor, he -had no money to buy or hire a ship in which to -make the trial and he could find no one to help -him.</p> - -<p>So first Columbus went to the little country -called Portugal. Portugal was right on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_339"></span> -ocean’s edge. It was to be expected then that the -people of Portugal would be famous sailors, and -they <i>were</i>—as famous as the Phenicians had been -of old. So Columbus thought they might be interested -and help. Besides, the king of Portugal -was extremely interested in discovering new -lands.</p> - -<p>But the king of Portugal thought, as the others -did, that Columbus was foolish and would have -nothing to do with him. The king wanted to -make quite sure, however, that there was nothing -in Columbus’s idea. Furthermore, if there were -any new land, he wanted to be the first to discover -it himself. So he secretly sent some of his sea-captains -off to explore. After a while they one -and all returned and stated that they had been as -far as it was safe to go and that positively there -was nothing at all to the west but water, water, -water.</p> - -<p>So Columbus in disgust then went to the next -country—Spain—which at that time was ruled -by King Ferdinand and his queen Isabella. King -Ferdinand and Queen Isabella were just then too -busy to listen to Columbus. They were fighting -with the Mohammedans, who had been in their -country ever since 732, when, you remember, they -got as far north as France. But at last Ferdinand -and Isabella succeeded in driving the Mohammedans -out of their country, and then Queen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_340"></span> -Isabella became very much interested in Columbus’s -ideas and plans and finally promised to help -him. She even said she would sell her jewels, if -necessary, to give him the money to buy ships. -But she didn’t have to do this. So Columbus -with her help was able to buy three little ships -named the <i>Niña</i>, <i>Pinta</i>, and <i>Santa María</i>. So -small were these three boats that nowadays we -would have been afraid to go even out of sight -of shore in them.</p> - -<p>At last everything was ready, and Columbus -set sail from the Spanish seaport of Palos with -about a hundred sailors. Many of the sailors -were criminals, who had been given a choice between -prison and this dangerous voyage. They -chose to risk their lives rather than to stay in -prison. Directly toward the setting sun into the -broad Atlantic, Columbus steered. Past the -Canary Islands he sailed, on and on, day and -night, always in the same direction.</p> - -<p>See if you can get this idea—the idea that -every one had at that time—that all there was of -the world was what we have so far been studying -about. Try to forget that you ever heard of -North and South America. They, of course, -knew of no such lands. Try to think of Columbus -on deck scanning the waves in the daytime or -peering off in the darkness at night, hoping -sooner or later to sight, not a new land—he -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_342"></span>wasn’t looking for a new land—but for China or -India.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig74.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Columbus arguing with his crew.</p> -</div> - -<p>Columbus had been out for over a month, and -his sailors began to get worried. It seemed impossible -that any sea could be so vast, so endless, -with nothing in sight before, behind, or on either -side. They began to think about returning. -They began to be afraid they would never reach -home. They begged Columbus to turn back. -They said it was crazy to go any farther; there -was nothing but water ahead of them, and they -could go on forever and ever, and there would -never be anything else.</p> - -<p>Columbus argued with them, but it was no use. -Finally he promised to turn back if they did not -reach something very soon. As the days went -on still with nothing new, the sailors plotted to -throw Columbus overboard at night and so get -rid of him. They would then sail home and tell -those back in Spain that Columbus had fallen -overboard by accident.</p> - -<p>At last, when all had given up hope except -Columbus, a sailor saw a branch with berries on -it floating in the water. Where could it have -come from? Then birds were seen flying—birds -that never get very far away from shore. Then -one dark night, more than two months after they -had set sail, they saw far off ahead a twinkling -light. Probably no little light ever gave so much<span class="pagenum" id="Page_343"></span> -joy in the world. A light meant only one thing—human -beings—and land, land—land at last! -And then on the morning of October 12, 1492, -the three boats ran ashore. Columbus leaped -out, and falling on his knees, offered up a prayer -of thanks to God. He then raised the Spanish -flag, took possession of the land in the name of -Spain, and called it “San Salvador,” which means -in Spanish, “Holy Saviour.”</p> - -<p>Now, Columbus thought this land was India -that he had at last reached, though of course we -know now that a great continent, North and -South America, blocked his way to India. In -fact, it was only a little island off the coast of -America where he had landed.</p> - -<p>Strange men were the human beings he saw -there. Their bodies and faces were painted, and -they had feathers in their hair. As Columbus -thought they must be people of India, he called -them Indians, the name they still bear.</p> - -<p>Columbus went on to other islands near-by; but -he did not find any gold nor precious stones such -as he had expected, or the wonders that Marco -Polo had described; and as he had been away so -long, he started back again to Spain the way he -had come. With him he took several Indians to -show the people at home, and also some tobacco, -which he found them smoking and which no one -had even seen or heard of before.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_344"></span></p> - -<p>When he at last reached home safely again, -people were overjoyed at seeing him and hearing -of his discoveries. Everyone was wildly excited—but -only for a while. People soon began to -say it was nothing for Columbus to have sailed -westward until land was found, that anyone could -do that.</p> - -<p>One day when Columbus was dining with the -king’s nobles, who were trying to belittle what -he had done, he took an egg and, passing it -around the table, asked each one if he could stand -it on end. No one could. When it came back -to Columbus, he set it down just hard enough to -crack the end slightly and flatten it. Of course, -<i>then</i> it stood up. “You see,” said Columbus, -“it’s very easy if you only know how. So it’s -easy enough to sail west until you find land after -I have done it once and shown you how.”</p> - -<p>Columbus made three other voyages to America, -four in all, but he never knew he had discovered -a new world. Once he landed in South -America, but he never reached North America -itself.</p> - -<p>As Columbus did not bring back any of the -precious jewels or wonderful things that those in -Spain expected him to, people lost interest in -him. Some were so spiteful and jealous of his -success that they even charged him with wrongdoing, -and King Ferdinand sent out a man to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_345"></span> -take his place. Columbus was put in chains and -shipped home. Although he was promptly set -free, Columbus kept the chains as a reminder of -men’s ingratitude and asked to have them buried -with him. After this, Columbus made one other -voyage, but when at last he died in Spain he was -alone and almost forgotten even by his friends. -What an end for the man who had given a new -continent to the world and changed all history!</p> - -<p>Of all the men of whom we have heard, whether -kings or queens, princes or emperors, none can -compare with Columbus. Alexander the Great, -Julius Cæsar, Charlemagne, were all killers. -They took away. But Columbus <i>gave</i>. He gave -us a new world. Without money or friends or -luck, he stuck to his ideas through long years of -discouragement. Although made fun of and -called a crank and even treated as a criminal he -never</p> - -<p class="pad7"> -gave up,<br /> -<span class="pad6b">gave out, nor</span><br /> -<span class="pad6d">gave in!</span> -</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_346"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c60">60</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Fortune-Hunters</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> New World had no name.</p> - -<p>It was simply called the “New World,” as one -might speak of the “new baby.”</p> - -<p>It had to have a name, but what should it be?</p> - -<p>Of course if we could have chosen the name, -we should have called it “Columbia” after Columbus. -But another name was selected, and this -is how it happened.</p> - -<p>An Italian named Americus made a voyage to -the southern part of the New World. Then he -wrote a book about his travels. People read his -book and began to speak of the new land that -Americus described as Americus’s country. And -so the New World came to be called America -after Americus, although in all fairness it should -have been named after Columbus; don’t you -think so? Children sometimes have names given -them which they would like to change when they -grow up. But then it is too late. So we often -speak and sing of our country as Columbia, although -that is not the name on the map. And -that is why we call a great many cities and towns -and districts and streets Columbus or Columbia.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_347"></span></p> - -<p>After Columbus had shown that there was no -danger of falling off the world and that there -really was land off to the west, almost every one -who had been hunting for India now rushed off -in the direction Columbus had taken. “Copy -cats!” A genius starts something; then thousands -follow—imitate. Every sea-captain who -could do so now hurried off to the west to look -for new countries, and so many discoveries were -made that this time is known as the Age of Discovery. -Most of these men were trying to get -to India. They were after gold and jewels and -spices, which they thought they would find in -India in great quantities.</p> - -<p>Now we can understand why people might go -long distances in search of gold and precious -stones, but they also went after spices—such as -cloves and pepper—and you may wonder why -they were so eager to get spices? You yourself -may not like pepper very much, and you may dislike -cloves. But in those days they didn’t have -refrigerators filled with ice, and meats and other -foods were often spoiled. We would have -thought such food unfit to eat. But they covered -it with spices to kill the bad flavor, and then -food could be eaten that otherwise one could not -have swallowed. Spices didn’t grow in Europe—only -in the far east. So people paid big prices -to get them, and that is why men made long journeys -after them.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_348"></span></p> - -<p>A Portuguese sailor named Vasco da Gama -was one of those who were trying to get to India -all the way by water. He did not, however, -sail <i>west</i> as Columbus had done, but <i>south</i> down -around Africa. Others had tried before to get -to India by going south and around Africa, -but none had gone more than part way. Many -frightful stories were told by those who had -tried but had at last turned back. These stories -were like the tales of “Sindbad the Sailor.” -They said that the sea became boiling hot; they -said that there was a magnetic mountain which -would pull out the iron bolts in the ship, and the -ship would then fall to pieces; they said that there -was a whirlpool into which a ship would be irresistibly -drawn—down, down, down to the bottom; -they said there were sea-serpents, monsters -so large that they could swallow a ship at one -gulp. The southern point of Africa was called -the Cape of Storms, and the very name seemed -to be bad luck, so that it was changed to Cape of -Good Hope.</p> - -<p>In spite of all such scary stories, Vasco da -Gama kept on his way south. Finally, after -many hardships and many adventures, he passed -round the Cape of Good Hope. Then he sailed -on to India, got the spices that then were so -highly prized, and returned safely home. This -was in 1497, five years after Columbus’s first -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_350"></span>voyage, and Vasco da Gama was the first one to -go to India by water. Spain had the honor of -discovering a new land. Portugal had the honor -of first reaching India by water.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<a href="images/fig75big.jpg"> -<img src="images/fig75.jpg" alt="" /> -</a> -<p class="caption">15ᵗͪ Century Map of Africa</p> -</div> - -<p>England also was to have the honor of making -discoveries. In the same year that Vasco da -Gama reached India, a man named Cabot set sail -from England on a voyage of discovery. His -first trip was a failure, but he tried again and -finally came to Canada and sailed along the coast -of what is now the United States. These countries -he claimed for England, but he returned -home, and England did nothing more about his -discoveries until about a hundred years later.</p> - -<p>Another Spaniard named Balboa explored -the central part of America. He was on the little -strip of land that joined North and South America -which we now call the Isthmus of Panama. -Suddenly he came to another great ocean. This -strange new ocean he named the South Sea, for -although the Isthmus of Panama connects North -and South America, it bends so that one looks -<i>south</i> over the ocean.</p> - -<p>Then came the longest trip of all. A Portuguese -named Magellan wanted to find a way to -India <i>through</i> the New World, for he thought -there must be some opening through which he -might pass this new land that blocked the way. -He tried to get his own country to help him.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_351"></span> -But again Portugal made the same mistake she -had made in the case of Columbus. She would -not listen to Magellan. So Magellan went to -Spain, and Spain gave him five ships.</p> - -<p>With these five ships Magellan sailed off across -the sea. When he reached South America he -sailed south along the shore trying to find a passage -through the land. One place after another -seemed to be the passage for which he was looking, -but each one turned out to be nothing but -a river’s mouth. Then one of his ships was -wrecked, and only four were left.</p> - -<p>With these four ships he still kept on down the -coast until he finally reached what is now Cape -Horn. Through the dangerous opening there, -since called after him the Straits of Magellan, -he worked his way. One ship deserted and went -back home the way it had come. Only three were -then left.</p> - -<p>With these three ships he at last came into the -great ocean on the other side, the same ocean that -Balboa had called the South Sea. This Magellan -named the “Pacific,” which means “calm,” because -after all the storms they had had it seemed -so calm and quiet. But food and water became -scarce and finally gave out. Magellan’s men suffered -terribly from thirst and hunger and even -ate the rats that are always to be found on shipboard. -Many of his men were taken sick and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_352"></span> -died. Still he kept on, though he had lost most of -the crew with which he had set out. At last he -reached what are now the Philippine Islands, -where the people were savages. Here he and his -men got into a battle with the natives, and Magellan -was killed. There were now not enough -men left to sail three ships, and so one of these -was burned, and only two were then left.</p> - -<div class="figleft"> -<img src="images/fig76.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Magellan’s Victoria.<br /> (From an old print.)</p> -</div> - -<p>Two of the ships, -however, out of the five -with which Magellan -had started out, still -kept on. Then one of -these was lost, disappeared, -and was never -heard of again, and -only a single ship -named the <i>Victoria</i>, remained. It seemed as if -not one ship, not one man, would be left to tell -the tale.</p> - -<p>Around Africa the <i>Victoria</i> struggled. Magellan’s -men, worn out with hunger and cold and -hardships, still battled against wind and storm. -At last a leaky and broken ship with only eighteen -men sailed into the harbor from which it had -set out more than three years before. And so the -<i>Victoria—Victory!</i>—Magellan’s ship, but without -the heroic Magellan—was the first ship to sail -completely round the world. This voyage settled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_353"></span> -forever the argument that had been going -on for ages, whether the earth was round or flat, -for a ship had actually sailed around the world! -And yet in spite of this proof for many more -years thereafter there were people who still -would not believe the world was round, and even -to-day there are people who say the world is flat, -but now we call them <i>cranks</i>.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig77.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_354"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c61">61</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Land of Enchantment or the Search<br /> -for Gold and Adventure</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">All</span> sorts of marvelous tales were told about -the wealth and wonders of the New World.</p> - -<p>It was said that somewhere in the New World -there was a <i>fountain of youth</i>, and that if you -bathed in it or drank of its water, you would -become young again.</p> - -<p>It was said that somewhere in the New World -there was a city called El Dorado built of solid -gold.</p> - -<p>So every one who liked adventure and could -get enough money together went off in search of -these things that might make him famous or -healthy, wealthy or wise, or forever young.</p> - -<p>One of these men was Ponce de León. Ponce -de León was looking for the <i>fountain of youth</i>. -While searching for this life-giving water, he discovered -Florida. But instead of finding the -fountain of youth, he lost his life in fighting with -the Indians.</p> - -<p>Another one of these men was de Soto. He -was searching for El Dorado, the city of gold.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_355"></span> -While doing so he discovered the longest river -in the world—the Mississippi. But instead of -finding El Dorado, de Soto was taken sick with -fever and died. Now, the Spaniards, to make the -Indians fear them, had said that de Soto was a -god and could not die. So in order to cover up -the fact that de Soto had actually died his men -buried him at night in the river he had discovered. -They then told the Indians that he had -gone on a trip to heaven and would presently -return.</p> - -<p>The central part of America was called Mexico. -Here lived at that time a tribe of Indians -known as Aztecs. These Aztecs were more civilized -than the other Indians that the explorers -had come across. They did not live in tents but -in houses. They built fine temples and palaces. -They made roads and aqueducts, something like -those of the Romans. They had enormous treasures -of silver and gold. And yet the Aztecs worshiped -idols and sacrificed human beings to them. -Their king was a famous chief named Montezuma.</p> - -<p>A Spaniard named Cortés was sent to conquer -these Aztecs. He landed on the shore of Mexico -and burned his ships so that his sailors and soldiers -could not turn back. The Aztecs thought -these white-faced people were gods who had come -down from heaven and that their ships with their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_356"></span> -white sails were white-winged birds that had -borne them. They had never seen horses, some -of which the Spaniards had brought over across -the water, and they were astonished at what -seemed to them terrible beasts that the white -men rode. When the Spaniards fired their cannons, -the Aztecs were terrified. They thought -it was thunder and lightning that the Spaniards -had let loose.</p> - -<p>Cortés moved on toward the Aztec capital, -the City of Mexico, which was built on an island -in the middle of a lake. The natives he met on -the way fought desperately, but as they had only -such weapons as men used in the Stone and -Bronze Ages, they were no match against the -guns and cannons of the Spaniards.</p> - -<p>Montezuma, their chief, wishing to make -friends with these white gods, sent Cortés rich -gifts, cart-loads of gold, and when Cortés reached -the capital city Montezuma treated him as a -guest instead of an enemy and entertained him -and could not do enough for him. Cortés told -Montezuma all about the Christian religion and -tried to make him a Christian also, but Montezuma -thought his own gods just as good as the -Christian God, and he would not change. Then -suddenly Cortés took Montezuma prisoner, and -terrible fighting began. At last Montezuma was -killed, and Cortés of course succeeded in conquering<span class="pagenum" id="Page_357"></span> -Mexico, for though the Aztecs fought -desperately and bravely, shot and shell were too -much for them.</p> - -<p>In Peru in South America was still another -tribe of civilized Indians even more wealthy than -the Aztecs. They were called Incas, and it was -said that their cities were paved with gold.</p> - -<p>Another Spaniard named Pizarro went to -Peru to conquer it as Cortés had conquered Mexico. -Pizarro told the ruler, who was called the -Inca, that the pope had given the country to -Spain. The Inca had never heard of the pope -and must have wondered what the pope had to do -with Peru and how he could give it away. So -naturally the Inca would not give up his country -to Spain. Then Pizarro <i>took</i> it away. He had -but a few hundred men, but he had cannon, and -of course the Incas could not stand out against -cannon.</p> - -<p>France and other countries of Europe also -sent out explorers to conquer parts of America, -and then missionaries to teach the Indians the -Christian religion, but these you will hear more -about when you study American History.</p> - -<p>Many of the explorers were really pirates, -even worse pirates than the Norsemen who raided -England and France, because they murdered -people who were without equal weapons to fight -back. The excuse they often gave for doing so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_358"></span> -was that they wanted to make the natives Christians. -No wonder that the natives did not think -much of the Christian religion if it taught murder -of people who could not defend themselves. -The Mohammedans made converts with the -sword, but the Christians made converts with -shot and shell.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig78.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_359"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c62">62</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Born Again</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Here</span> is a long word for you: it is Renaissance.</p> - -<p>It means: born again.</p> - -<p>Of course, nothing can be born again. But -people call this time we have now reached the -Renaissance, the born-again time. This is the -reason why they call it that.</p> - -<p>You remember the Age of Pericles, don’t you? -when such beautiful sculptures and buildings -were made in Athens. Well, in the fifteen hundreds -not every one was rushing off to the New -World in search of adventure. While the discoveries -that I have told you about were taking -place, there were living and working in Italy -some of the greatest artists the world has ever -known.</p> - -<p>Architects built beautiful buildings something -like the old Greek and Roman temples. Sculptors -made statues that were almost as beautiful -as those of Phidias. People began to take an -interest once more in the old Greek writers, -whose books were now printed for every one to -read. It seemed almost as if Athens in the Age<span class="pagenum" id="Page_360"></span> -of Pericles had been born again. So that is -why people speak of this time as the Renaissance.</p> - -<p>One of the greatest of these artists of the Renaissance -was a man named Michelangelo. -But Michelangelo was not just a painter; he -was a sculptor, an architect, and a poet as well. -Michelangelo thought nothing of spending years -working on any statue or painting that he was -doing. But when he had finished he had done -something that people now go from all over the -world to see.</p> - -<p>Nowadays, sculptors first model a statue in -clay and then copy it in stone or cast it in bronze, -but Michelangelo did not do this. He cut his -figures directly out of the stone, without making -a model first. It was as if he saw the figure imprisoned -in the stone and then cut away the part -that closed the figure in.</p> - -<p>A large block of marble had been spoiled by -another sculptor. Michelangelo saw a figure of -David <i>in</i> it, and, setting to work, he cut this -young athlete <i>out</i>.</p> - -<p>He made also a statue of Moses sitting down. -It is now in a church in Rome, and when you -walk up to it it is so lifelike that it seems as if -you were in the presence of the prophet Moses -himself. The guide tells you that when Michelangelo -had finished this statue of Moses he was -so thrilled by the figure he had created that, feeling<span class="pagenum" id="Page_361"></span> -it must come to life, he struck it on the knee -with his hammer and commanded as he did so, -“Stand Up”! And then the guide shows you a -crack in the marble to prove that the story is -true!</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig79.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Michelangelo at work.</p> -</div> - -<p>The pope wanted Michelangelo to paint the -ceiling of his own private chapel in Rome. This -was called the Sistine Chapel. At first Michelangelo -didn’t want to do the painting. He told -the pope he was a sculptor and not a painter. -But the pope insisted, and Michelangelo at last -gave in. Once having agreed to do the work, -however, Michelangelo gave himself heart and -soul to it.</p> - -<p>For four years he lived in this room—the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_362"></span> -Sistine Chapel—and hardly ever left it day -or night. Beneath the ceiling, he built himself -a platform, and, lying on this scaffold, he -would read poetry and the Bible and work -“as the spirit moved him.” Locking himself in, -he would let no one enter, not even the pope himself. -He wanted to be alone and to be left alone.</p> - -<p>The pope, however, felt that he was a privileged -character, and one day, when he found -the door left open, he came into the chapel to see -how things were getting along. Michelangelo, -thereupon, accidentally dropped some of his -tools, and they just barely missed hitting the -pope on the head. The pope was very angry, -but he never returned uninvited again.</p> - -<p>People now go from all over the world to see -this ceiling, which only can be viewed comfortably -by lying on the floor or by looking at it in -a mirror.</p> - -<p>Michelangelo lived to be nearly ninety years -old, yet he had very little to do with people. He -could not stand being bored by them. So he lived -apart in the company of the gods and angels that -he painted.</p> - -<p>Raphael was another famous Italian artist. -He lived at the same time as Michelangelo. Raphael, -however, was just the opposite of Michelangelo -in most ways. Michelangelo liked to be -by himself. Raphael loved company. He was -very popular and constantly surrounded by his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_363"></span> -friends and admirers, for everybody loved him -on account of his genius and kindly nature. -Young men swarmed about him, drinking in his -words and humbly copying everything he did. -He had fifty or more pupils studying and painting -under him, and they went along with him -whenever he went out even for a walk. They -almost worshiped the ground he walked on.</p> - -<p>Raphael painted many beautiful pictures of -the Virgin Mary with the infant Jesus. These -were called Madonnas. Madonnas were almost -the only kind of pictures that artists -painted at that time. Raphael painted one -especially beautiful picture of Mary and the -Christ-child called the “Sistine Madonna.” This -is considered one of the twelve greatest pictures -in the world. It was painted for a little church, -but it is now in a great picture-gallery, where -it has a whole room to itself. No other pictures -are thought worthy to have a place close by.</p> - -<p>Raphael died when he was still a young man, -but he worked so hard and so continuously that -he has left a large number of pictures. He -painted only the very important parts of his -pictures himself—perhaps only the faces. The -body and hands and clothing he usually left to -be painted by his pupils. They were glad to -be allowed to do even a finger of a painting on -which their master had worked.</p> - -<p>Michelangelo’s paintings were strong and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_364"></span> -forcible as a man is supposed to be. Raphael’s -paintings were sweet and lovely and graceful, -as a woman is supposed to be.</p> - -<p>Leonardo da Vinci is another great artist who -lived at this time. He was left-handed, yet he -could do any number of things exceptionally -well. He would be called a jack of all trades, -but unlike most jacks of all trades, he was good -at all. He was an artist, an engineer, a poet, -and a scientist. It is said that he drew the first -map of the New World that had the name of -America on it. He made, however, very few -paintings, because he did so many things beside, -but these few pictures are extremely beautiful. -One of these is “The Last Supper.” It -is considered, as is the “Sistine Madonna,” one -of the twelve greatest paintings in the world. -Unfortunately, it was painted directly on a -plastered wall, and in the course of time much -of the plaster with the paint has peeled off, so -that there is little now left of the original -painting.</p> - -<p>Leonardo usually painted his women smiling. -One of his most famous paintings is the picture -of a woman called “Mona Lisa.” She has a -smile that is called “quizzical.” You can hardly -tell whether she is smiling <i>at</i> you or <i>with</i> you.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_365"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c63">63</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Christians Quarrel</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Some</span> people say young boys and girls can’t -understand this chapter. They say it is too difficult. -But I want to see if it is.</p> - -<p>Up to this time, as I have told you before, -there had been only one Christian religion—the -Catholic. There was no Episcopalian, nor Methodist, -nor Baptist, nor Presbyterian, nor any -other denomination. All were just Christians.</p> - -<p>But in the sixteenth century some people began -to think that changes should be made in -the Catholic religion.</p> - -<p>Others thought changes should not be made.</p> - -<p>Some said it was all right as it was.</p> - -<p>Others said it wasn’t all right as it was. So -a quarrel started.</p> - -<p>This is the way the trouble began: The pope -was building a great church called St. Peter’s in -Rome. It took the place of the old church that -Constantine had built on the spot where St. -Peter was supposed to have been crucified head -down. The pope wanted it to be the largest -and finest church in the world, for Christ had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_366"></span> -said, “Thou art Peter, and upon this rock -[Peter means rock in Latin] I will build my -church....” So the Church of St. Peter’s was -to be the Capitol of the Christian religion. Both -Michelangelo and Raphael had worked on the -plans for the new church. In order to get -marble and stone and other materials for this -Church of St. Peter, the pope did as others -before him had done; he tore down other buildings -in Rome and used their stone for the new -church.</p> - -<p>But besides all this the pope needed an enormous -amount of money to build such a magnificent -church as he had planned. So he started -to collect from the people. Now, there was a -man in Germany named Martin Luther who -was a monk and a teacher of religion in a college. -Martin Luther thought that not only this -but also other things in the Catholic Church -were not right. So he made a list of ninety-five -things that he thought were not right and nailed -them up on the church door in the town where -he lived, and he preached against doing these -things. The pope sent Luther an order, but -Luther made a bonfire and burned it publicly. -Many took sides with Luther, and before long -there was a great body of people who had left -the Catholic Church and no longer obeyed the -pope.</p> - -<p>The pope called on the king of Spain to help<span class="pagenum" id="Page_367"></span> -in this quarrel with Luther. The reason he -called on him was this: The king of Spain was -Charles V, the grandson of the Ferdinand and -Isabella who had helped Columbus. He was -not only a good Catholic but the most powerful -ruler in Europe. The Spanish explorers had -discovered different parts of America, and so -Charles was owner of a large part of the New -World. But he was emperor not only of these -Spanish settlements in America but of Austria -and of Germany as well. So it was quite natural -that the pope should go to Charles for help.</p> - -<p>Charles commanded Luther to come to a city -named Worms to be tried. He promised -Luther that no harm would be done him, and so -Luther went. When Luther arrived at Worms, -Charles ordered him to take back all he had said. -Luther refused to do so. Some of Charles’s -nobles said Luther should be burned at the stake. -But Charles, as he had promised, let him go -and did not punish him for his belief. Luther’s -friends were afraid, though, that other Catholics -might do him harm. They knew Luther -would take no care of himself, and so they themselves -took him prisoner and kept him shut up -for over a year, so that no one could harm him. -While Luther was in prison he translated the -Bible into German; it was the first time that the -Bible had been written in that language.</p> - -<p>The people who protested against what the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_368"></span> -pope did were called Protest-ants, and those -Christians who are not Roman Catholics are -still called Protestants to-day. The time when -these changes were made in the Catholic form -of worship was called the Re-form-ation, as the -old religion was <i>re-formed</i>.</p> - -<p>Now, you may be a Catholic and your best -friend may not be a Catholic, but that makes -no difference in your friendship. But at that -time those who were Catholics were deadly -enemies of those who were not. Each side was -sure it alone was right and the other side was -wrong. Each side fought for the things it -thought were right, fought the other side as -furiously and madly and bitterly as if the other -side were scoundrels and devils. Friends and -relatives murdered each other because they -thought differently about religion, and yet all -were supposed to be Christians.</p> - -<p>Charles was greatly worried and troubled by -the religious quarrels and other difficulties in -his vast empire. He became sick and tired of -being emperor and of having to settle all the -many problems he had to solve. He wanted to -be free to do other things that he was more interested -in. Being king did not mean being -able to do whatever you wanted, as some people -think. So Charles did what few rulers have -ever done voluntarily: he resigned—“abdicated,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_369"></span> -as it is called—and gave up his throne -to his son, who was named Philip II.</p> - -<p>Then Charles, glad to be rid of all the cares -of state, went to live in a monastery. There he -spent his time doing what he liked—what do -you suppose?—making mechanical toys and -watches—until he died!</p> - -<p>Now, the king of England at this time, when -Charles was king of Spain, was Henry VIII. -His last name was Tudor. So many kings had -first names which were alike that such names -were numbered to tell which Charles or Henry -was meant and how many of the same name -there had been before. Henry VIII was at -first also a strong Catholic, and the pope had -called him Defender of the Faith. But Henry -had a wife whom he wanted to get rid of because -she had no son. In order to get rid of -her so that he might marry again, he had to have -what was called a divorce, and the pope was -the only one who could give Henry a divorce. -Now, the pope at Rome was head of the Christian -Church of the whole world and said what -Christians could do or could not do, no matter -whether they were in Italy or Spain or England. -So Henry asked the pope to grant him -this divorce. The pope, however, told him he -would not give him a divorce.</p> - -<p>Now, Henry thought it was neither right nor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_370"></span> -proper that a man in another country, even if he -<i>were</i> pope, should say what could be done in -England. He himself was ruler, and he didn’t -intend to let any foreigner meddle in his affairs -or give him orders.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig80.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Henry VIII and his second wife Anne Boleyn.</p> -</div> - -<p>So then Henry said that he himself would be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_371"></span> -head of all the Christians in England; then he -could do as he wished without the pope’s permission. -So he made himself head, and then he -divorced his wife. All the churches in England -were now told by the king what they should do; -the pope no longer had anything to say in the -matter; the English churches obeyed the king, -not the pope. This made the second big break -in the Catholic Church.</p> - -<p>After this Henry VIII had five other wives, -six in all; not of course all at one time, for -Christians could only have one wife at a time. -His first wife he divorced, the second he beheaded, -the third died. The same thing happened -to his last three wives: the first he -divorced, the second he beheaded, and the third -died—but Henry died before she did.</p> - -<p>Is this too difficult for you to understand?</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_372"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c64">64</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">King Elizabeth</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">King</span> Henry VIII had two daughters.</p> - -<p>One was named Mary, and one was named -Elizabeth.</p> - -<p>Their last name was of course Tudor, the -same as their father’s, although we do not -usually think of kings and queens as having -last names.</p> - -<p>King Henry had a son, also, and he was first -to become king after his father died, for though -he was younger than his sisters, a boy was supposed -to be more fit to rule than a girl. But -he didn’t live long, and then Mary was the first -of the two sisters to become queen.</p> - -<p>“Mary, Mary, quite contrary” did not approve -what her father had done when he turned -against the pope and the Catholic Church. -Mary herself was a strong Catholic and ready -to fight for the pope and the Catholic Church. -In fact, she wanted to have all who were not -Catholics, all those who were Protestants, put -to death. She thought that all those who did -not believe as she did were wicked and should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_373"></span> -be killed. Like the queen in “Alice in Wonderland,” -she was always saying, “Off with his -head!” This seems to us very unchristian, but -in those days their ideas about such things were -peculiar. Mary had the heads of so many people -cut off that she was called Bloody Mary.</p> - -<p>Mary married a man who was just as strong -a Catholic as she and even “bloodier.” He was -not an Englishman, but a Spaniard, Philip II of -Spain, son of Charles V, who had abdicated.</p> - -<p>Philip II was much sterner than his father -had been. Philip tried to make those who were -Protestants, or who were supposed to be Protestants, -confess and give up Protestantism. If -they did not do so, they were tortured as the old -Christian martyrs had been tortured. This was -called the Inquisition. Those suspected of being -Protestants were tormented in all sorts of -horrible ways. Some were tied up in the air by -their hands, like a picture hung on the wall, until -they fainted from the pain or else confessed -what they were told to confess. Some were -stretched on a rack, their heads pulled one way -and their legs the opposite way, until their -bodies were nearly torn apart. Those who were -found guilty of being Protestants were killed -outright, burned to death, or put slowly to -death, so that they would suffer longer.</p> - -<p>The people whom Philip chiefly persecuted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_374"></span> -were the Dutch people in Holland. Holland -then belonged to his empire, and a great -many of the Dutch people had become Protestants.</p> - -<p>Now, there was a Dutchman called William -the Silent, because he talked little but did a -great deal. William was furious at the way -his people were treated. So he fought against -Philip and at last succeeded in making his -country free and setting up the Dutch Republic. -But William the Silent was murdered by -order of Philip.</p> - -<p>And that’s the kind of man Bloody Mary -had for a husband.</p> - -<p>After Mary Tudor died, her sister, Elizabeth -Tudor, became queen, though she ruled like a -king. Elizabeth had red hair and was very vain -and loved to be flattered. She had many lovers -but she never married, and as a woman who -never marries is called a virgin she was known -as the Virgin Queen.</p> - -<p>Elizabeth was a Protestant and was just as -bitter against the Catholics as her sister and -her sister’s husband had been against the Protestants.</p> - -<p>A relative of Elizabeth was queen of Scotland. -Scotland was a country north of England, -but at that time it was not a part of -England, and its queen was named Mary Stuart.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_375"></span> -Mary Stuart, Queen of Scots, was young, beautiful, -and fascinating; but she was a Catholic, -and so Elizabeth and she were enemies.</p> - -<p>Elizabeth heard that Mary Stuart was trying -to become queen of England as well as Scotland, -so she had her, although a relative, put in prison. -In prison Mary Stuart stayed for nearly twenty -years and was then at last put to death by Elizabeth’s -orders. It is hard for us to understand -how any one could have his own relatives killed -in this cold-blooded way, especially any one who -pretended to be a Christian, but in those times -it was a very common custom, as we see when -we hear of so many murders committed by the -rulers of the people. Philip II, the great champion -of the Catholics, made up his mind to punish -Elizabeth, his sister-in-law, for killing such -a good Catholic as Mary Stuart.</p> - -<p>So he got together a large navy of very fine -ships called the Spanish Armada. All Spain -was very proud of this fleet. It was boastfully -called the Invincible Armada; “invincible” -means “unconquerable.”</p> - -<p>This Invincible Armada set forth in 1588 to -conquer the English navy. Lined up in the -shape of a half-moon, the ships sailed grandly -toward England.</p> - -<p>The English fleet was composed only of little -boats. But instead of going out to meet the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_376"></span> -Armada in regular sea-battle as the Spaniards -expected, the English ships sailed out and attacked -the Spanish ships from behind and fought -one ship at a time. The English were better -fighters, and their small boats were quicker and -more easily managed. They could strike a blow -and get away before a Spanish ship could turn -around into position to fire. So gradually they -sank or destroyed the big Spanish boats one by -one.</p> - -<p>Then the English set some old boats afire -and started them drifting toward the Spanish -fleet. As all boats at that time were of course -made of wood, the Spaniards became frightened -at these burning piles drifting down upon them, -and part of the fleet sailed away. The rest tried -to get back to Spain by sailing the long way -round, north of Scotland. But a terrible storm -struck them, and almost all the boats were shipwrecked, -and thousands of dead bodies were -washed up on shore. So the great Spanish -Armada was destroyed, and with it ended the -power of Spain at sea. She was no longer the -great nation she had been.</p> - -<p>At the beginning of Elizabeth’s reign, the -largest and most powerful country in the world -was Spain; at the end of her reign it was England -that was the most powerful. Ever -since then her fleet, which King Alfred started<span class="pagenum" id="Page_377"></span> -far back, has been the largest, and the saying is, -“Britannia rules the waves.”</p> - -<p>People at that time thought it impossible for -a woman to rule as well as a man, but under -Elizabeth’s rule England in turn became the -leading country of Europe. Then people said -Elizabeth ruled <i>like</i> a man, that she had a man’s -brain, a man’s will. In fact they said she was -more man than woman—that she was a tomboy -grown up—that’s why I call her “King Elizabeth.”</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig81.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_378"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c65">65</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Age of Elizabeth</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">This</span> story is about the Age of Elizabeth.</p> - -<p>My father always told me that it was impolite -to talk about a lady’s age.</p> - -<p>But I’m not going to tell you how old Elizabeth -was, though she did live and reign a great -many years.</p> - -<p>I’m going to tell you some of the things that -happened during her long life, for the time -when she lived is what is called the Age of -Elizabeth.</p> - -<p>There was a young man named Raleigh living -when Elizabeth became queen. One day -when it was raining and the streets were muddy, -Elizabeth was about to cross the street. Raleigh -saw her and, to keep her from soiling her shoes, -ran forward, took off his beautiful velvet cape, -and threw it in the puddle where she was about -to step, so that she might cross upon it as upon -a carpet. The queen was greatly pleased with -this thoughtful and gentlemanly act, and she -made him a knight, so that he was then called -Sir Walter Raleigh, and ever after that he was -one of her special friends.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_379"></span></p> - -<p>Sir Walter Raleigh was much interested in -the new country of America. Cabot had claimed -a great part of it for England almost a hundred -years before, but England had done nothing -about it. Raleigh thought something should be -done about it; he thought English people should -settle there, so that other countries like Spain, -which had made so many settlements in America, -would not get ahead of England. So -Raleigh got together several companies of -English people and sent them over to an island -called Roanoke, which was just off the coast of -the present State of North Carolina. At that -time, however, almost the whole coast of the -United States as far north as Canada was called -Virginia. It had been named Virginia in honor -of the Virgin Queen Elizabeth.</p> - -<p>Some of these Roanoke colonists became discouraged -with the hardships they had to suffer -and so gave up and sailed back home again. -Those who remained all disappeared. Where? -No one knows. We think they must either -have been killed by the Indians or have died of -starvation. At any rate, not one was left to tell -the tale. Among these Roanoke colonists was -the first English child born in America—a girl, -who had been named Virginia Dare, for the -queen was very popular and a great many girls -were named Virginia after her.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_380"></span></p> - -<p>Some tobacco was brought back from Virginia, -and Sir Walter Raleigh learned to -smoke. This was such a strange and unknown -thing at that time that one day while he was -smoking a pipe a servant who saw smoke coming -out of his mouth thought he was on fire and, -running for a bucket of water, emptied it over -his head.</p> - -<p>Virginia is still famous for its tobacco. At -first tobacco was supposed to be very healthful, -for the Indians seemed to have very good health -and they smoked a great deal. Afterward, however, -in the next reign, King James so hated tobacco -that he wrote a book against it and forbade -it to be used.</p> - -<p>After Queen Elizabeth had died, Raleigh -was put in prison, for it was said he was plotting -against the new king James, who came -after Elizabeth. The prison where he was -placed was the Tower of London, the old castle -that William the Conqueror had built. Here -Raleigh was kept for thirteen long years, and -to pass the time away he wrote a “History of the -World.” But at last he was put to death as -many other great men were also.</p> - -<p>During the reign of Queen Elizabeth, there -lived the great writer of plays, the greatest -writer the world has ever known. This man was -William Shakspere.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_381"></span></p> - -<p>Shakspere’s father could not write his name. -Shakspere himself spent only six years at -school. As a boy he was rather wild, and he was -arrested for hunting deer in the forest of Sir -Thomas Lucy at Stratford.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig82.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Shakspere reading to Elizabeth.</p> -</div> - -<p>When still a boy Shakspere married a girl -older than himself named Anne Hathaway. -After he had been married a few years he left -her and their three children, left the little town -of Stratford, and went up to the great city of -London to seek his fortune. There Shakspere<span class="pagenum" id="Page_382"></span> -got a job working around a theater, holding the -horses of those who came to see the plays. Then -he got a chance to act in the theater, and he became -an actor, but he did not become a very -good one.</p> - -<p>In those days the theaters had no scenery. A -sign was put up to tell what the scene was supposed -to be. For instance, instead of forest -scenery, they would put up a sign saying, “This -is a forest,” or instead of a room scene a sign -saying “This is a room in an inn.” There were -no actresses. Men and boys took the parts of -both men and women.</p> - -<p>Shakspere was asked to change some of the -plays that had already been written, so that they -could be better acted. He did this very well; -then he started in to write plays himself. Usually -he took old stories and made them into plays, -but he did it so wonderfully well that they are -better than any plays that have ever been written -before or since.</p> - -<p>Though Shakspere left school when only -thirteen years old, he seems to have had a remarkable -knowledge of almost everything under -the sun. He shows in his plays that he knew -about history and law and medicine, and he -knew and used more words than almost any -writer who has ever lived. Indeed, some people -say that with the little education he had, he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_383"></span> -could not possibly have written the plays himself, -and so they have tried to prove that some -one else must have written them. Some of the -greatest of Shakspere’s plays are “Hamlet,” -“The Merchant of Venice,” “Romeo and Juliet,” -and “Julius Cæsar.”</p> - -<p>Shakspere made a good deal of money for -those times—almost a fortune. Then he left -London and went back to live in the little town -of Stratford where he was born. Here at last -he died and was buried in the village church. -People wanted to move his body to a greater and -handsomer place, to a famous church in London. -But some one, perhaps Shakspere himself, had -written a verse which was carved on his tombstone. -The last line of this verse said, “And -curst be he who moves my bones”; so they never -were moved, for no one dared to move them.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_384"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c66">66</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge"> -James the Servant<br /> -or<br /> -What’s In a Name? -</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">What</span> does your name mean?</p> - -<p> -If it is<br /> -<span class="pad6b">Baker or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6d">Miller or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6f">Taylor or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6g">Carpenter or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6h">Fisher or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6i">Cook,</span> -</p> - -<p>it means that at some time one of your ancestors -was a</p> - -<p> -<span class="pad6b">baker, or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6d">miller, or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6f">tailor, or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6g">carpenter, or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6h">fisher, or</span><br /> -<span class="pad6i">cook.</span> -</p> - -<p>If your name is Stuart or Steuart or Stewart -or Steward, it means that at some time one of -your ancestors was a steward for in olden days -people knew very little about spelling, and they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_385"></span> -spelled the same name in different ways. A -steward was a chief servant.</p> - -<p>There was a family named Stuart in Scotland, -and from chief servants or stewards they -had become rulers of the Scots. Mary Stuart, -whom Elizabeth had beheaded, was one of them.</p> - -<p>As Queen Elizabeth never married, she had -no children to rule after her. She was the last -of the Tudor family. So the English had to -look around for a new king, and they looked to -Scotland.</p> - -<p>Now, Scotland, as I have told you, was then -a separate country and not a part of England -as now. The son of Mary Stuart was then king -of Scotland. His name was James Stuart. As -he was related to the Tudors, the English invited -him to come and rule over them. He accepted -the invitation and was called James I. So we -speak of his reign and that of his children as the -reign of the Stuarts.</p> - -<p>The Stuart family reigned for about a hundred -years, that is, from 1600 to 1700, all except -about eleven years when England had no -king at all.</p> - -<p>Many times the English must have been very -sorry that they had ever invited James to be -their king, for he and the whole Stuart family -lorded it over the English people. They acted -as if they were “lords of creation,” and the English -people had to fight for their rights.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_386"></span></p> - -<p>A body of men called Parliament were supposed -to make the laws for the English people. -But James said that Parliament could do nothing -that he didn’t like, and if they weren’t very -careful he wouldn’t let them do any governing -at all. James said that whatever the king did -was right, that the king could do no wrong, that -God gave kings the right to do as they pleased -with their subjects. This was called the Divine -Right of Kings. Naturally the English people -would not put up with this sort of thing. Ever -since the time of King John they had insisted on -their own rights. The Tudors had often done -things that the people didn’t like, but the -Tudors were English. The Stuarts, however, -were Scotch, and the people looked on them as -foreigners; what they permitted in one of their -own family they wouldn’t stand in these -strangers whom they had invited into their family. -So, of course, a quarrel was bound to start. -But the real fight came with the next king and -not with James.</p> - -<p>James was very fond of beefsteak, and one -particular cut from the loin of beef he liked -especially well. It was so delicious he thought it -should be honored in some way, and so he made -it a knight as if it were a brave and gallant -gentleman and dubbed it “Sir Loin,” which we -still call it to-day—although people have forgotten<span class="pagenum" id="Page_387"></span> -all about how it got such a name, and -some even say this is only a story and that he -never did such a foolish thing, anyway.</p> - -<p>During King James’s reign the Bible was -translated into English. This is probably the -same Bible you read and that is called the King -James Bible.</p> - -<p>Nothing much happened in England during -James’s reign, but in some other countries a -great deal did happen, although the king had -little to do with it. English people made settlements -in India, that far away country of the -Brahmanists, which Columbus had tried to reach -by going west; and these settlements there grew -until India at last belonged to England. The -English made settlements also in America, and -these grew until at last part of America, too, -belonged to England.</p> - -<p>One of these settlements in America was -made in the South, and one was made in the -North. Raleigh’s settlement at Roanoke had -disappeared, as I told you; but in 1607 a boatload -of English gentlemen sailed over to America -looking for adventure and hoping to make -their fortunes by finding gold. They landed in -Virginia and named the place where they settled -Jamestown after their king, James. But they -found no gold, and as they were not used to -work, they didn’t want to do any. But their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_388"></span> -leader, Captain John Smith, took matters in -hand and said that those that didn’t work -shouldn’t eat. So then the colonists had to go -to work.</p> - -<p>Back in England people had learned to -smoke, and so the colonists began to raise -tobacco for the English people. The tobacco -brought the colonists so much money that it -proved to be a gold-mine—of a different kind—after -all. But the colonial gentlemen wanted -some one to do the rough work for them. So a -few years later some negroes were brought over -from Africa and sold to the colonists as slaves -to do the rough work. This was the beginning -of slavery in America, which grew and grew -until in the South almost all the work was done -by colored slaves.</p> - -<p>A little later another company of people left -England for America. These people were not -looking for fortunes, however, as the Jamestown -settlers had been. They were looking for a -place where they might worship God as they -pleased, for in England they were interfered -with, and they wanted to find a place where no -one would interfere with them. So this company -of people left England in 1620 in a ship -called the <i>Mayflower</i> sailed across the ocean -and landed in a place called Plymouth, in -Massachusetts, and there they settled. More<span class="pagenum" id="Page_389"></span> -than half of them died the first winter from -hardship and exposure in the bitter weather -that they have in the North, but, nevertheless, -none of those who were left would go back to -England. This settlement was the beginning of -that part of the United States called New England. -You will hear more about both settlements -later when you study American History. -But at present we must see what was going on -in England, for there were great “goings on” -there.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig83.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_390"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c67">67</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A King Who Lost His Head</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Have</span> you ever sung, “King William was -King James’ son”?</p> - -<p>Well, that must have been some other King -James, for King Charles was this King James’ -son, and he was Charles I.</p> - -<p>Charles was “a chip of the old block.” Like -his father he believed in the Divine Right of -Kings, that he alone had the right to say what -should be done or what should not be done, and -he treated the English people as King John -had; that is, as if they were made simply to -serve his pleasure and to do as he said.</p> - -<p>But this time the people didn’t carry him off, -as they had King John, to agree to a paper. -They started to fight. The king made ready to -fight for what he thought his rights. So he -got together an army of lords and nobles and -those who agreed with him. Those who took -his side even dressed differently from those who -were against him. They grew their hair in long -curls and wore a broad-brimmed hat with a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_391"></span> -large feather and lace collars and cuffs of lace -even on their breeches.</p> - -<p>Parliament also got together an army of the -people who wanted their rights. They had their -hair cut short and wore a hat with a tall crown -and very simple clothes. A country gentleman -named Oliver Cromwell trained a regiment of -soldiers to be such good fighters that they were -called Ironsides.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig84.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">King Charles and Oliver Cromwell.</p> -</div> - -<p>The king’s army was made up of men who -prepared for battle by drinking and feasting.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_392"></span> -The parliamentary army prayed before going -into battle and sang hymns and psalms as they -marched.</p> - -<p>At last after many battles the king’s army -was beaten and King Charles was taken prisoner. -A small part of Parliament then took -things in their own hands, and though they had -no right to do so they tried King Charles and -condemned him to death. They found him guilty -of being a traitor and a murderer and other terrible -things. Then he was taken out in front -of his palace in London in the year 1649 and his -head was cut off. People now feel that this was -a shameful thing for the parliamentary army to -do to the king, and even at that time only a -part of the English people were in favor of it. -He might have been sent away instead of being -killed, or he might have had his office of king -taken away from him.</p> - -<p>Oliver Cromwell, the commander of the parliamentary -army then ruled over England for a -few years. He was a coarse-looking person -with very rough manners, but honest and religious, -and he ruled England as a stern and -strict father might rule his family. He would -stand no nonsense. Once when he was having -his picture painted—for there were no photographs -then—the artist left out a big wart he -had on his face. Cromwell angrily told him,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_393"></span> -“Paint me as I am, wart and all.” Cromwell -was really a king although he called himself Protector, -but he did a great deal that was good for -England.</p> - -<p>When Cromwell died his son became ruler -after him, just as if he were the son of a king, -but the son was unable to fill his father’s shoes. -He meant well, but he hadn’t the brains or the -ability that his father had, and so in a few -months he resigned. Oliver Cromwell had been -so strict that the English people had forgotten -about their troubles under the Stuarts. So in -1660 when the English found themselves without -a ruler they invited back the son of Charles I, -whom they had beheaded, and once more a -Stuart became king. This was Charles II.</p> - -<p>Charles was called the Merry Monarch because -all he seemed to think about was eating -and drinking, amusing himself, and having a -good time. He made fun of things that were -holy and sacred. To revenge himself on those -who had put his father to death he had those of -them who were still living killed in the most -horrible way one could think of. Those that -were dead already, Oliver Cromwell among -them, were taken from their tombs; then their -dead bodies were hung and afterward beheaded.</p> - -<p>In his reign that old and terrible disease, the -plague, broke loose again in London. Some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_394"></span> -people thought that God had caused it, that He -was shocked by the behavior of the king and his -people especially toward holy things, that He -was punishing them. The next year, 1666, a -great fire started and burned up thousands of -houses, and hundreds of churches were destroyed. -But the Great Fire, as it was called, -cleaned up the disease and dirt and was therefore -really a blessing. London had been a city -of wooden houses. It was rebuilt of brick and -stone.</p> - -<p>Only one more Stuart ruler shall I tell you -about—or rather a royal pair, William and -Mary—because in their reign the fight between -the people and their kings was once for all -finally settled. In 1688 Parliament drew up an -agreement called the Declaration of Right, -which William and Mary signed. This agreement -made Parliament ruler over the nation, -and ever since, Parliament and not the king has -been the real ruler of England. So I think we -have heard enough of the Stuarts for a while.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_395"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c68">68</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Red Cap and Red Heels</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">The</span> last Louis I told you about was a saint—the -Louis who went on the last Crusade.</p> - -<p>The two Louis I’m going to tell you about -now were not saints—not by any means.</p> - -<p>They were Louis XIII and Louis XIV and -they ruled France while the Stuarts were reigning -in the seventeenth century in England.</p> - -<p>Louis XIII was king in name only. Another -man told him what to do, and he did it. Strange -to say, this other man was a great ruler of the -church called a cardinal, who wore a red cap and -a red gown. The cardinal’s name was Richelieu.</p> - -<p>Now, you are probably sick and tired of hearing -about wars, but during the reign of Louis -XIII another long war started, and I must tell -you something about it for it lasted thirty years. -It was therefore called the Thirty Years’ War. -It was different from most wars. It was not a -war of one country against another. It was a -war between the Protestants and Catholics.</p> - -<p>Cardinal Richelieu was of course a Catholic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_396"></span> -and the real ruler of France, which was a Catholic -country. Nevertheless, he took sides with -the Protestants, for they were fighting a Catholic -country called Austria, and he wanted to -beat Austria. Most of the countries in Europe -took part in this war, but Germany was the -battle-ground where most of the fighting was -done. Even Sweden, a northern country of -Europe which we have not heard of before, took -part. The king of Sweden at this time was -named Gustavus Adolphus, and he was called -the Snow King because he was king of such a -cold country, and also the Lion of the North, -for he was such a brave fighter. I am mentioning -him particularly because of all kings and -rulers in Europe at this time he was the finest -character. Indeed, most of the other rulers -thought only of themselves, and they would lie -and cheat and steal and even murder to get -what they wanted, but Gustavus Adolphus was -fighting for what he thought was right. Gustavus -Adolphus was a Protestant, and so he -came down into Germany and fought on the -side of the Protestants. He was a great general, -and his army won. But unfortunately he -himself was at last killed in battle. The Protestants -came out ahead in the Thirty Years’ -War, and at last a famous treaty of peace was -made called the Treaty of Westphalia. By this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_397"></span> -treaty it was agreed that each country should -have whatever religion its ruler had; it could be -Protestant or Catholic as the ruler wished.</p> - -<p>During the Thirty Years’ War the plague, -that old deadly contagious disease we have -heard of before, broke out in Germany. A little -town named Oberammergau prayed that it -might be spared. The townspeople vowed that -if they were spared they would give a play of -Christ’s life once every ten years. They <i>were</i> -spared, and so every ten years, ever since then, -with only a few exceptions, they have been giving -what is called the Passion Play. As it is -the only place in the world where it is ever given, -tens of thousands of Christians from all over -the globe travel to this little out-of-the-way -village to see these peasants act the stories -of Christ’s life. The play is given on Sundays -during the summer of the tenth year and lasts -all day long. There are about seven hundred -people who take part, half of all the people in the -town. It is a great honor to be chosen to play -the part of a saint; it is the highest earthly honor -to be selected to play the part of Christ; and it -is a disgrace to be left out entirely.</p> - -<p>The next French king to rule after Louis -XIII and Richelieu was Louis XIV.</p> - -<p>The people in England had at last succeeded -in getting the power to rule themselves through<span class="pagenum" id="Page_398"></span> -their Parliament. But in France Louis would -let no one rule but himself. He said, “I am the -state,” and he would let no one have a say in -the government. This was the same as the -Stuarts’ Divine Right of Kings, which the -English people had put an end to. Louis ruled -for more than seventy years. This is the longest -time that any one in history has ever ruled.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig85.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Louis XIV.</p> -</div> - -<p>Louis XIV was called the Grand Monarch, -and everything he did was to show off. He was -always parading and strutting about as if he -were the leading character in a play and not -just an ordinary human being. He wore corsets -and a huge powdered wig and shoes with -very high red heels, to make himself appear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_399"></span> -taller. That, I suppose, is why some ladies to-day -wear high heels called French heels. He -carried a long cane, stuck out his elbows, turned -out his toes, and strutted up and down, for he -thought these things made him seem grand, important, -imposing.</p> - -<p>All this may sound as if Louis were a silly person -with no sense, but you must not get that idea. -In spite of his absurd manners he made France -the chief power in Europe. He was almost constantly -fighting other countries, trying to increase -the size of France and to add to his kingdom, -but I have already told you so much about -so many fights, that I’m not going to tell you -any more about his just now, for you would -probably not read it if I did. So France had -her turn as leader of all the other countries as -Spain and England had had.</p> - -<p>Louis built a magnificent palace at Versailles -in which were marble halls, beautiful paintings, -and many huge mirrors in which he could see -himself as he strutted along. The palace was -surrounded by a park with wonderful fountains. -The water for the fountains had to be brought -a long distance, and it cost thousands of dollars -to have the fountains play just for a few minutes. -Even to-day sight-seers visit Versailles -to see the magnificent palace rooms and to -watch the fountains play.</p> - -<p>But Louis surrounded himself not only with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_400"></span> -beautiful things. He also surrounded himself -with all the most interesting men and women of -his time. All those who could do anything exceptionally -well, all those who could paint well -or write well or talk well or play well or look -well, he brought together to live with him or near -by him. This was called his <i>court</i>. Those in his -Court were “in society.” They were the chosen -few who looked down on all the others who were -not in society.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig86.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Louis XIV getting ready for bed.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_401"></span></p> - -<p>This was all very fine for the people who -were lucky enough to be “in society”—in -Louis’s court. But the poor people of France, -those not in his court, were the ones who had to -pay Louis’s expenses and those of his court. -They were the ones who had to pay for his parties -and balls and feasts and for all sorts of presents -which he gave his friends. So we shall see presently -what happened. The poor people would -not stand that sort of thing forever. “The worm -will turn,” we say.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig87.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_402"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c69">69</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Self-Made Man</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Who</span> was the Father of His Country?</p> - -<p>I know what you will say:</p> - -<p>“George Washington.”</p> - -<p>But there was another man called “The -Father of His Country” before Washington was -born, and he was not an American.</p> - -<p>In the east of Europe there is a great country -as large as our own, and its name is Russia. -Very little had been heard of Russia before the -Year 1700, for although it was the largest country -in Europe, its people were only about half -civilized. The Russians were a branch of the -great Aryan family called Slavs, but although -they were white people, they were living so close -to the yellow people in China that they had become -much like them in many of their ways. -Then, too, the terrible Genghis Khan and his -yellow Mongols had conquered Russia in the -thirteenth century and ruled over the land. So -although the Russians were Christians, they were -in every other way more like the people of the -East than like Europeans. The men had long<span class="pagenum" id="Page_403"></span> -beards and wore long coats. The women wore -veils like those the Turkish women wore. The -people counted with balls strung on wires as the -Chinese did.</p> - -<p>Well, just before 1700 there was born a Russian -prince named Peter. When a small boy, -Peter was very much afraid of the water. But -he felt so ashamed that he, a prince, should fear -anything that he forced himself to get used to -the water. He would go to it and play in it -and sail boats on it, although all the time he was -almost scared to death. And so at last he not -only got over this great fear but he came to -like the water and boats more than any other -playthings.</p> - -<p>When Peter grew up the thing he wanted -more than anything else in the world was to -make his country important in Europe, for before -this time it had not been. It was big but -not great. And his people had to be civilized. -But before he could teach his own people, who -were most of them very poor and ignorant, he -had to learn himself. As there was no one in -Russia who could teach him what he wanted to -know, he disguised himself as a common laborer -and went to the little country of Holland. Here -he got a job in a shipbuilding yard and -worked for several months, cooking his own food -and mending his own clothes. While he was doing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_404"></span> -this, however, he learned all about building -ships and studied many other things besides, such -as blacksmithing, cobbling shoes, and even pulling -teeth.</p> - -<p>Then he went to England, and everywhere -he went he learned all he could. At last he returned -to his own country with the knowledge -he had gained and set to work to make Russia -over. First of all, Peter wanted Russia to have -a fleet of ships as other nations had. But in -order to have a fleet he had to have water for -his ships, and Russia had almost no land bordering -on the water. So Peter planned to take -a sea-shore away from the neighboring country -of Sweden.</p> - -<p>Now the king of Sweden at this time was -Charles. He was the twelfth king named -Charles that Sweden had had. Charles XII was -hardly more than a boy, and Peter thought it -would be an easy matter to beat this boy and -help himself to whatever land he wanted on the -water. But Charles was not an ordinary boy. -He was an extra-ordinary boy, extra-ordinarily -bright and gifted, and he had been unusually -well educated besides. He knew several languages; -he had learned to ride a horse when he -was four years old and how to hunt and to fight. -Besides all this, he feared neither hardship nor -danger. Indeed, he was such a daredevil that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_405"></span> -people called him the Madman of the North. So -at first Peter’s army was beaten by Charles.</p> - -<p>But Peter took his beating calmly, simply remarking -that Charles would soon teach the Russian -army how to win. Indeed, so successful -was Charles at first in fighting Peter and all -others who threatened him that the countries of -Europe began to think of him as Alexander the -Great come to life again, and they feared he -might conquer them all. But at last the Russians -did win against Charles, and Peter got his -sea-shore. Then Peter built the fleet for which -he had been working and planning for so many -years.</p> - -<p>The capital of Russia was Moscow. It was -a beautiful city but near the center of that country -and far from the water. This didn’t suit -Peter at all. Peter wanted a fine city for his -capital, but he wanted it right on the water’s -edge, so that he could have his beloved ships -close to him. So he picked out a spot not only -on the water but mostly water, for it was chiefly -a marsh. Then he put a third of a million people -to work filling in the marsh, and on this he built -a beautiful city. This city he called St. Petersburg -in honor of his patron saint, the apostle -Peter, after whom he himself had been named. -The name of St. Petersburg was later changed -to Petrograd and recently to Leningrad. Then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_406"></span> -Peter improved the laws, started schools, and -built factories and hospitals and taught his -people arithmetic, so that they could count without -having to use balls strung on strings. He -made his people dress like other Europeans. He -made the men cut off their long beards, which he -thought looked countrified. The men thought -it indecent to have no beards so some saved them -to be placed in their coffins in order that at the -day of resurrection they could appear before -God unashamed. He introduced all sorts of -things that he found in Europe but which were -unknown in his own country, and he really made -Russia over into a great European nation, so -that is why he is called Peter the Great, the -Father of his Country.</p> - -<p>Peter fell in love with a poor peasant girl, -an orphan named Catherine, and married her. -She had no education, but she was very sweet -and lovely and bright and quick-witted, so the -marriage turned out happily. The Russians -were shocked at the idea of having a queen who -was not a princess and was so low-born. But -Peter had her crowned, and after he died she -ruled over Russia.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_407"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c70">70</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Prince Who Ran Away</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">If</span> you put a P in front of Russia it makes—Prussia. -This is the name of a little country in -Europe, which is now a part of Germany. -Russia was big, and Peter made it great. -Prussia was small, but another king made it also -great. This king was named Frederick. He, -too, lived in the eighteenth century, but a little -later than Peter, and he, too, was called “the -Great”—Frederick the Great.</p> - -<p>Frederick’s father, who was the second king of -Prussia, had a hobby for collecting giants—as -you might collect postage-stamps. Wherever -he heard of a very tall man, no matter in what -country and no matter what it cost to get him, -he bought or hired him. This collection of giants -he made into a remarkable company of soldiers -which was his special pride.</p> - -<p>He was a very cranky, cross, and bad-tempered -old king. He treated his children terribly, -especially his son Frederick, whom he -called Fritz. Fritz had curls and liked music -and poetry and fancy clothes. And his father<span class="pagenum" id="Page_408"></span> -thought he was growing up to be a girl-boy. -This disgusted his father, for he wanted a son -who would be a soldier and fighter. His father -when angry used to throw dishes at him, lock -him up for days at a time, and feed him on bread -and water and whip him with a cane. Finally -Fritz could stand it no longer, and he ran away. -He was caught and brought back. His father -was so angry with his son for disobeying and acting -as he had done that he was actually going to -have him killed—yes, put to death—but at the -last minute was persuaded not to do it.</p> - -<p>But here is a funny thing: When Fritz grew -up to be Frederick, he turned out just what his -father wanted him to be—a great soldier and -fighter. He still loved poetry and even tried to -write poems himself, and he was very fond of -music and he played the flute very well, indeed. -But Frederick wanted above everything else to -make his country important in Europe; for before -his time it was of little account, and no one -paid much attention to it.</p> - -<p>Now, the neighboring country to Prussia was -Austria. Austria was ruled over by a woman. -This woman was named Maria Theresa. Maria -Theresa had become ruler of Austria at the same -time that Frederick had become king of Prussia. -Some people thought a woman was not a fit person -to rule over a country. Frederick’s father<span class="pagenum" id="Page_409"></span> -had promised to let Maria Theresa alone—he -had promised not to fight a woman—but when -Frederick became king he wanted to add a part -of Austria to his own country, and so he simply -helped himself to the piece of Maria Theresa’s -country that he wanted. He didn’t care if she -was a woman or whether it was fair or not. Of -course this started a war. Before long almost -every country in Europe was fighting either -with Frederick or against him. But Frederick -not only succeeded in getting what he was after; -he succeeded in holding on to it.</p> - -<p>Maria Theresa, however, would not give up. -She wanted to get back what had been wrongfully -taken away from her. So she began -quietly and secretly to get ready for another -war against Frederick. Quietly and secretly -she got other countries to promise to help her. -But Frederick heard of what she was doing, and -suddenly he attacked her again, and for seven -long years this next war went on. So this was -called the Seven Years’ War. Frederick kept -on fighting until he had beaten Austria for good -and until he had gained his purpose, which was -to make his little country of Prussia the most -powerful country in Europe. He still held on -to the part of Austria that he had at first taken -away. Maria Theresa was a great queen, and -she would have won against Frederick had he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_410"></span> -been an ordinary king. But she had too strong -a ruler against her. Frederick was one of the -world’s smartest generals and too much for her.</p> - -<p>The Seven Years’ War, strange to say, was -fought out not only in Europe but in far-off -America, also. England had taken Frederick’s -side. France and other countries had taken -sides against him. So the English settlers in -America, who were on Frederick’s side, fought -the French settlers, who were against him. -When, therefore, Frederick won in Europe, the -English in America also won against the French -in America. I am telling you all this because -that is why we in America speak English instead -of French to-day. If Frederick had lost, -France would have won, and we here in America -would probably now speak French instead of -English.</p> - -<p>Frederick, like some other kings we have -heard of before, thought nothing of lying or -cheating or stealing if he had to in order to get -the better of other countries. Fair means or -foul means made no difference to him. But his -own people he treated as if they were his children -and did everything he could for them. Like -a lioness with her cubs, he fought for his family, -even with the world against him.</p> - -<p>There was a mill close by Frederick’s palace -that belonged to a poor miller. As it was not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_411"></span> -a pretty thing to be so near, the king wanted to -buy it in order to tear it down and get rid of it. -But the miller would not sell. Although Frederick -the Great offered the miller a large sum -of money, he refused. A great many kings -would simply have taken the mill and perhaps -put the miller in jail or put him to death, but -Frederick did neither, for he thought his lowliest -subject had his rights and that if he didn’t -want to sell he shouldn’t be made to. So he -left the miller undisturbed, and the mill stands -to-day as it did then, close to the palace.</p> - -<p>Though Frederick was a German, strange to -say, he hated the German language. He -thought it the language of the uneducated. He -himself spoke French and wrote in French and -only spoke German when he had to talk to his -servants or those who did not understand -French.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig88.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_412"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c71">71</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">America Gets Rid of Her King</p> - - - -<p><span class="smcap">Did</span> you know that we once had a king?</p> - -<p>His name was George.</p> - -<p>No, George Washington wasn’t a king.</p> - -<p>This was another George.</p> - -<p>You remember the Stuarts in England—James, -Charles, and the rest of the family who -ruled England for a hundred years from 1600 -to 1700. Well about 1700 England ran out of -Stuarts—there were no more Stuart children.</p> - -<p>As England had to have another king, they -asked a distant relative of the royal family over -from one of the German states to rule England. -Yes, from Germany to rule England. His -name was George, and the English called him -George I. George couldn’t even speak English. -He was German and loved his own country -much better than England, but he had -agreed to come and rule over England, and he -did so. You can imagine what sort of a king he -was. His son, George II ruled after him, although -he, too, was more German than English.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_413"></span> -But when the grandson, George III, came to -the throne he was a born and bred Englishman. -It was in this grandson’s reign, in the reign of -George III, that our own country, the United -States, was born.</p> - -<p>When a wheel turns over we call it a <i>revolution</i>, -which is a big name for a little thing.</p> - -<p>When a <i>country</i> turns over we also call it a -revolution, which is a big name for a big thing.</p> - -<p>Our country had started with the two little -settlements, or colonies, as they were called, of -Jamestown and Plymouth. But it had grown -and grown until there were now a number of -settlements along the coast of the Atlantic -Ocean. Most of the people who had settled here -were English, and the king of England ruled -over them. The king asked all these people to -send him money, which was called taxes. Now, -the money collected from taxes was not, of -course, for the king to put in his pocketbook to -use as he liked. It was supposed to be spent on -the people who were taxed, to be used for roads, -schools, police, and such things that are for the -good of all.</p> - -<p>So these people along the coast who were paying -money or taxes to the king far off across the -water thought they ought to have a vote to say -how this money should be spent and on what it -should be spent. But they did not have a vote,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_414"></span> -and so they thought they ought not to have to -pay taxes to the king away off in England.</p> - -<p>One of the leading citizens of America at this -time was a man named Benjamin Franklin. He -was the son of a candlemaker, but from a poor -boy who had once walked the streets of Philadelphia -with a loaf of bread under each arm he -had risen to a very honored position in the country. -He had learned to be a printer and -had started one of the first and best newspapers -in the United States. He was a great thinker -and had invented a stove and a lamp and had -succeeded in getting electricity from the lightning -in the clouds by flying a kite with a wire -during a storm. He was one of the Wise Men -of the West.</p> - -<p>Franklin was sent over to England to try to -get the king to change his mind about taxing -the colonies or to bring about some sort of agreement -with him. But King George was hardheaded, -and Franklin was unable to stop the -king from doing what he had made up his mind -to do.</p> - -<p>So the people in America, finding that talking -did no good, started in to fight. They raised -an army. Then they tried to find a good man to -command the army. Such a leader must be -honest and brave; he must have a good mind; -he must love his country; and he must be a good<span class="pagenum" id="Page_415"></span> -fighter. So they looked around for a man who -had all these qualities, and they found one. The -man they picked was honest and brave, for when -he was a boy, he had cut down a favorite tree -of his father’s just to try a new hatchet he had -been given. In those days to cut down a cherry-tree -was a crime for which by law a man could -be put to death. When this boy was asked by -his angry father if he had done it he said, “I cannot -tell a lie; I did.” Of course, now you know -who it was—George Washington.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig89.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">George Washington surveying Lord Fairfax’s farm.</p> -</div> - -<p>George learned to be a surveyor—that is, a -man who measures land—and when only sixteen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_416"></span> -years old he was employed to survey the -large farm of Lord Fairfax in Virginia; that -showed he had a good mind. He then had been -a soldier and had fought the Indians bravely -and well; that showed that he loved his country -and was a good fighter. So George Washington -was chosen to lead the American army -against the English.</p> - -<p>The Americans did not at first think of starting -a new country. They simply wanted the -same rights that Englishmen in England had. -But they soon found out that there was only one -way to get those rights, and that was to start a -new country independent of England. So a -man named Thomas Jefferson wrote a paper -which was called a Declaration of Independence—can -you say it?—because it declared -that the colonies were going to be independent -of England. There were fifty-six Americans -chosen by the people to sign it. Each one of the -signers would have been put to death as a traitor -to England if the United States had not won, -and each signer knew it, yet he signed it nevertheless. -But just signing this paper didn’t -make England give up the colonies. Oh, no! -King George’s armies tried to stop the colonies -from getting away from the rule of England.</p> - -<p>Washington had a very small army with -which to fight the English army, and very little<span class="pagenum" id="Page_417"></span> -money with which to pay the soldiers or to supply -them with food or clothes or powder and -shot. One winter the soldiers nearly froze and -starved to death, for they had little clothing and -hardly any food but carrots, and it seemed as if -the war could not go on unless they got help. -Yet Washington kept up their spirits.</p> - -<p>Benjamin Franklin was sent across the ocean, -not to England this time of course, but to France -to see if he couldn’t get some help from that -country. France hated England because she had -lost part of America, Canada, in the Seven -Years’ War, but at first France would not help. -She took little interest in the fight for Washington’s -army had lost a number of battles -against the English, and people don’t like to -back a loser. But the year after the Declaration -of Independence the American army beat -the English badly at a place called Saratoga in -New York State. Then the king of France became -more interested, and then he sent help to -the colonies to carry on the war. A young -French nobleman named Lafayette hurried -over from France and fought under General -Washington and did so well that he has made -a great name for himself.</p> - -<p>England, seeing that things were going -against her, now wanted to make peace with the -Americans and give them the same rights that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_418"></span> -English citizens had, but it was then too late. At -the beginning of the war the Americans would -have agreed to this and been glad to agree, but -now they would agree to nothing less than entire -independence of England; and so the War went -on, for England would not let the colonies go.</p> - -<p>The English had been beaten by the Yankees, -as they called them in the North, at a place called -Saratoga. So then they sent their general, Lord -Cornwallis, to the south of our country to see if -he could beat the people there. General Greene -was put in command of the Southern American -soldiers. Lord Cornwallis tried to fight Greene, -but Greene led Cornwallis a merry chase round -the country until he was all tired out and finally -went into a little place called Yorktown in -Virginia. Here Cornwallis and his army were -caught fast so that they could not get out. On -one side was the American army, and on the -water side were the French war-ships that had -been sent over to help. So Cornwallis had to -surrender.</p> - -<p>King George then said, “Let us have peace”; -and in 1783 the war was ended by a treaty of -peace, eight years after it had started, and the -colonies were independent of England. This was -called the Revolutionary War, and after it was -over our country was called the United States.</p> - -<p>There were just thirteen of these original<span class="pagenum" id="Page_419"></span> -colonies that joined as partners in this Union. -That is why there are just thirteen stripes in -our flag. Some people think thirteen is an unlucky -number; but our flag with its thirteen -stripes still waves over the land, and it has -brought us good luck; don’t you think so?</p> - -<p>Washington was made the first President, and -so he is called the Father of His Country; the -First in War, the First in Peace, and the First -in the Hearts of his Countrymen.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig90.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_420"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c72">72</h2> -</div> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig91.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - - -<p><span class="smcap">Measles</span> and Mumps are very catching.</p> - -<p>So are Revolutions.</p> - -<p>Just a little later than the Revolution of the -thirteen colonies, the people in France had a -Revolution, too. They saw how successful the -Americans had been in their fight against the -king of England, and so they rebelled against -their own king and queen in France. This was -called the French Revolution.</p> - -<p>The reason the French people rebelled against -their king was because they had very little, and -the king and his royal family and nobles seemed -to have everything. Both the Americans and the -French rebelled against paying taxes. With -the Americans, however, it was a matter of principle -more than anything else. Their taxes were -not very large, but they thought them unjust. -The French taxes, however, not only were unjust -but they took almost everything away from the -people.</p> - -<p>I have already told you how bad things were -under Louis XIV, and they got worse until the -people could stand it no longer.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_421"></span></p> - -<p>At this time the king of France was Louis -XVI, and his queen was named Marie Antoinette. -Although the people were so poor they -had hardly anything to eat except a very coarse -and bad-tasting kind of bread called black bread; -they were compelled to pay the king and the -nobles money so that they could live in fine -style and have “parties”; and they had to do all -sorts of work for them for nothing or next to -nothing. If any one complained he was put in a -great prison in Paris called the Bastille and left -there to die. In spite of the fact that all the -people were so terribly poor, the king and the -queen and their friends lived in luxury and extravagance -with everything in the world they -wanted, all paid for by the poor people.</p> - -<p>Neither the king nor his wife was really -wicked. They were simply young and thoughtless. -They meant well, but like a great many -well-meaning people they lacked common sense -and did not know how others lived. They didn’t -seem to understand that people <i>could</i> be poor, -for they had so much themselves. Marie Antoinette -was told that her subjects had no bread -to eat. “Then why don’t they eat cake?” she is -said to have asked.</p> - -<p>To right the wrongs of the people, a body of -many of the best men from all France gathered -together and, calling themselves the National<span class="pagenum" id="Page_422"></span> -Assembly, tried to work out some plan to do -away with all the injustice the people had been -suffering. They wanted to make every one free -and equal and give everybody a “say” in the government.</p> - -<p>But the poor had become so furiously mad at -the way they had been treated by the rich that -they would stand things no longer and a wild -and angry mob of them attacked the old prison -of the Bastille. They battered down the walls -and freed the prisoners and killed the guards of -the Bastille simply because they were servants -of the king. Then they cut off the heads of the -guards and stuck them on poles and, carrying -them aloft, paraded through the streets of Paris. -There were only about half a dozen prisoners in -the old jail, so that freeing them didn’t matter -much, but this attack was to show that the people -would no longer allow the king to imprison them.</p> - -<p>The Bastille was stormed on July 14, 1789. -This is the beginning of what is called the French -Revolution, and this day is celebrated in France -in almost the same way that our Fourth of July -is, for it is the French Declaration of Independence -against kings.</p> - -<p>Lafayette, who was now back in France, the -same Lafayette who had helped the Americans -fight their king, sent the key of the Bastille over -to George Washington as a souvenir that his own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_423"></span> -country had now overthrown its king and declared -its independence.</p> - -<p>The king and queen were living in the beautiful -palace at Versailles, the palace that Louis -XIV had built. All the king’s nobles, when -they heard what was taking place in Paris, became -frightened and, deserting their king and -queen, took to their heels and left the country. -They knew pretty well what was going to happen, -and they didn’t wait to see.</p> - -<p>Meanwhile the National Assembly drew up -what was called a Declaration of the Rights of -Man, which was something like our Declaration -of Independence. It said that all men were born -free and equal, that the people should make the -laws and the laws should be the same for all.</p> - -<p>Soon after the Declaration of Rights had been -made, the mad mob from Paris, ragged and wild-looking, -carrying sticks and stones, and crying, -“Bread, bread!” marched out the ten miles to -Versailles, where Louis and Marie Antoinette -were still living. Up the beautiful grand staircase -of the palace they rushed. The few guards -remaining round the king were unable to hold -them back. They captured the king and queen -and took them prisoners to Paris. There they -kept Louis and Marie Antoinette prisoners for -several years. Once the king and queen tried -to escape in disguise but were caught before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_424"></span> -they could get out of the country and brought -back.</p> - -<p>Then it was that the National Assembly drew -up a Constitution—a set of rules by which the -country should be justly governed. This the -king agreed to and signed.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig92.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">French revolution crowd and guillotine.</p> -</div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_425"></span></p> - -<p>But that still wasn’t enough. The people -wanted no king at all to rule over them. So -about a year later they started a real republic -like our own, and the king was sentenced to -death. A Frenchman had invented a kind of -machine with a big knife for chopping off heads. -This was called the guillotine, and it was used -instead of an ax, for it was quicker and surer. -So the king was taken to the guillotine, and his -head was cut off.</p> - -<p>But the people did not settle down quiet and -contented when they had got rid of their king. -They were afraid that those who were in favor of -kings might start another kingdom. The people -chose red, white, and blue as their colors and the -“Marseillaise” as their national song; and everywhere -they marched they carried the tricolor, as -they called the three-colored flag, and as they -marched they sang the “Marseillaise.”</p> - -<p>Then began what is called the Reign of Terror, -and this is a tale of blood. A man named Robespierre -and two of his friends were leaders in this -Reign of Terror. Any one whom the people -suspected of being in favor of kings they caught -and beheaded. The queen was one of the first to -have her head cut off. If any one even whispered, -“there’s a man, or there’s a woman, or there’s a -child who is in favor of kings,” that man, woman, -or child would be rushed to the guillotine. If<span class="pagenum" id="Page_426"></span> -any one simply hated another and wished to get -rid of him, all he had to do was to point him -out as in favor of kings, and off he would be -taken to the guillotine. No one was sure of his -life for a day. He never knew what moment -some personal enemy might accuse him. Hundreds, -then thousands, of suspected people were -beheaded, and a special sewer had to be built to -carry off the blood. But the guillotine, fast as -it was, was too slow for the Terrorists. It could -cut off but one head at a time, and so prisoners -were lined up and shot down with cannons.</p> - -<p>People seemed to have gone wild, crazy, mad! -They insulted Christ and the Christian religion. -They put a pretty woman called the Goddess of -Reason on the altar of the beautiful Church of -Notre Dame and worshiped her instead of the -Lord. They pulled down statues and pictures -of Christ and the Virgin Mary. In their places -they put statues and pictures of their own leaders. -The guillotine was put up in place of the -cross. They did away with Sundays. They -made a week ten days long, and every tenth day -they made a holiday instead of Sunday. They -stopped counting time from Christ’s birth, because -they didn’t want anything that had to do -with Christ, and they began to call the year when -the republic was started in 1792 the year 1.</p> - -<p>But Robespierre wished to rule alone, and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_427"></span> -plotted against his two friends. One of these he -had beheaded, and the other was killed in his -bath-tub by a girl named Charlotte Corday, who -was in a rage at what he had done. So Robespierre -was left alone. At last the people, in fear -of this man who was such a monstrous and inhuman -tyrant, rose up against him. When he -found that he too, was to be put to death, he tried -to commit suicide, but, before he could do so he -was caught and taken to the guillotine, where he -went to the same death to which he had sent -countless others, and the Reign of Terror was -ended. It was a pity that he hadn’t a thousand -lives with which to pay for the thousands of lives -he had taken away.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig93.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_428"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c73">73</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">A Little Giant</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">At</span> last the Revolution was stopped.</p> - -<p>It was stopped by a young soldier only about -twenty years old and sixty inches tall.</p> - -<p>The Government was holding a meeting in -the palace while a mad mob in the streets outside -were trying to attack the palace. A young soldier -had been given a few men and told to keep -the mob away. The young soldier pointed cannons -down each street that led to the palace, and -no one dared to show himself. This young soldier -was named Napoleon Bonaparte. He made -such a fine record that people wanted to know -who he was and where he came from.</p> - -<p>Napoleon had been born on a little island -called Corsica in the Mediterranean Sea. He -was born just in time to be a Frenchman, -for the island of Corsica had belonged to -Italy and had only just been given to France -a few weeks before he was born. As soon -as he was old enough, he was sent off to a military -school in France. There his French schoolmates -looked upon him as a foreigner and didn’t have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_429"></span> -much to do with him. But Napoleon made high -marks in arithmetic, and he loved hard problems. -Once he shut himself up in his room to -work over a hard problem, and there he stayed -for three days and nights until he had found the -answer.</p> - -<p>Napoleon showed by the way he put an end to -the French Revolution that he was going to be -a fine soldier, and so when he was only twenty-six -years old he was made a general.</p> - -<p>Now, at this time all the other countries of -Europe had kings. France had caught the fever -of revolution from the Americans all the way -across the ocean and had got rid of her kings. -The kings of these other countries were afraid -their people might catch the fever of revolution, -too. So all of these other countries became enemies -of France because France had put an end -to her kings.</p> - -<p>Napoleon was sent off to fight Italy. He had -to cross the Alps, which Hannibal in the Punic -Wars had crossed long before. But Hannibal -had no heavy cannons when he crossed; it seemed -impossible for Napoleon’s army to cross with -cannons. Napoleon asked his engineers, the men -who were supposed to know about such things, if -it could be done. They said they thought it was -impossible.</p> - -<p>“Impossible,” Napoleon angrily replied, “is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_430"></span> -a word found only in the dictionary of fools.” -Then he shouted:</p> - -<p>“There shall be no Alps!” and went ahead and -crossed them. His army won in Italy, and when -he returned to France he was greeted by the -people as a conquering hero. But the men who -were then governing France were afraid of him. -They feared he might try to make himself king -because he was so popular with the people. Napoleon, -however, asked to be sent to conquer -Egypt because he had an idea he could get the -better of the English there. He thought he -might then cut England off from India, the new -country that they had won in the reign of -James I. England had lost America, but she -didn’t want to lose India.</p> - -<p>The French Government was very glad to get -rid of Napoleon, and so they sent him off to -Egypt as he asked. He quickly conquered -Egypt as Julius Cæsar had done, but there was -no Cleopatra to upset his plans. While he was -conquering Egypt, his fleet, which was waiting -for him at the mouth of the Nile, was caught and -destroyed by the English fleet under a great -admiral, if not the greatest that ever lived. His -name was Lord Nelson.</p> - -<p>Napoleon had no way to take his army back to -France. So he left his army in Egypt under -command of another. He himself, however,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_431"></span> -managed to find a ship to take him back home. -When he reached France he found that the men -who were supposed to be governing were quarreling -among themselves, and, seeing his chance, -he had himself made one of three men chosen to -rule France. He was called first consul; and -there were supposed to be two assistant consuls, -but the assistants were little more than clerks -to do Napoleon’s bidding. It was only a very -short time before he was next made first consul -for life. Then, not long after that, he became -emperor of France and also king of Italy.</p> - -<p>The other countries of Europe began to fear -that Napoleon would conquer them, too, and -make them also a part of France. So all the -other countries joined together to beat him. Napoleon -planned to conquer England first, and -he got ready a fleet to cross over to England. -But his fleet was caught off Spain near a point -called Trafalgar by the same English admiral, -Lord Nelson, who had beaten him in Egypt. -Before this battle, Nelson said to his sailors, -“England expects that every man will do his -duty,” and they did it. Napoleon’s fleet was -utterly destroyed, though Nelson himself was -killed.</p> - -<p>Napoleon then gave up the idea of conquering -England, and he turned his attention in the opposite -direction. He had beaten Spain and Prussia<span class="pagenum" id="Page_432"></span> -and Austria. Almost all Europe either -belonged to him or had to do what he said. Then -he attacked Russia. It was a great mistake he -made, for Russia was far off, and it was wintertime -and very cold. Still, he managed to reach -Moscow way off in the center of Russia with his -army. But the Russians burned the city and -destroyed all the food, so that Napoleon had -nothing with which to feed his army. It was -terribly cold; there were deep snows; and, in -retreating, his army suffered enormous losses. -Napoleon himself soon made a bee-line to Paris -leaving his army to get back the best way they -could. Men and horses died of cold and hunger -by the thousands. Napoleon reached Paris, but -his fortune had turned. All of Europe was getting -ready to put an end to the tyrant, and it -was not long after this that he was hemmed in -and beaten by his enemies.</p> - -<p>When Napoleon saw that he was beaten, he -signed a paper saying that he would give up and -leave France. And so he did, sailing away to a -little island called Elba, just off the coast of -Italy, not far from the island where he was born.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig94.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Napoleon at St. Helena.</p> -</div> - -<p>But Napoleon on the island of Elba got an -idea that all was not lost and that he might return -to France and get back his power again. So all -of a sudden, to the surprise of France and the -rest of the world, he landed on the coast of -<span class="pagenum" id="Page_433"></span>France. The French Government at Paris sent -an army of his old soldiers against him with -orders to meet him and bring him to Paris in an -iron cage. But when his old soldiers met their -old general they went over to his side, and so -with them he marched on to Paris. The English -and German armies were north of France and -preparing to fight. Napoleon quickly got together -an army and went forth to meet them.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_434"></span> -At a little town called Waterloo, Napoleon -fought his last battle, for there he was utterly -beaten by an English general named Wellington. -This was the Year 1815. We still speak -and probably always will speak of any great defeat -as “Waterloo.”</p> - -<p>There is a peculiar sentence which reads backward -the same as forward. It is what Napoleon -might have said after all was over. It is:</p> - - -<p class="c">ABLE WAS I ERE I SAW ELBA</p> - - -<p>After Napoleon was beaten at Waterloo, the -English took him away and put him on a little -island far off in the ocean where he could not -possibly escape. It was a lonely spot named -St. Helena after the mother of Constantine. -Here he lived for six years before he died.</p> - -<p>Napoleon was probably the greatest general -that ever lived, but that does not mean that he -was the greatest man. Some say he was the -worst, for just to make himself great, he killed -hundreds of thousands of people and brought -destruction and ruin to the whole of Europe -wherever he fought his battles.</p> - -<p>This brings us up into the nineteenth century, -for Napoleon died in 1821. How long ago is -that?</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_435"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c74">74</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">From Pan and His Pipes to the<br /> -Phonograph</p> - - -<p class="pc"> -Frogs croak;<br /> -Cats me-ow;<br /> -Dogs bark;<br /> -Sheep bleat;<br /> -Cows moo;<br /> -Lions roar;<br /> -Hyenas laugh;</p> - -<p class="pca"> -But only birds and people <i>sing</i>.<br /> -All other animals simply make noises.<br /> -But people can do what birds cannot.<br /> -They can also make music out of <i>things</i>. -</p> - -<p>Have you ever made a cigar-box fiddle or a -pin piano or musical glasses?</p> - -<p>In the long-ago story-book times Apollo took -a pair of cow-horns and fastened between them -seven strings made from the cow’s skin. This -was called a lyre. These strings he picked with -his fingers or with a quill, making a little tinkling -sound that could hardly have been very beautiful. -Yet Apollo’s son Orpheus is said to have -learned from his father to play so beautifully on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_436"></span> -the lyre that the birds and wild beasts and even -trees and rocks gathered round to hear him.</p> - -<p>Pan, the god of the woods, who had goat’s -horns and ears and legs and feet, tied together -several whistles of different lengths and played -on these as you might on a mouth-organ. This -instrument was called Pan’s pipes.</p> - -<p>The lyre and Pan’s pipes were the two earliest -musical instruments. The first was a stringed -instrument; the second a wind instrument. The -long strings and long pipes made low notes; the -short strings and short pipes made high tones.</p> - -<p>From Apollo’s lyre we get the piano with its -many, many strings. Did you ever look at the -inside of a piano and see the many strings of -different lengths? They are, however, not picked -as the strings of a lyre or harp are picked, but -hammered by little felt-covered blocks as you -touch the keys.</p> - -<p>From Pan’s pipes we get the great church -organ with its pipes like giant whistles. You -don’t, of course, blow the pipes with your mouth -as you do a whistle. The pipes are so big you -must blow them with a machine like a tire-pump, -and you do this as you touch the keys.</p> - -<p>We know what the instruments in olden times -were like, but we don’t know what the music that -people made was really like; there were no phonographs -to bottle up the sounds and, when uncorked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_437"></span> -a thousand years later, to pour forth the -old notes once again. The music went off into -thin air and was lost.</p> - -<p>It was not until about the Year 1000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> that -music could even be written down. Before then -all music was played “by ear,” for there was no -written music. A Benedictine monk named Guy, -or, in Italian, Guido, thought of a way to write -down musical notes, and he named the notes do, -re, mi, fa, and so on. These were the first letters -of the words of a hymn to St. John which the -monks sang like the scale.</p> - -<p>Another Italian is sometimes called the “father -of modern music.” His name is Palestrina, and -he died about 1600. He set the church service -to music, and the pope ordered all churches to -follow it, but the people didn’t like his music -very much; that is, it was not what we call “popular.”</p> - -<p>It was not until a hundred years later—that -is, about 1700—that the first great musician lived -who wrote music that was really popular, that -the people loved, and that we still love to-day.</p> - -<p>He was a German named Handel. His father -was a barber, a dentist, and doctor, and he wanted -his boy to become a great lawyer. But the only -thing the boy liked was music.</p> - -<p>In those days there were no pianos. There was -a little instrument with strings which was played<span class="pagenum" id="Page_438"></span> -by touching keys. This was called a clavichord. -Sometimes it had legs like a table. Sometimes -it had no legs and was just laid on a table.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig95.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Handel is found in the attic.</p> -</div> - -<p>Handel, though only six years old, got hold of -one of these instruments, and, without any one -finding out about it, he had it put up in his room -in the attic of his house. After every one had -gone to bed at night he would practise on this -clavichord until late, when he was supposed to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_439"></span> -be in bed. One night his family heard sounds -up under the roof. Wondering what it could -be, they took a lantern, and, quietly climbing the -attic stairs, they suddenly opened the door, and -there sat little Handel in his night-clothes on a -chair with his feet reaching only half-way to the -floor, playing on the clavichord.</p> - -<p>After that Handel’s father saw it was no use -trying to make his son a lawyer. So he got -teachers for him, and before long the boy amazed -the world with his playing. He went to England, -lived there, became an Englishman, and -when he died the English people buried him in -Westminster Abbey, a church in which famous -Englishmen were buried.</p> - -<p>Handel “set the Bible to music.” These songs -with the Bible words to be sung by a chorus of -voices were called <i>oratorios</i>, and one of these -oratorios named “The Messiah” is sung almost -everywhere at Christmas-time.</p> - -<p>Living at the same time with Handel was another -German musician named Bach. Bach -played divinely on the organ as Handel did on -the clavichord and wrote some of the finest music -for the organ that ever has been written. Strange -that both Handel and Bach went blind in their -old age, but to them it was sound, not sight, that -counted most. Here is another good subject for -an argument: would you rather be deaf or blind?</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_440"></span></p> - -<p>Almost all musical geniuses have been musical -wonders when they were still babies. They have -been great musicians even before learning to read -and write.</p> - -<p>One such genius was born just before Handel -died. He was an Austrian named Mozart.</p> - -<p>Mozart when only four years old played the -piano wonderfully. He also wrote music—composing, -it is called—for others to play.</p> - -<p>Mozart’s father and sister played very well, -so the three went on a concert tour. Mozart, -the boy wonder, played before the empress, and -everywhere he went he was treated like a prince, -petted and praised and given parties and presents.</p> - -<p>Then he grew up and married, and ever after -he had the hardest kind of a time trying to make -a living. He composed all sorts of things, plays -with music called operas, and symphonies, which -are written for whole orchestras to play; but he -made so little money that when he died he had to -be buried where they put people who were too -poor to have a grave for themselves alone. People -afterward thought it a shame that such a -great composer should have no monument over -his grave, but then it was too late to find where -he was buried. A monument was put up, but to -this day no one knows where Mozart’s body lies.</p> - -<p>A German named Beethoven had read the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_441"></span> -stories of the boy wonder, Mozart, and he thought -he, too, would like to have a boy wonder to play -before kings and queens. So when his son Louis -was only five years old he kept the boy practising -long hours at the piano until he became so tired -that the tears ran down his cheeks. But Louis -Beethoven, or Ludwig, as he was called in German, -finally came to be one of the greatest musicians -that have ever lived. He could sit at the -piano and make up the most beautiful music as -he went along—improvise, as it is called—but he -was never satisfied with it when written down. -Time and time again he would scratch out and -rewrite his music until it had been rewritten often -a dozen times.</p> - -<p>But Beethoven’s hearing began to grow dull. -He was worried that he might lose it entirely—a -terrible thing to happen to any one, but to one -whose hearing was his fortune nothing could be -worse. And at last he did become deaf. This -loss of his hearing made Beethoven hopelessly -sad and bad-tempered, cross with everything and -everybody. Nevertheless, he didn’t give up; -he kept on composing just the same, even after -he could no longer hear what he had written.</p> - -<p>Another great and unusual German musician -named Wagner lived until 1883. Though he -practised all his life, he never could play very -well. But he composed the most wonderful<span class="pagenum" id="Page_442"></span> -operas that have ever been written, and he wrote -not only the music but the words, too. He took -old myths and fairy-tales and made them into -plays to be sung to music. At first some people -made fun of his music, for it seemed to them so -noisy and “slam-bangy” and without tune. But -people now make fun of those “some people” who -don’t like it!</p> - -<p>I have told you in other places of painters and -poets, of architects and wise men, of kings and -heroes, of wars and troubles. I have put this -story of music of all ages in one chapter which -I have tucked in here between the acts, to give -you a rest for a moment from wars and rumors of -wars.</p> - -<p>When I was a boy I never heard any great -musicians play. Now you and I can turn on the -phonograph any time and hear the music of -Palestrina or Mozart, of Beethoven or Wagner, -of dozens of other masters, played or sung to us -whenever we wish; the greatest musicians become -our slaves. No caliph in the “Arabian Nights” -could command such service to his pleasure!</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_443"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c75">75</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Daily Papers of 1854-1865</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">If</span> you could go up into your grandfather’s -attic or the attic of somebody else’s grandfather, -or would dig down into some old trunk, you -might find some of the newspapers that were -printed during the years from 1854 to 1865. -Then you might actually read in these daily -papers the happenings that I am now going to -tell you about. Many people still alive have -taken part in some of these events themselves or -know those who have. Under the heading, “Foreign -News,” you would probably find some of the -following things told about:</p> - -<p><span class="smcap large">English News.</span> At this time the queen of -England was named Victoria. She was much -beloved by her people because she had such a -kindly nature and Christian spirit. She was -more like a mother to her people than like a -queen. She ruled for more than half a century, -and the time when she ruled is called the Victorian -Age.</p> - -<p>The English news of 1854 would tell about a -war that the English were then fighting with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_444"></span> -Russia. Russia was a long way off, and so the -English had to send their soldiers in boats -through the Mediterranean Sea to the end, then -past Constantinople in to the Black Sea. There -in a little spot of land that jutted out from Russia -into the Black Sea most of the fighting was -done. This little spot of land was called the -Crimea, and the war therefore was called the -Crimean War. In this war in that far-off land -thousands of English soldiers died from wounds -and disease.</p> - -<p>Now, there was living in England at the time -of this war a lady named Florence Nightingale. -She was very tender-hearted and always looking -out for and taking care of those that were -sick. Even as a little girl she had played that -her dolls were sick with headache or a broken leg, -and she would bandage the aching head or broken -leg and pretend to take care of her sick patient. -When her dog was ill she nursed him as carefully -as if he were a human being.</p> - -<p>Florence Nightingale heard that English soldiers -were dying by the thousands in that distant -land far away from home and that there were no -nurses to take care of the wounded. So she got -together a number of ladies, and they went out -to the Crimea. Before she arrived almost half -the soldiers who were wounded died—fifty soldiers -out of a hundred; after she and her nurses -came, only two in a hundred died. She went<span class="pagenum" id="Page_445"></span> -about through the camps and over the battlefields -at night carrying a lamp looking for the -wounded. The soldiers called her the Lady of -the Lamp, and they all loved her.</p> - -<p>When at last the war was over and she returned -to England, the Government voted to give her -a large sum of money for what she had done. -She, however, refused the money for herself but -took it to found a home for training nurses. -Nowadays trained nurses are thought almost as -necessary as doctors, and any one who is sick can -call in a trained nurse to take care of him, but -at that time there were no trained nurses and no -one had ever heard of such a thing. Florence -Nightingale was the first to start trained nursing, -and so she is looked upon almost as a saint -by trained nurses.</p> - -<p>In one battle in the Crimea a company of -soldiers mounted on horseback were given by -mistake an order to attack the enemy. Though -they knew it meant certain death, they never hesitated -but charged, and two-thirds of them were -killed or wounded in less than half an hour. -Lord Tennyson, the English poet, has told this -story in verse which you may know. It is called -“The Charge of the Light Brigade.”</p> - -<p><span class="smcap large">Japanese News.</span> Japan is a group of islands -near China. Although I have not told you about -it before, it was an old country, settled in its ways -even before Rome was founded. In Europe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_446"></span> -there have been constant changes of kings and -rulers and people and countries. But in Japan -they have had the same line of kings since before -Christ.</p> - -<p>Japan wanted no white people in her country, -and, with a very few exceptions, she had always -kept them out. But in 1854, the same year that -England began the Crimean War, an American -naval officer named Commodore Perry went to -Japan and made an agreement, or treaty, as it is -called, by which Japan allowed white people to -come in and do business with her people. The -Japanese seemed hungry for knowledge, to learn -how to do things in the white man’s way. When -Perry first went to Japan the Japanese lived the -same way they had a thousand years before. -They knew nothing of the white man’s inventions -or ways of living. But in fifty years’ time they -have jumped a thousand years in civilization!</p> - -<p>These are some of the things you might read -about in those old newspapers. Such news would -probably have taken up little space; perhaps they -would have been found down at the bottom of -a column if the newspaper were American. But -if the paper was printed between 1861 and 1864, -the greater part of it would be about a war that -was going on in our own country at that time. -This was a war between our own people, a family -quarrel, which we call the Civil War.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_447"></span></p> - -<p>Two parts of our country, the North and the -South, did not agree on several matters, chief of -which was the question whether the South could -own slaves. So they went to war with each other. -Each side fought for what it believed was right, -and thousands upon thousands gave their lives -for what they believed. The war lasted for four -years, from 1861 to 1865, before it was decided -that no one could ever again own slaves in the -United States.</p> - -<p>Some of you who read these pages had grandfathers -or great-grandfathers who fought in this -war. Some of these fought for the South; some -fought for the North. Some of them may have -died for the South; some of them may have died -for the North.</p> - -<p>The President of the United States at this -time was a man named Abraham Lincoln. Lincoln -was a very poor boy who had been born in -a log cabin. He had taught himself to read by -the light of a blazing knot of wood at night after -his day’s work was done. As he was very poor, -he had only a few books, and these he read over -and over again. One of these books was the same -“Æsop’s Fables” that you read. When Lincoln -was a young man, he became a storekeeper. One -day he found that he had given a poor woman a -smaller package of tea than she had paid for, -and so he closed the store and walked many miles<span class="pagenum" id="Page_448"></span> -to her house in order to return the change. People -began to call him Honest Abe after that, for -he was always very honest and kind-hearted.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig96.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Lincoln visiting camp and shaking hands with the soldiers.</p> -</div> - -<p>He studied hard and became a lawyer and at -last was elected President of the United States. -One day while he was in a theater watching a play -he was shot and killed by one of the actors who -thought Lincoln had not done right in freeing -the slaves.</p> - -<p>Lincoln was one of our greatest Presidents. -Washington started our country; Lincoln prevented -its splitting into two parts, and kept it -together as one big united land to grow into the -great country it now is.</p> -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_449"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c76">76</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Three New Postage-Stamps</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">We</span> are getting pretty close to the present -time, to “Now.”</p> - -<p>Let us look backward a minute to see what had -been going on in Europe since the time of Napoleon.</p> - -<p>After Napoleon had been sent to Elba, the -French had to have another ruler. They wanted -their old kings back again. The family name of -their old kings was Bourbon. So the French -thought they ought to have a Bourbon ruler over -them. Accordingly they tried out three Bourbons -one after the other, all relatives of their last -king, whom they had beheaded.</p> - -<p>But all of them proved no good, the French -people had given the Bourbon family a good tryout, -and so at last they stopped worrying with -kings and started another republic.</p> - -<p>Now, a republic has a president instead of a -king, so that the people had to choose a president; -and whom do you suppose they picked out? -Why, the nephew of Napoleon. The nephew of -Napoleon was named Louis Napoleon. He had -planned and plotted again and again to make<span class="pagenum" id="Page_450"></span> -himself king of France, but again and again he -had failed. And now he was elected president! -But Louis Napoleon didn’t want to be <i>only</i> -president. He wanted to be like his uncle the -great Napoleon. He dreamed of being emperor -and conquering Europe, and so it was not long -after this before he had himself made emperor, -and he called himself Napoleon III.<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a></p> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[5]</a> Napoleon I had a young son who might have been Napoleon II -if he had lived. The story is, that when Napoleon III was made -emperor his name was printed simply with three exclamation -marks after it—“Napoleon!!!” and this was by mistake read -Napoleon III.</p> - -</div> - -<p>Napoleon III was jealous of the neighboring -country of Prussia. She was getting to be too -strong, he thought. Prussia had a king at this -time named William who was very able himself, -and he had an able assistant or prime minister -named Bismarck, who was looking for an excuse -to fight France. So presently a war was started -between the two countries in 1870. Napoleon -soon found he had made a bad mistake in picking -the war with Prussia. Prussia was not <i>getting</i> -too strong; she was already too strong.</p> - -<p>Napoleon III was completely beaten by Prussia, -and he with a large army had to surrender. -Then in disgrace he went to live in England.</p> - -<p>The Prussians marched into Paris and made -the French agree to pay them a billion dollars. -When some of the French towns said they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_451"></span> -couldn’t pay, Bismarck lined up the leading -citizens of the place and told them they would be -shot if they didn’t raise the money that was demanded. -So France paid, and to the wonder -and amazement of everybody she paid this immense -sum in two years’ time. But the French -and the French children have never forgotten the -way they were made to pay and the way they -were treated by the Prussians, and so ever since -then there has been deadly enmity between these -two countries. This war was called the Franco-Prussian -War, as it was between France and -Prussia.</p> - -<p>There were a number of little countries near -Prussia. They were called German states. But -though their people were related, the countries -or states were separate. As a result of this war, -Prussia was able to join all these German states -together and to make for the first time one big, -strong, powerful nation called Germany, feared -by other countries on account of her great army -of fighting men. William was made emperor -of all Germany and called kaiser. He was -crowned in the French palace at Versailles that -Louis XIV had built.</p> - -<p>The French thought the Germans had been -able to win this war because they had public -schools in which all their children were trained, -and because of the way their soldiers were drilled.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_452"></span> -So France set to work and started public schools -everywhere in France and imitated the German -way of drilling their army so that they would be -ready for them in the next war.</p> - -<p>Ever since then France has been a republic -with a president and an Assembly chosen by the -people.</p> - -<p>At that time Italy was not a single country as -now but like Germany a collection of small states. -Some of these were independent, some were -owned by France, some were owned by Austria. -The king of one of these Italian states was Victor -Emmanuel. He wanted all the Italian states to -unite and become one single country like our -United States. He was helped by his prime minister, -a very able man named Cavour, and by a -rough but romantic popular hero named Garibaldi, -who was called the hero of the Red Shirt.</p> - -<p>Garibaldi, who had been a candle-maker in -New York City, was always poor and seemed -not to care for money. He was so popular that -whenever he called for soldiers to fight with him -for his beloved Italy, they at once flocked around -him ready to fight to the death.</p> - -<p>And so at last these three, Victor Emmanuel, -Cavour, and Garibaldi, succeeded in making their -country one big nation. The Italians erected -monuments to them and named streets after -them. To Victor Emmanuel they built a magnificent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_453"></span> -building on a hill in Rome overlooking -the city, a building that was intended to be more -beautiful than anything built in Athens during -the time of Pericles or in Italy during the -Renaissance.</p> - -<p>If you collect postage-stamps it would be interesting -for you to get, if you can, stamps of -these countries at that time, the New French Republic, -United Germany, and United Italy.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig97.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_454"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c77">77</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">The Age of Miracles</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">You</span> may think the Age of Miracles was when -Christ lived.</p> - -<p>But if a man who lived at that time should -come back to earth now he would think <i>this</i> the -Age of Miracles.</p> - -<p>If he heard you talk over a wire to a person a -thousand miles away, he would think you a magician.</p> - -<p>If you showed him people moving and acting -on a movie screen, he would think you a witch.</p> - -<p>If he heard you start a band playing by turning -on a phonograph, he would think you a devil.</p> - -<p>If he saw you fly through the air in an airplane, -he would think you a god.</p> - -<p>We are so used to the telephone, telegraph, and -phonograph; to steamboats, steam railroads, and -trolley-cars; to electric lights, motor-cars, moving -pictures, radio, and airplanes, that it is hard -to imagine a world in which there were none of -these things—absolutely none of these things. -Yet in the Year 1800 not a single one of these inventions -was known.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_455"></span></p> - -<p>Neither George Washington nor Napoleon -ever saw a steam-engine, a steam-car, nor a -steamboat. They had never used a telephone nor -a telegraph nor a bicycle. My own grandfather -never saw a trolley-car nor an electric light. -Even my father never saw a phonograph, a moving -picture, an automobile, nor a flying-machine.</p> - -<p>More wonders have been made in the last hundred -years than in all the previous centuries of -the world put together.</p> - -<p>A Scotchman named James Watt was one of -the first of these magicians whom we call inventors. -Watt had watched a boiling kettle on the -stove and noticed that the steam lifted the lid. -This gave him an idea that steam might lift other -things as well as the lid of a tea-kettle. So he -made a machine in which steam lifted a lid called -a piston in such a way as to turn a wheel. This -was the first steam-engine.</p> - -<p>Watt’s steam-engine moved wheels and other -things, but it didn’t move itself. An Englishman -named Stephenson put Watt’s engine on -wheels and made the engine move its own wheels. -This was the first locomotive. Soon funny-looking -carriages drawn by funny-looking engines -were made to run on tracks in America. At first -these trains ran only a few miles out from such -cities as Baltimore and Philadelphia.</p> - -<p>Then a young fellow named Robert Fulton<span class="pagenum" id="Page_456"></span> -thought he could make a boat go by putting -Watt’s engine on board and making it turn paddle-wheels. -People laughed at him and called -the boat he was building “Fulton’s Folly,” which -means “foolishness.” But the boat worked, and -Fulton had the laugh on those who had laughed -at him. He called his boat the <i>Clermont</i>, and it -made regular trips up and down the river.</p> - -<p>No one had ever before been able to talk to another -far off until the telegraph was invented. -The telegraph makes a clicking sound. Electricity -flows through a wire from one place to another -place which may be a long distance off. If -you press a button at one end of the wire you stop -the electricity flowing through the wire, and the -instrument at the other end makes a click. A -short click is called a dot, and a long click is called -a dash. These dots and dashes stand for letters -of the alphabet, so you can spell out a message -by dots and dashes.</p> - -<table cellspacing="0" cellpadding="0" summary="table"> - -<tr><td class="tdl">A is</td> - <td class="tdlb">· —</td> - <td class="tdl">dot-dash</td></tr> - - -<tr><td class="tdl">B is</td> - <td class="tdlb"> — ···</td> - <td class="tdl">dash-dot-dot-dot</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl">E is</td> - <td class="tdlb">·</td> - <td class="tdl">dot</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl">H is</td> - <td class="tdlb">····</td> - <td class="tdl">dot-dot-dot-dot</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdl">T is</td> - <td class="tdlb"> —</td> - <td class="tdl">dash</td></tr> - -</table> - -<p>An American painter named Morse invented this -wonderful little instrument. He built the first<span class="pagenum" id="Page_457"></span> -telegraph line in America between Baltimore and -Washington, and this was the first message he -clicked across it: “What hath God wrought!”</p> - -<p>A school-teacher named Bell was trying to -find some way of making deaf children hear, and -in doing so he invented the telephone. The telephone -carries words as the telegraph carries -clicks. You do not have to know a special alphabet -or spell out words by dots and dashes as you -do on the telegraph. With the telephone any -one can talk from one side of America to the -other.</p> - -<p>Many inventions now in every-day use have -been partly invented by several people, so that -it is hard to say just which one thought of the -invention first. Several people thought of a way -to run a machine by feeding it electricity. This -was the electric motor. Then others thought of a -way to run a machine by exploding gas. This -was the motor used in automobiles.</p> - -<p>Electric lights, such as we use indoors, were -invented by Thomas Alva Edison. Edison is -called a wizard, because in the Middle Ages -wizards were supposed to be able to do and to -make all sorts of wonderful and impossible -things, to turn lead into gold, to make people invisible, -and that sort of thing. But Edison has -done things that no wizard of a fairy-tale had -ever even thought of. Edison was a poor boy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_458"></span> -who sold newspapers and magazines on a train. -He was interested in all sorts of experiments and -fitted up a place in the baggage-car where he -could make experiments. But he made so much -of a mess in the car that at last the baggage-man -kicked Edison’s whole outfit off the train. Edison -invented many things connected with the -phonograph and the movies, and he has probably -made more useful and important inventions than -any other man who has ever lived, so that he is -much greater than those mere kings who have -done nothing but quarrel and destroy—without -whom the world would have been much better off -if they had never lived!</p> - -<p>Thousands of people who have lived in the past -ages have tried to fly and failed. Millions of -people have said it was impossible to fly and -foolish to try. Some have even said it was wicked -to try, that God meant that only birds and angels -should fly. At last, after long years of work -and thousands of trials, two American brothers -named Wright did the impossible. They invented -the airplane and flew.</p> - -<p>An Italian named Marconi invented the radio, -and others every day are still making wonderful -inventions, but you will have to read about these -yourself, for we are near the end of our history.</p> - -<p>Here is a good subject for an argument or debate: -Are we any happier <i>with</i> all these inventions<span class="pagenum" id="Page_459"></span> -than people were a thousand years ago -<i>without</i> them?</p> - -<p>Life is faster and more exciting; but it is more -difficult and more dangerous. Instead of enjoying -a book curled up in the corner of a sofa by a -crackling fire, we leave a steam radiator and go -out to the movies. Instead of singing or playing -the violin, we turn on the graphophone or the -player-piano and miss the chief joy in music, the -joy of making it ourselves. Instead of the jogging -drive in an old buggy behind a horse that -goes along through the country-side almost by -himself, we speed on in dangerous autos, to which -we must pay constant, undivided attention or be -wrecked.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig98.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_460"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c78">78</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">GERMANY FIGHTS THE WORLD</p> - - -<p>The last chapter was one of the few without -a fight in it. But now, to make up for that, I -must tell you about the greatest and the worst -fight in history.</p> - -<p>There is a little country in Europe called -Serbia. It is next door to Austria. A young -man who lived in Serbia shot an Austrian prince. -Little Serbia apologized to Austria for what -one of her people had done. But Austria insisted -that the Serbian nation was to blame for -what had been done; she refused to accept the -apology and started in to punish Serbia.</p> - -<p>I once saw a little dog snap at a big boy. The -owner of the little dog apologized to the big boy -for what his dog had done. But the big boy did -not accept the apology, and he started in to -thrash the little boy for what his dog had done. -Presently a crowd gathered round, the friends -of each boy took sides, and there was a general -free-for-all “scrap.”</p> - -<p>So it was in this case. One of Austria’s big -friends, Germany, took sides against Serbia, and -Russia took the side of Serbia. Ever since the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_461"></span> -time of the Franco-Prussian War and Bismarck -and William, Germany had been in training for -a fight, and so had her neighbors. Nearly all the -countries of Europe had for years been getting -together into two groups, made up of the friends -and the enemies of Germany; and the two were -ready to jump at each other as soon as Austria, -or Germany, or anybody else, struck at any one.</p> - -<p>But Germany didn’t strike at Serbia; Austria -didn’t really need her help against Serbia. Germany -was sure that France, who was her enemy -and Russia’s friend, would take sides against -her; and so she rushed at France to destroy her -before Russia could hit hard from the other side. -Now, to get at France Germany had to get -through the little country of Belgium. She and -France had agreed that neither would march -armies through Belgium, but when the war -began her armies marched in anyway and pushed -aside the Belgians, who tried to stop them. And -so her armies rushed on toward the capital of -France, Paris. She got as far as a little stream -called the Marne, only twenty miles from Paris. -But here the French under General Foch stopped -her army. This battle of the Marne is probably -the most famous of all the battles you have heard -about in history, for though the war was not -ended for four years after this battle, if the Germans -had won at the Marne, the war would have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_462"></span> -been over, with Germany victor, and the rest of -the world would have had to do what Germany -said.</p> - -<p>Germany was the first to use poison gas, trying -to smother her enemy; she fought with -submarines from under the sea; she attacked -passenger ships that could not fight back. The -English navy was the strongest, and it was only -with submarines that Germany could fight at -sea. This war was the first one in history in -which battles were fought not only on land but -up in the air and down under the water.</p> - -<p>England took sides with France and Russia—and -these were called Allies—to fight against -Germany and Austria, and at first the war was -between these countries only. Before the war -ended, however, almost all the countries of the -world had taken sides against Germany, for they -knew that if she won she would be able to tell -the rest of the world what to do. Then all of a -sudden Russia had a revolution. The Russian -people killed their ruler, the czar, and his family, -and refused to fight any longer. Things began -to look pretty bad for the Allies.</p> - -<p>The United States did not start into the war -until 1917, almost three years after it had begun; -then she did so because German submarines were -sinking American passenger ships and killing -Americans.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_463"></span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig99.jpg" alt="" /> -<p class="caption">Surrender of Germans.</p> -</div> - -<p>America was so far off—three thousand miles -away—and across an ocean that it seemed impossible -that she could do much in the war. But -in a very short time she had sent two million -soldiers across in ships. Under General Pershing -they fought great battles. At last Germany was -utterly beaten, and on Armistice day, November<span class="pagenum" id="Page_464"></span> -11, 1918, Germany signed a paper agreeing to -do everything the Allies asked; and so the greatest -war in history ended. The kaiser went to live -in Holland, and Germany became a republic.</p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig100.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_465"></span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak" id="c79">79</h2> -</div> - -<p class="c xlarge">Yesterday, To-day, and To-morrow</p> - - -<p><span class="smcap">There</span> is a candy shop near where I live. On -its sign it says, “Made Fresh Every Hour.” -History is being made every day. It is being -made fresh almost every hour. The newsboy -even now is calling outside of my window, “Extra! -Extra!” Is it a new war? Is it a new discovery? -If you had clipped head-lines from the -papers since the World War, here are some of -the things you might have pasted in your scrapbook.</p> - -<div class="blockquotb"> - -<p> -TREATY OF PEACE<br /> -SIGNED AT VERSAILLES -</p> - -<p> -Nations Agree on Terms of Peace</p> -<p> -The Mohammedan Turks in the East Are<br /> -Again Threatening the Christian<br /> -Nations of the West</p> - -<p> -THE IRISH FREE<br /> -STATE ESTABLISHED</p> -<p> -After Centuries of Struggle to Become<br /> -Independent of England, Ireland at<br /> -Last, with England’s Permission, Has<br /> -Set Up a Government of Her Own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_466"></span> -</p> -<p> -COLUMBUS OF THE AIR</p> -<p> -Read, an American, Crosses Atlantic<br /> -Ocean for First Time in an Airplane;<br /> -Lands at the Azores and Then in<br /> -Portugal; Several Others Soon Follow,<br /> -and the Ocean Is Crossed a Number of<br /> -Times -</p> -<p> -WOMEN CAN VOTE AT LAST</p> -<p> -All Through the Ages Women Have Had<br /> -Little or No “Say” in the Government;<br /> -Now, for the First Time, They Can<br /> -Vote in Our Country and in Most<br /> -Other Civilized Countries -</p> -<p> -STRONG DRINK PROHIBITED</p> -<p> -The Use of Wine and Strong Drink,<br /> -Which Has Caused So Much Crime,<br /> -Disease, Death and Unhappiness, Has<br /> -Been Forbidden in the United States<br /> -and Limited in Many Other Countries;<br /> -in the Generations to Come, Men Will<br /> -Probably Marvel That There Was Once<br /> -a Time When People Drank Poison for<br /> -Pleasure -</p></div> - -<p>From now on you will have to read your history -in the daily papers.</p> - -<p>Up to this time, history has been marked by -the story of one war after another, some big, -some small, some short, some long. Almost always -a fight has been going on somewhere. It -has been War, War, War; Fight, Fight, Fight. -Children scratch, kick, and bite. But the older<span class="pagenum" id="Page_467"></span> -we get, the less do we use our fists and feet to -settle quarrels. So fighting seems to be a sign -of childhood—that we are “kids”—and our fights, -that we call wars, a sign of how young the world -really is and we really are; a sign that the world -is still but a minute or two old.</p> - -<p>Now, we admire and praise as heroes Horatius, -Leonidas, Joan of Arc, and General Foch -and those others who have defended their countries -against the attacks of the enemy, as we -would admire a man who shoots a burglar or a -murderer that attacks his family in the night. -But those, whether kings, generals, or princes, -who do the attacking and take life with no other -excuse than to add to their power or wealth or -glory, are no better than burglars who go forth -with a gun and a blackjack to waylay, rob, and -murder for the same purpose. War kills, war -destroys, war costs millions of lives and billions -of dollars—money that could be used to make -us happy, instead of causing bitterness, suffering, -misery, and unhappiness; blind men and -cripples, widows and orphans. No one is better -off, not even the winner. It is a terrible game, -in which even the winner loses. And yet in the -long run who knows? It may be the only way -the world can grow!</p> - -<p>But this is certain: if wars do not end, they -will be fought with something more deadly, more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_468"></span> -terrible than shot and shell. Sooner or later, -some man of science will invent a disease more -catching than the terrible plague, more deadly -than the Black Death with which to attack the -enemy. But if such a disease is let loose, once -started it will spread from one being to the next -till every one has caught it and died and no one -will escape. Or he will invent a poison to poison -the air we breathe that will spread like the wind -or like wildfire in dry grass, and there will be -no stopping it. The air that wraps the globe will -be a sea of poison gas. Every thing that breathes -will take only one breath, and every man, woman, -and child, every beast of the field, every bird and -flying thing will drop dead. Or he will invent -something a million times more powerful than -gunpowder or dynamite—something so explosive -that when discovered by some Mr. Swartz it will -blow him, his house, his town, his country, and -the whole world to kingdom come—and that will -be the end of this little spark off the sun.</p> - -<p>Perhaps you have looked through a microscope -at what seem to be wars between germs. As -germs might look up at the eye of the microscope -through which we watch their life-and-death -struggles, and wonder what is up above on the -other side looking down at them, so we may -look up at the blue eye of heaven above us and -wonder what all-seeing, all-knowing, all-powerful<span class="pagenum" id="Page_469"></span> -being up there is watching our own life-and-death -struggles here below.</p> - -<p>Our little world, which seems so immense to -us, is really only a tiny speck, only one of countless -other specks floating in space; it is like one -of the tiny motes which you may see any time in -a sunbeam that shines in at the window. Who -has an eye so keen that he can count the moving -motes in such a beam of light? Who would miss -one such grain of dust if it should disappear? So -this grain of dust we call the World and all -of us who live upon it could vanish without ever -being noticed!</p> - -<p>This story ends here, but only for the present, -for history is a continued story and will never -end.</p> - -<p>If you were living in the Year 10,000 <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span>, as -some boy will be, your history would only be just -begun when you had reached where we are now. -Even the World War would then seem as long -ago as the fights of the Stone Age men seem to -us. You might think of us and all the inventions -we consider so wonderful as we think of the discovery -of copper and bronze.</p> - -<p>Will the history that is written in the Year 10,000 -have any wars to tell about? If the wars -on Earth cease, will there be wars with other -worlds?</p> - -<p>And if there are no more wars, what will history<span class="pagenum" id="Page_470"></span> -tell about? Will it be new inventions? -What kinds? Will it be new discoveries? We -know every corner of the world now. Will it be -the inside of this world or other new worlds or a -spiritual world?</p> - -<p>Perhaps then people will no longer use trains, -steamboats, automobiles, or even flying-machines, -but go from place to place as on some magic carpet, -simply by wishing. Perhaps then they will -no longer use letters, telephones, or telegraphs, -or even radio, but read each other’s thoughts at -any distance.</p> - -<p>And so on—World without end—<span class="smcap">Amen!</span></p> - -<div class="figcenter"> -<img src="images/fig101.jpg" alt="" /> -</div> - -<hr class="full x-ebookmaker-drop" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p class="ph2">PRONOUNCING INDEX</p> -</div> - - -<p>This list of the most important names in the book tells you on -what page you may find each name and how to sound those you -may not know.</p> - -<table summary="sounds"> - -<tr><td class="tdc">Sound</td> - <td class="tdc">a</td> - <td class="tdcp">as</td> - <td class="tdc">in</td> - <td class="tdl">hat.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">aw</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">saw.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">ah</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">ah!</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">ee</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">see.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">e or eh</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">get.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">er</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">her.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">i or ih</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">hit</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">igh</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">right.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">o</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">hot.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">oh</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">oh!</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">ow</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">how.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">u or uh</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">up.</td></tr> - -<tr><td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdc">ew</td> - <td class="tdcp">“</td> - <td class="tdc">“</td> - <td class="tdl">few.</td></tr> - - -</table> - - -<ul class="index"> -<li class="ifrst">Aaron (air´ un), <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Abednego (a bed´ nee go), <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Abraham (ay´ bra ham), <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Acropolis (a krop´ o lis), <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Adolphus, Gustavus (a dolf´ us), <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Æneas (ee nee´ as), <a href="#Page_190">190</a> etc., <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Æneid (ee nee´ id), <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Æsop’s Fables (ee´ sop), <a href="#Page_447">447</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Africa, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_348">348</a>, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Age of Discovery, <a href="#Page_347">347</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Age of Miracles, <a href="#Page_454">454</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aix-la-chapelle (ayks - la - sha pell´), <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Alaric (al´ a rik), <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Alcuin (al´ kwin), <a href="#Page_259">259</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Alexander the Great, <a href="#Page_159">159</a> to 168</li> - -<li class="indx">Alexandria, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Alfred the Great, <a href="#Page_264">264</a> to 270</li> - -<li class="indx">Allah (al´ ah), <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 247</li> - -<li class="indx">Alps, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li> - -<li class="indx">America, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Americus, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Angle-land, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Angles, <a href="#Page_223">223</a> to 230</li> - -<li class="indx">Anglo-Saxons, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Anno Domini, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Antony (an´ to nih), <a href="#Page_190">190</a> to 192</li> - -<li class="indx">Aphrodite (af ro digh´ tih), <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Apollo (a pol´ lo), <a href="#Page_58">58</a> to 63</li> - -<li class="indx">Arabesques (air a besks´), <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Arabia, <a href="#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a> to 256</li> - -<li class="indx">Arabian Nights, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Arabs, <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 256</li> - -<li class="indx">Ares (ay´ reez), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Arch of Constantine, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Arch of Titus, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aristides (air is tigh´ deez), <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aristotle (air is tott´ ell), <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Artemis (ar´ tee mis), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Arthur, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aryans (ar´ yans), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Asia, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Assurbanipal (ass er ban´ ih pal), <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Assyria (as seer´ ih ah), <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a> to 98</li> - -<li class="indx">Astarte (ass tar´ tih), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Athene (a thee´ nih), <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_145">145</a> to 154</li> - -<li class="indx">Athene Parthenos (par´ the nos), <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Athenians, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 145, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Athens, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Attila (at´ tih lah), <a href="#Page_225">225</a> to 227</li> - -<li class="indx">Augustan Age, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Augustus, <a href="#Page_195">195</a> to 197</li> - -<li class="indx">Austria, Austrian, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_408">408</a>, <a href="#Page_409">409</a>, <a href="#Page_440">440</a>, <a href="#Page_462">462</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Azores, <a href="#Page_466">466</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aztecs (az´ tecks), <a href="#Page_355">355</a> to 357</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Baal (bay´ al), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Babylon (bab´ in lun), <a href="#Page_98">98</a> to 103, <a href="#Page_106">106</a> to 108</li> - -<li class="indx">Babylonia, <a href="#Page_43">43</a> to 48</li> - -<li class="indx">Babylonians, <a href="#Page_45">45</a> to 49, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bach (bahk), <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bacon, Roger, <a href="#Page_324">324</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bagdad, <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>, <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Balboa (bal boh´ ah), <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Baltimore, <a href="#Page_455">455</a>, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bastille (bas teel´), <a href="#Page_421">421</a>, <a href="#Page_422">422</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Beethoven, Louis (bay´ to ven), <a href="#Page_441">441</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Belgium, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bell, <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Belshazzar (bel shaz´ zar), <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Benedict and Benedictines (ben´ eh dickt), <a href="#Page_237">237</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bethlehem, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bible, King James, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bishop of Rome, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bismarck, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Black Death, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>, <a href="#Page_468">468</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Black Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_444">444</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Blondel (blon dell´), <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Boleyn, Anne (bool´ in), <a href="#Page_370">370</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bourbon (boor´ bun), <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Brahma, Brahmanism, Brahmanists (brah´ mah), <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_112">112</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Britain, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li> - -<li class="indx">British Museum, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bronze Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a> to 22</li> - -<li class="indx">Brutus, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bucephalus (bew sef´ a lus), <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Buddha, Buddhism, Buddhists (bood´ dah), <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Byron, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Byzantium (bi zan´ shi um), <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Cabot (kab´ ut), <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cadmus (kad´ mus), <a href="#Page_74">74</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cæsar, Augustus (see´ zer), <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cæsar, Julius, <a href="#Page_184">184</a> to 192</li> - -<li class="indx">Cairo (kigh´ ro), <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Canaan (kay´ nan), <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Canada, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Canary Islands, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Canterbury Cathedral, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cape of Good Hope, <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cape Horn, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cape of Storms, <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Carthage and Carthaginians (kar´ thij), <a href="#Page_78">78</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a> to 176</li> - -<li class="indx">Caspian Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cathay (ka thay´), <a href="#Page_316">316</a> to 322, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cathedral of Notre Dame (nohtr´ dam), <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cathedral of Rheims (rhance), <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cathedral of St. Peter, <a href="#Page_201">201</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Catherine, <a href="#Page_406">406</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Catholic, <a href="#Page_365">365</a> to 371</li> - -<li class="indx">Cave Man, Men, People, <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cavour (ka voor´), <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Caxton, <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ceres (see´ reez), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Chaldea, Chaldeans (kal dee´ ah), <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Châlons (sha lahng´), <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charge of the Light Brigade, The, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charlemagne (sharl maign´), <a href="#Page_257">257</a> to 263</li> - -<li class="indx">Charles the Great, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charles I, <a href="#Page_390">390</a> to 393</li> - -<li class="indx">Charles II, <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charles V. of Spain, <a href="#Page_367">367</a> to 369</li> - -<li class="indx">Charles XII, <a href="#Page_404">404</a>, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charles the Hammer, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cheops (k ee´ ops), <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li> - -<li class="indx">China, <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Christ, <a href="#Page_197">197</a> to 202</li> - -<li class="indx">Church of St. Peter, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>, <a href="#Page_366">366</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cincinnatus (sin sin nah´ tus), <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Circus Maximus, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Civil War, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clavichord (klav´ ih kord), <a href="#Page_438">438</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cleopatra (klee o pah´ tra), <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clermont (kler mont´), <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clisthenes (klis´ the neez), <a href="#Page_116">116</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a> <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clotilda (klo till´ dah), <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clovis (klo´ vis), <a href="#Page_233">233</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cologne Cathedral, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Colosseum (kol o see´ um), <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_205">205</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Columbia, <a href="#Page_346">346</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Columbus, Christopher, <a href="#Page_337">337</a> to 345</li> - -<li class="indx">Commodus (kom´ mo dus), <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Confucius (kon few´ shus), <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Constantine, <a href="#Page_215">215</a> to 218</li> - -<li class="indx">Constantinople, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Corday, Charlotte (kor day´), <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cordova (kor´ do vah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Corinthian, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cornelia, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cornwallis, Lord, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Corsica, <a href="#Page_428">428</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cortés (kor´ te), <a href="#Page_356">356</a>, <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Crécy (kres´ sih), <a href="#Page_327">327</a> to 329, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Crimea, Crimean War (krigh mee´ ah), <a href="#Page_444">444</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a>, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Crœsus (kree´ sus), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 106</li> - -<li class="indx">Cromwell, Oliver, <a href="#Page_391">391</a> to 393</li> - -<li class="indx">Crusades (kroo say´ dz), <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 299, <a href="#Page_302">302</a>, <a href="#Page_303">303</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cuneiform (kee nee´ ih form), <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_99">99</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cupid, <a href="#Page_60">60</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cyrus (sigh´ rus), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 109, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Czar (zahr), <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">da Gama, Vasco (day gah´ mah), <a href="#Page_348">348</a> to 350</li> - -<li class="indx">Damascus (da mas´ kus), <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Danes, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_266">266</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Dardanelles (dar da nellz´), <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Dare, Virginia, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Darius (dah righ´ us), <a href="#Page_124">124</a> to 127, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Dark Ages, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li> - -<li class="indx">David, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li> - -<li class="indx">da Vinci, Leonardo (dah vin´ chih), <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Declaration of Independence, <a href="#Page_416">416</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Declaration of Right, <a href="#Page_394">394</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Defender of the Faith, <a href="#Page_369">369</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Delphi (dell´ figh), <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_139">139</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Delphic Oracle, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Demeter (dee mee´ ter), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Demosthenes (dee mos´ the neez), <a href="#Page_157">157</a> to 159</li> - -<li class="indx">De Soto, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Diana (digh an´ ah), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Divine Right of Kings, <a href="#Page_386">386</a>, <a href="#Page_390">390</a>, <a href="#Page_398">398</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Domesday Book, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Doric (dor´ ik), <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Draco (dray´ co), <a href="#Page_114">114</a>, <a href="#Page_115">115</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Dutch, Dutchman, Dutch Republic, <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Edison, Thomas Alva, <a href="#Page_457">457</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Edward III, <a href="#Page_327">327</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Egypt and Egyptians, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_30">30</a> to 41, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Elba, <a href="#Page_432">432</a>, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li> - -<li class="indx">El Dorado (el do rah´ do), <a href="#Page_354">354</a>, <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Elizabeth Tudor, <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a> to 381</li> - -<li class="indx">England, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a> to 268, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Epicureans (ep ih kew ree´ ans), <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Epicurus (ep ih kew´ rus), <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Episcopalians, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_365">365</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Eternal City, The, <a href="#Page_195">195</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Etruscans (ee trus´ kans), <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Euphrates River (ew fray´ tees), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Excalibur (eks kal´ ih ber), <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Exodus, <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Fairfax, Lord, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Fates, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Father of his Country—Peter the Great, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li> -<li class="isub1">Washington, <a href="#Page_419">419</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ferdinand, King, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>, <a href="#Page_344">344</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Feudal System (few´ dal), <a href="#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="#Page_277">277</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Florida, <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Foch, General (fush), <a href="#Page_461">461</a>, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Forum of Rome, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">France, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Franco-Prussian War (frang´ ko-prush´ an), <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Franklin, Benjamin, <a href="#Page_414">414</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Franks, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Frederick Barbarossa (bar bah ross´ ah), <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Frederick the Great, <a href="#Page_407">407</a> to 410</li> - -<li class="indx">French Assembly, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - -<li class="indx">French Revolution, <a href="#Page_420">420</a>, <a href="#Page_422">422</a>, <a href="#Page_429">429</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Freya (fray´ ah), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Fulton, Robert, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Gabriel (gay´ brih ell), <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gargoyles (gar´ goilz), <a href="#Page_308">308</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Garibaldi (gar ih ball´ dih), <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gaul (gawl), <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gautama (gaw´ tah mah), <a href="#Page_111">111</a> to 113</li> - -<li class="indx">Genghis Khan (jen´ gis kahn), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_317">317</a>, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Genoa (jen´ oh ah), <a href="#Page_337">337</a></li> - -<li class="indx">George II, <a href="#Page_412">412</a></li> - -<li class="indx">George III, <a href="#Page_413">413</a> to 418</li> - -<li class="indx">German, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_366">366</a>, <a href="#Page_407">407</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_460">460</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gipsies, <a href="#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gladiators (gla dih ay´ tors), <a href="#Page_181">181</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Godfrey, <a href="#Page_296">296</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Goddess of Reason, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Golden Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a>, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Goliath (go ligh´ eth), <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gordian Knot (gor´ dih an), <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Goshen (go´ shen), <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Goths (gahths), <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gracchi (grack´ igh), <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Graces, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Grand Monarch (Louis XIV), <a href="#Page_398">398</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Great Fire, <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Great War, <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Greece, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Greene, General, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Greenland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Guido (gwee´ doh), <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gutenberg (goo´ ten berg), <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Guy, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Hamites (ham´ ights), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hamlet, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hammurabi (hah mew rah´ bee), <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Handel, <a href="#Page_437">437</a> to 440</li> - -<li class="indx">Hannibal, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Harold, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Haroun-al-Rashid (hah roon´ al rah´ shid), <a href="#Page_262">262</a>, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hastings, Battle of, <a href="#Page_289">289</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hathaway, Anne, <a href="#Page_381">381</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hanging Gardens, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hegira (he jigh´ rah), <a href="#Page_244">244</a> to 249</li> - -<li class="indx">Hellas (hell´ as), <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hellen, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Helen, <a href="#Page_65">65</a> to 67, <a href="#Page_79">79</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Helena, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hellenes, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hellespont (hell´ ess pont), <a href="#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Henry VIII, <a href="#Page_369">369</a> to 372</li> - -<li class="indx">Hephæstus (he fess´ tus), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hera (hee´ rah), <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hercules (her´ kew leez), <a href="#Page_214">214</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hermes (her´ meez), <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Herodotus (he rod´ o tus), <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hieroglyphics (high´ er o gliff icks), <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hiram, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Holland, <a href="#Page_464">464</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_403">403</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Holy City, Holy Land, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_296">296</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Homer, <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Horace, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Horatius (ho ray´ shus), <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Horus (hoh´ rus), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hundred Years’ War, <a href="#Page_327">327</a> to 329, <a href="#Page_335">335</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Huns, <a href="#Page_225">225</a> to 227</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Iceland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Iliad (ill´ ih ad), <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Incas (in´ kas), <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li> - -<li class="indx">India, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Indians, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_343">343</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Indo-Europeans, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Inquisition, <a href="#Page_373">373</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Invincible Armada (ar mah´ dah), <a href="#Page_375">375</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ionic (igh on´ ick), <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ireland, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Irish Free State, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Iron Age, <a href="#Page_19">19</a> to 22, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ironsides, <a href="#Page_391">391</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Isabelle, Queen, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Isis (igh´ sis), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Islam (iss´ lam), <a href="#Page_245">245</a> to 250</li> - -<li class="indx">Israel (iz´ rah ell), <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Israelites (iz´ rah ell ights), <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Italy, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Jacob, <a href="#Page_50">50</a></li> - -<li class="indx">James I, <a href="#Page_380">380</a>, <a href="#Page_385">385</a> to 387, <a href="#Page_390">390</a>, <a href="#Page_412">412</a>, <a href="#Page_430">430</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Jamestown, <a href="#Page_413">413</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Japan, <a href="#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a>, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Jefferson Thomas, <a href="#Page_416">416</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Jerusalem, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Jesus, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_363">363</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Joan of Arc (jone of ark), <a href="#Page_330">330</a> to 332, <a href="#Page_467">467</a></li> - -<li class="indx">John, King, <a href="#Page_311">311</a> to 314, <a href="#Page_390">390</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Joseph, <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_51">51</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Juno, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Jupiter, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Justinian (jus tin´ i an), <a href="#Page_231">231</a> to 233, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Kaiser (kigh’ zer), <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Knights of the Round Table, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Koran (koh´ ran), <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Kublai Khan (koo´ bli kahn), <a href="#Page_318">318</a> to 320</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Laconia (lah koh´ ni a), <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Laconic (lah kon´ ik), <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lady of the Lamp, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lafayette (la fay et´), <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Laocoon (lay ock´ oh on), <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Last Supper, The, <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lavinia, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lebanon, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Leif Ericson (leef ehr´ ick son), <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Leningrad (len´ in grad), <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Leo I (lee´ oh), <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Leonidas, <a href="#Page_137">137</a> to 140</li> - -<li class="indx">Lictor (lick´ tor), <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lincoln, President Abraham, <a href="#Page_447">447</a>, <a href="#Page_448">448</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lion of the North, <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Louis I (loo´ ih), <a href="#Page_302">302</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Louis XIII, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Louis XIV, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Louis XVI, <a href="#Page_420">420</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lucy, Sir Thomas, <a href="#Page_381">381</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Luther, <a href="#Page_366">366</a>, <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lycurgus (ligh ker´ gus), <a href="#Page_79">79</a> to 82</li> - -<li class="indx">Lydia (lid´ i ah), <a href="#Page_104">104</a> to 106</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Macedonia (mass ee doh´ ni ah) 156, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Madman of the North, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Magi (may´ jigh), <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Magellan (ma jell´ an), <a href="#Page_351">351</a>, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Magna Carta (mag´ nah kar´ tah), <a href="#Page_313">313</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Marathon, <a href="#Page_127">127</a> to 130</li> - -<li class="indx">Marco Polo (mar´ koh po´ loh), <a href="#Page_318">318</a>, <a href="#Page_337">337</a>, <a href="#Page_338">338</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Marconi (mar koh´ nih), <a href="#Page_458">458</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Marcus Aurelius (mar´ kus ah ree´ li us), <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_220">220</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Maria Theresa (ma righ a te ree´ sah), <a href="#Page_408">408</a> to 409</li> - -<li class="indx">Marie Antoinette (mah ree´ an toah net´), <a href="#Page_321">321</a> to 423</li> - -<li class="indx">Marne, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mars, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Marseillaise (mar say ly ayz´), <a href="#Page_425">425</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Masks, <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Massachusetts, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mayflower, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mazda, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mecca (mek´ ah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a> to 246, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Medes (meeds), <a href="#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Media (mee´ di ah), <a href="#Page_100">100</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Medina (meh dee´ nah), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_244">244</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Meditations, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mediterranean Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Menelaus (men ee lay´ us), <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_66">66</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Menes (men eez), <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Merchant of Venice, The, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mercury, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Merry Monarch (Charles II), <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mesopotamia (mes o po tay´ mi ah), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Messiah, The (oratorio), <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Methodists, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_365">365</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mexico, <a href="#Page_355">355</a> to 357</li> - -<li class="indx">Michelangelo (migh kell an jee loh), <a href="#Page_360">360</a> to 366</li> - -<li class="indx">Middle Ages, <a href="#Page_304">304</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Miltiades (mill tigh´ a deez), <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Minerva, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mississippi, <a href="#Page_355">355</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mohammed (mo ham´ ed), <a href="#Page_242">242</a> to 245, <a href="#Page_247">247</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mohammedans, <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Moloch (moh´ lock), <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mona Lisa (moh’ nah lee’ zah), <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mongols (mon´ golz), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Montezuma (mon tee zoo´ mah), <a href="#Page_356">356</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Morse, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Moscow (mos´ koh), <a href="#Page_405">405</a>, <a href="#Page_432">432</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Moses, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_360">360</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Moslems, <a href="#Page_247">247</a> to 257</li> - -<li class="indx">Mount Ararat (ar´ a rat), <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mount of Olives, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mount Olympus (o lim´ pus), <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mount Parnassus (par nas´ us), <a href="#Page_62">62</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mount Sinai (sigh´ nigh), <a href="#Page_54">54</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mozart (mo´ tzart), <a href="#Page_440">440</a> to 442</li> - -<li class="indx">Muezzin (moo ez´ in), <a href="#Page_246">246</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Muses (mewz´ ez), <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Napoleon Bonaparte (na poh´ le on bon´ na part), <a href="#Page_428">428</a> to 434</li> - -<li class="indx">Napoleon, Louis, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Napoleon III, <a href="#Page_449">449</a></li> - -<li class="indx">National Assembly, <a href="#Page_422">422</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a>, <a href="#Page_424">424</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nebuchadnezzar (neb oo kad nez´ ar), <a href="#Page_99">99</a> to 103, <a href="#Page_261">261</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nelson, Lord, <a href="#Page_430">430</a>, <a href="#Page_431">431</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Neptune, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nero, <a href="#Page_203">203</a> to 205, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li> - -<li class="indx">New Forest, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nightingale, Florence, <a href="#Page_444">444</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nicæa (nigh see´ ah), <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nicene Creed (nigh´ seen), <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nile, <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Niña (nee´ nah), <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nineveh (nin´ eh veh), <a href="#Page_94">94</a> to 100, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Noah’s Ark, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Normandy, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Normans, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_288">288</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Norsemen, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li> - -<li class="indx">North America, <a href="#Page_340">340</a> to 344, <a href="#Page_350">350</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Notre Dame (nohtr dam), <a href="#Page_309">309</a>, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Oberammergau (oh ber am´ er gow), <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Octavius (ock tay´ vi us), <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Odysseus (o dis´e us), <a href="#Page_68">68</a>, <a href="#Page_90">90</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Odyssey (od´ ih sih), <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Olympia (o lim´ pi ah), <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Olympiad (o lim´ pi ad), <a href="#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Olympic games, <a href="#Page_86">86</a> to 88</li> - -<li class="indx">Orpheus (or´ fe us), <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Omar (oh´ mar), <a href="#Page_247">247</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Osiris (o sigh´ ris), <a href="#Page_34">34</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ostracism (os´ tra sism), <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Oxford, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Palestine (pal´ es tighm), <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Palestrina (pah les tree´ nah), <a href="#Page_337">337</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Palos, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pan, <a href="#Page_436">436</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pantheon (pan’ the on), <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pariah (pay’ rih a), <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Paris (the city), <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Paris (the man), <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Parliament, <a href="#Page_386">386</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Parthenon (pahr the non), <a href="#Page_145">145</a> to 148, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pass of Thermopylæ (ther mop’ ih lee), <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Passion Play, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Peking, <a href="#Page_318">318</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Peloponnesian War (pellv oh poh nee´ shan), <a href="#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Peloponnesus (pell oh poh neev sus), <a href="#Page_152">152</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pericles, Age of (per´ i klees), <a href="#Page_144">144</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Perry, Commodore, <a href="#Page_446">446</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pershing, General, <a href="#Page_464">464</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Persia, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Persian Bible, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Persian Gulf, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Peru, <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Peter the Great, <a href="#Page_402">402</a> to 406</li> - -<li class="indx">Peter the Hermit, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_295">295</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Petrograd, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pharaoh (fay´ roh), <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pharos (fay´ ros), <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pheidippides (figh dip´ ih dees), <a href="#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="#Page_129">129</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Phenicia (fee nish´ ih a), <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Phenicians (fee nish´ ans), <a href="#Page_74">74</a> to 78, <a href="#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="#Page_171">171</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Phidias (fid´ ih as), <a href="#Page_146">146</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="#Page_359">359</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Philip, <a href="#Page_156">156</a> to 159</li> - -<li class="indx">Philip II, <a href="#Page_369">369</a>, <a href="#Page_373">373</a> to 375</li> - -<li class="indx">Philip of France, <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 299</li> - -<li class="indx">Philippics (fih lip´ icks), <a href="#Page_158">158</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Philippine Islands, <a href="#Page_352">352</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pilate, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="#Page_199">199</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pillars of Hercules, <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pinta (pin´ ta), <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pisistratus (pi sis´ tra tus), <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pizarro (pi zair´ oh), <a href="#Page_357">357</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Plato, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pluto, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Polo, <a href="#Page_318">318</a> to 320</li> - -<li class="indx">Pompeii (pom pay´ yee), <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pompey (pom´ pih), <a href="#Page_186">186</a> to 188</li> - -<li class="indx">Ponce de León (pon thee dee lee´ on), <a href="#Page_354">354</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Portugal, <a href="#Page_338">338</a>, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a>, <a href="#Page_466">466</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Portuguese (por´ chew geese´), <a href="#Page_348">348</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Poseidon (poh sigh´ don), <a href="#Page_57">57</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Priam (prigh´ am), <a href="#Page_65">65</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Primitive Men, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Primitive People, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Protector, <a href="#Page_393">393</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Protestants, <a href="#Page_368">368</a>, <a href="#Page_372">372</a>, <a href="#Page_373">373</a>, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_395">395</a> to 397</li> - -<li class="indx">Protestantism, <a href="#Page_373">373</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Prussia, <a href="#Page_407">407</a> to 409, <a href="#Page_431">431</a>, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Prussians, <a href="#Page_450">450</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ptolemy I (tol’ ih mih), <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Punic War (pew´ nick), <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_172">172</a>, <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Raleigh, Sir Walter, <a href="#Page_378">378</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rameses (ram´ ih sees), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Raphael (raff´ ay ell), <a href="#Page_362">362</a> to 366</li> - -<li class="indx">Red Sea, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Red Shirt, Hero of, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Reformation (reff or may´ shun), <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Reign of Terror, <a href="#Page_425">425</a>, <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Remus (ree´ mus), <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Renaissance (ren ay sahns´), <a href="#Page_359">359</a>, <a href="#Page_360">360</a>, <a href="#Page_453">453</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Revolution, <a href="#Page_428">428</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richard of England (Richard the Lion-hearted), <a href="#Page_297">297</a> to 301, <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richelieu (rish´ ih lew), <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roanoke (roh´ a nohke), <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Robespierre (rob´ bes pyer), <a href="#Page_425">425</a>, <a href="#Page_427">427</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Robin Hood, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rollo, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roma, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roman Aqueduct (ack´ we duct), <a href="#Page_179">179</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roman Catholics, <a href="#Page_368">368</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roman Senate, <a href="#Page_186">186</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rome, <a href="#Page_89">89</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Romeo and Juliet, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Romulus (rom´ yew lus), <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="#Page_93">93</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Romulus Augustulus (a gus´ tew lus), <a href="#Page_228">228</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rosetta Stone (roh zet´ a), <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_33">33</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roxana (rocks an´ a), <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rubicon (rew´ bih kon), <a href="#Page_187">187</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Runnymede (run´ ih meed), <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Russia, <a href="#Page_402">402</a> to 406</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Sabines (say´ bighns), <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sahara (sa hah´ rah), <a href="#Page_28">28</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. Helena (hell´ ee nah), <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. John, <a href="#Page_437">437</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. Louis, <a href="#Page_302">302</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. Paul, <a href="#Page_201">201</a> to 203</li> - -<li class="indx">St. Peter, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_218">218</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. Petersburg, <a href="#Page_405">405</a></li> - -<li class="indx">St. Simeon Stylites (sim´ ee on stigh ligh´ tees), <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saladin, <a href="#Page_300">300</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Salamis, Bay of (sal´ ah mis), <a href="#Page_140">140</a>, <a href="#Page_141">141</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Samuel, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li> - -<li class="indx">San Salvador, <a href="#Page_343">343</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Santa Maria, <a href="#Page_340">340</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Santa Sophia, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saracens (sair´ ah sens), <a href="#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saracenic Empire (sair ah sen´ ick), <a href="#Page_243">243</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saratoga, <a href="#Page_417">417</a>, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sargon I (sahr´ gon), <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saturn, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saul, King, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saul (Paul), apostle, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Saxons, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Schwarz, <a href="#Page_325">325</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Scipio (sip´ ih oh), <a href="#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Scotland, <a href="#Page_374">374</a> to 376, <a href="#Page_385">385</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Scots, <a href="#Page_385">385</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Semites (sem´ ights), <a href="#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="#Page_52">52</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Seneca (sen´ e kah), <a href="#Page_203">203</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sennacherib (se nack´ e rib), <a href="#Page_96">96</a>, <a href="#Page_97">97</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Serbia, <a href="#Page_460">460</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Seven-League Boots, <a href="#Page_89">89</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Seven Wonders of the World, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_164">164</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Seven Years’ War, <a href="#Page_410">410</a>, <a href="#Page_417">417</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Shakspere, William, <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a> to 383</li> - -<li class="indx">Sheba, <a href="#Page_72">72</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sicily, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sidon (sigh´ don), <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sistine Chapel (sis´ teen), <a href="#Page_361">361</a>, <a href="#Page_362">362</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sistine Madonna, <a href="#Page_363">363</a>, <a href="#Page_364">364</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Slavs, <a href="#Page_402">402</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Smith, Captain John, <a href="#Page_388">388</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Snow King, <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Socrates (sock´ ray tees), <a href="#Page_153">153</a> to 155, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Solomon, <a href="#Page_71">71</a> to 73, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Solon (soh´ lon), <a href="#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="#Page_116">116</a></li> - -<li class="indx">South Sea, <a href="#Page_350">350</a>, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Spain, <a href="#Page_169">169</a>, <a href="#Page_339">339</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Spanish Armada, <a href="#Page_375">375</a>, <a href="#Page_376">376</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sparta, <a href="#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a> to 129, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sphinx, <a href="#Page_39">39</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stephen, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stephenson, <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stoic (stoh´ ick), <a href="#Page_210">210</a> to 213, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stone Age, The, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Strait of Gibraltar, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_248">248</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Straits of Magellan, <a href="#Page_351">351</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stratford, <a href="#Page_381">381</a>, <a href="#Page_383">383</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stuarts, <a href="#Page_385">385</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Sweden, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_404">404</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Tarquin (tahr´ kwin), <a href="#Page_119">119</a> to 121, <a href="#Page_189">189</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tartars (tah´ tahr), <a href="#Page_316">316</a>, <a href="#Page_317">317</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ten Commandments, <a href="#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tennyson, Lord, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>, <a href="#Page_445">445</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Terrorists, <a href="#Page_426">426</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Teutons, <a href="#Page_220">220</a> to 236</li> - -<li class="indx">Thames River (temz), <a href="#Page_289">289</a>, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Themistocles (thee mis´ to klees), <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 142</li> - -<li class="indx">Thermopylae (ther mop´ ih lee), <a href="#Page_137">137</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Thirty Years’ War, <a href="#Page_395">395</a>, <a href="#Page_396">396</a>, <a href="#Page_397">397</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Thor, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_230">230</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tiber River, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tigris River (tigh gris), <a href="#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="#Page_22">22</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Titus (tigh´ tus), <a href="#Page_206">206</a> to 208</li> - -<li class="indx">Tiu (tih´ ew), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Toledo, <a href="#Page_254">254</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tours (toor), <a href="#Page_243">243</a>, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tower of Babel (bay´ bel), <a href="#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tower of London, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>, <a href="#Page_380">380</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Trafalgar (trah fal´ gar), <a href="#Page_431">431</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Travels of Marco Polo, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>, <a href="#Page_338">338</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Treaty of Westphalia (west fay´ lia), <a href="#Page_396">396</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Trojan War, <a href="#Page_64">64</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Trojans, <a href="#Page_66">66</a>, <a href="#Page_67">67</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Troy, <a href="#Page_65">65</a> to 67, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tudors, <a href="#Page_385">385</a>, <a href="#Page_386">386</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Turkish, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Turks, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tu-tank-amen (too tank a´ men), <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Twenty-third Psalm, <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tyre (tihr), <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Ultima Thule (ul´ tih mah thew lee), <a href="#Page_20">20</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ulysses (yew liss´ ees), <a href="#Page_68">68</a></li> - -<li class="indx">United States, <a href="#Page_413">413</a>, etc.</li> - -<li class="indx">Ur (er), <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_55">55</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Urban (er´ ban), <a href="#Page_293">293</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Valhalla (val hal´ lah), <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vandals (van´ dalz), <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_224">224</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Venetians, <a href="#Page_318">318</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Venice, <a href="#Page_318">318</a>, <a href="#Page_319">319</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Venus, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_61">61</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vergil, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Versailles (ver´ sah´ ye), <a href="#Page_399">399</a>, <a href="#Page_423">423</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_465">465</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vesta, <a href="#Page_61">61</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vesuvius (vee soo’ vihus), <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Victor Emmanuel, <a href="#Page_452">452</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Victoria, <a href="#Page_352">352</a>, <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Victorian Age, <a href="#Page_443">443</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vikings, <a href="#Page_270">270</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vineland, <a href="#Page_271">271</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Virgin Queen, <a href="#Page_374">374</a>, <a href="#Page_379">379</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Virginia, <a href="#Page_379">379</a>, <a href="#Page_387">387</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vulcan, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="#Page_60">60</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Wagner (vahg’ ner), <a href="#Page_441">441</a>, <a href="#Page_442">442</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Walter the Penniless, <a href="#Page_295">295</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Washington, George, <a href="#Page_412">412</a>, <a href="#Page_415">415</a> to 419, <a href="#Page_422">422</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Waterloo (waw ter lew´), <a href="#Page_433">433</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Watt, James, <a href="#Page_455">455</a>, <a href="#Page_456">456</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wellington, <a href="#Page_434">434</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Western Empire, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Westminster Abbey, <a href="#Page_439">439</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William the Conqueror, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William and Mary, <a href="#Page_394">394</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William of Prussia, King, <a href="#Page_450">450</a>, <a href="#Page_451">451</a>, <a href="#Page_461">461</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William the Silent, <a href="#Page_374">374</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wise Men of the East, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wise Men of Greece, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Woden (woh´ den), <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">World War, <a href="#Page_465">465</a>, <a href="#Page_469">469</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Worms (vohrms), <a href="#Page_367">367</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wright, <a href="#Page_458">458</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Xantippe (zan tip´ e), <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Xerxes (zerks´ eez), <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, etc., <a href="#Page_140">140</a> to 143.</li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Yorktown, <a href="#Page_418">418</a></li> - - -<li class="ifrst">Zama (zay´ mah), <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Zeno (zee´ noh), <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Zeus (zews), <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_84">84</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Zoroaster (zoh roh as´ ter), <a href="#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="#Page_104">104</a></li> -</ul> - - -<div class="transnote"> - -<p class="c">Transcriber’s Notes:</p> - -<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation are retained.</p> - -<p>Perceived typographical errors have been changed.</p> - -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CHILD’S HISTORY OF THE WORLD ***</div> -<div style='text-align:left'> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will -be renamed. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™ -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following -the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use -of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for -copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very -easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation -of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project -Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may -do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected -by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark -license, especially commercial redistribution. -</div> - -<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br /> -<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br /> -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span> -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person -or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the -Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when -you share it without charge with others. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country other than the United States. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work -on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the -phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: -</div> - -<blockquote> - <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most - other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions - whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms - of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online - at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you - are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws - of the country where you are located before using this eBook. - </div> -</blockquote> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg™ License. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format -other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain -Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -provided that: -</div> - -<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'> - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation.” - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ - works. - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - </div> - - <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'> - • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. - </div> -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of -the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set -forth in Section 3 below. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right -of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, -Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up -to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website -and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread -public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state -visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate -</div> - -<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'> -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -Most people start at our website which has the main PG search -facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. -</div> - -<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'> -This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. -</div> - -</div> - -</body> -</html> diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d0d063b..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/cover.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index eeba5a6..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig1.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index c5de8cf..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig10.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0a0b28c..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig100.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 569fa50..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig101.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 6527422..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig11.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9115f38..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig12.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 2cc7fc1..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig13.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 32b7855..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig14.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ba5481e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig15.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 687c34d..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig16.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e723f57..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig17.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d3afb60..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig18.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 06f5118..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig19.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 06e2316..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig2.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 806b0bb..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig20.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 92af091..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig21.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index c445320..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig22.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 08bad18..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig23.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 65b4fa4..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig24.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 5466e5f..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig25.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 56e5116..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig26.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 66aff42..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig27.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 071afe3..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig28.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 94b6fb5..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig29.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 3c51fca..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig3.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7594d0a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig30.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 4270be5..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig31.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d89058f..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig32.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 1155ebc..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig33.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 2c22247..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig34.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 633d7e8..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig35.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 460b4ab..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig36.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 15d35fe..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig37.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 143412e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig38.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 3cf4108..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig39.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ab67d24..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig4.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 803df7e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig40.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index a5f0283..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig41.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0cee575..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig42.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 3313a4a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig43.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7f1f330..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig44.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index aef562a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig45.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index da9c3c4..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig46.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0c3b49a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig47.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 235eba7..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig48.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 2b346f2..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig49.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 74b3a23..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig5.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index fb3949d..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig50.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e96bfe9..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig51.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index da9b767..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig52.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 4f3803f..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig53.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 858c38d..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig54.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 96e9b8e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig55.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index fee04a4..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig56.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d902d2c..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig57.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9b1ec8e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig58.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 459809b..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig59.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e4c5959..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig6.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 85acf9b..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig60.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ddcc846..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig61.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index bd46940..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig62.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index be6832e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig63.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7e4e74e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig64.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d5d632f..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig65.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ce58ae8..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig66.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0363b9a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig67.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 3ec656a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig68.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ebc1c59..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig69.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0a038f4..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig7.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index fc5eb19..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig70.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 23c7719..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig71.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ded9808..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig72.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 89e5c89..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig73.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7192275..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig74.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9e4d6ca..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig75.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 39a7d59..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig75big.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 6b2bb0c..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig76.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e160a16..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig77.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index f4a3035..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig78.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ffc5bda..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig79.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 8eb2e3a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig8.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b843240..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig80.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index f7ec359..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig81.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 3fd3767..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig82.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 8f84e96..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig83.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d373405..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig84.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 602cf8d..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig85.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 588610a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig86.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 2b87b2d..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig87.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e34b34e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig88.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d512d77..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig89.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ec61b76..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig9.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ae82ce5..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig90.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 988358a..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig91.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 8dc6410..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig92.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 65044e1..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig93.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9c253bd..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig94.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b9a0658..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig95.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ac9061e..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig96.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 621ff6c..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig97.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e40cbe2..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig98.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg b/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index bbe1dd6..0000000 --- a/old/67149-h/images/fig99.jpg +++ /dev/null |
